A CLOUD OF WITNESSES; OR, THE Sufferers Mirror, Made up of The SWANLIKE-SONGS, and other CHOICE PASSAGES of several MARTYRS and CONFESSORS, to the Sixteenth Century, in their Treatises, Speeches, Letters, Prayers, etc. in their Prisons, or Exiles; at the Bar, or Stake, etc. Collected out of The Ecclesiastical Histories of Eusebius, Fox, Fuller, Petrie, Scotland, And Mr. Samuel Ward's Life of Faith in Death, etc. and Alphabetically disposed. By T. M. M. A. Hebr. 12.1. Wherefore seeing we also are compassed about with so great a Cloud of Witnesses, let us run with patience the race, that is set before us. James 5.10. Take, my Brethren, the Prophets, who have spoken in the Name of the Lord, for an example of suffering affliction and patience. London. Printed for the Author, and are to be fold by Robert Boulter in Saint Paul's Churchyard. 1665. Gentle Reader, THou art desired to take notice, that through the transposing of some Leaves of the Manuscript, the Author living far distant, there hath been committed an Error at the Press, in Mr. john Bradford's Letters, beginning at Page 44. Line 26. immediately before Mr. john Brown. Wherefore thou art entreated to turn to Page 68 Line 6. and read to Page 71. Line 26. and so the Mistake will be rectified. Renowned Mr. Samuel Ward of Ipswich gives the following testimony to the living speeches of dying Christians, which he collected. AS for their last Speeches and Apothegms, pity it is no better mark hath been taken, and memory preserved of them. The choice and prime I have culled out of ancient Stories and later Martyrologies, English, Dutch, and French. The profit and pleasure hath paid me for the labour of Collecting, and the like gain (I hope) shall quit the cost of thy Reading.— By these, which are but an handful of Christ's Camp-Royal, it sufficiently appears, they had their Faith fresh and lively in the face of their grand Enemy, Death; and by virtue of their Faith, their Spirits, Wits and Tongues, untroubled, and undismayed. The learned and ingenious Author of the Preface to Mr. Frith's Treatises of preparation to the Cross (under the Title of Vox Pisces, or the Bookfish) gives the following Testimony to several of the remarkable passages in this Collection. PErhaps unto some Palates no Lequor seemeth desirable, but that which hath a delicious tang of the curiosity of these later Times, both for method and stile. For my part I say with the words in the Gospel, Luke 5.39. The old Wine is better. And accordingly contemplating and comparing the devout Discourses written in our Language upon the breaking forth of the Light of Reformation, I am far more deeply taken with the solid simplicity and powerful Spirit, which methinks I find in the Writings of those Confessors and Martyrs, who watered the Garden of Reformation with their own blood in this Land, then with the more elaborate and artificial composures, written more lately in the Times of our Peace. Who in reading the Letters and Ghostly Meditations of blessed Bradford, Taylor, Philpot, etc. yea even of other their Brethren less learned, that wrote and spoke with that Hand, Heart, and Breath, which they were most ready to yield up for the testimony of the Truth, doth not therein perceive that lively warmth of holy zeal, which is able to awake even a dull and sleepy soul? Among which Martyrs, as this worthy Frith is one of the first for antiquity, so well may he be in the foremost rank for comfortable exhortation and soundness of Doctrine. The Collectors Preface. THe Speeches of dying men are remarkable; the Speeches of dying Christians are much more remarkable; How remarkable then are the Speeches of dying Witnesses for Christ? It is rationally expected that dying men, much more that dying Christians, and most of all that dying Witnesses for Christ should speak best at last. These are the last words of David, ● Sam. 23.1 It is their last. And the Sun shineth brightest at setting. They are immediately to give in their last account. They are upon the borders of Eternity. And the motions of Nature are more intense, as they draw nearer the Centre. To be sure, Saints are most heavenly, when nearest Heaven. Rivers, the nearer the Sea, the sooner are met by the Tide. We have good Scripture-ground to expect that dying Christians, especially dying Witnesses for Christ, should have extraordinary assistances from on high for their last Discourses: That the Wine of the Spirit should be strongest in them at their last. They have God's Word for it, Mat. 10.19. That in that hour it shall be given them, what they shall speak: for it is not they that speak but the Spirit of their Father. One observeth that when Stephen was to deliver his last speech, and to suffer, he was filled with the Holy Ghost, so that all that sat in the Council, looking steadfastly on Stephen, Acts 6.5. saw his face, as if it had been the face of an Angel. His soul was so warmed by the love of God, that he looked both his Adversaries and the tempestuous approaching Storm out of countenance. When he was stoned he got a larger sight. He saw the Heavens opened, and his Majestic Glorious Master, the light-giving Diamond of Heaven, Act. 7.55 standing at his Father's right hand. And this he got, no doubt, as for himself, so to hearten all those that were to come after, he being the first Martyr after Christ. Hence it hath been often found, that their last Speeches have been Oraculous and Prophetical. Zenophon personates Cyrus as inspired, whilst he is breathing out his last requests. The nearer we return to the Original Divinity (as Plotinus speaketh) the more Divine we grow. One observeth from a Scripture instance, That what hath been asserted by dying Witnesses, hath most speedily come to pass. Zachariah told the children of Israel, 2 Chr. 24.20, 24. Because ye have forsaken the Lord, he hath also forsaken you. For this he was immediately stoned, and the Lord sealed his Word very speedily afterwards; For the Assyrians coming with a small company against them, the Lord delivered a very great multitude into their hands, and so without delay in their sight sealed the words of his dying Witness Zachariah. And why his word sooner than Isaiah's, Ieremiah's, Ezekiel's? etc. By them he pleaded much longer with his Apostatising Church. I know none but this: It was the Lord's pleasure; and to show his respect to dying Witnesses, that he would have what they say taken special notice of. It may be, that he might show, that whatever fail, the words of dying Witnesses shall not fall to the ground. It is true, we must not lay such weight upon these sayings, as we must lay upon Scripture prophecies; 1 Pet. 1.9 for though such sayings may be true prophecies, yet we are not infallibly assured that these are prophecies, till they be accomplished: yet their sayings, while dying for and in the Lord, do give good encouragement to them that remain alive, and so to be much esteemed by them; whether they respect the honour of God, or the good of souls. The last Speeches of Christ's dying Witnesses, have extorted even from Heathens acknowledgements to the honour of God, Vere magnus est Deus Christianorum Calocerius that truly the Christians God is a great God: yea, by them sinners have been converted. justin Martyr and others by observing the end the Martyrs made, were brought out of love with the ways of sin, and in love with the ways of holiness. These Speeches (here collected) are called Swanlike Songs for their remarkableness, A Cloud of Witnesses, and The Sufferers Mirror for their usefulness. The Israelites found not only comfort in the shadow of the Cloud in the Wilderness, but a directive virtue therein, they were led by it. There is a double power in such instances both to Comfort, and to Assimilate. Solamen miseris, etc. 1 Cor. 10.13. To see that others have suffered worse is no small comfort to Sufferers. Iacob's Sheep conceived according to the colour of the Rods, that lay in the Troughs. Our conceptions will be like our visions: like the examples that are set before our eyes. Here (as in a Glass) even the best may see their spots; and all, especially Sufferers, may learn how to dress themselves for death. How can the best of us read these passages, without shame for our low attainments, for our little proficiency in the School of Christ? How unlike are our faces to the faces in this Mirror? How selfdenying were they? How selfish are we? How crucified to the world were they? How much glued thereunto are we? How easy was it for them to choose the greatest Sufferings, rather than the least Sin? How hard is it for us not to choose the greatest Sin, rather than the least Suffering? How willing were they to part with all for Christ? How unwilling are we to part with littles for Christ? What an honour did they esteem it to suffer for Christ, to be chained, to be whipped, to be wracked, to be haltered, to be staked for Christ? Have we such esteems of sufferings for Christ, and of such sufferings? Are not we ashamed of our glory? How patient were they under the greatest tortures? How impatient are we under very little troubles? How hot was their love to Christ, his Truths, Ordinances, People? How cold is ours? How zealous were they for the Honour of God? How lukewarm are we? How magnanimous were they? How cowardly and dastardly are we? How humble were they? How proud are we? How brokenhearted were they? How hardhearted are we? What sympathising spirits had they? How little fellow-feeling is there now among Christians? How active were they for the glory of God, and good of souls under their sufferings? How slothful are we? And how little do we for either under our sufferings? How strong was their Faith? How weak is ours? How fearless were they of man, who can only kill the body? How fearful are we? How many of these Worthies attained unto Assurance, and had their Evidences for Heaven clear? How are the most of us in the dark, as to an interest in God, and a right and title to Glory? How willing and desirous were they to die, even a violent death? How loath are we to die, even a natural death? How did they without the least fear play on the hole of this Asp, and with much courage put their hand into the Den of this Cockatrice? But how doth the fear of this King of Terrors make us subject to bondage? Thus they are useful to shame us: They are also useful to prepare us to die, especially a violent death. Such examples chalk the way more plainly, Longum iter per praecepta, breve & efficax per exempla, Seneca. then bare direction: These encourage more heartily: these persuade more powerfully: these chide unbelief with more authority. I beseech you all, who are the Lords people, (said one lately) not to scare at suffering for the interests, of Christ; because of any thing you may see fall out in these days, as to the sufferings of his Servants: but be encouraged to do and suffer; for I assure you, in the Name of the Lord, he will bear all your charges. I do again assure you, in his Name, he will furnish all your expenses, and bear all your charges. Mr. Rough learned the way to Martyrdom by seeing and hearing Austo at the Stake in Smithfield. Coming from his burning, and being asked where he had been, he made answer, There where I would not but have been for one of mine eyes: & would you know where? Forsooth, I have been to learn the way. And soon after he followed him in the same place and the same kind of death. Now if one precedent made him so good a Scholar; what Dullards and Non-proficients are we, if such a Cloud of Instances work not in us a cheerful ability to expect and encounter the same adversary, so often foiled before our eyes? I shall detain thee no longer from seeing these rare sights, but now invite thee in the words of Rev. 6.7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, Come and see. The good Lord add his blessing, that thine eye may affect thy heart, and that these Remarkable passages may be thus useful to all our souls, and that the Cloud of Witnesses may not be a standing Witness against any of us. Farewell. To the Reader. Reader, THe life present is only preparative to that to come, as the hidden life in the womb to the more perfect and noble life in the world, 1 Col. 12. Salvation is not instantaneous. The Heirs of Glory make their gradual approaches to it, and enter upon their Inheritance by degrees, Rom. 13.11. And the nearer they come to Heaven, the more heavenly their Spirits are. Could a man but hear the last breathe and whispers of dying Saints, how would he melt and ravish? Like the Sun they appear most great and glorious at setting. God often leads them to the top of Pisg●h, whence they have a prospect of Canaan, a little before they enter in to possess it. But although God doth frequently indulge those that die in the Faith of Christ with rare and excellent visions of Christ, yet ordinarily those that die for Christ as well as in Christ, have a Benjamin's portion in comparison of their Brethren. There is a joy proper to Martyrs, which is bestowed upon them as an honorarium, partly to reward their faithfulness in trials past; and partly to encourage them to break through the difficulties which yet remain. In these joys Heaven is let down to Earth, glory antedated, and a short salvation here obtained, 1 Pet. 1.8. During the continuance of this glorious frame, they are acted above the ordinary rate of man, which makes the world stand at gaze, an● all that behold them to admire at them. Their aspect is rather angelical then humane, Acts 6.15. and they seem no longer fit to be reckoned to the Tribe o● mortals on Earth, but rather ranked with the glorious Saints and Seraphims in Heaven; they no longer wrap themselves up in their garment of flesh but the only strife among them seems to be wh● shall first cast it off, to put on the garments of glory prepared for them. Reader, wouldst thou see some of these Earthly Angels? men that are a little too low for Heaven, and much too high for Earth. Wouldst thou see poor frail Creatures trampling the World under their feet, and with an holy scorn smiling at the threat● of Tyrants, who are the terrors of the mighty in the Land of the Living? Wouldst thou see shackled Prisoners behave themselves like judges; and judges stand like Prisoners before them? Wouldst thou see some of the rare exploits of Faith, in it highest elevation immediately before it be swallowed up in the beatifical vision? To conclude, Wouldst thou see the heavenly jerusalem portrayed o● Earth, as the earthly jerusalem once was upon 〈◊〉 Tile, Ezek. 4.1. And wouldst thou hear the melodious voices of ascending Saints, in a ravishing consort, ready to join with the heavenly Chorus, 〈◊〉 their ravishing Hallelujahs? Then draw near come and see. If thou be a man of an heavenly Spirit, here is brave and suitable entertainment for th● spirit. And after thou hast conversed a while wit these excellent Spirits, it may be thou wilt judge as I do, That dead Saints are sweeter Companion (in some respects) for thee to converse with, the● those that are living. And when thou shalt see th● magnificent acts of their Faith, their invincible patience, their flaming love to Christ, their strange contempt of the World, their plainness and simplicity in the profession of the Gospel, and their fervent love to each other; thou wilt mourn also with me to consider the scandalous and shameful relapse of Professors from these glorious heights, and to think how many degrees these Graces are gone back in the souls of Professors, as the Sun upon the Dial of Ahaz. The Judicious Collector hath gathered this Posy from the Martyr's Graves, bound up in an excellent method, and presented it to thee. Here thou hast the Cream of the larger Martyrologies scummed off, the very Spirits of them extracted, which is more cheap and less tiresome. He intends if God permit a Second Part speedily. And I assure thee he is a Person singularly qualified for the Work, having both Materials and Judgement to dispose his Collections. Bless God for such profitable Instruments, and improve their Labours. Such a Book hath been long desired, many have attempted it, but every one hath not that Furniture of Books and Parts for it. Solomon detecting some of those artifices which the Buyer useth in Trading, Prov. 20.14. detects this as one, It is naught, it is naught (saith the Buyer) i. e. he disparageth the Commodity, to beat down the price, but when he is gone he bo●steth. I am mistaken if thou also do not boast of thy pennyworth in this Book when thou art gone and hast well perused it, that it may reach the end upon thy heart for which it is designed, is the desire of thy Friend to serve thee, I. F. The Books Poetical Prologue I Tell their death's, who dying, made Death yield, By Scriptures sword, and Faith's unbattered shield Their number's numberless who ran to die Under their Saviour's Standard valiantly. More Saints ten Tyrant Emperors did slay, Then for a year, Five thousand to each day. Since Iesu●tes from th' infernal Lake did rise, More than Eight hundred thousand lost their lives In Thirty years. Bloody Duke d' Alva willed In Six years Eighteen thousand to be killed. In Henry's and in Mary's Bloody Reign Eight thousand have inhumanely been slain. Twelve thousand and seven hundred more were Stocked, Or Whipped, or Wracked, or else Exiled, or Mocked. I only promise many a Swanlike Song; Read them, and beg of God with Heart and Tongue, That as the Vine, that's cut, and pruned bears more In one year, than it did in three before; So may Christ's Vine: And may the Saints of God (As Cammomile) grow better being trod. And may Christ's Sufferer● in like cases find The Living God as near, as true, as kind, As these have found; and learn Sin more ●o fear, Then parting with what ere they count most dear. Swanlike SONGS. A. Adrian. ADrian's wife seeing the Coffin hooped with Iron, Wards life of faith in death, pag. 160. wherein she was to be buried alive, spoke thus, Have you provided this Pasty-crust to bake my flesh in? Agnes. Agnes a Roman Martyr, Fox's Acts and Monuments, etc. Vol. 1. pag. 122. contemning all threats of tortures, was assaulted as to her chastity. To the lascivious Wretch she said, Thou shalt willingly bathe thy sword in my blood, if thou wilt, but thou shalt not defile my body with filthy lust, do what thou canst. Hereupon his eyes were struck out by a flame of fire, like unto a flash of lightning, and upon her prayer he was restored to sight again. When she saw a sturdy cruel fellow (to behold) approaching with a naked sword in his hand; I am now glad (said she) and rejoice more, that such an one as thou, a stout, fierce, strong, and sturdy Soldier art come, then if one more feeble, weak, and faint-hearted should come. This, even this is he, I now confess, that I do love: I will make haste to meet him, and will no longer protract my longing desire. Alban. Alban (England's Proto-Martyr) delivered up Fox. Vol. ●. pag. 114. himself to the Soldiers instead of Amphibolus, who had converted him to Christianity, after he had fled to his house for refuge, and being bound, was carried before the Judge, who at that time was sacrificing to his Idols. The Judge perceiving the fraud, told Alban, Forasmuch as thou hadst rather convey away the Rebel and Traitor to our gods, then deliver him up to the Soldiers, that he might undergo due punishment for blaspheming our gods; look what torments he should have suffered, if he had been taken, the same shalt thou suffer, if thou refuse to practise the Rites of our Religion. Alban, notwithstanding his threats, told him plainly to his face, that he would not obey his command. Then said the Judge, of what House and Stock art thou? Alban answered, It matters not of what Stock I am; but if thou desirest to know my Religion, be it known unto thee, I am a Christian, etc. Then the Judge demanded his name: my Parents (said he) named me Alban; and I honour and worship the true and living God, that made all things of nothing. The Judge told him, If he would save his life, he must come and sacrifice to their gods. Alban answered, The sacrifice that you offer to the Devil profits you nothing, but rather purchaseth for you eternal pains and Hell fire. The Judge commanded him to be beheaded. The Executioner, observing his saith and fervent prayers, fell down at his feet, casting from him the sword, desired rather to be executed for, or with him, then to do execution upon him; yet afterwards another gave the fatal blow. Alcock. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 883. Constable Rolf (john Alcocks Master) having bailed his Servant, said unto him, I am sorry for thee; for truly the Parson will seek thy destruction: Sir (said Alcock) I am sorry I am a trouble to you; as for myself I am not sorry, but I do commit myself into God's hands, and I trust he will give me a mouth and wisdom to answer according to right. Yet (said Rolph) take heed of him, he is a bloodsucker, etc. I fear not (said A●cock) he shall do no more to me then God will give him leave; and happy shall I be, if God will call me to die for his Truth's sake. In his first Letter to Hadley he writes thus: O my Brethren of Hadley, why are ye so soon turned from them, which called you into the Grace of Christ, to another Doctrine?— Though those should come unto you, that have been your true Preachers, and preach another way of salvation, then by Jesus Christ's death and passion, hold them accursed: yea, if it were an Angel came from Heaven, and would tell you that the sacrifice of Christ's body upon the Cross once for all, were not sufficient for all the sins of all those that shall be saved, accursed be he.— Why cometh this plague upon us? Cometh not this upon thee, because thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God? Thine own wickedness shall reprove thee, and thy turning away shall condemn thee, that thou mayest know how evil and hurtful a thing it is, that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God. Algerius. Pomponius Algerius, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 181. whilst he was a Prisoner at Venice, before he was burnt at Rome, writ thus in his comfortable Letter to the Christians, departed out of Babylon into Mount Zion. To mitigate your sorrow, which you take for me, I cannot but impart unto you some portion of my joys, which I feel, to the intent you may rejoice with me.— I shall utter that, which scarce any will believe: I have found a nest of honey, an honeycomb in the entrails of a Lion. In the deep dark Dungeon I have found a Paradise of pleasure. In the place of sorrow and death, tranquillity of hope and life: where others do weep, I do rejoice; when others do shake and tremble, there I have found plenty of strength and boldness: in straight bands, and cold irons I have had rest: Behold he that was once far from me, now is present with me; whom once I could scarce feel, I now see most apparently; whom once I saw afar off, now I behold near at hand, whom once I hungered for, the same now approacheth and reacheth his hand unto me; he doth comfort me, and heapeth me up with gladness; he driveth away all bitterness; he ministereth strength and courage, etc.— O how easy and sweet is the Lords yoke! Learn, ye wellbeloved, how amiable the Lord is, how meek, and merciful, who visiteth his servants in temptations; neither disdaineth he to keep company with us in such vile and stinking Caves. Will the blind and incredulous world (think you) believe this? or rather will it not say thus? No, thou wilt never be able to abide long the burning heat, the pinching hardness of that place, etc. The rebukes and frowning faces of great men how will't thou suffer? Dost not thou consider thy pleasant Country, the Riches of the World, thy Kinsfolk, the delicate pleasures and Honours of this life? Dost thou forget the solace of thy Sciences, and fruit of all thy Labours? Wilt thou thus lose all thy labours which thou hast hitherto sustained? Finally, fearest thou not death which hangeth over thee? O what a fool art thou, which for one words speaking mayest salve all this and wilt not! But now to answer: Let this blind world hearken to this again, What heat can there be more burning, than that fire which is prepared for thee hereafter? What things more hard, and sharp, and crooked than this present life which we lead? What thing more odious and hateful than this world here present? And let these worldly men here answer me. What Country can we have more sweet than the Heavenly Country above? What treasures more rich or precious then everlasting life? and who be our Kinsmen but they which hear the Word of God? Where be greater riches or dignities more honourable then in Heaven. And as touching the Sciences, let this foolish world consider, Be not they ordained to know God? whom unless we do know, all our labours, our night-watching, our studies, and all our enterprises here serve to no purpose, all is but labour lost. Furthermore let the miserable worldly men answer me. What remedy or safe refuge can there be unto him who lacks God, who is the life & medicine of all men, & how can he be said to fly from death, when he himself is already dead in sin? If Christ be the way, verity & life, how can there be any life without Christ? The solely heat of the Prison to me is coldness; the cold winter to me is a fresh spring in the Lord. He that feareth not to be burned in the fire, how will he fear the heat of weather? Or what careth he for the pinching frost, which burneth for the love of the Lord? The place is sharp and tedious to them that be guilty, but to the innocent it is mellifluous. Here droppeth the delectable dew, here floweth the pleasant Nectar, here runneth the sweet milk, here is plenty of all good things.— In this world there is no mansion firm to me, and therefore I will travel up to the New jerusalem, which is in Heaven, and which offereth itself to me without paying any Fine or Income.— I have traveled hitherto, laboured, and sweat early and late, watching day and night, and now my travels begin to come to effect.— What man can now cavil, that these our labours are lost, which have followed and found out the Lord and Maker of the World, and which have changed death with life?— If to die in the Lord be not to die, but to live most joyfully, where is this wretched worldly Rebel, which blameth us of folly, for giving away our lives unto death? O how delectable is this death to me! to taste of the Lords C●p.— I am accused of foolishness, for that I do not rid myself out of these troubles, when with one word I may. But doth not Christ say, Fear not them which kill the body, but him which killeth both body and soul; and whosoever shall confess me before men, him will I also c●n●ess before my Father which is in He●v●n; and he that denieth me before men, him will I also deny before my Heavenly Father. Seeing the words of the Lord be so plain, how, or by what authority will this wise Counsellor approve this his counsel which he doth give? God forbid that I should relinquish the commandments of God, and follow the counsels of men; for it is written, Blessed is the man that hath not g●ne in the way of sinners, and hath not stood in the counsel of the ungodly, etc. Psal. 1.1. God forbid I should deny Christ, where I ough to confess him; I will not set more by my life, then by my soul; neither will I exchange the life to come for this world here present.— This Letter he underwit thus; From the delectable Orchard of Leonine Prison, 12 Calend. August. An. 1555. Allen. Sir Edmond Tyrrel bidding Rose Allen to give her Father and Mother good counsel, Fox Vol. 3. pag. 830. that they might become good Catholics; Sir (said she) they have a better Instructor than I, for the Holy Ghost doth teach them, I hope, who I trust will not suffer them to err. Thereupon the Knight said, It is time to look to such Heretics. Sir (said she) with that which you call Herelie, do I worship my Lord God. Then I perceive (said Tyrrel) you will burn with the rest for company. No Sir (said she) not for company, but for my Christ's sake, if so I be compelled, and I hope in his mercies if he call me to it, he will enable me to bear it. To try her Tyrrel burned the wrist of her hand with a candle, till the very sinews cracked asunder, saying often to her, What, whore, wilt not thou cry? To which she answered, That she had no cause she thanked God, but rather to rejoice; You (said she) have more cause to weep than I, if you consider the matter well. At last she said, Sir, have you done what you will do? He answering, yea, and if thou th●nk it be not well, then mend it. She replied, Mend it! Nay the Lord mend you, and give you repentance, if it be his will; and now if you think it good to begin at the feet, and burn the head also. She being asked by one, how she could abide the painful burning of her hand; She said, at first it was some grief to her; but afterward the longer she burned, the less she felt, even well near none at all. Almondus. My Body dies (said A●ondus a Via) my Spirit lives. Ward, etc. pag. 159. God's Kingdom abides ever, God hath now given me the accomplishment of all my de●●res. Alost. Fox Vol. 3. Cont. p. 34. Francis d' Alost, a Cutler in Flanders, being conducted to Prison, said, Now you have taken me, you think to deprive me of life, and thereby to bring great damage to me; but you are deceived, for it is all one, as if you took counters from me to fill my hand with a great sum of gold. As he went to suffer, he used that speech of the Apostle St. Peter, I must now shortly put off this my earthly tabernacle, 2 Pet. 1.10. which the love of jesus my Lord constraineth me to do, 2 Cor. 5.14. Am●chus. Ward, pag. 141. Turn (said he) the other side also, least raw flesh offend you. Ambrose. Ward, pag. 139, 140. I have not so lived (said he) that I am ashamed to live longer, nor yet fear I death, because I have a good Lord. To Calignon (Valentinians Eunuch) threatening death, he said, Well, do you that which becomes an Eunuch, I will suffer that which becomes a Bishop. Andrew. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 43. When the Proconsul threatened Andrew the Apostle with the Cross, if he left not off his preaching; I would never (said he) have preached the Doctrine of the Cross, if I had feared the suffering of the Cross. When he came to the Cross on which he was to be crucified, he said, O Cross most welcome, and long looked for, with a willing mind joyfully I come to thee, being the Scholar of him that did hang on thee; Ward, pag. 138. welcome O Christ longed and looked for; I am the Scholar of him that was crucified, long have I coveted to embrace thee, in whom I am what I am. Anvil. Frederick Anvil of Bearne, Ward, pag. 156. to the Friars that willed him to call on the Virgin Mary, three times repeated, Thine O Lord is the Kingdom, thine is the power and glory for ever and ever; Let us fight, let us fight, Avaunt, Satan, avaunt. Apprice. Bonner ask john Apprice what he thought of the Sacrament of the Altar; Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 700. he answered, The Doctrine you teach is so agreeable to the world, and embraced of the same, that it cannot be agreeable to the Word of God. Ardley. john Ardley being urged by Bonner to recant, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 253. cried out, If every hair of my head were a man, I would suffer death for my Religion. Being again solicited to recant; No, God forbid (said he) that I should do so, for than I shall lose my soul. Arethusius. Marcus Arethusius having at the command of Constantinus pulled down a certain Temple, Fox, Vol. ●. Pag. 128. dedicated to Idols, and instead thereof built up a Church, where the Christians might congregate; under julianus he was beaten, cast into a filthy sink, put into a basket anointed with honey and broth, hung abroad in the heat of the Sun, as meat for Wasps to feed on, hereby it was hoped he would be enforced either to build up again the Temple which he had destroyed, or else give so much money as would pay for the building of the same. This good man whilst he hung in the basket, did not only conceal his pains, but derided those wicked instruments of his torments, calling them bafe, low, terrene people, and himself exalted, and set on high, when they told him they would be contented with a small sum of money from him: He said, It is as great a wickedness to confer one halfpenny in case of impiety, as if a man should bestow the whole. Askew. Mrs. jane Askew being called by the Bishop of Winchester, a Parrot, told him, that she was ready to suffer not only his rebukes, but all things that should follow besides; yea, and all that gladly. To her Confession in Newgate she thus subscribed; Written by me Jane Askew, who neither wish death, nor fear its might, and as merry as one bound towards Heaven. In her Confession of her Faith she saith, Though God hath given me the bread of adversity, and the waters of trouble, yet not so much as my sins have deserved. When Nicholas Sharton counselled her to recant, as he had done, she said, It had been good for him never to have been born. In an Answer to a Letter of Mr. Lacell's, she writ thus; O Friend, most dearly beloved in God, I marvel not a little what should m●ve you to judge in me so slender a faith as to fear death, which is the end of all misery. In the Lord I desire you not to believe of me such weakness, for I doubt not but God will perform his work in me, like as he hath begun. When Wrisley Lord Chancellor sent to her Letters at the Stake, offering her the Kings pardon, if she would recant; she refusing once to look upon them, gave this answer: That she came not thither to deny her Lord and Master. Attalus. Word, pag: 340. He answered to every question, I am a Christian. Being fired in an iron Chain; Behold (said he) O you Romans, this is to eat man's flesh, which you falsely object to us Christians. Audebert. Blessed be God (said Anne Audebert of Orleans) for this Wedding Girdle (meaning the Chain) my first marriage was on this Lord's Day, Ward, pag. 154. and now my second to my Spouse and Lord Christ shall be on the same. Augustine. Boughs fall off trees (said he) and stones out of buildings, Ward, pag. 140. and why should it seem strange that mortal men die? Austin. Austin a Barber, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 124. born about Hennegow in Germany, as he was led to execution, being desired by a Gentleman to have pity upon himself, and if he would not favour his life, yet that he would favour his own soul: He answered, What care I have of my soul, you may see by this; that I had rather give my body to be burned, then to do that thing that were against my conscience. B Babilas. Babilas' Bishop of Antioch, St. Chrysoft. cont. Gentiles. being cast by Decius into a filthy stinking Prison for the name of Christ, with as many irons as he could bear, entreated his Friends (that visited him) that after his death they would bury with him the signs and tokens of his valour, meaning his bolts and fetters. Now (said he) will God wipe away all tears, Ward, pag. 141, and now I shall walk with God in the land of the living. Bainham. Mr. james Bainham, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 300. when he repent of his Recantation in Austin's Church in London, He declared openly with weeping eyes, that he had denied God, and prayed all the people to beware of his weakness, and not to do as he did; For (say he) If I should not return again unto the truth, this Word of God (he having a New Testament in his hand) would damn me both body and soul at the Day of Judgement. He persuaded them to die by and die, rather than to do as he did; for he would not feel such an hell again for all the world's good. When he was at the Stake in the midst of the flaming fire, which had half consumed his Arms and Legs, he spoke these words; O ye Papists, Behold, ye look for miracles, and here now you may see a miracle; for in this fire I feel no more pain, then if I were in a Bed of Down, it is to me as a Bed of Roses. Bar●evil. Ward, pag. 162. john Barbevil said to the Friars that called him ignorant Ass; Well, Admit I were so, yet shall my blood witness against such Balaams as you be. Bale. Mr. John Bale in his excellent Paraphrase in Apocalyps. See the image of both Churches printed 1550. In his Preface— He that will live godly in Christ Jesus, and be a patient sufferer; he that will stand in God's fear, and prepare himself to temptation; he that will be strong when adversity shall come, and avoid all assaults of Antichrist and the Devil, let him give himself wholly to the study of this prophecy— He that knoweth not this Book, knoweth not what the Church is, Whereof he is a member.— It containeth the universal troubles, persecutions and crosses, that the Church suffered in the Primitive Spring, what is suffereth now, and what it shall suffer in the later Times, by the subtleties of Antichrist and his Followers, the cruel Members of Satan; and it manifesteth what Promises, what Crowns, and what Glory the said Congregation shall have, after this present Conflict with the Enemies, that the promised Rewards might quicken the hearts of those that the Torments feareth.— Unto St. john were these Mysteries revealed, when he was by the Emperor Domitianus exiled for his Preaching, into the Isle of Patmos, at the cruel Complaints of the Idolatrous Priests and Bishops, and by him writ and sent out of the same exile into the Congregations.— The Contents of this Book are from no place more freely and clearly opened, nor told forth more boldly, then out of exile.— Flattery dwelling at home, and sucking there still his Mother's breasts, may never tell out the truth, he seeth so many dangers on every side, as displeasure of Friends, decay of Name, loss of Goods, offence of Great men, and jeopardy of Life, etc. The forsaken wretched sort hath the Lord provided always to rebuke the world of sin, hypocrisy, blindness; for nought is it therefore that he hath exiled a certain number of believing Brethren the Realms of England, of the which afflicted Family my faith is that I am one. Whereupon I have considered it is no less my bounden duty, under pain of damnation, to admonish Christ's flock by this present Revelation of their perils past, and dangers to come for contempt of the Gospel, which now reigneth there above all in the Clergy.— Graciously hath the Lord called them, especially now of late, but his voice is nothing regarded. His Servants have they imprisoned, tormented, and slain, having his Verity in much more contempt than before. We looked for a time of peace, (saith the Prophet jeremiah) and we fare not the better at all; we waited for a time of health, and we find here nothing else but trouble. And no marvel, considering the Beasts head that was wounded, is now healed up again so workmanly, as Rev. 13. mentioneth. The abominable hopocrisie, idolatry, pride, and filthiness of those terrible termagaunts of Antichrists holy household, those two-horned Whoremongers, those Conjurers of Egypt, and lecherous Locusts, leaping out of the bottomless Pit, which daily deceive the ignorant multitude with their Sorceries and Charms, must be showed to the World to their utter shame and confusion.—. To tell them freely of their wicked works by the Scriptures, I have exiled myself for ever from mine own native Country, Kindred, Friends, Acquaintance, (which are the great delights of this life) and am well contented for the sake of Christ, and for the comfort of my Brethren there, to suffer poverty, penury, abjection, reproof, and all that shall come beside.— Here are we admonished beforehand of two most dangerous evils; neither to agree with those Tyrants, that wage war with the Lamb in his elect Members, nor yet to obey those deceitful Bishops, that in hypocrisy usurp the Church's Titles.— Of those hath our heavenly Lord premonished us in this heavenly work of his, and graciously called us away from their abominations, lest we should be partakers of their sins, and so receive of their plagues. If we unthankfully neglect it, the greater is our danger.— Barlaam. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 118. Ward, pag. 141. He holding his hand in the flame over the Altar, sung that of the Psalmist, Thou teachest my hands to war, and my fingers to fight. Barnes. I have been reported (said Dr. Barnes at the Stake) to be a Preacher of Sedition, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 527. and disobedient to the King's Majesty; but here I say to you, that you are all bound by the command of God, to obey your Prince with all humility, and with all your heart; and that not only for fear of the sword, but also for conscience sake before God: Yea, I say further, If the King should command you any thing against God's Law, if it be in your power to resist him, yet may you not do it. Basil. When Valens the Emperor sent his Officers to him, Burroughs in Mose Self-De● all, pag. 1 seeking to turn him from the Faith: And first of all great preferments were offered him; Basil rejected them with scorn: Offer these things (said he) to Children. When he was afterwards threatened grievously; Threaten (said he) your Purple Gallants, that give themselves to their pleasures. When the Emperor's Messenger promised him great preferment, Clarks Lives, Part 1. pag. 101. Alas, Sir, (said this Bishop of Caes●rca) these speeches are fit to catch little Children, that look after such things; but we that are taught and nourished by the holy Scriptures, are ready to suffer a thousand deaths, rather than to suffer one syllable or tittle of the Scripture to be altered. When the Emperor threatened to banish him, Leiglis Saints Encouragements in evil times, pag. 9 etc. if he obeyed not, he said, Those Bug-bears were to be propounded to Children; but for his part, though they might take away his life, yet they could not hinder him from professing the Truth. When Modestus the Praefect asked him, Clark, etc. pag. 191. Know you not who we are that command it? No body (said Basil) whilst you command such things. Know ye not (said the Praefect) that we have Honours to bestow upon you? They are but changeable (said Basil) like yourselves. Hereupon he threatened to confiscate his Goods, to torment him, to banish him, or kill him; he answered, He need not fear confiscation, that had nothing to lose nor banishment, to whom Heaven only is a Country; nor torments, when his body would be dashed with one blow; nor death, which is the only way to set him at liberty. The Praefect telling him he was Mad, he said, Opto me in ae●●ernum sic delirare, I wish I may for ever be thus Mad. The Praefect another time threatening him with death he said, Would it would fall out so well on my side, that I might lay down this carcase of mine in the quarrel of Christ, and in the defence o● his Truth, who is my Head and Captain. The Praefect desiring that he would not, by rashly answering, throw himself away, offered him a day and night to consider further of it; but Basil said, I have no need to take further counsel about this matter: Look what I am to day, the same thou shalt find me to morrow; but I pray God that thou change not thy mind. Benden. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 796. Alice Benden, when she was in Prison at Canterbury, agreed with a fellow Prisoner to live both of them with two pence half penny a day, to try thereby how well they could sustain penury and hunger before they were put to it. At her first coming into the Bishop's Prison, she was much troubled, and expostulated why her Lord did suffer her to be sequestered from her loving Fellows in so extreme misery? But was comforted▪ by these words, Why ar● thou so heavy, O my soul? The right hand of the Lord can change all. At the stake she took forth a shilling of Philip and Mary, which her father had bowed● and sent her when she was first in Prison, desiring her Brother there present, to return the same to her Father again, that he might understand she never lacked money whilst she lay in Prison. Bennet. Mr. Thomas ●ennet, Fox, Vol. 2.314. a Schoolmaster in Exeter, being pressed by a Doctor, a Grey Friar, to recant for putting upon the doors of the Cathedral in Schedules, That the Pope is Antichrist, and that we ought to worship God only, and not the Saints, said, I take God to record, my life is not dear to me, I am weary of it, seeing your detestable doings, to the utter destruction of God's flock, so that I desire death, that I may no longer be partaker of your detestable idolatries and superstitions, or be subject unto Antichrist your Pope.— Away from me I pray you, vex my soul no longer, ye shall not prevail.— If I should hear and follow you this day, everlasting death should hang over me, a just reward for them that prefer the life of this world before life eternal. Berger. Peter Berger, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 140. burnt at Lion's 155●. beholding the multitude at the stake, said, Great is the Harvest, Lord, send Labourers, I see the heavens open to receive me. B●tken. When she was brought to the Rack, Fox, Vol. 3. Suppl. p. 49. she said, My Masters, wherefore will you put me to this torture, seeing I have no way offended you? Is it for my Faith's sake? you need not torment me for that, for as I was never ashamed to make confession thereof, no more will I be now at this present before you, I will freely show you my mind therein. But for all 〈◊〉 when they proceeded on with what they inte●●●●, Alas my Masters, said she, If it be so that I must suffer this pain, then give me leave first to call upon God. Her request they granted: whilst she wa● praying, one of the Commissioners was so sur●●●● with fear and terror, that by and by he swo●●●▪ ●nd could not be fetched again, and so she esca●●● the torture. Bilney. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 268. Mr. Thomas Bilney in a Letter to Dr. Tonstal Bishop of London, he gives this account of his conversion.— The woman which was twelve years vexed with the bloody Flux, had consumed all that she had upon Physicians, and yet was still worse and worse, until such time as she came to Christ, and after she had once touched the hem of his vesture, through faith she was healed. O mighty power of the most High! which I also most miserable sinner have often tasted and felt. Before I came to Christ I had likewise spent all I had upon ignorant Physicians.— They appointed me Fast, Watchings, buying of Pardons, and Masses, etc. But at last I heard speak of Jesus, even then, when the New Testament was first set out by Erasmu●. At first I was alured to read, rather for the Latin (having heard it was eloquently done) then for the Word of God. At the first reading I hit upon this sentence of St. Paul, (O most sweet and comfortable sentence to my soul) in 1 Tim. 1. It is a true saying, and worthy of all acceptation, that Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners, of whom I am chief. This sentence through God's instruction and inward working, did so exhilarate my heart, being before wounded with the guilt of my sins, insomuch that my bruised bones leapt for joy. After this the Scripture began to be more pleasant to me then the honey or the honeycomb. Therein I learned that all my Travels, all my Fasting and Watching, all the redemption of Masses and Pardons, without faith in Christ, were but a hasty and swift running out of the right way, or else much like the vesture made of Fig-leaves, wherewithal Adam and Eve went about in vain to cover their nakedness, and could never obtain quietness and rest, till they believed in the promise of God, that Christ the seed of the Woman should break the Serpent's head. Neither could I be relieved or eased of the sharp stingings of my sins, before I was taught of God, that even as Moses exalted the serpent in the Desert, so shall the Son of man be exalted, that all which believe on him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. As soon as I began to taste and savour this heavenly Lesson, which none can teach but God only, I desired the Lord to increase my faith. And at last I desired nothing more, then that I being so comforted by him, might be strengthened by his holy Spirit and grace from above, to teach the wicked his ways, which are mercy and truth, that the wicked may be converted unto him by me, who sometimes was also wicked.— Accordingly I did teach, and set forth Christ, being made for us by God his Father, our Wisdom, Righteousness, Sanctification and Redemption, 1 Cor. 1. Who was made sin for us, i e. a Sacrifice for sin, that we through him should be made the righteousness of God, 2 Cor. 5. Who became accursed for us, to redeem us from the curse of the Law, Gal. 2.— I taught that all men should first acknowledge their sins, and condemn them, afterward hunger and thirst for that righteousness, which is by faith in Christ, etc. Rom. 3. And forasmuch as this hunger and thirst was wont to be quenched with the fullness of man's righteousness.— Therefore oftentimes have I spoken of those works, exhorting all men not so to cleave to them, as they being satisfied therewith, should loathe or wax weary of Christ. For those things I have been cried out of, attached, and now cast into prison. Pag. 271. His abjuration cost him dear, it brought him even to despair, his Friends were fain to be with him night and day. Bishop Latimer saith, That he thought all the Word of God was against him, and sounded his condemnation: To bring any comfortable Scripture to him, was as though a man should run him through with a sword. Pag. 277. The day before his Execution, some Friends finding him eating heartily, with much cheerfulness, and a quiet mind, they said, They were glad to see him at that time so heartily to refresh himself: O (said he) I imitate those, who having a ruinous house to dwell in, yet bestow cost as long as they may to hold it up. Leigh 's Saints Encouragements in evil times. p. 27. In Prison he divers times proved the fire, by putting his finger near to the candle; at the first touch of the candle his flesh resisting, and he withdrawing his finger, did after chide his flesh in these words; Quid uniu● m●mlri inustionem ferre n●n potes, & quo pacto cras totius corporis confl● grationem tolerabis? What (said he) canst thou not bear the burning of one member, and how wilt thou endure to morrow the burning of thy whole body? Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 277. I feel, and have known it long by Philosophy, that fire is hot; yet I know some (recorded in God's Word) even in the flame felt no heat, and I believe that though my body will be wasted by it, my soul shall be purged thereby. At the same time he most comfortably treated among his Friends, of Isa. 43.1, 2, 3. But now, thus saith the Lord, that created thee, O Jacob, and he that form thee, O Israel; Fear not, for I have redeemed thee, I have called thee by thy Name. Thou art mine when thou passest through the waters, I will be with thee, and through the rivers, they shall not overflow thee; when thou walkest through the fire thou shalt not be burnt, for I am the Lord thy God, the Holy one of Israel, thy Saviour. The comfort whereof never left some of his Friends to their dying day. The next morning the Officers fetching him to Execution, a certain Friend entreated him to be constant, and to take his death patiently; Bilney answered, I am sailing with the Mariner through a boisterous sea, but shortly shall be in the Haven, etc. Help me with your Prayers. Bland. Mr. john Bland a Kentish Minister, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 373. in his Prayer at the stake.— Lord Jesus, for thy love I do willingly leave this life, and desire rather the bitter death of thy Cross, with the loss of all earthly things, then to abide the blasphemy of thy Holy Name, or else to obey man in the breaking of thy Command.— This death is more dear unto me then thousands of gold and silver. Such love, O Lord, hast thou laid up in my breast, that I hunger for thee, as the Deer wounded desireth the soil. Blehere. Levine Blehere said to his Friends, Ward, pag. 160. offering to rescue him by tumult; Hinder not the Magistrates work, nor my happiness. Father, thou foresawest the sacrifice from eternity, now accept of it I pray thee. Bongeor. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 849. Agnes Bongeor, having prepared herself to go with her Fellow-martyrs to the stake, putting on a Smock made for that purpose, and sending away her sucking infant to a Nurse, through a mistake of her Name in the Writ (Bowyer being put for Bongeor) was kept back. Hereupon she made piteous moan, wept bitterly, etc. Because she went not with them to give her life in defence of her Christ; of all things in the world, life was least looked for by her. In this perplexity a Friend came to her, and put her in mind of Abraham's offering up Is●ac. I know (quoth she) that Abraham's will before God was accepted for the deed, in that he would have done it, if the Angel of the Lord had not stayed him; but I am unhappy, the Lord thinks not me worthy of this dignity; and yet I would have gone with my company with all my heart; and because I did it not, it is now my chief and greatest grief. She was grieved because she had not offered herself (though she had given away her child) which was more than Abraham was put to.) Bossu. Fox, Vol. 3. cons. p. 68 Francis le Bossu, a French Martyr, to encourage his children to suffer martyrdom with himself, he thus spoke unto them; Children, we are not now to learn, that it hath always been the portion of Believers to be hated, cruelly used, and devoured by Unbelievers, as sheep of ravening wolves; if we suffer with Christ, we shall also reign with him Let not these drawn swords terrify us, they will be but as a Bridge, whereby we shall pass over out of a miserable life into immortal blessedness. We have breathed, and lived long enough among the wicked; let us now go, and live with our God. He and his two Sons were killed, embracing each other, in the Massacre at Lions in France, 1572. Bradford. Mr. john Bradford, Fox, Vol. 3. p. 281, 282. the night before he was carried to Newgate, he dreamt that Chains were brought for him to the Counter, and that the day following he should be carried to Newgate, and that the next day he should be burnt in Smithfield; which accordingly came to pass. Being asked what he should do, and whither he would go, if he should have his liberty; he said, He cared not whether he went out, or no; but if he did, he would marry and abide still in England secretly, teaching the people as the time would suffer him. When the Keeper's Wife told him the sad News (as she called it) of the nearness of his death, being to be burned the next day, he put off his Cap, and lifting up his eyes to Heaven, said, I thank God for it, I have looked for the same a long time, and therefore it cometh not now to me suddenly, but as a thing waited for every day and hour; the Lord make me worthy thereof. Cresw●ll offering to labour for him, Pag. 292. and desiring to know what suit he should make for him, What you will do (said he) do it not at my request, for I desire nothing at your hands. If the Queen will give me life, I will thank her; if she will banish me, I will thank her; if she will burn me, I will thank her; if she will condemn me to perpetual imprisonment, I will thank her. The Chancellor pressing him to do as they had done, Pag. 283. in hopes of the Queen's mercy and pardon; My Lord (said he) I desire mercy with God's mercy, (i. e. without doing or saying any thing against God and his Truth, pag. 290.) but mercy with God's wrath God keep me from.— God's mercy I desire, and also would be glad of the Queen's favour, to live as a Subject without clog on Conscience: but otherwise the Lords mercy is better to me then life.— Life in his displeasure is worse than death, and death with his favour is true life. Pag. 286. He having refused again and again to answer to the Chancellor's Queries, said, That no fear, but the fear of perjury made him unwilling to answer (he having been six times sworn not to consent to the practising of any Jurisdiction, or any Authority on the Bishop of R●me's behalf, within the Realm of England) I am not afraid of death, I thank God, I look and have looked for nothing else from your hands a long time; but I am afraid when death cometh, I should have ma●ter to trouble my Conscience by the guilt of perjury.— As for my death, as I know there are twelve hours in the day, so with the Lord my time is appointed; and when it shall be his good time, than I shall depart hence; but in the mean season I am safe enough, though all the reople had sworn my death; into his hands have I committed it, and do, his good will be done. Pag. 297. The Earl of Derby sending one of his Servants to him, willing him to tender himself, He told the Messenger, that he thanked his Lordship for his good will towards him, but in this case I cannot tender myself more than God's honour. The same Servant saying also, Ah Mr. Bradford, consider your Mother, Sister, Friends, Kinsfolk, Country, what a great discomfort it will be to them to see you die as an Heretic. Mr. Bradford replied, I have learned to forsake Father, Mother, Brother, Sister, Friends, and all that ever I have, yea and my own self, for else I cannot be Christ's Disciple. Being asked by a good Gentlewoman's Servant, Pag. 305. that was sent to him, How he did? he answered, Well, I thank God: for as men in Sailing, which be near to the Shore or Haven where they would be, would be nearer, even so the nearer I am to God, the nearer I would be. In a Letter to his Mother and Brethren. Pag. 308. — I am at this time in Prison sure enough from starting to confirm that I have preached unto you: As I am ready (I thank God) with my life and blood to seal the same, if God vouchsafe me worthy of that honour.— If we suffer with him, we shall also reign w●th him. Be not therefore faint-hearted, but rather rejoice, at the least for my sake, who now am in the right and high way to Heaven; for by many afflictions we must enter into the Kingdom of God. Now will God made known his Children. When the wind doth not blow, the Wheat cannot be known from the Chaff; but when the blast cometh, then flieth away the Chaff, but the Wheat remaineth, and is so far from being hurt, that by the wind it is more cleansed from the Chaff. Gold when it is cast into the fire is the more precious, so are Gods Children by afflictions.— Indeed I thank God more for this Prison, then for any Parlour, yea then for any pleasure that eyer I had: for in it I find God my most sweet good God always.— Of all deaths it is most to be desired to die for God's sake: such are sure to go to Heaven.— Death, nor Life, nor Prison, nor Pleasure, I trust in God, shall be able to separate me from my Lord God and his Gospel.— Rejoice in my sufferings, for it is for your sakes, to confirm the truth I have taught.— Howsoever you do be obedient to the Higher Powers, that is, in no point either in hand or tongue Rebel; but rather if they command that which with good conscience you cannot obey, lay your head on the Block, and suffer what they shall do, or say. By patience possess your souls. Pag. 310. In his Letter to the City of London.— I ask God heartily mercy, that I do no more rejoice, than I do, having so great cause, as to be an instrument, wherein it may please my dear Lord, and Saviour to suffer.— Although my sins be manifold and grievous, yet the Bishops and Prelates do not persecute them in me, but Christ himself, his Word, his Truth, and Religion.— Let the anger and plagues of God most justly fallen upon us, be applied to every one of our deserts, that from the bottom of our hearts every one of us may say, It is I Lord, that have sinned against thee: It is my hypocrisy, my vainglory, my covetousness, uncleanness, carnality, security, idleness, unthankfulness, self-love, etc. which have deserved the taking away of thy Word and true Religion, of thy good Ministers by Exile, Imprisonment, Death, etc.— Prepare yourselves to the Cross, be obedient to all that be in Authority in all things, that be not against God, his Word; for then answer with the Apostle, It is more meet to obey God, then man. Howbeit never for any thing resist, or rise against the Magistrates. Avenge not yourselves. Commit your Cause to the Lord. If you feel in yourselves an hope and trust in God, that he will never tempt you above that he will make you able to bear, be assured the Lord will be true to you, and you shall be able to bear all brunts: but if you want this Hope, flee and get you hence, rather than by your tarrying Gods Name should be dishonoured. In his Letter to Cambridge. Pag. 312. — Thou my Mother, the University, hast not only had the truth of God's Word plainly manifested unto thee by Reading, Disputing, and Preaching publicly and privately, but now to make thee altogether excuseless, and as it were almost to sin against the Holy Ghost, if thou put to thy helping hand with the Romish Rout to suppress the Verity, and set out the contrary, thou hast my life and blood, as a Seal to confirm thee, if thou wilt be confirmed, or else to confound thee, if thou wilt take part with the Prelates and Clergy, which now fill up the measure of their Fathers, which slew the Prophets and Apostles, that all the righteous blood from Abel to Bradford may be required at their hands.— For the tender mercy of Christ in his bowels and blood I beseech you to take Christ's eyesalve to anoint your eyes, that you may see what you do, and have done in admitting the Romish rotten Rags, which once you utterly expelled. O be not the Dog returned to his vomit; be not the Sow that was washed, returning to her wallowing in the mire. Beware lest Satan enter in with seven worse Spirits, etc. It had been better you had never known the truth, then after knowledge to have run from it. Ah! woe to this world, and the things therein, which hath now so wrought with you. Oh that ever this Dirt of the Devil should daub up the eye of the Realm!— What is man whose breath is in his nostrils, that thou shouldst thus be afraid of him?— Dost not thou know Rome to be Babylon? Dost not thou know, that as the old Babylon had the children of judah in captivity, so hath Rome the true judah, i. e. the Confessors of Christ? Dost not thou know, that as destruction happened unto it, so shall it do unto this? Dost not thou know that God will deliver his people now, when the time is come as he did then? Hath not God commanded his people to come out of her? and wil● thou give example to the whole Realm to run unto her? Hast thou forgotten the woe that Chris● threateneth to offence-givers? Wilt not thou remember that it were better that a Millstone were hanged about thy neck, and thou thrown into the Sea, then that thou shouldst offend the little one? Dear Mother, Receive some admonition of one of thy poor children, now going to be burned for the testimony of Jesus; Come again to God's truth, come out of Babylon, confess Christ and his true Doctrine, repent that which is past, etc. Remember the readings, etc. of God's Prophet Bucer. Call to mind the threatenings of God (now somewhat seen) by thy children, Leaver, and others. Let the exile of Leaver, Pil●inton, Grindal, H●ddon, Horn, Scory, Ponet, etc. something awake thee. Consider the martyrdom of thy Chickens, Rogers, Saunders, Tailor. And now cast not away the poor admonition of me, going to be burned also, and to receive the like Crown of Glory with my fellows.— Even now the Axe is laid to the Root. Pag. 313. In his Letter to Lancashire and Cheshire, etc.— Indeed if I should simply consider my life with that which it ought to have been, and as God in his Law requireth, than could I not but cry, as I do, Righteous art thou, O Lord, etc. But when I consider the cause of my condemnation, I cannot but lament, that I do no more rejoice; for it is God's truth. So that the condemnation is not a condemnation of Bradford simply, but rather a condemnation of Christ and his Truth. Bradford is nothing else, but an instrument in whom Christ and his Doctrine is condemned. And therefore, my dearly beloved, rejoice, rejoice, and give thanks with me, and for me, that ever God did vouchsafe so great a benefit to our Country, as to choose the most unworthy (I mean myself) to be one, in whom it pleaseth him to suffer.— Forget not how that the Lord hath showed himself true, and me his true Preacher, by bringing to pass these plagues, which at my mouth you oft heard before.— My blood will cry for vengeance, as against the Papists, Gods enemies, etc. so against you, if ye repent not, amend not, and turn not unto the Lord. In his Letter to the Town of Walden. Pag. 316. — What can you desire more, to assure your Consciences of the Verity taught by your Preachers, than their own lives? Waver not therefore in Christ's Religion truly taught you. Never shall the enemies be able to burn it, and imprison it, and keep it in bonds, though they may imprison and burn us.— I humbly beseech you, and pray you in the bowels and blood of Jesus, now I am going to death for the testimony of Jesus, love the Lords Truth, love (I say) to love it, and to frame your lives thereafter. Alas! you know the cause of all these plagues fallen upon us, and of the success, which Gods adversaries have daily, is for our not loving God's Word. You know how that we were but Gospelers in lips, and not in life.— Remember that before ye learned A.B.C. your Lesson was Christ's Cross. Forget not that Christ will have no Disciples, but such as will promise to deny themselves, and to take up their Cross (mark that, take it up) and follow him, and not the multitude, custom, etc.— Loth would I be a witness against you at the last day, as of truth I must be, if ye repent not, if ye love not Christ's Gospels Pag. 317. In his Letter to B.C.— The world seems 〈◊〉 have the upper hand, the Truth seems to be oppressed, and they which take part therewith an unjustly entreated. The cause of all this is God anger and mercy: His anger, because we hav● grievously sinned against him, we have been un●thankful for his Word, etc. we have been so carnal, covetous, licentious, etc. that of his Justice he could no longer forbear, but make us feel his anger, etc. His mercy is seen in this, that God do●● vouchsafe to punish us in this present life. If he should not have punished us, Do not you think we should have continued in the evils we were in▪ Yes verily, we should have been worse.— The way to Heaven is not the wide way of the world, but it is a straight way, which few walk in; for few live godly in Christ, few regard the Life to come, few remember the day of Judgement, few remember how Christ will deny them before his Father, that do deny him here, few consider that Christ-will be ashamed of them in the last day, which are ashamed of his Truth and true Service, few cast up their accounts, what will be laid to their charge in the day of vengeance, few regard the condemnation of their own consciences, in doing that which they inwardly disallow, few love God better than their goods.— Of this I would that ye were all certain, that all the hairs of your heads are numberless, so that not one of them shall perish, neither shall man or Devil be able to attempt any thing, much less do any thing to you before your heavenly Father, which loveth you most tenderly, shall give them leave; they shall go no farther than he will, nor keep you any longer in trouble than he will. Therefore cast on him all your care, for he is careful for you. Only study to please him, and to keep your consciences clean, and your bodies pure from the idolatrous service, which now every where is used, and God will marvellously and mercifully defend and comfort you. In his Letter to Erkinald Rawlins and his wife. Pag. 318. — First we have cause to rejoice for these days, because our Father suffereth us not to lie in Iezabel's bed, sleeping in our sins and security, but as mindful of us, doth correct us as his children.— Secondly, because they are days of trial, wherein not only ye yourselves, but also the world shall know, that ye be none of his, but the Lords Darlings, whom we obey his servants we are. Now it is seen whether we obey the world or God.— But the trials of these days ye are occasioned more to repent, more to pray, more to contemn this world, more to desire life everlasting, more to be holy, for holy is the end; wherefore God doth afflict us, and so to come to God's company. In his Letter to Mr. Laurence Saunders. Pag. 320. — A Friend having moved the Prisoners to subscribe to the Papists Articles, with this condition, so far as they are not against God's word. Dr. Tailor, and Mr. Philpot think the salt sent by our Friend is unseasonable; for my own part, I pray God in no case I may seek myself, and indeed (I thank God) I purpose it not. In another Letter. Pag. 321. — This will be offensive; therefore let us Vadere plane, and so sane. I mean let us all confess we are no changelings, but re ipsa are the same we were in Religion; and therefore cannot subscribe, except we will dissemble both with God, with ourselves, and with the world. In his Letter to Dr. Cranmer, Dr. Ridley, and Dr. Latimer.— Our dear brother Rogers hath broken the Ice valiantly; this day (I think) or to morrow at the uttermost, hearty Hooper, sincere Saunders, and trusty Tailor end their course, and receive their Crown. The next am I, who hourly look for the Porter to open me the Gates after them to enter into the desired Rest. God forgive me mine unthankfulness for this exceeding great mercy. For though I justly suffer (for I have been a great Hypocrite, etc. the Lord pardon me, yea he hath done it, he hath done it indeed) yet what evil hath he done? Christ, whom the Prelates persecute, his truth, which they hate in me, hath done no evil, nor deserved death.— O what am I Lord, that thou shouldest thus magnify me? Is this thy wont, to send for such a wretched Hypocrite in a fiery chariot, as thou didst for Elias? Pag. 322. In his Letter to the Lord Russel.— Faith is reckoned, and worthily among the greatest gifts of God, by it, as we are justified, and made Gods children; so are we Temples and Possessors of the Holy Spirit, yea of Christ also, Eph. 4. And of the Father himself, john 14. By faith we drive the Devil away, 2 Pet. 5. We overcome the world, 1 john 5. And are already Citizens of Heaven, etc. Yet the Apostle doth match even with faith, yea, as it were prefer suffering Persecution for Christ's sake, Phil. 1.— Though the wisdom of the world think of the Cross according to sense, and therefore flieth from it, as from a most great ignominy and shame; yet Gods Scholars have learned to think otherwise of the Cross, as the Frame-house wherein God frameth his Children like to his Son Christ, the Furnace that fineth God's gold, the Highway to Heaven, the Suit and Livery of God's servants, the earnest and beginning of all consolation and glory. In his Meditation on the Commandments. Pag. 93, 94. — As the first Command teacheth me as well that thou art my God, as what God thou art; therefore of equity I should have no other Gods but thee, that is, I should only hang on thee, trust in thee, serve thee, call on thee, obey thee, and be thankful to thee; so because thou didst reveal thyself visibly, that thou mightest visibly be worshipped. The second Commandment is concerning thy Worship, that in no point I should follow in worshipping thee the device or intent of any man, Saint, Angel, or Spirit, but should take all such as idolatry, and image-service, be it never so glorious. And why? forsooth because thou wouldst I should worship thee as thou hast appointed by thy Word; for if service be acceptable it must be according to the Will of him, to whom it is done, and not of him who doth it, etc. So that the meaning of this Precept is, that as in the first I should have none other Gods but thee, so I should have no worship of thee, Pag. 198. but such as thou appointest— And therefore utterly abandon mine own will and reason, all the reasons and good intents of man, and wholly give myself to serve thee after thy will and word.— Thou bidst me not to take thy Name in vain, Pag. 98, 99 as by temerarious, or vain swearing, etc. So by denying thy truth and word, or concealing it, when occasion is offered to promote thy glory, and confirm thy truth. By reason whereof I may well see, that thou wouldst have me to use my tongue in humble confessing thee, Pag. 113, 114. and thy word, and truth after my Vocation, etc.— Thy Ministers I pray not for, This was his Meditation in Queen Marie 's time. thy Church I am not careful for, no not now (good Lord) when wicked Doctrine most prevaileth, Idolatry, Superstition, and Abomination abound, the Sacraments, etc. blasphemously corrupted, etc. all which my wickedness brought in, my profaning of the fourth Commandment, and my not praying. Thy Ministers are in Prison, dispersed in other Country's, spoiled, burnt, murdered, many fall (for fear of goods, life, name, etc.) from the truth they have received to most manifest idolatry, false Preachers abound among the people, thy people dearly bought, even with thy blood, are not fed with the bread of thy Word, but with swillings and drink for swine. Antichrist wholly prevaileth, and yet for all this also I am too careless, nothing lamenting my sins, which have been the cause of all this.— Help thy Church, cherish it, Pag. 115, 116. and give it harbour here and elsewhere for Christ's sake. Purge the Ministry from corruption, and false Minister's. Send out Preachers to feed thy people. Destroy Antichrist and all his Kingdom. Give to such as be fallen from thy truth, repentance. Keep others from falling, and by their falling do thou the more confirm us Confirm thy Minister's and poor people in Prison and Exile. Strengthen them in thy truth. Deliver them if it be thy good will. Give them that with conscience they may so answer their Adversaries that thy servants may rejoice, and thy Adversary's be confounded. Avenge thou thy own cause (● thou God of Hosts) Help all thy people, and m●● especially, Pag. 146, 147. because I have most need.— Set my heart straight in case of Religion, to acknowledge thee one God, to worship none other God, to re●verence thy Name, and keep thy Sabbaths. Set m● heart right in matters of humane conversation, t● honour my Parents, to obey Rulers, and reverenc● the Ministry of the Word, to have hands clea● from blood, true from theft, a body free from A●dultery, and a tongue void of all offence, but purge the heart first O Lord, etc.— In his Meditation concerning the sober usage of the body, Pag. 184, 185. and the pleasures of this life.— O that I could consider often and heartily that this body God hath made to be the tabernacle and mansion of our soul for this life; but by reason of sin dwelling in it; is become now to the soul nothing else but a prison, and that most straight, vile, stinking, filthy, etc. Then should I not pamper up my body to obey it, but bridle it that it may obey the soul; then should I fly the pain it putteth my soul unto by reason of sin and provocation to all evil, and continually desire the dissolution of it, with Paul, and the deliverance from it, as much as ever did prisons his deliverance out of prison, for alonely by it the Devil hath a door to tempt and so to hurt me.— If it were dissolved, and I out of it, than could Satan no more hurt me, then wouldst thou speak unto me face to face, than the conflicting time were at an end, than sorrow would cease, and joy would increase, and I should enter into inestimable rest.— In his Meditation for exercise of true mortification. Pag. 189, 190. — He that will be ready in weighty matters to deny his own will, and to be obedient to the will of God, the same had need to accustom himself to deny his desires in matters of less weight, and to exercise mortification of his will in trifles.— If we cannot watch with Christ one hour (as he saith to Peter) we undoubtedly can much less go to death with him. Wherefore, that in great temptations we may be ready to say with Christ, Not my will but thine be done, etc. Help me to accustom myself continually to mortify my concupiscence of pleasant things, i. e. of wealth, riches, glory, liberty, favour of men, meats, drink, apparel, ease, yea and life itself, etc.— Pag. 192, 193. In his Meditation of God's Providence.— This aught to be unto us most certain, that nothing i● done without thy Providence O lord, i. e. without thy Knowledge, i. e. without thy Will, Wisdom, and Ordinance, for all these Knowledge doth comprehend in it, etc.— This will we must believe most assure'ly to be● all just and good, howsoever otherwise it seem so unto us.— But though all things be done by thy Providence, yet Providence hath many and divers means to work by, which means being contemned, thy Providence is contemned also. Pag. 194. — Indeed when means cannot be had, then should we not tie thy Providence to means, but make it free as thou art free; for it is not of any need, that thou usest any instrument or mean to serve thy Providence. Thy Power and Wisdom is infinite, and therefore should we hang on thy Providence even when all is clean against us.— Grant (Dear Father) that I may use this knowledge to my comfort and commodity in thee; i. e. Grant that in what state soever I be, Pag. 195. I may not doubt but the same doth come to me by thy most just Ordinance; yea, by thy merciful Ordinance; for as thou art just, and thou art merciful, yea, thy mercy is above all thy works.— Look for thy help in time convenient, not only when I have means, by which thou mayest work, and art so accustomed to do, but also when I have no means, but am destitute; yea, when all means be directly and clean against me, grant (I say) yet that I may still hang on thee, and on thy Providence, not doubting of a Fatherly end in thy good time. And lest I should contemn thy Providence, or presuming upon it by uncoupling those things which thou hast coupled together, preserve me from neglecting thy ordinary and lawful means in all my needs; Pag. 196. if so be I may have them, and with a good conscience use them, although I know thy Providence be not tied to them farther than pleaseth thee.— Howbeit so, that I depend in no part on the means, or on my diligence, wisdom, and industry, but on thy Providence, which more and more persuade me to be altogether fatherly, and good, how far soever, otherwise it appear, yea is felt of me. Pag. 197, 198. In his Meditation of God's presence.— There is nothing that maketh more to true godliness of life, than the persuasion of thy presence. (Dear Father, and that nothing is hid from thee, but all to thee is open and naked, even the very thoughts which one day thou wilt reveal, either to our praise or punishment in this life, as thou didst David's fault, 2 King. 12. or in the life to come, Mat. 25. Grant to me (Dear God) mercy for all my sins, especially my hid and close sins, etc. and that henceforth I always think myself conversant before thee, so that if I do well, I pass not the publishing of it, as Hypocrites do, if I do or think any evil, I may know that the same shall not always be hid from men. Grant me that I may always have in mind that day wherein all my works shall be revealed, so in trouble and wrong I shall find comfort, and otherwise be kept through thy grace from evil. In his Meditation of God's pow●r, beauty, and goodness. Pag. 199. — Because thou Lord wouldst have us to love thee, not only dost thou will, entice, allure, and provoke us, but also dost command us so to do, promising thyself unto such as love thee, and threatening us with damnation if we do otherwise, whereby we may see both our great corruption and naughtiness, and also thine exceeding great mercy towards us.— What a thing is it, that power, riches, authority, beauty, goodness, liberality, truth, justice, which all thou art, good Lord, cannot move us to love thee? whatsoever things we see fair, good, wise, mighty, are but even sparkles of thy power, beauty, goodness, wisdom, which thou art.— Pag. 202, 203. In his Meditation of death, &c— O Dear Father.— That our hearts were persuaded that when we go out of the prison of the body, and so taken into thy blessed company then.— Whatsoever good we can wish we shall have, and whatsoever we loath, shall be far from us, etc. Then should we live in longing for that which we now most loath.— If we remember the good things that after this life shall ensue, Pag. 204. without wavering in the certainty of faith, the passage of death shall be the more desired. It is like a sailing over the sea to thy home and country: it is like a medicine or purgation to the health of the soul and body: It is the best Physician. It is like a woman in travail; for as the child (being delivered) cometh into a more large place then the womb, wherein it did lie before, so the soul being delivered out of the body, cometh into a much more large and ●air place, even into Heaven.— Pag. 224, 225. In his Prayer for the remission of sins.— O gracious God, who seekest all means possible how to bring thy children to the feeling, and sure sense of thy mercy; and therefore when prosperity will not serve, than sendest thou adversity, graciously correcting them here, whom thou wilt shall with thee elsewhere live for ever. We poor Misers give humble praises and thanks to thee (Dear Father) that thou hast vouchsafed us worthy of thy correction at this present, hereby to work that which we in prosperity and liberty did neglect. For the which neglecting, and many other our grievous sins, whereof we now accuse ourselves before thee (most merciful Lord) thou mightest have most justly given us over, and destroyed both souls and bodies. But such is thy goodness towards us in Christ, that thou seemest to forget all our offences, and— will't that we should suffer this Cross now laid upon us for thy Truth and Gospel's sake, and so to be thy witnesses with the Prophets, Apostles, Martyrs, and Confessors, yea with thy dearly beloved Son Jesus Christ to whom thou dost now here begin to fashion us like, Pag. 226. that in his glory we may be like him also. O good God, what are we on whom thou shouldest show this great mercy? O loving Lord, forgive us our unthankfulness and sins. O faithful Father, give us thy holy Spirit now to cry in our hearts, Abba, dear Father, to assure us of our eternal election in Christ, to reveal more and more thy Truth unto us, to confirm, strengthen, and establish us so in the same, that we may live and die in it as Vessels of thy mercy, to thy glory, and to the commodity of thy Church. Endue us with the Spirit of thy wisdom, that with good conscience we may always so answer the enemies in thy cause, as may turn to their conversion, or confusion, and our unspeakable consolation in Jesus Christ, for whose sake we beseech thee henceforth to keep us to give us patience, and to will none otherwise for deliverance or mitigation of our misery, then may stand always with thy good pleasure and merciful will towards us. Grant this, dear Father, not only to us in this place, but also to all others elsewhere afflicted for thy Names sake, through the death and merit of Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. See the godly Meditations of Mr. john Bradford. p. 415. In his godly Meditations.— We are rather to be placed among the wicked, then among thy children, for that we are so shameless for our sin, and careless for thy wrath, which we may well say to be most grievous against us, and evidently set forth in the taking away of our good King, and the true Religion, in the exile of thy Servants, imprisonment of thy People, misery of thy Children, and death of thy Saints: and by placing over us in authority thine enemies, by the success thou gavest them in all that they took in hand, by the returning again into our Country of Antichrist the Pope.— What shall we do? what shall we say? who can give us penitent hearts? who can open our lips, that our mouths might make acceptable confession unto thee?— O what now may we do? Pag. 6. Despair? no, for thou art God, and therefore good; thou art merciful, and therefore thou forgivest sins, with thee is mercy and propitiation; and therefore thou art worshipped. When Adam had sinned, thou gavest him mercy before he desired it, and wilt thou deny us mercy, which now desire the same? Pag. 7. Adam excused his fault, and accused thee, but we accuse ourselves, and excuse thee, and shall we be sent empty away?— Abraham was pulled out of Idolatry, when the world was drowned therein, and art thou his God only? Israel in captivity in Egypt was graciously visited and delivered, and dear God, that same good Lord, shall we always be forgotten? How often in the wilderness didst thou defer and spare thy plagues at the request of Moses, when the people themselves made no Petition to thee; and seeing we do not only make our Petitions to thee, but also have a Mediator for us, now far above Moses, even Jesus Christ, shall we (I say) dear Lord, depart ashamed? Pag. 11. — Take into thy custody and governance for ever our souls and bodies, our lives, and all that ever we have. Tempt us never further than thou wilt make us able to bear, and— always as thy children guide us, so that our life may please thee, and our deaths praise thee, through Jesus Christ our Lord, for whose sake we heartily pray thee to grant these things, etc. not only to us, but, etc. especially for thy children, that be in thraldom under their enemies, in exile, in prison, poverty, Pag. 12. etc. Be merciful to all the whole Realm of England, grant us all true repentance, and mitigation of our misery. And if it be thy good will, that thy holy Word and Religion may continue amongst us. Pardon our Enemies, Persecutors, and Slanderers, and if it be thy pleasure turn their hearts. Pag. 49. — Oh mighty King and most High, Almighty God, who mercifully governest all things which thou hast made, look down upon the faithful seed of Abraham, etc. consecrated to thee by the anointing of thy holy Spirit, and appointed to thy Kingdom by thy eternal purpose, free mercy, and grace, but yet as strangers wand'ring in this vile vile of misery, brought forth daily by worldly Tyrants like Sheep to the slaughter.— Thou hast destroyed Pharaoh with all his Horse and Chariots, puffed up with pride against thy people, leading forth safely by the hands of thy mercy thy beloved Israel through the high waves of the roaring waters. Pag. 50. Thou O God, the Lord of all Hosts and Armies didst first drive away from the Gates of thy people the blasphemous Senacherib, slaying of his Army 85000 by the Angel in one night, and after by his own Sons before his Idols didst kill the same blasphemous Idolater, etc. Thou didst transform and change proud Nabuchadnezzar, the enemy o● thy people, into a bruit beast, to eat grass and hay● to the horrible terror of all worldly Tyrants, etc. Thou didst preserve those thy three Servants i● Babylon, who with bold courage gave their bodies to the fire, because they would not worship any dead Idol, and when they were cast into the burning Furnace thou didst give them cheerful hearts to rejoice and sing Psalms, Pag. 51. and saved●● unhurt the very hairs of their heads, turning the flame from them to devour their enemies. Thou O Lord God by the might of thy right arm, which governeth all, broughtest Daniel thy Prophet safe into light and life forth of the dark Den of the devouring Lions, Pag. 52. etc.— Now also, O heavenly Father, beholder of all things, to whom belongs vengeance, thou seest and con●iderest how thy holy Name by the wicked Worldlings, and blasphemons Idolaters is dishonoured, thy sacred Word forsaken, refused, and despised, thy holy Spirit provoked, offended, thy chosen Temple polluted and defiled. Tarry not too long therefore, but show thy power speedily upon thy chosen Household, which is so grievously vexed, and so cruelly handled by thy open enemies. Avenge thine own glor●, and shorten these evil days for thine Elects sake. Let thy Kingdom come of all thy Servants desired, and though we have all offended thy Majesty, Pag. 53. — Yet for thine own glory (O merciful Lord) suffer not the enemy of thy Son Christ, the Romish Antichrist, thus wretchedly to delude and draw from thee our poor brethren, for whom thy Son once died, that by his cruelty, after so clear light, they they should be made Captives to dumb Idols and devilish inventions of Popish Ceremonies thereunto pertaining. Suffer him not to seduce the simple sort with this fond opinion, that his false gods, blind, mumbling, feigned Religion, or his foolish Superstition doth give him such conquest, such victories, such triumph, and so high an hand over us. Pag. 54. We know most certainly, O Lord, that it is not their arm and power, but our sins and offences, that hath delivered us to their fury, and hath caused thee to turn away from us: But turn again, O Lord, let us fall into thine hands, etc. lest these vain Idolaters do rejoice at the miserable destruction of those men whom they make Proselutes, and from thy Doctrine Apostates. But O Lord, thy will be fulfilled, this is thy righteous judgement to punish us with the tyrannical yoke of blindness, because we have cast away from us the sweet yoke of the wholesome Word of thy Son our Saviour. Yet consider the horrible blasphemies of thine and our enemies. Pag. 55. — They say in their hearts there is no God, which either can or will deliver us: Wherefore, O heavenly Father, the Governor of all things, the Avenger of the Causes of the poor, the fatherless, the widow, and the oppressed, look down from Heaven with the face of thy fatherly mercies, and forgive us all former offences, and for thy Son Jesus Christ's sake have mercy upon us; who by the force and cruelty of wicked and blasphemous Idolaters, (without causes approved) are haled and pulled from our own houses, are slandered, slain, and murdered as Rebels and Traitors, like persons pernicious, pestiferous, seditious, pestilent, and full of mortal poison, to all men contagious; whereas we do meddle no farther but against the hellish powers of darkness, etc. which would deny the will of our Christ unto us, we do contend no farther but only for our Christ Crucified, and the only salvation by 〈◊〉 blessed Passion. Pag. 56. — Therefore (O Lord) for 〈◊〉 glorious Names sake, for Jesus Christ's sake, etc. make the wicked Idolaters to wonder and stan● amazed at thy Almighty power. Use thy wont strength to the confusion of thine enemies, and 〈◊〉 the help and deliverance of thy persecuted people▪ All thy Saints do beseech thee therefore: The young Infants (which have some deal tasted of thy sweet Word) by whose mouths thou hast promised to make perfect thy praises, whose Angels do always behold thy face, who besides the loss of us their Parents, are in danger to be compelled and driven (without thy great mercies) to serve dumb and insensible Idols, do cry and call unto thee: Their pitiful Mothers, with lamentable tears lie prostrate before the Throne of thy Grace. Pag. 57 Thou Father of the fatherless, Judge of the widows, and Avenger of all the oppressed, Let it appear, O Lord Omnipotent, that thou dost here Judge, Avenge, and punish all wrongs offered to all thy little Ones that do believe in thee. Do this, O Lord, For thy Names sake. Arise up, O Lord, and thine enemies shall be scattered and confounded. So be it. O Lord most merciful, at thy time appointed. Brown. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 649. john Brown told his wife (as he sat in the Stocks) that the Archbishop had burnt his feet to the bones, so as he could not set them upon the ground, and all to make them deny Christ, which (said he) I will never do; for if I should deny him in this world, he would deny me hereafter. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 630. Thomas Brown being brought forth to be condemned, Bonner said to him, Brown, you have been before me many times, and I have took much pains to win thee from thine errors, yet thou and such like have, and do report that I go about to seek thy blood. Yea my Lord, (said Brown) indeed you be a Bloodsucker; and I would I had as much blood as there is water in the Sea for you to suck. Bruger. A Friar offering john Bruger, Ward, pag. 155. a foreign Martyr, a Wooden Cross at the Stake, No (said he) I have another true Cross imposed on me, which now I will take up. I worship not the work of man's hands, but the Son of God. I am content with him for my only Advocate. Bruse. I thank God (said Peter Bruse) my broken Leg suffered me not to fly this Martyrdom. Pag. 159. Buisson. I shall now have (said john Buisson) a double Goal-delivery; Ward, pag. 160. one out of my sinful flesh, another from the loathsome Dungeon I have long lain in. Burgins. Lord (said Anna's Burgins in the midst of his torments) forsake me not, Pag. 157. lest I forsake thee. Burgon. john Burgon to his Judges, Pag. 156. ask him if he would appeal to the High-Court, answered, Is it not enough that your hands are polluted with blood, but you will make more guilty of it? Barnes. When Dr. Barnes was brought before Cardinal Wolsey, See his Life and Martyrdom before his Works, set forth by Mr. Fox. He told him, he thought it necessary that his Golden Shoes, and Golden Cushions, etc. should be sold and given to the poor, for that such things were not comely for his Calling, neither was the King's Majesty maintained by his Pomp, but by God, who saith, By me Kings reign. When the Cardinal would have had him to re●fer himself to him, promising him Favour, he an●swered, I will stick to the Holy Scripture, and t● God's Book, according to the simple Talon tha● God hath lent me. Being called before the Bishops and Abbot o● Westminster, who demanded of him, whether h● would abjure or burn, he was in a great agony and then thought rather to burn then to abjure▪ but persuaded by Gardiner and Fox, because they said he should do more good in time to come, He abjured, and carried his Faggot to Paul's. After they had long detained him in Prison notwithstanding, upon notice given him of their intentions to burn him, notwithstanding his abjuration, he escaped out of England into Germany, where he made his supplication to King Henry the Eighth, against the Lordly Bishops and Prelates of England, for the intolerable injuries, wrongs, and oppressions wherewith they had vexed not only himself, but all true Preachers of God's Word, and Professors of the same, contrary to the Word of God, and their own Laws and Doctors.— I do not believe (saith he) that ever God will suffer long so great Tyranny against his Word, and so violent Oppressions of Christians, as they now use, and that in the Name of Christ and his Holy Church.— Now it is come to that, that whoever he be, high or low, poor or rich, wise or foolish, that speaketh against them and their vicious living, he is either made a Traitor to your Grace, or an Heretic against Holy Church, as though they were Kings or Gods.— If there be any men, that Preach, Dispute, or put forth in Writing not any thing touching them, though it be never so blasphemous against God, the Blood of Christ, and his Holy Word, they will not once be moved therewith,— But if any man speak against their Cloaked Hypocrisy, or against any thing belonging to them, by which their abominations are disclosed, nothing can excuse, but he must either to open shame, or cruel death, and that under the accusation of Treason. But who is he that would be a Traitor, or maintain a Traitor against your Majesty? Sure no man can do it without the great displeasure of the eternal God. The Doctrine of the Gospel teacheth all obedience to Rulers, and not Sedition; and such as have preached the Word of God only, have never been the movers of disobedience or rebellion against Princes, but they have been ready to suffer with all patience whatsoever Tyranny any Power would minister unto them, giving all people example to do the same; whereas the Papists exempt the Pope and Priests from being bound to obey Magistrates. Yea, as to the people they teach, that the words requiring Subjection are a Counsel, and not a Command; and that the Pope's Authority is sufficient to Dispense with all the Commandments of God.— Wherefore most gracious Prince, I lowly and merely desire your Majesty to Judge between the Bishops and me, which of us is truest faithfullest to God and to your Majesty. The following Articles were some of Dr. Barnes his Position in his Sermon, which the Bishops condemned for Heresy. (1) If thou believe that thou art more bound to serve God to morrow, which is Christmas day, or on Easter day, or on Whitsunday, for any holiness that is in one day more than another, thou art superstitious. (2) Now dare no man preach the Truth and the very Gospel of God, especially they that be feeble and fearful; but I trust, yea I pray to God, that it may shortly come that false and manifest errors may be plainly showed, etc. (3) We make now adays Martyrs, I tru●● we shall have many more shortly; for the Verity could never be preached plainly, but persecution followed. (6) I will never believe, neither can I believe that one man may be by the Law of God 〈◊〉 Bishop of two or three Cities, yea of a whole Country; Tit. 1. for it is contrary to Saint Paul, who saith, I have left thee behind to set in every City a Bishop. (7) It cannot be proved by Scripture that a man of the Church should have so great temporal possessions. (8) Sure I am, that they cannot by the Law of God have any Jurisdiction secular. (9) They say they be the Successors of Christ and his Apostles, but I can see them follow none but judas; for they bear the purse and have all the money. To burn me or to destroy me (saith he in his Defence of the Two and twentieth Article) cannot so greatly profit them; for when I am dead, the Sun, and the Moon, and the Stars, and the Elements, yea and also Stones shall defend this Cause against them, rather than the Verity should perish.— As for me I do promise them here by this present Writing, and by the fidelity I owe to my Prince, that if they will be bound to our noble Prince, after the manner of his Law, and after good conscience and right, that they shall do me no violence, nor wrong, but discuss and dispute these Articles, and all other that I have written after the holy Word of God, and by Christ's holy Scripture with me, then will I (as soon as I may know it) present myself unto our most noble Prince to prove these things by God's Word against you all.— He also writ unto King Henry the Eighth an excellent Treatise to prove from the Scriptures of Truth, and out of the Writings of the Fathers, that faith only justifieth before God. Prefacing it thus, Now if your Grace do not take upon you to hear the Disputation of this Article out of the ground of holy Scripture, my Lords the Bishops will condemn it, before they read it, as their manner is to do with all things, that please them not, and which they understand not, and then cry they, Heresy, Heresy, an Heretic, an Heretic, he ought not to be heard, etc. He writ also several other Treatises, as what the Church is, what the Keys of the Church be, and to whom they were given. Against freewill, that it is lawful for all men to read the holy Scriptures, that men's constitutions, which are not grounded in Scripture, bind not the Conscience, etc. In which Treatise he tells us, there be two manners of Powers; a Temporal, and a Spiritual Power. The Temporal is committed to Magistrates; in this Power the King is chief and full Ruler, etc. Unto this Power must we be obedient in all things that pertain to the ministration of this present life, and of the Commonwealth, not only for avoiding of punishment, but for conscience sake. So that if this Power command any thing of Tyranny against right and law (always provided it repugn not against the Gospel, nor destroy our Faith) our Charity must needs suffer it.— Nevertheless if he command thee any thing against right, or do thee any wrong, if thou canst by any reasonable and quiet means▪ without sedition, insurrection, or breaking of the common Peace save thyself, or avoid his Tyranny, thou mayest do it with good Conscience.— But in no wise mayest thou make any resistance with sword or with hand, but obey, except thou canst avoid as I have showed thee.— But now it will be enquired, if it please the King to condemn the New Testament in English, and to command that none of his Subjects shall have it under displeasure, whether they be bound to obey this Command or no? To this he answers (having showed why the King should not lay any such Command on his Subjects) If the King forbid the New Testament, or any of Christ's Sacraments, or the preaching of the Word of God, or any other thing that is against Christ, under a temporal pain, or under the pain of death, men should first make faithful prayers to God, and then intercede the King for a release of the Command. If he will not do it, they shall keep their Testament, with all other Ordinances of Christ, and let the King exercise his Tyranny (if they cannot flee) and in no wise under pain of damnation shall they withstand him with violence, but suffer patiently, and leave the Vengeance of it to their heavenly Father, which hath a scourge to tame those Bedlams with, when he sees his time: Neither shall they deny Christ's Verity, nor forsake it before the Prince, lest they run the danger of being denied by Christ before his Father.— This may be proved by the examples of the Apostles, when the High Priests of the Temple commanded Peter and john that they should no more Preach and Teach in the Name of Jesus: Acts 4. and 5. They made them answer, It was more right to obey God then man. Also the Pharisees came and commanded our Master Christ in Herod's Name to depart from thence under pain of death: But he would not obey, but bid them go tell that Wolf, Behold I cast out Devils, Luke 13. etc. Nevertheless I must continue this day, to morrow, and the next day, etc. So that he left not the Ministration of the Word for the King's pleasure, nor yet for fear of death. The three Children also would not obey the King's command against God's Word. Dan. 3. Daniel would not leave off Prayer, Dan. 6. though commanded by the King.— So that Christians are bound to obey in suffering the King's Tyranny, but not in consenting to his unlawful Command, Always having before their eyes, the comfortable saying of our Master Christ, Fear not them that can only kill the body; Mat. 10. and that of Peter, Happy are ye if ye suffer for righteousness sake, etc.— As for the Spiritual Power, it hath no authority to make Statutes or Laws to order the World by, but only faithfully and truly to preach the Word, not adding thereto, nor taking therefrom.— If these Ministers will of Tyranny, above the Word of God, make any Law or Statute, it must be considered, whether it be openly and directly against the Word of God, and to the destruction of the Faith, etc. such Statutes men are not bound for to obey, neither of Charity, (for here Faith is hurt, which giveth no place to Charity) nor for avoiding of slander, etc. The more that men be offended at the Word, and the stiffer they be against it, the more openly and plainly, yea and that to their faces, that make such Statutes, must we resist them with these words, We are more bound to obey God then man.— The other manner of Statutes be when certain things, that be called indifferent, be commanded to be done of necessity, etc. Here must they also be withstood, and in no wise obeyed; for in this is our Faith hurt, and liberty of Christianity, etc. and therefore must withstand them that will take this liberty from us, with this Text of Scripture, 1 Cor. 7. We are bought with the price of Christ's blood, we will not be the servants of men. This Text is open against them, that will bind men● Consciences in those things that Christ hath left them free in. Gal. 2. Of this we have an evident example in Paul, who would not circumcise Titus, when the false Brethren would have compelled him thereunto, as a thing of necessity.— It is plain, that by Christ we are made free, and nothing can bind us to sin, but his Word.— At the Stake Dr. Barnes began with this Protestation following: I am come hither to be burned as an Heretic, and you shall hear my belief, whereby you shall perceive what erroneous opinions I hold.— I believe in the holy and blessed Trinity, three Persons and one God, that cteated and made all the World, and that this blessed Trinity sent down the Second Person Jesus Christ into the womb of the most blessed and purest Virgin Marry, etc. I believe that without the consent of man's will or power, he was conceived by the Holy Ghost, and took flesh of her, and that he suffered hunger, thirst, cold, and other passions of our body, (sin except) etc. And I do believe that he lived here among us, and after he had preached and taught his Father's Will, he suffered the most bitter and cruel Death for me and all mankind. And I do believe that this his Death and Passion was the sufficient Price and Ransom for the sin of all the World; And I do believe that through his Death he overcame the Devil, Sin, Death, and Hell, and that there is none other satisfaction unto the Father, but this his Death and Passion only; and that no work of man did deserve any thing of God, but only his Passion, as touching our justification; for I acknowledge the best work that ever I did is impure and unperfect. (Herewithal he cast abroad his Arms, and desired God to forgive him his Trespasses) Wherefore I trust in no good work that ever I did, but only in the Death of Christ, and I do not doubt but through him to inherit the Kingdom of Heaven.— The Sheriff hastening him to make an end, he turned to the people and desired all men to forgive him, and if he had said any evil at any time unadvisedly, whereby he had offended any man, or given any occasion of evil, that they would forgive it him, and amend that evil they took of him, and to bear witness, that he detested and abhorred all evil Opinions and Doctrines against the Word of God, and that he died in the Faith of Jesus Christ, by whom he doubted not to be saved. Bressius. If God's Spirit say true, Ward, pag. 152. I shall straight rest from my labours. My soul is even taking her wings to fly to her resting place. Brez. A Lady visiting Mr. Guy de Brez, Fox, Vol. 3. C●●. p. 37. a French Minister, Prisoner in the Castle of Tournay, told him, She wondered how he could either eat, or drink, or sleep in quiet; for were I in your case (said she) the very terror thereof would go ●igh to kill me. O Madam (said he) the good Cause, for which I suffer, and that inward Peace of Conscience, wherewith God hath endued me, makes me eat and drink with greater content, than mine enemies can, which seek my life. Yea so far off is it, that my bonds or chains do any way terrify me, or break off my sleep, that on the contrary, I glory and take delight therein, esteeming them at an higher rate, than Chains and Rings of Gold, or any other Jewels of price whatsoever. Ye● when I hear the rattling of my Chains, methinks I hear some Instrument of Music sounding in mine ears: not that such an effect comes merely from my Chains, but in regard I am bound therewith for maintaining the truth of th● Gospel. In his Letter to his Wife.— These thought came at first thronging into my head. What mean we to go so many in company together as we did? Had it not been for such and such, we had never been discovered, or taken. But meditating on the Providence of God, my heart began to find wonderful rest, saying thus in myself, O my God, the day and hour of my birth was before ordained of thee, and ever since thou hast preserved and kep● me in great perils and dangers, and hitherto delivered me out of all. And if now the hour be come, wherein I must pass out of this life into thy Kingdom, thy will be done. I cannot escape out o● thine hands; yea though I could, yet, Lord, the● knowest I would not, seeing all my felicity depends upon conforming my will to thine.— This World is not the place of our Rest, No, Heaven is ou● Home, this is but the place of our Banishment▪— Take into your consideration the honour the Lord doth you, in giving you an Husband that is not only called to be a Minister of Christ's Gospel, but also so highly advanced of God, as to be accounted worthy to partake of the Crown of Martyrdom. It is an honour, which the Angels in Heaven are not capable of.— I am here taught to practise, what I have preached to others; yea let me not be ashamed to confess, that when I heretofore preached, I spoke but as a Parrot, in regard of that which I have now better learned by proo● and experience. Ward, pag. 161. (All my former discourses, were as a blind man's of Colours, in comparison of my present feeling. Oh what a precious Comforter in a good Conscience!) I have profited more in the School-house of this Prison, than ever I did in all my life before.— I would not change my condition with theirs that persecute me, though I am lodged in the vilest Prison they have, dark and obscure, where I have no air to breath at, but a little stinking Hole, where they lay all their Rubbish, and where the Drunkards commonly vent their Urine, and though I be laden with Irons both on my hands and feet, eating through the flesh even to the bare bones, etc. and that I may make no escape guarded with forty men before the Prison door.— When the Provost brought him tidings that he was to be burnt at Six, Pag. 42. or thereabouts that day, He gave him thanks for the good News, which he had brought him. And going to the rest of the Prisoners he said, Brethren, I am this day to die for the Doctrine of the Gospel, and now, blessed be God, I joy and rejoice therein. I had not thought that ever God would have done me this honour. I feel myself replenished with joy more and more, from minute to minute. My God addeth new courage to me, and my heart leapeth for joy within me. Then exhorting them to be of good courage, he told them it was no hard matter to die, adding by way of acclamation, O how happy are the dead that die in the Lord, for they rest from their labours, and their works follow them! Beware you do nothing (said he) against a good Conscience, etc. For if you do, you shall certainly feel such an Hell in your Consciences, as will never cease to vex and trouble you. O my Brethren, how good a thing is it to nourish a good Conscience! One of the Prisoners ask him, Whether he had finished a certain work, which he had begun, He answered, No, for now I must cease to labour, because I am passing along to the heavenly rest. The time of my departing is at hand, I go to reap that in Heaven, which I have ●own on Earth I have fought a good fight, I am at the point of finishing my course, from henceforth the Crown of Glory is laid up for me, which the Lord, the righteous Judge shall give unto me. Methinks (said he with a joyful and smiling countenance) that my spirit hath obtained wings to sore aloft into Heaven, being invited to the marriage Supper of the Lamb. The Provost coming in with Bands, Mr. Guy bid him welcome, and gave him thanks again for his good news. The Provost replying that it grieved him much that things should be carried so, Mr. Guy joyfully answered, I accept of you as my good Friend, I love you with all my heart. C. Caesar. Ward, pag. 158. O Lord (said Leonard Caesar) do thou suffer with me, Lord, support me, and save me. Caigneola. Pag. 150, 151. Michaela Caigneola, a noble Matron, seeing her Judges look out of the Windows, said to her fellow Martyrs, These stay to suffer the torments of their Consciences, and are reserved to judgement, but we are going to glory and happiness. When certain poor women wept and cried, O Madam, we shall never now have more Alms; Yes hold (said she) yet once more, and plucked of her Slippers, and such other of her Apparel, as she could with modesty spare from the fire. Calberg. Pag. 153. I believe (said Thomas Calberg to the Friars, willing him to repent at the last hour) that I am one of those workmen in Christ's vineyard, and shall presently receive my penny. Calocerius. He seeing the great patience of Faustinus and jolita, Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 53. Citizens of Briria, in their very great torments, cried out, Vere magnus est Deus Christianorum, Verily great is the God of Christians. Which words being heard, caused him forthwith to be apprehended, and martyred with those two famous Christians. Cane. When a fool's cap was put on Alexander Cane's head; Ward, pag. 159. Can I have (said he) a greater honour done me, then to be served as my Lord Christ before Herod? Lord, seeing my persecutors have no mercy, have thou mercy on me, and receive my soul. Canesire. There is one Passage in your Letter (said Claude de la Canesire, The Mirror of Martyrs, pag. 575. in a Letter to his Wife from Lions) which doth not a little comfort me, namely, that albeit you are loath to leave me, yet you had rather have no husband at all, then to have one that should betray the cause of Christ. Card-maker. Mr. I●hn Card-maker, Fox. Vol. 3. pag. 250. burnt in Smithfield, 1555. in a Letter to a Friend writes thus. You shall right well perceive, that I am not gone back as some men do report me, but as ready to give my life as any of my Brethren, that are gone before me.— That day, that I recant any point of Doctrine, I shall suffer twenty kinds of death, the Lord being my assistance, as I doubt not, but he will.— I have learned to rejoice in poverty, as well as riches, for that I count now to be very riches.— I have conferred with some of my learned Adversaries, and I find they are but Sophisters and shadows. Careless. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 713. john Careless of Coventry, Weaver, being wished by Dr. Martin to play the wise man's part, to save that which God hath bought. I thank you Sir (said he) and I put you out of doubt, that I am most sure and certain of my salvation by Jesus Christ, so that my soul is safe already, whatsoever pains my body suffers here for a little time. Art thou so predestinated to life (said the Doctor) that thou canst no● perish in whatsoever opinion thou dost die. That God hath predestinated me to eternal life in Jesus Christ (said he) I am most certain, and even so I am sure that his Holy Spirit (wherewith I am sealed) will so preserve me from all Heresies, and evil opinions, that I shall die in none at all. When the Dr. told him that he was a goodly tall man, and might do the Queen good service in Ireland; He said, wheresoever I am, I am ready to her Grace the best service I can with body, goods, and life, and if she, or any under require me to do any thing contrary to Christ's true Religion, I am ready also to do service in Smithfield, as my Bedfellows and other Brethren have done, praised be God for them. Pag. 715. In his Letter to Mr. Philpot.— Ah my true loving Friends, how soon did you lay aside all other business to make a sweet plaster for my wounded conscience, yea, and that out of a painful pair of Stocks, which place must needs be uneasy to write in! But God hath brought you in a straight place, that you might set my soul at liberty.— Ah good jeremy, hath Phassur put thee into the Stocks: why now thou hast the right reward of a Prophet. — Though you lie in the dark, slurred with the Bishop's black coal-dust, yet shall you shortly be made as white as snow in Salmon, and as the wings of a Dove that is covered with silver, and her feathers like gold. You know the Vessel before it be made bright, is soiled with oil and other things, that it may scour the better. O happy be you that you be now in the scouring house, for shortly you shall be set on the celestial shelf, as bright as Angels.— My old Friends of Coventry have put the Counsel in remembrance of me not six days ago, saying, I am more worthy to be burnt then any that hath been burned yet. God's blessing on their hearts for their good report. God make me worthy of that dignity, and hasten the time, that I may set forth his glory.— Blessed be the time that ever I came into the King's Bench to be joined in love and fellowship with such dear children of the Lord. In his Letter to his Wife. Pag. 716. — Are not two sparrows (saith Christ) sold for a farthing, and yet not one of them shall perish without the will of your Heavenly Father, etc. As though he should have said, if God hath such respect and care for a poor sparrow, which is not worth one farthing, it shall not be taken in the lime-twig, net, or pitfall, until it be his good will and pleasure: you may be well assured, that not one of you (whom he so dearly loveth, that he hath given his only dear Son for you) shall perish or depart forth of this miserable life, without his good will and pleasure.— Let not the remembrance of children keep you from God. The Lord himself will be a Father and a Mother better than ever yo●● or I could have been unto them. He himself will do all things necessary for them, yea as much as rock the cradle, if need be. Pag. 717. In his Letter to Mr. Bradford.— If we had been thanful to God for the good Ministers of his Word, we had not so soon been deprived both of it and them.— Take not away all thy true Preachers forth of this Realm (O Lord) but leave us a seed, lest England be made like unto Sodom and Gomorrah when thy true Lots be gone.— Harken O Heavens, and then Earth give ear, and bear me witness at the great Day, that I do here faithfully and truly the Lord's message to his dear Servant, to his singularly beloved and elect child john Bradford. john Bradford, thou man so specially beloved of God, I pronounce and testify unto thee in the Name of the Lord Jehovah, that all thy sins whatsoever they be, be they never so many, so grievous, or so great, be fully and freely pardoned, released, and forgiven thee, by the mercy of God in Jesus Christ thine only Lord and sweet Saviour, in whom thou dost undoubtedly believe. Christ hath cleansed thee with his blood, and clothed thee with his Righteousness, and hath made thee in the sight of God his Father without spot or wrinkle, so that when the fire doth his appointed office, thou shalt be received (as a sweet burnt-sacrifice) into Heaven, where thou shalt joyfully remain in God's presence for ever, as the true inheriter of his everlasting Kingdom, unto the which thou wast undoubtedly predestinate, and ordained by the Lords infallible purpose and decree before the foundation of the world was laid, and that this is most true that I have said, I call the whole Trinity, the Almighty and Eternal Majesty of God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost to my record at this present, whom I humbly beseech to confirm and establish in thee the true and lively feeling of the same. Amen. Selah. In his Letter to his dear and faithful Brethren in Newgate, Pag. 719. condemned to die.— Cease not my dearly Beloved, so long as you be in this life to praise the Lord with all your hearts, for that of his great mercy and infinite goodness he hath vouched you worthy of this great dignity, to suffer for his sake, not only the loss of goods, wife, and children, long imprisonment, cruel oppression, but death itself in the fire. This is the greatest promotion that God can bring you, or any other into, in this vail of misery; yea, so great an honour, as the highest Angel in Heaven is not permitted to have, and yet hath the Lord for his dear Son Christ's sake reputed you worthy of the same, yea, and that before me and many others, who have both long looked and longed for the same.— Rejoice with double joy, and be glad, my dear Brethren, for doubtless you have more cause than can be expressed. But alas! I that for my sins am left behind, may lament with the holy Prophet, Woe is me, that the days of my joyful r●st are prolonged. Ah cursed Satan! which hath caused me so sore to offend my most dear loving Father, whereby mine exile and banishment is so long prolonged. Oh Christ, my dear Advocate, pacify thy Father's wrath, which I have justly deserved, that he may take me home to him in his sweet mercy. In his Letter to Mr. Green, Pag. 720. etc.— If they be so blessed of God that die in the Lord, as the Holy Ghost saith they be, how much more blessed and happy then are you, that die not only in the Lord, but for the lord— O blessed Green, etc. fresh and green shalt thou be in the Lord's House, and thy fruits shall never wither nor decay.— O happy Mr. Whittle, Peter's part thou hast well played, therefore thy reward and portion shall be like his. Now hast thou good experience of man infirmity, but much more proof and taste, yea sense and feeling of God's abundant bottomless mercy Although Satan desired to sift thee, yet Christ thy good Captain prayed that thy faith should not fails God's strength is made perfect by thy weakness, etc.— But alas! I lie like the lame man a● the Pools side, and every one goeth into the place of health before me. In his Letter to William Times.— Satan hath two great pieces of Ordinance to shoot at you, with the which he cannot hurt you, because you have two bulwarks to defend you. The first of these terrible Guns that he hath shot at you is fear and infidelity, for the uglesomness of death, and horror of your many and great sins. But this pellet is easily put away with the sure shield of faith in the most precious death and bloodshedding of our dear Lord and only Saviour, Jesus Christ, whom the Father hath given to us wholly to be ours for evermore, and with him hath given us all things, as Paul saith, so that though we be never so great sinners, yet Christ is made unto us holiness, righteousness, and justification; He hath clothed us all his merits, etc. and taken to himself all our sin, etc. so that if any should be now condemned for the same, it must needs be Jesus Christ, who hath taken them upon him. But indeed he hath made satisfaction for them to the uttermost, so that for his sake they shall never be imputed to us, if they were a thousand times more than they be. The other pestilent Piece he shooteth off at you is, to provoke you to put some part of your trust and confidence in yourself, and in your own holiness and righteousness, that you may that way rob God of his glory, and Christ of the honour and dignity of his death; but blessed be the Lord God, you have also a full strong Bulwark to beat back this pestilent Pellet, even the pure Law of God, which proveth the best of us all damnable sinners in the light of God, and that our best works are polluted, in such sort as the Prophet describes them, with the which manner of speaking, our freewill Pharisees are much offended, for it felleth all man's righteousness to the ground. In his Letter to Mr. Augustine Bernher.— Pray for me that I may be strong and hardy to lay a good load on that bloody beast of Babylon. O that I might so strike him down, that he should never be able to rise again, but that stroke belongeth only to the Lord to strike at his coming, which I hope will be shortly. Carpenter. All Bavaria (said George Carpenter) is not so dear to me as my wife and children, Ward, pag. 156. yet for Christ's sake I will forsake them cheerfully. Carver. Mr. Derick Carver, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 385. being asked by Bonner whether he would stand for his Confession, answered, He would, for your Doctrine is poison and sorcery. If Christ were here, you would put him to a worse death, than he was put to before. At the stake he spoke thus; Dear Brethren and Sisters, I am come here to seal with my blood Christ's Gospel, because that I know it to be true.— As many of you as do believe upon the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost unto everlasting life, see you do the works pertaining to the same. As many of you as do believe on the Pope of Rome, you do believe to your utter condemnation, and except the great mercy of God prevent not, you shall burn in Hell perpetually. In his Prayer.— O Lord my God, thou has● written, He that will not forsake wife, children, house, and all that ever he hath, and take up his cross, and follow thee, is not worthy of thee. Lord, thou knowest that I have forsaken all to come unto thee. Lord, have mercy upon me, for unto thee I commend my Spirit, and my soul doth rejoice in thee. chrysostom. Clark 's first Volume of Lives, pag. 145. Eudina xia the Empress having sent him a very threatening message, he gave this answer; Go, tell her, Nil nisi peccatum timeo, I fear nothing but sin. When she had procured his banishment, as he went forth of the City, he said, None of these things trouble me; but I said within myself, if the Queen will, let her banish me, the Earth is the Lords, and the fullness thereof, if she will, let her cast me into the sea, I will remember jonah; if she will, let her cast me into a burning fiery. Furnace, or among wild beasts, the three children and Daniel were so dealt with; if she will, let her stone me, or cut off my head, I have St. Stephen, and the Baptist my blessed Companions, if she will, let her take away all my substance, Naked came I out of my Mother's womb, and naked shall I return thither again. He used to say the Devil's first assault is violent, resist that, and his second will be weaker, and that being resisted, he proves a Coward. Clarebachius. Ward, pag. 159. I believe (said Adolphus Clarebachius) that there is not a merrier heart in the world at this instant than mine is: Behold, you shall see me die by that faith I have lived in. Colham. See Sir john Oldcastle under the Letter (O) Clark. When Roger Clark was sentenced, Fox Vol pag. 569. he said with much vehemency, Fight for your God, for he hath not long to continue. At the Stake he cried out to the people, Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sins of the world. Coligni. jasper Coligni, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 57 Clarks Martyrology etc. pag. 41. of his life. great Admiral of France, who was slain in the Massacre at Paris, August 24. 1572. being shot in the left Arm with two Bullets, and the forefinger of the right hand broke off with a third; and being told by a Gentleman, that it was to be feared the Bullets were poisoned, he said, All must be as it pleaseth God. Seeing his Friends weep, which held his Arm whilst the Incisions were made, he said, My Friends, why do you weep? I judge myself happy that bear these wounds for the Cause of my God. To Mr. Merlin, his Chaplain, he said, These wounds, my Friend, are God's blessings. The smart indeed is troublesome, but I acknowledge the will of my Lord therein, and I bless his Majesty, who hath been pleased thus to honour me, and to lay any pain upon me for his holy Names sake: Let us beg of him, that he will enable me to persevere to the end. Speaking concerning those that wounded him, I know assuredly (said he) that it is not in their power to hurt me, No, though they should kill me, for my death is a most certain passage to eternal life. N When the Bloodhounds broke open the house where he lay wounded, he spoke thus, I perceive what is a doing, I was never afraid of death, and I am ready to undergo it patiently, for which ● have long since prepared myself. I bless God that I shall die in the lord— ● now need no longer any help of man, therefore my friends get ye hence.— The presence of God to whose goodness I commend my soul is abundantly sufficiently for me. Cover. Ward, pag. 163. Sheep we are for the slaughter (said Franc● Co'ver to his two Sons, massacred together with himself) this is no new thing, let us follow millions of Martyrs through temporal death unto eternal life. Coo. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 419. Roger Coo being asked by the Bishop of Nor●ich● whether he would not obey the King's Laws, answered, As far as they agree with the Word of God, I will obey them. Whether they agree with the Word of God or no, we are bound to obey them (said the Bishop) though the King were an Infidel; Coo replied, If Shadrach, M●shach, and Abedn●go had so done, Neluchadn●zzar had neve● confessed the Living God. Constantine. Ward, pag: 154. Being carried with other Martyrs in a Dungy Cart to the place of Execution, he spoke thuss Well, yet are we a precious odour, and a swee● savour to God in Christ. Cornford. Fox Vol. 3. pag 893. john Cornford one of the last five that suffered Martyrdom in Queen Mary's days (when th● Sentence should have been passed, and they should have been executed by the Papists) being move● in Spirit with a vehement zeal for God, in the nam● of them all pronounced Sentence of Excommunication against the Papists, in these words.— In the Name of our Lord Jesus Christ the Son of the most mighty God, and by the power of the holy Spirit, and the authority of his holy and Apostolic Church, We do hereby give into the hands of Satan to be destroyed, the bodies of those Blasphemers and Heretics, that do maintain any error against his most holy Word, or do condemn his most holy Truth for Heresy, to the maintenance of any false Church or feigned Religion, so that by this thy just judgement against thy Adversaries, thy true Religion may be known to thy great glory, and our comfort, and to the edifying of all our Nation Lord Jesus, So be it.— It is observable, that within six days after this Excommunication Queen Mary died, and the tyranny of all English Papists with her. Con●ogue. Brethren and Sisters (said Peter Conlogue of Breda at the Stake) be you always obedient to the Word of God, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 50. and fear not those that can kill the body, for on the soul they can have no power; as for me I am now going to meet my glorious Spouse the Lord Jesus Christ. Cranm●r. When Dr. Th●mas Cranmer Archbishop of Canterbury was Excommunicated, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 92. he said, From this your Judgement and Sentence, I appeal to the just Judgement of God Almighty, trusting to be present with him in Heaven, for whose presence in the Altar I am thus condemned. In his Letter to Mr. Wilkinson. Pag. 677. — The true Comforter in all distresses is only God through his Son Jesus Christ. Whosoever hath him hath Comfort enough, although he were in a Wilderness all alone. He that hath twenty thousand in his company, if God be absent, is in a miserable Wilderness. In him is all comfort, and without him is none. Wherefore I beseech you seek your dwelling there, where you may truly and rightly serve God, and dwell in him, and have him ever dwelling in you. Pag. 323. In his Letter to Mr. Warcup.— Be not so dainty, as to look for that at God, your dear Father's hands, which the Fathers, Patriarches, Prophets, Apostles, Evangelists, Saints, and his own Son Jesus Christ did not find, i. e. all fair way and fair weather to Heaven.— The Devil standeth now at every Inne-door in this City and Country of this World, crying unto us to tarry and Lodge in this or that place till the storms be overpast, not that he would not have us to wet our skin, but that the ●●me of our running our Race might over-pass us to our utter destruction.— Fear not the Flail, fear not the Fann●ng-wind, fear not the Millstone, fear not the Oven; for all these make you more meet for the Lords tooth. Pag. 326. In his Letter to Dr. Hill.— Such as think it enough to keep the heart pure, notwithstanding that the outward man carry favour, as they deny God to be jealous, one that will have the whole man, having created, redeemed, and sanctified both for himself, so they play the Dissemblers with the Church of God, by their parting stakes between God and the World, offending the Godly, whom either they provoke to fall with them, or make more careless and conscienceless, if they have fallen, and occasioning the wicked and obstinate to triumph against God, and the more vehemently to prosecute their malice against such as will not defile themselves in body or soul with the Romish Rags, now received among us.— Call to mind that there are but two Masters, two kind of people, two ways, and two Mansion places. The Masters be Christ and Satan; the people the Servitors to either of these; the ways be straight and wide; the Mansions be Heaven and Hell. This World is the place of trial of God's people and the Devils servants by whom they follow: The Cross it is that doth make the trial. In his Letter to Royd●n and Esing.— Whom would it grieve, Pag. 333. which hath a long journey to go through a piece of foul way, if he knew that after that, the way should be most pleasant, yea the journey should be ended, and he at his resting place most happy? Who will be afraid or loath to leave a little pelf for a little time, if he knew he should afterwards very speedily receive most plentiful riches? Who will be unwilling for a while to forsake his wife, children, friends, etc. when he knoweth he shall shortly after be associated to them inseparably, even after his own hearts desire? Who will be sorry to forsake his life, who is most certain of eternal life? Who loveth the shadow better than the body? Who can desire the dross of this world, but such as be ignorant of the treasures of the everlasting joy in Heaven? Who is afraid to die, but such as hope not to live eternally?— What way is so sure a way to Heaven, as to suffer in Christ's Cause? If there be any way on Horseback to Heaven, surely this is the way, Acts 14. 2 Tim. ●. The Devil cannot love his Enemies. Should we look for fire to quench our thirst? As soon shall God's true Servants find peace and ●avour in Antichrists Regiment. In a Letter to Mrs. Anne Warcup.— My Staff standeth at the door. Pag. 345. I look continually for the Sheriff to come for me; and I bless God I am ready for him. Now go I to practise that which I have preached. Now am I climbing up to the hill; it will cause me to puff and to blow before I come to the cliff. The hill is steep and high; my breath is short, and my strength is feeble. Pray therefore to the Lord for me, that as I have now through his goodness even almost come to the top, I may by his grace be strengthened not to rest till I come where I should be. Oh loving Lord, put out thy hand, and draw me unto thee; for no man cometh but he whom the Father draweth. See my dearly beloved, God's loving mercy: He knoweth my short breath and great weakness. As he sent for Elias in a fiery Chariot, so sends he for me. By fire my dross must be purified, that I may be fine gold in his sight. In his Letter to Mr. Augustine Barnher.— I have now taken a more certain answer of death then ever I did. Ah my God, the hour is come, glorify thy most unworthy child. I have glorified thee (saith this my sweet Father) and I will glorified thee. Amen. Pag. 356.757, 361 362. Some of the subscriptions of his Letters were observable. The most miserable hardhearted unthankful s●nner, john Bradford. A very painted hypocrite, john Bradford. Miserrimus peccatur, john Bradford. The sinful john Bradford. Pag. 307. Pray, pray, pray, was the usual close of his Letters which he writ in Prison. When he came into Smithfield, he fell flat on his face, and prayed; then taking a Faggot in his hand he kissed it, and so likewise the Stake; and standing by the Stake, lifting up his hands and eyes to Heaven, he said, O England, England, repent of thy sins, reputes of thy sins, beware of Idolatry, beware of false Antichrist, take heed they do not deceive thee; and to his fellow Martyr he said, Be of good comfort Brother, for we shall have a merry Supper with the Lord this night; and then embracing the reeds, he said, Straight is the gate, and narrow is the way that leads to life, and few there be that find it. What can be so heavy a burden, as an unquiet Conscience, to be in such a place, as a man cannot be suffered to serve God in Christ's Religion? If you be loath to depart from your Kin and Friends, Remember that Christ calleth them his Mother, Sisters, and Brothers, that do his Fathers will. Where we find therefore God truly honoured according to his will, there we can lack neither Friend nor Kin. If you be loath to depart for the slandering of God's Word, Remember that Christ when his hour was not yet come, departed out of his Country into Samaria, to avoid the malice of the Scribes and Pharisees, and commanded his Apostles, that if they were pursued in one place, they should fly to another. Thus did Paul, and the other Apostles. Albeit when it came to such a point, that they could no longer escape, than they evidenced that their flying before came not of fear, but of godly wisdom to do more good; and that they would not rashly, without urgent necessity offer themselves to death, which had been a tempting of God. After he had recanted, and was brought to Saint M●ry's Church in Oxford, where Dr. Cole after he had preached bitterly against him, showing why he was to be executed notwithstanding his Recantation, pressed him to evidence to the people his conversion to Popery, Dr. Cranmer entreated the people to pray with him and for him, that God would pardon his sins, especially his Recantation. After he had prayed, Pag. 669. he told them, It is a sad thing to see so many so much dote upon the love of this false World, and be so careful of it, and so careless of God's love, or the World to come▪ therefore this shall be my first exhortation, tha● you set not your minds overmuch upon this glozing World, but upon God, and the World to come, and to learn to know what this Lesson meaneth, which St. john teacheth, That the Love of this World is hatred against God.— Let rich men consider and weigh three Scriptures, Luke 18. It is h●rd for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of Heaven. 1 John 3. He that hath the substance of this world, and seeth his Brother in necessity, and shutteth up his mercy from him, how can he say that he loveth God? James 5.1, 2. Go to now ye rich men, weep and hard for the miseries that are coming upon you, your riches are corrupted.— Another exhortation is, That next under God you obey your King and Queen willingly and gladly, without murmuring or grudging. They are God's Minister's: Whosoever resisteth them, resisteth the Ordinance of God.— And now I come (said he) to the great thing, that so much troubleth my Conscience, more than any thing that ever I did, or said, in my whole life, and that is the setting abroad a Writing contrary to the Truth, which now here I renounce, and refuse as things written with my hand, contrary to the Truth which I thought in my heart, and written for fear of death and to save my life if it might be. And forasmuch as my hand offended, writing contrary to my heart, my hand shall first be punished therefore, for may I come to the fire it shall be first burned. At the Stake, when the fire began to burn near him, he stretching out his arm put his right hand into the flame, which he held so steadfast, that all men might see his hand burned, before his body was touched. His eyes lifted up to Heaven, he cried out even as long as he could speak, O his unworthy hand! His last words were the words of Stephen, Lord jesus receive my spirit. Cromwell. Thomas Lord Cromwe●, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 529. Earl of Ess●x, the morning that he was executed, having cheerfully eaten his breakfast, passing out of the Prison down the Hill in the Tower, met the Lord Hungerford going to Execution for other matter; and perceiving him to be heavy and doleful, he willed him to be of good comfort; for if you repent (said he) of what you have done, there is mercy enough for you with the Lord, who for Christ's sake will forgive you; and though the breakfast we are going to be sharp, yet trusting in the mercy of the Lord, we shall have a joyful dinner. In his Prayer on the Scaffold. Pag. 515. — O Lord Jesus, who art the only health of all men living, and the everlasting life of them which die in thee— Being sure that the thing cannot perish, which is committed to thy mercy, willingly now I leave this frail and wicked flesh, in sure hope that thou wilt in better wise restore it to me again at the last day in the resurrection of the J●st.— I see and acknowledge there is in myself no hope of salvation, but all my confidence, hope, and trust is in thy most merciful goodness.— Thou, merciful Lord, wast born for my sake, didst suffer hunger and thirst for my sake, didst teach, pray, and fast for my sake, all thy holy actions and works thou wroughtest for my sake, thou suffered'st most grievous pains and torments for my sake, and finally thou gavest thy most precious body and blood to be shed on the Cross for my sake; Now, most merciful Saviour, let all these things profit me, etc.— Let thy blood cleanse and wash away the spots and foulness of ●● sins, let thy righteousness hide and cover my un●righteousness.— Cyprian. Clark's first Volume of Lives, pag. 51. Leigh's Sain●s Encouragements in evil times. pag. 10. He went in the time of Persecution into volun●tary Banishment, lest (as he said) he should 〈◊〉 more hurt then good to the Congregation. When he heard the sentence pronounced against him, he said, I thank God for freeing m● from the Prison of this Body. He said Amen to his own sentence of Martyrdom. The Proconsul bidding him consult abou● it, he answered, In so just a Cause there needs no deliberation. D. Daigerfield. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 759. William Daigerfield and joan his Wife (who then gave suck to her tenth child) being imprisoned in several Prisons, Bishop Brooks sent for the man, and told him, that his Wife had recanted, and so persuaded him to recant, and so sent him to his Wife with a Form of Recantation with him, which when his Wife saw, her heart clavae in sunder, and she cried out, Alas! Husband, thus long we have continued one, and hath Satan so far perva●led with you, as to cause you to break the Vow, which you made to God in Baptism? Hereupon he bewailed his promise, and begged of God that he might not live so long as to call evil good, and good evil, light darkness, or darkness light. And accordingly it came to pass. Damlip. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 564. Mr. Adam Damlip, when he had been almost two years in the marshalsea, considering how he could not employ his talon there to God's Glory, as he desired (though he had many Favours in Prison) resolved to write to the Bishop of Winchester, earnestly to desire that he might come to his Trial; for (said he) I know the worst, I can but lose my present life, which I had rather do, then here to remain, and not to be suffered to use my talon to God's Glory. When he understood by the Keeper, that his suffering was near, he was notwithstanding very merry, and did eat his meat as well as ever he did in all his life, insomuch that some at the Board said unto him, they wondered how he could eat his meat so cheerfully, knowing he was so near his death; Ah Masters (said he) Do you think that I have been so long God's Prisoner in the marshalsea, and have not yet learned to die? Yes, yes, and I doubt not but God will strengthen me therein. When he was told that his four Quarters should be hanged at four parts of Calais, and his Head upon the Lanthern-gate, Then shall I not need (said he) to provide for my Burial. Delos. Alas (said james Delos to the Monks that called him proud Heretic) here I get nothing but shame, Ward, pag. 151. I expect indeed preferment hereafter. Denley. Mr. I●hn Denl●y being entreated by Bishop Bonner to recant, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 388. said, God save me from your Counsel. In the Fire, with the burning flame about him, he sung a Psalm, and having his face hurt with a Faggot hurled at him, he left singing for a while, and clapped his hands in his bleeding face, and afterwards put his hands abroad, and sung again till he died. Clarks first Volume of Lives, p. 12. Dionysius. Dionysius Areopagita (who seeing the gener●●● Eclipse of the Sun at Christ's death, said to one● Either the God of Nature now suffers, or the frame of the World shall be dissolved; and to another, God unknown in the flesh doth suffer. When he was apprehended by Sisinius the Praefect, and sharply reproved for preaching against the worship of their Gods, and required to confess his error, said, That they were no gods, whom they worshipped, but Idols, the works of men's hands, and that it was through mere ignorance, folly, and idolatry, that they adored them; adding, that there was but one true God, as he had preached. After he was grievously tormented, he was brought before Sisinius the second time, who sentenced him to be beheaded forthwith. Dyonisius told him, he worshipped such Gods as would perish like D●ng upon the Earth; but as for myself (said he) come life, come death, I will worship none but the God of Heaven and Earth. He prayed thus at his death. O Lord God Almighty, thou onely-begotten Son, and Holy Spirit; O Sacred Trinity, which art without beginning, and in whom is no division, Receive the soul of thy Servant in peace, who is put to death for thy Cause and Gospel. He used to say, That he desired these two things of God (1) That he might know the Truth himself, and (2) That he might preach it, as he ought, to others. Driver. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 886. Alice Driver in her first Examination, hav●ng got her Adversaries to acknowledge, that a Sacrament is a sign, and that it was Christ's Body, his Disciples did eat the night before he was crucified; Seeing it is (said she) a sign, it cannot be the thing signified; and how could it be Christ's Body, that was crucified, seeing his Disciples had eaten him up over night, except he had two Bodies. At the end of her second Examination, Pag. 887. She said; Have you no more to say? God be honoured. You be not able to resist the Spirit of God in me a poor Woman. I was an honest poor man's Daughter, never brought up in the University, as you have been, but I have driven the Plough before my Father many a time (I thank God) yet notwithstanding in the defence of God's Truth, and in the Cause of my Mr. Christ, by his Grace I will set my foot against the foot of any of you all, in the maintenance and defence of the same; and if I had a thousand lives, they should go for payment thereof. When she was tied to the Stake, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 888. and the iron Chain put about her neck, O (said she) here is a goodly Neckerchief, blessed be God for it. Drowry. Thomas Drowry (the blind Boy, Fox. Vol. 3. pag. 703. to whom Bishop Hooper, as he was going to the Stake, after he had examined him, said; Ah poor Boy, God hath taken from thee thy outward sight, but he hath given thee another sight much more precious: He that endued thy soul with the eye of Knowledge and Faith.) Shortly after Bishop Hooper's Martyrdom, was cast into Prison. Afterwards the Chancellor of Gloucester ask him, who taught him that Heresy, that Christ's Body was not really present in the Sacrament of the Altar, he said, You, Mr. Chancellor, when in yonder Pulpit you taught us that the Sacrament was to be received spiritually by Faith, and not carnally and really, as the Pap●● teach. But (said the Chancellor) Do thou as I ha●● done, and thou shalt live as I do, and escape bu●●ing. Though you (said Drowry) can so easily dispense with your Conscience, and mock God a●● the World, yet will not I do so. Then said t●● Chancellor, I will condemn thee; God's Will b●● fulfilled (said Drowry.) E. Edward. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 653. King Edward the Sixth (our English I●sias) being pressed by Archbishop Cranmer, and Bishop Ruley to permit the Lady Marry to have Mass in he●● House; after he had argued notably against i●●bid them be content, for he would spend his life and all he had, rather than to agree to, and gra●●● that he knew certainly to be against the Truth and then fell a weeping, insomuch that the Bishop wept as fast as he; and the Archbishop tol● Mr. Cheek, his Scholar had more Divinity in hi●● little finger, than all they had in all their Bodies. Elizabeth. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 945. The Lady Elizabeth (afterward Queen of England) when she came out of the Barge at Traitors Stairs, going into the Tower, said, Here landed as true a Subject, being a Prisoner, as ever lande● at these Stairs. And before thee, O God, I speak it having no other Friends but thee alone. Her Gentleman-Usher weeping, she demande● of him what he meant so uncomfortably to use her, seeing she took him to be her Comfort, and not to dismay her, especially for that she knew her Truth to be such, that no man should have cause to weep for her. When the Doors of the Prison were locked and bolted upon her, she called for her Book, desiring God, not to suffer her to build her foundation upon the Sands, but upon the Rock, whereby all blasts of blustering weather should have no power against her. When she was locked up close in Prison, at first she was much daunted, but afterwards she broke forth into this Speech; The skill of a Pilot is unknown, but in a Tempest; the valour of a Captain is unseen, but in a Battle; and the worth of a Christian doth not appear, but in time of Trial and Temptation. Mr. Burrough's Mos. Self-denial, pag. 31. Upon Gardeners and other Counsellors strict Examination of her, she said, My Lords, you do sift me very narrowly, but well I am assured, you shall not do more to me then God hath appointed, and so God forgive you all. Some telling her, that they were persuaded God would not suffer Sir Henry B●n●field to make her away privately; Well, said she, God grant it be so; for thou, O God, canst mollify all such tyrannous hearts, and disappoint all such cruel purposes; and I beseech thee to hear thy Creature, which am thy Servant, and at thy Command, trusting by thy Grace ever so to remain. As she passed over the Water to Richmond, going towards Windsor, in their Journey to Woodstock, she espied certain of her old Servants standing on the other side, very desirous to see her, and sent one of her men standing by unto them; Go to them (said she) and say these words from me, Tanquam ovis, i. e. just like a sheep to the slaughter. At her departing from Woodstock she wrote these Verses with her Diamond in a Gla●● Window. Much suspected by me, Nothing proved can be, Quoth Elizabeth Prisoner. Clarks second Volume of Lives. When a Popish Priest pressed her hard to declare her Opinion of Christ's Presence in the Sacrament, she truly and warily answered him thus; 'twas the Word that spoke it, He took the Bread and broke it, And what the Word did m●ke it, That I believe, and take it. Esch. Fox, Vol. 2. p. 101, 102. john Esch and Henry Voes burnt at brussels 152: ● being asked what they believed, they said, The Books of the Old and New Testmant. And being asked whether they believed the Decrees of the Councils, and the Fathers, they said, Such a● agreed to the Scriptures they believed; and being asked whether it were any deadly sin to transgress the Decrees of the Bishop of Rom●, they said, That it is to be attributed only to the Precept of God, to bind the Conscience of man, or to lose it. Being condemned, they gave thanks to God their Heavenly Father, which had delivered them through his great Goodness from that false and abominable Priesthood (they having been Augustine Friars) and made them Priests of his Holy Order, receiving them unto him as a Sacrifice of ●● sweet Odour. The greatest Error that they were accused of, was that men ought to trust only in God, forasmuch as men were liars, and deceitful in all their words and deeds; and therefore there ought no trust or asfiance to be put in them. The day of their Execution (said they) the day we have long desired. One of them, seeing that the fire was kind led at his feet, said, Methinks you do strew Roses under my feet. Eulalia. The Virgin Eulalia (of Emerita in Portugal) having secretly got out of her Father's house (where she was kept close for fear, Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 120. lest she should offer herself to Martyrdom) went courageously unto the Tribunal, or Judgement-seat, and in the midst of them all, cried out, Would you know what I am? Behold! I am one of the Christians, an enemy to your Devilish Sacrifices, I spurn your Idols under my feet, I confess God omnipotent with my heart and mouth.— Go to thou Hangman, burn, cut, mangle thou these earthly Members; it is an easy matter to break a brittle substance, but the inward mind thou shalt not hurt for any thing thou canst do. The Judge endeavouring to persuade her to recant, saying, Behold! what pleasures thou mayest enjoy by the Honourable House thou camest of; What! wilt thou kill thyself, so young a flower, (she being not much above twelve years of age) and so near those Honourable Marriages and great Dowries thou mayest enjoy? Eulalia did not answer him, but being in a great fury, spit in the Tyrant's face, threw down the Idols, and spurned abroad with her feet ●he heap of Incense prepared for the Censers.— When one joint was pulled from another, she said, Behold, O Lord, I will no● forget thee; what a pleasure is it for them, 〈◊〉 Christ, that remember thy triumphant Victories to attain unto these high dignities. F. Fabrianus. W●rd, pag. 160. First better, (said Christopher Fabrianus) the sweet; First the Battle, the Victory when I 〈◊〉 dead. Every drop of my blood shall preach Christ and set forth his Praise. Faninus. Ward, pag. 155. Faninus an Italian kissed the Apparitor tha● brought him word of his Execution. To one reminding him of his Children, he said I have lest them to an able and faithful Guardian. To his Friends weeping, he said, That is we●● done, that you weep for joy with me. To one objecting Christ's agony and sadness t● his cheerfulness: Yea (said he) Christ was sad, tha● I might be merry. He had my sins, and I have 〈◊〉 merits and righteousness. To the Friars offering him a wooden Crucif●● he said, Christ needs not the help of this Piece, 〈◊〉 imprint him in my mind and heart, where he ha●● his Habitation. Farellus. Cl●●ks fi●st Volume of Lives, pag. 674. Mr. William Farellus, being questioned by 〈◊〉 Magistrates of Metis, by what Authority, or 〈◊〉 whose request he preached, answered, By 〈◊〉 Command of Christ, and at the request of h●● Members. Farrar. Fox V●●. 3. pag. 216. Mr. Richard jones, coming to Dr. Robert Farra● Bishop of St. David, a little before his death, a●● seeming to lament the painfulness of the death he was to suffer, the Bishop said to him, That if he saw him once to stir in the pains of his Burning, he should then give no credit to his Doctrine. Accordingly he never moved, but even as he stood, holding up his stumps, so he continued still, till Richard Gravel with a staff dashed him upon the head, and so struck him down. Filicu. john Filicul and julian L●ville (who suffered in France) being threatened if they constantly persisted, The Mirror of Martyr's, pag. 595. to be burnt alive, and to have their tongues cut out, or otherwise only to be strangled, and to have the use of their tongues, contemned the offer, saying, You would fain have us renounce our God for saving ourselves from a little pain, but it shall not be so; and looking one upon another, said, We are ready not only to lose one or two of our Members, but the whole Body, and to be burned and burned again in the defence of the Truth. When the time of their execution came, Fox, Vol. 2▪ pag. 144. the Officer put into their hands, being tied, a Wooden Cross, which they flung away with their teeth, saying, That they were now to bear a more noble and excellent Cross then that. When their tongues were cut, God gave them utterance, insomuch that they were heard to say, We bid Sin, the Flesh, the World farewell for ever, with whom we shall never have to do hereafter. At last when the Tormenter came to smear them with Brimstone and Gunpowder, Go to (said Filiolus) salt on, salt on the rotten and stinking flesh. Fillula. By these Ladders (said john Fillula to his Fellows) we ascend the Heavens, Ward, pag. 153. now begin we to trample under feet, Sin, the World, the Flesh, and the Devil. Filmer. Fox. Vol. 2. pag. 555. Henry Filmer said to Person and Testwood (his fellow Martyrs) Be merry my Brethren, and lift up your hands to God, for after this sharp breakfast▪ I trust we shall have a good dinner in the Kingdom of Christ our Lord and Redeemer. Flower. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 242. William Flower (alias Branch) being told his death was near, said, I hunger for the same, dear Friend, being fully ascertained that they can kill but the body, which I am assured shall receive again life everlasting, and see death no more. Bishop Bonner persuaded him to recant, promising him thereupon great things, he answered, That which I have said I will stand to, and therefore I require that the Law may proceed upon me. At another time, Do what you will, I am at 〈◊〉 point; for the Heavens shall as soon fall, as I will forsake mine opinion. In his Prayer.— Have mercy upon me for thy dear Son our Saviour Jesus Christ's sake, in whom I confess only to be all salvation and justification and that there is none other mean, nor way, no● holiness, in which, or by which any man can be saved in this World. Burning in the fire, he cried out three times●punc; O the Son of God have mercy upon me, O the Son of God receive my soul. Folks. Fox. Vol. 3. pag. 832. Elizabeth Foulkes being examined, whether she believed the presence of Christ's Body to be in the Sacrament substantially and really? answered, That she believed that that was a substantial and real l●e. When Sentence of Condemnation was rea● against her, she kneeled down, lifting up her eye and hands to Heaven, she praised God that ever she was born to see that most blessed and happy day, that the Lord would count her worthy to suffer for the testimony of Christ; and Lord, if it be thy will, forgive them that have done this against me, for they know not what they do. At the Stake she being hindered from giving her Petticoat to her Mother (who kissed her, and exhorted her to be strong in the Lord) threw it away from her, saying, Farewell all the World, farewel Faith and Hope; and so taking the Stake in her hand, said, Welcome Love, etc. When she and the other five that suffered with her, were nailed to the Stakes, and the fire about them, they clapped their hands together for joy in the fire. Fox. The day after Queen Mary's death Mr. john Fox preaching at Basil to the English Exiles, She his Life before his second Vol. of Acts and Monun. did with confidence tell them, That now was the time come for their return into England, and that he brought that News by command from God. The Lady Anne Hennage being given up for dead, He told her, she had done well in fitting herself for death, but that she should not die of that Sickness; and being blamed by her Son in Law for disquieting her mind with hopes of life, He answered, that he had said no more than was commanded h●m; for it seemed good to God that she should recover, and so she did. Mrs. Honywood having been sick of a Consumption almost twenty years, was scarce able to speak when Mr. Fox came to her, only faintly she breathed forth a desire to end her days. Mr. Fox, after he had prayed with her, told her, That she should not only grow well of that Consumption, but also live to an exceeding great age. As well might you have said (quoth Mrs. Honywood) that if I should throw this Glass against the Wall, I might believe it would not break to pieces; and holding a Glass in her hand, out of which she had newly drunk, she threw it forth, but the Glass falling first on a Chest, and then on the ground, neither brake nor cracked. Accordingly this eminent Christian Gentlewoman being then Sixty years of age, recovered and lived till she was above Ninety, and could reckon above three hundred and sixty of her Children and children's Children. He also foresaw his own death, and therefore sent away his sons that they might not be present. Frith. Fox, Vol. 2: pag. 304. Mr. john Frith with some others, (chosen into Christ's Church Oxford, whose Foundation was laid by Cardinal Wolsey) conferring together upon the abuse of Religion, then crept into the Church, were therefore accused of Heresy unto the Cardinal, and cast into Prison, within a deep Cave under the ground of the same College, where their salt Fish was laid. Through the filthy stinch thereof they were all infected, and some took their death, but Mr. Frith was wonderfully preserved; and was translated from that University (after many miseries undergone both beyond Sea and in his own Land) to another School, namely, to a more settled Discipline of affliction, the Tower of London; where, as he remained a Patient in regard of the Persecution, which he suffered, so did he also the office of a Physician, in prescribing to others Preparatives and Remedies in the like case. To which end A.D. 1532. he employed his pen in writing those Treatises, which now go under the name of Vox Pisces, or the Bookfish. Concerning which (the Author of the Preface thereunto) observes, See the preface to Vo● Pisces, or the Bookfish. that in some sort they ran the Fortune of the Author, being held in captivity in the Sea, and kept in Iohah's Prison, the belly of a Fish, being in danger there to be consumed, as the Author was like to have perished in the Dungeon at Oxford by the noisome stinch of Fish. The Wine therein offered (saith the same Author) is the purest juice of a Grape of the Vine (Christ Jesus) trod in the Wine-press of Persecution about an hundred years since: It was found in the Maw of a Codfish in Cambridge Market, 1626. and Printed 1627. Which being put in a Paper Vessel, and formerly miscarrying by wrack in the transporting, is now beyond expectation in a strange Living Vessel brought back again to Land, no doubt to the end, that it might after long lying hid in store, be anew broached and dispersed abroad for the refreshing of many thirsty souls; to whom it is like to taste not the worse, but the better for the long lying in so salted a Cellar, as is the bottom of the Sea, wherein, by all probability, it hath been buried for many years. Mr. Frith did not light his Candle at the Lamp of Mr. Calvin, which then was not extant; nor of great Luther, who was then but in the beginning of his growth. And yet (saith the same Author) How judiciously is there shown the use of the Cross among Christians to consist in the due preparation for it, and constant patience under it? How fondly are we taught that our Election and Justification are of God's mere mercy, and not for any thing foreseen in us?— That remission of sins is through Christ only.— That no man can merit for others.— That true Believers do sin, yet fall not away utterly from Christ— As the Work commends the Author, so the Author much more the Work. When he wrote of the Cross, he fought valiantly under the Cross; he turned his words of patience into the perfect work of patience. He had the like happiness to that of St. Paul, to bring forth children unto Christ in his bands. Whilst he was kept close Prisoner in the Tower, by his Letters and Treatises he gained many souls to Christ, and among others (which is most observable) he converted one R●s●●l to the Truth, who had formerly dipped his Pen in Gall, and wrote most bitterly against the Truth of the Gospel, and against the Writings of this Prisoner of Christ, then ● bands for the Gospel. Like a Swan he sang most sweetly before his death, and foretold both particularly his own Martyrdom, and the propagation of the Gospel through all England within twenty years after his death; which accordingly came to pass in the Reign of King Edward. He was as it were a Primrose in the new Spring of the Gospel: And though he wrote in the twilight between the night of Popery, and the day of Reformation, yet God so enlightened him, that his Treatise of the Sacraments, was the Candle at which that great Torch Archbishop Cranmer was lighted, as Mr. Fox reporteth. A prep. to the Cross. pag. 7, 8. That is the true Cross (saith Mr. Frith in his Treatise called, A preparation to the Cross) which God doth lay upon us— For the Word of God to suffer all scorns, mocks, lies, and persecutions, and not to fear the most cruel, yea even the most shameful death. Pag. 13. — That we may be prepared to bear the true Cross, we must consider that no calamity falleth on us by fortune or chance, but by the counsel and appointment of God, Pag. 16. See also ch. 13. of the Prep. l. 1. as witnesseth the holy Scripture.— It is undoubtedly no sma● comfort to be assured, that the Cross is of God, and that we are chastened of God, and not of the Devil, or of any wicked man, who utterly can have no power upon us, not so much as to move one hair of our head, A Prepar. pag. 27, 28 beside the will of▪ the lord— But it is not enough to consider that we are afflicted through the counsel and will of God, but must moreover mark the cause and intent of his godly will; for reason judgeth that we are punished, to the end to be hurt or destroyed, etc. but we must forsake Reason, and cleave to the Word of God, which teacheth that we suffer affliction to our health and salvation; for afflictions are not signs of wrath and displeasure, but of grace and favour.— This is no small comfort to them that bear the Cross, Pag. 33. that they are not punished of the Lord to their hurt or destruction, but to their health and salvation; and that their afflictions, poverty, etc. are not signs of God's wrath, but instruments by which God is glorified.— When God doth afflict his people for their sins, Pag. 40. he doth not therefore afflict them, that by their afflictions they should satisfy for their sins: for the passion and suffering of Jesus Christ is the ransom and expiation of our sins; but that by affliction he may bring sinners to repentance. Pag. 41, 42, 43. — When a Christian seeth himself forsaken of all men, he must pray, and not cease to pray, but pray in faith mistrusting nothing. Psal. 49. — God calleth Invocation or crying on him in trouble, a Sacrifice, the true and most acceptable honour.— So likewise he calleth the Hope, whereby we tarry his help in affliction, Sacrifice. Psal. 4. Sacrifice you the sacrifice of Justice, and hope ye in the Lord, q. d. that Hope is a Sacrifice, whereby we yield justice to God, that (seeing he hath so promised) he will pluck us out and deliver us, Pag. 59, 60, etc. for so much as he is righteous and true.— Of patience to God-ward, springeth forth patience toward men; for when the heart is at peace with God, it tarrieth help of him, and utterly setteth aside lust to revenge. Pag. 66, 67, etc. — Our reason is therefore troubled and vexed in persecution, because it thinketh that we are afflicted because God either hateth us, or doth not regard us, neither will help us. These false opinions God plucketh from us, and teacheth us, that we are afflicted, not because he hateth us, but because he will either amend us, or when we be amended, continue us so.— And that in our affliction he will help us, and keep us, and also comfort us with the Holy Ghost, and set our Conscience at peace, and make us be glad in God, Pag. 69, etc. etc.— Christian patience hath certain conditions, whereby it is known to be true patience. (1) It grudgeth not, neither excuseth itself, as though it should suffer unworthily for his sins, wherefore he sitteth down and holdeth his peace, as I●remiah saith.— (2) Is casteth all carefulness on God, and committeth itself wholly to God, that Gods will be done and not his. (3) It humbleth himself, and casteth off the pleasures of the World. (4) He is merry and ready to suffer yet more heavy and grievous evils. A Pr●p. to the Cross, pag. 70. — We must look for help in all afflictions; for God promiseth his help, saying, I am with you, F●ar ye n●t, I will strengthen you. Pag. 72. — But the manner, time, and kind of help is unknown unto us, that Faith and Hope may have place, which sticketh to these things which are not seen nor heard. Pag. 76. — God delivereth when most need is, that his glory may shine the brighter.— He will therefore help, Pag. 89. when we be in a manner compelled to despair in all humane help, and when all carnal counsel deceiveth us; for God only will be glorified. Pag. 91. — He doth prolong help for our utility and profit, that he might exercise and prove Faith by temptation, so that he only might possess the title and name of Helper. Pag. 92, 93. — He that believeth makes not haste. He which yet seems afar off, shall appear at the end, and shall not lie: although he tarry, yet look for him, for he is coming, and at the last he shall come and shall not be slow.— It is also a great comfort to them that be in affliction, to remember that they have Christ, and his Prophets, See cha. 12. of the prep. to the Cross, l. 1. and c. 12. l. 2. See pag. 105 and Apostles, and all good and holy men for their examples,— Furthermore, it is a great comfort to the godly, that the wicked (whom God doth use as a rod to scourge the godly) go not clear away without punishment, whom he maketh either shamefully ashamed, or through their own counsel he doth take them, and bringeth them into the same destruction, which they themselves have studied and found out for others.— The cause is, Pag. 109.110. For he that hurteth one faithful, wrongeth not only him, but God, who doth revenge the injury and wrong done to the faithful, as injury done to himself.— He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye.— Saul, Saul, why persecuteth thou me. Pag. 136, etc. — If thou be'st tempted concerning the Gospel, or suffering persecution for the Gospel, think of these Scriptures, He that receeveth not my Cross, and follows not me, is not worthy of me. If any man will come after me, let him forsake himself, and take his Cross and follow me. For he that will save his soul shall lose it. chose he that loseth his soul for my sake, shall find it. He that will confess me before men, I will confess him before my Father.— The Apostles rejoiced that they were counted worthy.— The Servant is not above his Lord: all they that will live godly in Christ Jesus must suffer persecution.— If thou must die, and leave Wife and Children and thy dear Friends, say, The Lord shall be their Defender; for G●● both will, and is able to cherish mine, to nouri●● and defend them; for he is the Father of the fa●therless, and the Widow's Husband. I forget things behind my back, See also chap. 16. l. 2. and endeavour myself to th●● things that are before my face. They that ha●● Wives, let them be as though they had none, an● they that weep as though they wept not.— If Satan say thou must forsake the world, what then Answer thou chose: I shall attain Heaven For blessed are the dead that die in the Lord. All th● world lieth in wickedness. All that are born ●● God overcome the world, and this the victor● which overcometh the world, our faith. All th● world shall perish with its lusts and desires. Lo●● not the world, nor the things of the world. We are strangers in this world, and citizens of Heaven▪— Ye sons of men, why love ye vanities, and seek lies? how long love you infancy or childhood?— See p. 176, etc. of the Preparation, etc. — The godly have most comfort; though i● this life they be as sheep ordained to be slain, and seem forsaken of God, etc. yet they do not despair▪ no not in death, but are sure they shall pass through death to life eternal, etc. Also they have this comfort, that their death is good and precious; the● also know, that through Christ's death, death is overcome and abolished. Pag. 180. — Christ by his death hath changed their death into a sleep.— Such as be at the point of death, Pag. 184. aught to take comfort and be strong, in that they know that they carry with them both Letter and Token, which is Baptism, whereby their death is incorporate with the death of Christ, and that it is not their death, so much as the death of Christ. Wherefore let them surely trust, that they shall overcome, as that death of Christ hath overcome. Pag. 191. Unto the godly it is a great comfort, that they know that death is not in the power of Tyrants, nor put into the hand of any Creature, lest they should be much troubled, etc. they shall only die when it pleaseth the lord— We cannot live any longer than the Lord hath appointed, Pag. 193. and we shall not die, though we be in the greatest peril, and extreme jeopardy before our hour. Pag. 202. — Then wherefore should they fear death? they cannot live longer than God hath appointed, nor die any sooner. See page 205, etc. — It is the comfort of the godly in all adversity, that through the Grace of God, they shall be revived, and raised up, as well the body as the soul; the souls to Justice, the bodies to Glory. This hope the wicked have not, Pag. 223, 224. etc.— It is a great comfort that affliction shall not endure continually, and the afflictions of this time are not worthy of the Glory which shall be showed upon us.— Our trouble, which is but temporal and light, worketh an exceeding and eternal weight of Glory unto us, who look not on the things that are seen, but on them which are not seen.— If a man praise a very fool (saith Mr. Frith in his Preface to his Mirror) and think his wit good and profound, he is indeed more fool than the other. Thus seeing man praiseth and commends riches, honour, etc. and such other vain and transitory things, which are but as a dream, and vanish like a flower of the field; when a man should have most need of them, he himself is more vain than those things which are but vanity. If God hath opened the eyes of thy mind (saith the Mirror itself) and have given thee Spirit and Wisdom through the knowledge of his Word, See the glass to know thyself, p. 13, 14, etc. boast not thyself of it, but rather fear and tremble, for a chargeable Office is committed unto thee which (if thou fulfil it) is like to cost thee thy 〈◊〉 at one time or other, with much trouble and pers●●cution: but if thou fulfil it not, then shall t●● Office be thy Damnation. For St. Paul saith, W●●● to me if I ●●each not. And by the Prophet Ezek●● God saith, If I say unto the wicked that he shall die t● death, and thou show him not of it, the wicked shall 〈◊〉 in his iniquity, but I shall require his blood at thy ha●●● But peradventure our Divines would expound these Texts only of them that are sent and ha●● cure of souls. Whereunto I answer, That eve● man that hath the light of God's Word revealed unto him, is sent wheresoever he seeth necessity, an● hath the cure of his Neighbour's soul, e. g. If Go● hath given me my sight, and I perceive a blin● man going in the way, which is ready for lack 〈◊〉 sight to fall into a pit, wherein he would likely perish, I am bound by God's Command to guide hi● till he be passed that jeopardy, or else if he peris●● therein, his blood shall be required at my hand● Thus if I perceive my Neighbour like to perish 〈◊〉 lack of Christ's Doctrine, then am I bound to instruct him with the knowledge God hath given me▪ or else his blood shall be required at my hand▪ Peradventure they will say, that there is already one appointed to watch the Pit, etc. and therefore I am discharged and need take no thought. Where unto I answer, I would be glad that so it were, notwithstanding if I perceive that the Watchmen b● asleep, or run to the Alehouse, etc. and through his negligence espy my Neighbour in danger o● the Pit, then am I nevertheless bound to lead him from it. I think that God hath sent me at that time to save that soul from perishing, and the Law o● God and Nature that bindeth me thereunto, which chargeth me to love my Neighbour as myself, to do unto him as I would be done unto. Hag. 1. — If God hath given thee riches, etc. thou art yet the very owner of them, but God is the Owner, who saith by the Prophet, Gold is mine, and silver is mine, and he hath for a season made thee a Steward of them, so see whether thou with be faithful in the distribution of them, according to his Commands.— Our spiritual Possessionaries are double Thiefs and Murderers, as concerning the body, besides their murdering of the soul, for lack of God's Word, which they will neither preach, or suffer any other to do it purely, but persecute them, and put them unto most cruel death: First, they are Thiefs and Murderers, because they distribute not what they have from charitable Forefathers, to the intent it should have been ministered unto the Poor, but upon Horses, Coaches, etc. gorgeous apparel, and delicate fare, etc. Thus they defraud the Poor of their bread, and so are Thiefs; and (because this bread is their life) they are Murderers also.— Besides they are Thiefs and Murderers for withdrawing their perfect Members from labour, whereby they might minister unto their Neighbour's necessities (I speak of as many as are not occupied about preaching God's Word.) Besides these and many other Treatises, he wrote also several choice Letters, whilst he was Prisoner in the Tower. In his Letter to the faithful Followers of Christ's Gospel, he thus expresseth himself. See his Works, pag. 81, 82. — It cannot be expressed, Dear Beloved in the Lord) what joy and comfort it is to my heart to perceive how the Word of God hath wrought, and continually worketh among you; so that I find no small number walking in the ways of the Lord, according as he gave us Commandment, willing that we should love each other, as he loved us. Now have I experience of the faith which is in you, and can testify, that it is without simulation, that ye love not in word and tongue only, but in deed and truth. What can be more trial of a faithful heart, then to adventure not only to aid and succour by the means of other (which without danger may not be admitted unto us) but also personally to visit the Poor oppressed, and see that nothing be lacking unto them, but that they have both ghostly comfort and bodily sustenance, notwithstanding the straight inhibition and terrible menacing of these worldly Rulers, even ready to abide the extremest jeopardies that Tyrants can imagine. This is an evidence that you have prepared yourselves to the Cross of Christ, according to the Counsel of the Wise man, which saith, My Son, when thou shalt enter into the way of the Lord, prepare thyself unto tribulation. This is an evidence that you have cast up your accounts, and have wherewith to finish the Tower, which ye have begun to build: and I doubt not but he that hath begun this work in you, shall for his Glory accomplish the same, even unto the coming of the Lord, which shall give unto every man according to his deeds. And albeit God of his secret Judgements for a time keep the rod from some of them that ensue his steps, yet let them surely reckon upon it; for there is no doubt, but all which will live devoutly in Christ must suffer persecution; for whom the Lord loveth he correcteth, and chasteneth every child that he receiveth.— If ye be not under correction, of which we are all partakers, then are ye bastards, and not children. Nevertheless we may not suppose that our most loving Father should do that, because he rejoiceth in our blood or punishment, but he doth it for our singular profit, that we may be partakers of Holiness, and that the remnants of sin, which (through the frailty of our Members) rebel against the Spirit and Will, causing our works to go unperfectly forward, and may some deal be suppressed, lest they should subdue us and reign over us.— Of these things God had given me the speculation before, and now it hath pleased him to put in ure and practice upon me. I ever thought, yea and do think, that to walk after God's Word, would cost me my life at one time or another; and although the King's Grace should take me into his Favour, and not suffer the bloody Edomites to have their pleasures upon me, yet will I not think that I am escaped, but that God hath only deferred it for a season, to the intent that I should work somewhat that he hath appointed me to do, and so to use me to his Glory. And I beseech all the faithful followers of the Lord to arm themselves with the same supposition, marking themselves with the sign of the Cross, not from the Cross as the superstitious multitude do, but rather to the Cross, in token that they be ever ready willingly to receive the Cross, when it shall please God to lay it upon them. The day that it cometh not, count it clear won, giving thanks to the Lord who hath kept it from you, and then when it cometh, it shall nothing dismay you; for it is no new thing, but that which you have continually looked for. And doubt not but that God, who is faithful, will not suffer you to be tempted above what you are able to bear, but shall ever send some occasion by the which ye shall stand steadfast, for either he shall blind the eyes of your enemies, and diminish their Tyrannous Power, or else when he hath suffered them to do their best, and that the Dragon hath cast a whole flood of waters after you, he shall cause even the Earth to ope● her mouth, & swallow them up. So faithful is he an● careful to ease us, when the vexation shall be too heavy for us, he shall send a joseph before you, against ye shall come into Egypt; yea he shall so provide fo● you, that ye shall have an hundred Fathers for one an hundred Mothers for one, an hundred House for one, and that in this life, as I have proved b● experience, and after this life everlasting joy wit● Christ our Saviour. Notwithstanding since thi● steadfastness comes not of ourselves (as St. Austi● saith) there was never man so weak or frail, no no● the greatest offender that ever lived, but that every man of his own nature should be as frail, and commit as great enormities, except he were kept from it by the Spirit and Power of God. I beseech you Brethren, in the Lord Jesus Christ, to pray with me, that we may be Vessels to his land and praise▪ what time soever it pleaseth him to call upon 〈◊〉 The Father of Glory give us the Spirit of wisdom, understanding, and knowledge, and lighten the eyes of our mind, that we may know his waye● praising the Lord eternally.— Amen. John Frith the Prisoner of jesus Christ, at all times abiding his pleasure. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 306. In his Letter to his Friends concerning his troubles.— I doubt not, dear Brethren, but th●● it doth some deal vex you, to see the one part 〈◊〉 have all the words, and freely to speak what they list, and the other to be put to silence, and not to be heard indifferently; but refer your matter unto God, who shortly shall judge after another fashion.— The Archbishop of Canterbury having sent one of his Gentlemen, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 990, 991. and one of his Porters to fetch Mr. john Frith out of the Tower to be examined; The Gentleman pitying him, endeavoured to persuade him to relent to Authority, and to give place for a time, and not to cast himself away, and suffer all his singular gifts to perish with him with little profit to the world, etc. Mr. Frith gave him thanks for his good will, but told him farther, thus, My Cause and Conscience is such, that in no wise I either may or can for any worldly respect without danger of damnation start aside, etc. If I be demanded what I think of the Supper of the Lord, otherwise called the Sacrament of the Altar, I must needs say my Knowledge and my Conscience, though I should presently lose twenty lives, if I had so many.— And if I may be indifferently heard, I am sure mine Adversary, cannot condemn me or mine Assertion, etc. Yea marry, quoth the Gentleman, you say well, if you might be indifferently heard; but I much doubt thereof, for that our Master Christ was not indifferently heard, neither should be (as I think) if he were now present again in the world, etc. Well, well, (quoth Frith unto the Gentleman) I know very well that the Doctrine of the Sacrament, which I hold and have opened, contrary to the Opinion of this Realm, is vety hard meat to be digested, both of the Clergy and Laity: but this I will say to you, That if you live but twenty years more, you shall see this whole Realm of mine Opinion, etc. and if it come not to pass, then account me the vainest man that ever you heard speak with a tongue.— All things well and rightly pondered, my death in this Cause (which is Gods and not mine) shall be better unto me and all mine, than life in continual bondage and misery. The Gentleman was 〈◊〉 wrought upon, that he contrived a way for Mr. Frith's escape, and prevailed with the Porter 〈◊〉 agree with him in the suffering thereof, and then told him, that the business which he had undertaken, viz. to lead him as a sheep to the slaughter, 〈◊〉 grieved him, that he was overwhelmed with care and sorrows; whereupon he was resolved, wh●● danger soever he incurred, to find out a way to deliver him out of the Lion's mouth, and so acquainted him with the way that he and the Porter ha●● agreed upon. Mr. Frith having diligently harkened to his Speech, said with a smiling countenance▪ And is this the effect of your secret consultation all this while, surely you are like to lose your labour, for if you should both leave me here, and g● to Croyden, declaring to the Bishops that you ha●● lost Frith, I would surely follow after as fast as 〈◊〉 could, and bring them news that I had found an● brought Frith back again. Do you think that I am afraid to declare mine Opinion before the Bishop in so manifest a Truth? You are a fond man (sai● the Gentleman) thus to talk. Do you think th●● your reasoning with the Bishops will do any good▪ I much marvel that you were so willing to fly the Realm before you were taken, and now so unwilling to save yourself when you may. Marry (sai● Frith) there is a great difference between escaping then and now, than I was at liberty, and not attached; but now being taken by the Higher Po●●ers, and that by Almighty God's permission an● providence, I am fallen into the Bishop's hand● only for Religion's sake, and for such Doctrine, 〈◊〉 I am bound in conscience under pain of damnation to maintain. If I should now start aside, and run away, I should run from my God, and from the testimony of his Word, whereby I should deserve a thousand hells. At the time of his burning Dr. Cook admonished all the people, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 310. that they should no more pray for him, than they would do for a Dog. Whereupon Mr. Frith smiling, desired the Lord to forgive him. Fulgentius. An Arian Bishop offering to punish the Priest that had most mercilessly beaten him, Clark's first Volume of Lives, p. 167, etc. if he desired it, he said, It is not lawful for a Christian to meditate revenge, our Lord Christ well knows how to repay the injuries offered to, and inflicted on his Servants. If my case be avenged, then lose I the reward of my patience. It may also scandalise many little ones, if I a Catholic should require judgement at an Arians hands. In the midst of his greatest sufferings he used to say; Plura pro Christo toleranda, We must suffer more than this for Christ. G. Gardiner. William Gardiner, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 746. an English Merchant in Portugal, was so much troubled in spirit at the sight of the Idolatry, committed by the Priests in the Mass, at the solemnisation of the Marriage between the King of P●rtugal's Son, and the King of Spain's Daughter, that he could not be quiet, till he had (though in the presence of the King, and of the Nobles, and whole City) the next Sabbath with one hand snatched away the Cake from the Priest, and trod it under his feet, and with the other overthrew the Chalice. The King ask him how he durst be so bold? He answered, Most noble. Kin●— The thing which you have seen, was not done nor thought of me for any contumely, or reproach to your presence, but only for this purpose (a●● before God I do clearly confess) to seek the salvation of this people. Being asked who set him on? He answered▪ He was not moved by any man, but by his o●● Conscience, there being no man under Heaven for whose sake he would put himself into so manifest a danger, but he owed his service first to God and secondarily to their salvation; wherefore if he had done any thing displeasing to them, the aught to impute it to themselves, who so irreverently used the Sacrament of the Lords Supper unto so great Idolatry, not without great ignominies the Church, violation of the Sacrament, and the peril of their own sols, except they repented. For this he was cruelty tormented, and burned and in the fire he ●un●; Psal. 43. judge me, O God, and defend my 〈◊〉 against the unmerciful ●●ple. Gauderin. Fox, Vol. 3. cont. 49. Christopher Gauderin, having been a Spendthrift, was converted by Lewis St●llius, telling him, That he ought rather to distribute of his gettings to the poor, then to spend them so wastefully; for if he continued so, God would surely call him to an account for it, insomuch that he was chosen a Deacon in the Church; in the execution of which Office, he was taken and imprisoned, and being asked how he came to turn Heretic, seeing he learned not that of his Master the Abbot, he answered, I am no Heretic, but a right believing Christian, which he taught me not indeed, but rather, other vile qualities, which I am ashamed now to rehearse. Some objecting to him his youth, being about the age of thirty, He told them, That man's life consisted but of two days, viz. the day of his birth, and the day of his death. And for my part (said he) I am now willing by death to pass into eternal life. The morning that he was to be executed, He said to his Fellow-Prisoners (having put on a clean shirt, and washed himself) Brethren, I am now going to be married, I hope before noon to drink of the wine of the Kingdom of Heaven. A Friar coming to them (as he said) to convert them; Christopher said unto him, Away from us, thou seducer of Souls, for we have nothing to do with thee. One of his Fellow-sufferers (as the Hangman was gagging him) said, What, shall we not have liberty in this our last hour to praise our God with our voice and tongue. Brother (said Gauderin) let not this discourage us, for the greater wrong our enemies think to do unto us, the more assistance we shall find from God: And so he never ceased to comfort them, till he was gagged also, and burned june 2, 1568. Gerard. About the year 1160. in the reign of Henry the Second, Clarks Martyrology pag. 41. came about thirty Waldenses into England, Gerardus being their Minister, to labour to win Disciples to Christ. They were converted before a Council of Bishops at Oxford, and Gerard speaking for them all, said, We are Christians, holding and reverencing the Doctrine of the Apostles.— Being urged with arguments against their Doctrine, they answered, They believed as they were taught by God's Word, but would not dispute their faith.— Being admonished to repent, and threatened if they did not, they despised their Counsel, scorned their threats, saying, Blessed are they that suffer persecution for righteousness sake, for theirs is the Kingdom of Heaven. They were excommunicated, burnt in the foreheads for Heretics, Mr. Gerard both in the forehead and cheek; their clothes were cut off to their Girdles, and so whipped through Oxford, they singing all the while, Blessed are ye when men hate you, and despitefully use you, etc. Guest. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 1012. Laurence Guest had his wife and seven children brought to him (the Bishop hoping to overcome him by his natural affection to them) and his wife beginning to exhort him to favour himself, He desired her not to be a block in his way, for that he was in good course, running toward the mark of his salvation. Gibson. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 858. Some of the Articles exhibited against Mr. Richard Gibson.— (3) That he hath commended, allowed, defended, and liked both Cranmer, L●tim●r, Ridley, and all other Heretics here in this Realm of England, according to the Ecclesiastical Laws condemned for Heretics, and also liked their Opinions. (4) That he hath comforted, aided; assisted, and maintained both by words and otherwise, Heretics and erroneous Persons, or at the least suspected and infamed of Heresies, etc. (5) That he hath affirmed that the Religion now used in this Realm, is in no wise agreeable to God's Word and Commandment, etc. The Bishop ask him, if he knew any cause why the Sentence should not be read against him, he said, Pag. 859. the Bishop had nothing wherefore justly to condemn him. Sentence being read, He again admonished Gibson to remember himself, and so save his soul. Mr. Gibson answered, That he would not hear the Bishops babbling, boldly protesting that he was contrary to them all in his mind, though he aforet me kept it secret, for fear of the Law. And speaking to the Bishop, he said, Blessed am I, that am cursed at your hands, We have nothing now, but thus will I; for as the Bishop saith, so it must be. And no heresy is it to turn the truth of God's Word into lies, and that do you. Mr. Gibson also propounded Nine Articles to Bonner, by him to be answered by yea or nay, or else by saying he could not tell (1) Whether the Scriptures of God, written by Moses and other holy Prophets of God through faith, that is in Christ Jesus, be available Doctrine, to make all men in all things unto salvation learned, without the help of any other Doctrine, or no? (3) Whether the holy Word of God, as it is written, doth sufficiently teach all men, of what dignity, estate, or calling by Office whatsoever be or they be, their full, true, and lawful duty in their Office? and whether every man— be found upon the pain of eternal damnation, in all things to do, as he is thereby taught and commanded, and in no wise to leave undone any thing that is to be done, being taught and commanded by the same? (4) Whether any man (the Lord Jesus Christ, God and man only except) by the holy Ordinance of God, ever was, is, or shall be Lord over Faith? (5) By what lawful Authority or Power any man of what Dignity, Estate, or Calling soever he or they be, may be so bold as to alter or change the holy Ordinances of God, or any of them, or any part of them? (6) By what evident tokens Antichrist in his Ministers may be known, seeing it is written, That Satan can change himself into the similitude of an Angel of Light, and his Ministers fashion themselves, as though they were Ministers of righteousness? (7) What the Beast is, which maketh war with the Saints of God? and what the gorgeous and glittering Whore is, which sitteth upon the Beast?— Gilby. See Mr. Gilby 's Admonition to England and Scotland to call them to repentance, Printed at Geneva, 1558. pag. 59 Mr. Anthony Gilby, an exiled Minister of Christ in Queen Mary's days, in his Admonition speaks thus.— Whereas many have written▪ many profitable Admonitions to you twain (O England and Scotland, both making one Island most happy, if you could know your own happiness)— and others with Pen and Tongue, with Word, with Writing, with jeopardy and loss of Lands, Goods, and Lives, have admonished you both twain of that cankered poison of Papistry, that ye foster and pamper to your own perdition and utter destruction of yourselves and yours, souls and bodies, for now and ever. I thought it my duty (seeing your destruction to man's judgement to draw so near) hom much or how little soever they have prevailed, Pag. 60. yet once again to admonish you both to give testimony to that truth, which my Brethren have written, and especially to stir your hearts to repentance, or at the least to offer myself a witness against you, for the justice of God, and his righteous judgements, which doubtless (if your hearts be hardened) against you both are at hand to be uttered. Thus by our writing, whom it pleaseth God to stir up of your Nations all men that now l●ve, and that shall come after us, shall have cause also to praise the mercy of God, that so oft admonisheth before he strikes, and to consider his just punishment, when he shall pour forth his vengeance. Give ear therefore betimes, O Britain (for of that name both rejoiceth) whilst the Lord calleth, exhorteth, and admonisheth: that is the acceptable time, when he will be found. If ye refuse the time offered, ye cannot have it afterward, though with tears (as did Esau) ye do seem to seek it. Yet once again in God's behalf I do offer you the very means, which if God of his mercies grant you grace to follow, I doubt nothing, but that of all your enemies speedily ye shall be delivered. Ye rejoice at his Word, I am sure, if ye have any hope of the performance. Then harken to the matter which I write unto you, not forth of men's Dreams and Fables, nor forth of profane Histories, painted with man's wisdom, vain eloquence, or subtle reasons, but forth of the infallible Word of God.— Is not this God's curse and threatening (amongst many others) pronounced against the sinful Land and disobedient people? Deut. 28. That strangers shall devour the fruit of thy Land, and be above thee, etc. and thy strong walls wherein thou trusted, shall be destroyed, etc. And doth not Isaiah reckon this also as the extremity of all plagues, for the wickedness of the people to have women raised up to rule over them? Isa. 3. But what saith the same Prophet in the beginning of his prophecy, for a remedy against these and all other evils, Pag. 61. Your hands are full of blood (saith he) O ye Princes of Sodom and people of Gomorrah; but wash you, make you clean, take away your wicked thoughts forth of my sight, ●ease to do evil, learn to do well, etc. Then will I turn my hand to thee, and purge out all thy dross, and take away thy tin, and I will restore thy judges as aforetime, and Counsellors as of old. And Moses said before in the place alleged, That if thou wilt hear the voice of the Lord 〈◊〉 God, Deut. 28. and do his Commandments, thou shalt be blessed 〈◊〉 the Town, and blessed in the Field. The Lord shall ca●●● thine enemies, that rise up against thee, to fall befo●● thee, etc. Lo the way in few words, O Brittany, 〈◊〉 win God's favour, and therefore to overcome thin● enemies. But to print this more deeply upon your hearts, O ye Princes and people of that Island whom God hath begun to punish, seek (I want you) no snifting holes to excuse your faults▪ no political practices to resist God's vengeance▪— Submit yourselves to him, Pag. 62. who holdeth you● breath in your nostrils, who with one blast of hi● mouth can destroy all his enemies. Embrace hi● Son Christ, and repent betimes for your obstinacy against him and his Word, and for your cruelty against his Servants. Repent, repent. For repentance is the only way of your redress and deliverance.— Consider how the Lord hath entreated Israel and juda, his own people, how oft they trespassed, and how he gave them over into the hands of their enemies: But whensoever they repented and turned again to God unfeignedly, he sent them Judges and Deliverers, Kings and Saviour's.— Noah pronounceth, that within a hundred and twenty years all flesh should be destroyed. We have many Noah's, that so cry in our times▪ yet no man repenteth. All the time that Noah was preparing for the Ark to avoid God's vengeance, the multitude derided this holy Prophet, as the multitude of you two Realms doth at this day deride all them that by obedience to God's Word seek the means appointed to avoid God's judgements. Then the people would not repent, Pag. 63. but as if they should live for ever they married, they banqueted, they builded, they planted, deriding God's messenger. Do not you the like? I appeal to your own consciences. The Lord calleth to fasting (saith the Prophet Isaiah) to mortify themselves, and kill their lusts, but they kill Sheep and Bullocks. jeremy cries for tears and lamentation; They laugh and mock-Malachi crieth to the people of his time, Turn unto me, and I will turn unto you, saith the Lord of Hosts, and they proudly answer, Wherein shall we turn? Are you not such? Do you not ask, Wherein shall we turn, when ye will not know your sins? Ye will not confess and acknowledge your faults, though ye go a whoring in every Street, Town, and Village with your Idols: though the blood of the oppressed cry every where against you for vengeance. So that seeing no taken of repentance, I cannot cry unto you with john Baptist, O ye generation of vipers, who hath taught you to fly from the wrath to come? Pag. 64. — But I will wound you no more with the words of the Prophets, or of this holy Saint of God john Baptist, but with our Saviour Christ's two most sweet parables of the two Sons and of the Tilmen, to whom he set his vineyard, I will labour to set before your eyes your rebellion, hypocrisy, and cruelty, if so I can bring any of you to repentance.— He hath called you by his Word many a time to work in his vineyard. I ask, what you have answered. Some of you have said plainly, like rebellious children, That ye would not do it, that ye would not work in your Father's vineyard. Shall I apply this part to Scotland? Scotland was indeed called most plainly and evidently through the mercies of God both by their own faithful Countrymen, Pag. 65. and also by earnest travel of our English Nation to come into the Lord's vineyard in the time of King Edward the Sixth, but refused. That time (as ye know) the vineyard in England by the children of God was not altogether neglected, and then most earnestly were ye●● (O Brethren of Scotland) required to join han●● with us in the Lords work, but Satan alas would not suffer it. His old fostered malice, and Antichrists his Son, could not abide, that Christ should grow●● to strong by joining that Isle together in perfect Religion, etc. lest this one Island should become a safe Sanctuary (as it began to be) to all the persecuted in all places.— God hath also by the blood of his Saints, shed amongst you, by favour and friendship, by war and the sword, yea by famine and pestilence, and also by all other means called you to labour in his vineyard; but to this days alas! we hear not of your humble obedience, But still ye say with stubborn faces, We will not labour, we will not be bound to such thraldom, etc. Ye think perchance I am too sharp, and that I accuse you more than you deserve; for amongst you many do know the will of your Father, and many make profession of his Gospel, but consider, Brethren, that it is not enough to know the Commandment, and to profess the same in mouth, but it is necessary, that ye refuse yourselves, your own pleasures, appetites, and your own wisdom, if ye shall be judged faithful labourers in the Lord● vineyard, and that ye bear the burdens, together with your Brethren, and suffer heat and sweat, before ye taste the fruits with them. God will no●● be content, that ye look over the Hedge, and behold the labours of your Brethren, but he requireth that ye put your hands also to the labours, that ye travel continually to pluck up all unprofitable weeds, though in so doing the Thorns prick you to the bone; that ye assist your Brethren in their labours, though it be with the jeopardy of your lives, the loss of your substance, and displeasure of the whole earth. Pag. 68 — I must needs leave thee, O Scotland, after I have advertized thee of this, that thou follow not the example of England, but let thy reformation be full and plain, according to God's holy Will and Word, without addition. Let all the plants, which thy Heavenly Father hath not planted, be rooted out at once. Let not avarice blind thee, nor worldly wisdom discourage thy heart; let none bear the name of a Teacher, that is known to be a Fosterer of Superstition, or any kind of wickedness.— Thus must thou, O Scotland, repent thy former inobedience, if that thou wilt be approved of the Lord. And now do I return to thee, O England, I do liken thee to the second Son in the Parable, which answered his Father with flattering words, saying, I go Father, but yet he went not at al●. For since the time I had any remembrance, our Heavenly Father, of his great mercies, hath not ceased to call thee into his Vineyard, and to these late days thou hast always said, That thou wouldst enter and be obedient. In the time of King Henry the Eighth, when by Tyndal, Frith, Biln●y, and other his saithful Servants, God called England to dress his Vineyard, many promised full fair, but what fruit followed, nothing but bitter grapes, yea, briers and brambles, the wormwood of avarice, the gall of cruelty, the poison of filthy fornication, flowing from head to foot, the contempt of God, and open defence of the Cake-idol, by open Proclamation to be read in the Churches, instead of God's Scriptures. Pag. 70. — It grieveth me to write these evils of my Country, save only that I must needs declare what fruit were found in the Vineyard, after you promised to work therein, to move you to Repentance, and to justify God's Judgements, how grievonsly soever he shall plague you hereafter Wherefore I desire you to call to remembrance your best state under King Edward, when all me●● with general consent promised to work in th●● Vineyard, and ye shall have cause I doubt not to ●a●ment your wickedness, that so contemned the voic●● of God for your own lusts, for your cruelty, for your covetousness, that the Name of God was by your vanities evil spoken of in other Nations▪— God grant you all repentant hearts, for no order or state did any part of his duty in those days. B●● to speak of the best, whereof you use to boast, your Religion was but an English Matins, patched forth of the Pope's portess. Many things were in your great Book superstitious and foolish, all were driven to a present service, like the Papists, that they should think their duties discharged, if the number were said of Psalms and Chapters. Finally, there could no Discipline be brought into the Church nor correction of manners. Pag. 71. — To what contempt was God's Word, and the admonition of his Prophets come in all estates before God did strike, some men are not ignorant. The Preachers themselves for the most part could find no fault in Religion, but that the Church was poor, and lacked living.— Sure many things should have been reform, before that the Kitchen had been better provided for our Prelates in England. It was most evident that many of you under the cloak of Religion, served your own bellies; some where so busy to heap benefice upon benefice, some to labour in Parliament for purchasing of Lands, that the time was small, which could be found for the Reformation of abuses, and every little that was spent upon the feeding of your flocks.— In a word, the Go●●spel was so lightly esteemed; that the most part of men thought rather that God should bow and stoop to their appetites, then that they should be subject to his holy Commandments.— Even the Nobility and Council would suffer no rebukes of God's Messengers, though their offences were never so manifest; let those that preached in the Court, the Lent before King Edward deceased, speak their conscience, and accuse me if I lie; yea, let a writing of Northumberland's to Mr. Harlow be brought to light, and it shall testify, that he was not ashamed to say, That the liberty of the Preachers tongues would cause the Council and Nobility to rise up against them, for they could not suffer so to be entreated. These were the fruits in the time of Harvest, a little before the Winter came, and of the time of Mary what should I write?— It hath cast off the Truth known, and confessed, and followeth lies and errors, Pag. 72. which once it detested. It buildeth the building which once it destroyed; it raiseth up the idols, which once were there confounded.— They persecute, they banish, they burn Christ the Son of God in his members. Pag. 73. — But to be short, this only remaineth for both these Nations, that they repent, and return into the Vineyard, with the first Son, and bring forth the fruits of Repentance. The fruits of Repentance I call not only to know your sins, and to lament them, but to amend your lives, and to make straight the Lords paths by resisting Satan and Sin, and obeying God in doing the works of righteousness, and executing Gods Precepts and Judgements, so long amongst you contemned, Mat. 3. for even now is the Axe put to the root of the tree, etc. Th● Lord hath now his Fan in his hand, and will purge his floor, etc. Repent therefore whilst you have time, before you be ●anned, Pag. 74. hewn down, and fired.— Here have we to lament the miserable state of mankind, which i● so seduced by the subtle Serpent, that he canno● know his misery, when he is admonished, nor perceive his perdition, when it draweth so near. Whe● the Servants of God set forth his Truth, they are charged to trouble Realms and Countries, as wa● Elias, when they warn men to join hands with wicked Kings and Princes, they are counted Traitors, as was Isaiah and jeremiah, such is man's malice.— Wherefore I do admonish and exhort you both in the Name of the living God, that howsoever yo● have hitherto showed yourselves the Servants o● men, to bear and flatter with the world, that no● ye learn in God's cause to despise the faces of men to bend yourselves against this wicked world, neither regarding the Visors of Honours, vain Titles nor dignities, any farther than they seek Gods only Glory, for his Glory will he not suffer to be contemned for any cause; no, he will pour contempt on those Princes that strive against his Truth, b●● those that glorify him, Pag. 75. will he glorify.— Behold, your only remedy remaining, is to repen● your time of ignorance, of stubbornness, of cruelty of idolatry, wherein ye have so long continued Mourn for your ignorance, and now with all diligence seek for knowledge of the World of God and openly profess the Gospel, which is the powe● of God, whereof ye ought not to be ashamed. Cease at the last from your old stubbornness, and labour in the Vineyard with all meekness. Cease from your cruelty against Christ's Members, and learn t● suffer for Christ's sake, if ye will be true Christians. Banish all Idolatry and Popish Superstition from amongst you, else can ye have no part i● Christ's Kingdom, no more than Christ can be partaker with Antichrist. Pray to the Lord of Hosts and Armies to give you the courage, strength, and means. The Lords Arm is not shortened now, no more then of old. Be strong therefore in the Lord, for the defence of the Truth, though all the World rise against it. Now when the battle is fierce against the living God for dead idols, against the Gospel of Christ for the inventions of Antichrist, against Christ members for Popish ceremonies; can any of you that will be accounted Gods Children, still halt of both hands? Pag. 76. — If you will maintain God's truth in the Earth, he will receive you as his Children into the Heavens, if you confess his Christ before this wicked Generation, Christ shall confess you before his Father in the Heavens, in the presence of his Angels: But if you persist stubbornly to banish God's Word, and his Son Christ in his Members forth of your Earthly Kingdoms, how can ye look for any part in his Heavenly Kingdom? Pag. 77. — Lo here is the choice of life and death, of misery and wealth offered to you by God's mercies, and the means how you may win God's favour opened, whereby only ye may prevail against your enemies. God grant you hearts to answer as the people did to joshua, Josh. 24. offering the like choice. God forbid (say they) that we should forsake God, we will serve the Lord our God, and obey his voice, for he is our God. And we your banished Brethren, by the Power of God, to provoke you forwards, will thus pronounce with joshua, That we and our Family's will serve the Lord God, though all Nations run to Idols, though all people do persecute us. We know that Satan hath but a short time to rage, and that Christ our Captain right speedily will crown his Soldiers, to whom as he is the eternal God with his Father be all honour and glory for ever and ever. So be it. See it at the end of the Dialogue. A short Prayer which Mr. Gilby made for t●● faithful in those days. O Lord God, and most merciful Father, we beseech thee for the honour of th● Holy Name to defend us from that Antichrist 〈◊〉 Rome, and from all his detestable enormities, manners, laws, garments, and ceremonies. Destroy tho● the counsel of all the Papists and Atheists, enemi●● of thy Gospel, and of this Realm of England. D●●●close their mischiefs and subtle practices. C●● found their devices. Let them be taken in the● own wiliness. And strengthen all those that maintain the Cause and Quarrel of thy Gospel, with invincible force and power of the Holy Spirit, so th● they fail not to proceed and go forward to that tr●● Godliness, commanded in thy Holy Word, with 〈◊〉 simplicity and sincerity, to thy Honour and Glor● the comfort of thine Elect, and the confusion 〈◊〉 thine enemies, through Jesus Christ our Lord an● Saviour. Amen, Amen. And say from the hear●● Amen. Glee. Fox, Vol 3. cont. p. 24. When the Friars told Madam La Glee, that 〈◊〉 was in a damnable estate: It seems so indeed (sai●●sne) being now in your hands; but I have a 〈◊〉 that will never leave me, nor forsake me, for 〈◊〉 that. Thou hast (said they) renounced the Faith It is true (said she) I have renounced your faith which I am able to show is rejected, and accursed of God, and therefore deserves not so much as 〈◊〉 be called Faith. Pag. 25. When news was brought her, that she was co●●demned to be hanged, she fell down upon he● knees, and blessed God, for that it pleased him 〈◊〉 snew her so much mercy as to deliver her by such kind of death, out of the troubles of this wretche● world, and to honour her so far, as to call her 〈◊〉 die for his Truth, and to wear his Livery (meaning the Halter, which the Hangman had put about her neck) Then sitting down at Table to break her fast with the three other condemned Servants of Christ, giving thanks to God, she exhorted them to be of good courage, and to trust unto the end in his free and only mercy. She then called for a clean linen Waistcoat, making herself ready, as if she had been going to a Wedding. Ward, pag. 151. Mr. W●rd tells us, that she put on her Bracelets; for I go (said she) unto my Husband. Being commanded (as she was led to execution) to take a Torch into her hand, and to acknowledge she had offended God and the King: Away, away, (said she) with it. I have neither offended God, nor the King, according to your meaning, nor in respect of the cause, for which I suffer. I am I confess a sinful woman, but I need no such light, for helping me to ask forgiveness of God for my sins past, or present. Life such things yourselves, who sit and walk in the darkness of ignorance and error. Then one of her Kinsfolks met her in the way, and presented to her view her little children, praying her to have compassion on them. I must needs tell you (said she) that I love my children dearly; but yet neither for the love I bear to them, or any thing else in this world, will I renounce the Truth, or my God, who is and will be a Father unto them, to provide better for them, than I should have done, and therefore to his providence and protection I commend and leave them. When she saw the three men about to die silent, and not to call on God, she ex●orted then thereto, and gave them an example. Glover. Fox. Vol. 3. pag. 412. Mr. Robert Glover in his Letter to his Wife ha● many memorable passages, the chief I shall collect— I thank you heartily (most loving Wife) 〈◊〉 your Letters sent to me in my imprisonment. read them with tears more than once or twic● with tears (I say) for joy and gladness, that Go● hath wrought in you so merciful a work; (1) 〈◊〉 unfeigned repentance. (2) An humble and heart reconciliaton. (3) A willing submission and obedience to the will of God in all things.— The●● your Letters, and the hearing of your godly pr●●ceedings have much relieved and comforte● me, etc. and shall be a goodly Testimony for you at the great Day, against many worldly and dain●● Dames, which set more by their own pleasure an● praise in this world, then by God's Glory, little re●garding (as it appeareth) the everlasting health 〈◊〉 their own souls or others.— So long as God shal● lend you continuance in this miserable world above all things give yourself continually to Prayer, lifting up pure hands without anger, wrath, o● doubting, forgiving as Christ forgives. And that w●● may be the better willing to forgive, it is good ofte● to call to remembrance the multitude and greatness of our sins, which Christ daily and hour●● pardoneth and forgiveth us.— And because God● Word teacheth us, not only the true manner ●● praying, but also what we ought to do or not to 〈◊〉 in the whole course of our life, what pleaseth 〈◊〉 displeaseth God, John 12. and that as Christ saith, The Wo●● of God, that he hath spoken, shall judge us. Let you● Prayer be to this end especially, that God of hi● great mercy would open and reveal more and mor● daily to your heart the true sense, knowledge, an● understanding of his most holy Word, and gi●● you grace in your living, to express the fruit thereof. And forasmuch as God's Word is, as the Holy Ghost calleth it, 1 Cor. 1. The Word of affliction, i. e. it is seldom without hatred, persecution, peril, danger of loss of goods and life, etc. Call upon God continually for his assistance, casting your accounts what is like to cost you, endeavouring yourself, through the help of the Holy Ghost by continuance of prayer, to lay your foundation so sure, that no storm or tempest shall be able to overthrow it; Luke 17. remembering always (as Christ saith) Lot's wife, i. e. to beware of looking back to that thing that displeaseth God: and nothing more displeaseth God then Idolatry, that is, false worshipping of God, otherwise then his Word commandeth.— They object they be the Church, etc. My answer was, The Church of God knoweth and acknowledgeth no other head, but Jesus Christ the Son of God, whom ye have refused, and chosen the man of sin, the Son o● perdition, Pag. 423. enemy to Christ, the Devil's Deputy and Lieutenant, the Pope. Christ's Church heareth, teacheth, and is ruled by his Word, as he saith, john 10. My Sheep hear my voice. If you abide in me, and my Word a●ide in you, you be my Disciples. Their Church repelleth God's Word, and forceth all men to follow their traditions. Christ's Church dares not add nor diminish, alter or change his blessed Testament; Acts 7. but they be not afraid to take away all that Christ instituted, and go a whoring (as the Scripture saith) with their own inventions, etc. The Church of Christ is, hath been, and shall be in all ages under the Cross, persecuted, molested, and afflicted, the world ever hating them because they are not of the world; but these persecute, m●rther, slay, and kill such as profess the true doctrine of Christ, be they in learning, living, conversation, and other virtues never so excellent. Chri●● and his Church referred the trial of their doctrine to the Word of God, and gave the people leave to judge thereof by the same Word; john 5. search th● Scriptures. But this Church taketh away the Wor●● from the people, and suffereth neither learned nor unlearned, to examine or prove their doctrine by the Word of God. The true Church of Go● laboureth by all means to resist and withstand the lusts, desires, and motions of the world, the flesh, and the Devil: these for the most part give themselves to all voluptuousness, etc.— I likened them 〈◊〉 Nimrod, whom the Scripture calls a mighty Hunter, telling them, That that which they could no● have by the Word, they would have by the Sword and be the Church whether men will or no.— Be●ware of such as shall advertise you something 〈◊〉 bear with the world, as they do, for a season. Ther● is no dallying with God's matters. It is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of God. Remember the Prophet Elias, 1 Chr. 18. Luke 9 Why halt ye on both sides? Remember what Christ saith, He that putteth his ha●● to the Plough, and looketh back, is not worthy of me. And seeing God hath hitherto allowed you as a good Soldier in the forward, play not the Coward▪ neither draw back to the rearward. Saint Ioh● numbereth among them, that shall dwell in the he●y Lake, such as be fearful in God's Cause. Set before your eyes always the examples of such, as have behaved themselves boldly in God's Cause, as Stephen, Peter, Paul, Daniel, the three Children, the Widow's Sons, and in your days Anne Askew, La●rence Sanders, john Bradford, etc. Be afraid in n●thing (saith Saint Paul) of the adversaries of Christ● Doctrine, Phil. 1. the which is to them a sign of perdition, b●● to you of everlasting salvation. Christ commandeth the same, saying, Fear them not. Let us not follow the example of him, who asked time first to take leave of his Friends. If we do so, we shall find few of them, that will encourage us to go forward in our business, please it God never so much. We read not that james and john, Andrew and Simon, when they were called, put off the time, till they had known their Fathers and Friends pleasure, but the Scripture saith, Mat. 13. They forsook all, and by and by followed Christ Christ likened the Kingdom of God to a precious Pearl, the which whosoever findeth, selleth all that he hath to buy it. Yea, whosoever hath but a little taste or glimmering how piecious a treasure the Kingdom of Heaven is, will gladly forego both life and goods for the obtaining of it. But the most part now adays be like to Aesop's Cock, which when he had found a precious stone, wished rather to have found a barley corn: so ignorant be they how precious a jewel the Word of God is, that they choose rather the things of this world, which being compared to it, be less in value then a barley corn. If I would have given place to worldly reasons, these might have moved me; the foregoing of you and my children; the consideration of the state of my children, being yet young, apt and inclinable to virtue and learning, and so having the more need of my assistance; I was never called to be a Preacher or Minister; and (because of my sickness) fear of death in Prison before I should come to my answer, and so my death to be unprofitable. But these and such like, I thank my heavenly Father (which of his infinite mercy inspired me with his Holy Ghost, for his Son's sake, my only Saviour and Redeemer) prevailed not in me. But when I had by the wonderful permission of God fallen into their hands, at the first sight of the Sheriff, nature a little abashed; yet ere ever I came to the Prison, by the working of God and through his goodness, fear departed.— Little justice was showed by Mr. Sheriff; but the less justice a ma● findeth at their hands, the more consolation in conscience shall he find from God; for whosoever is o● the world, the world will love him. After I came to Prison, and had reposed myself there a while, I wept for joy and gladness my belly full, mu●i●g much of the great mercies of God, and (as it were) saying to myself after this sort, O Lord, who am I, on whom thou shouldst bestow this thy great mercy, to be numbered among the Saints that suffer for the Gospel's sake? And so beholding and considering on the one side my imperfection, unableness, sinful misery and unworthiness, and on the other side the greatness of God's mercy, to be called to so high promotion, I was as it were amazed and overcome for a while with joy and gladness, concluding thus; O Lord, thou showest power in weakness, wisdom in foolishness, mercy in sinfulness. Who shall let thee to choose where and whom thou wilt? As I have ever zealously loved the confession of thy Word, Pag. 424. so ever thought I myself unworthy to be partaker of affliction for the same. Some travelling with me to dismissed upon bonds, to them my answer was (to my remembrance) after this sort; Forasmuch as the Masters have imprisoned me, having nothing to burden me withal, if I should enter into bonds, I should in so doing accuse myself: and seeing they have no matter to lay to my charge, they may as well let me pass without bonds, as with bonds. Secondly, if I shall enter into bonds, covenant and promise to appear, I shall do nothing but excuse, colour, and cloak their wickedness, and endanger myself nevertheless, being bound by my promise to appear.— Afterward debating the matter with myself, these considerations came into my head. I have from time to time with good conscience (God I take to record) moved all such as I had conference with to be no dalliers in God's matters, but to show themselves after so great a light and knowledge, hearty, earnest, constant, and stable in so manifest a truth, and not to give place one jot contrary to the same. Now thought I, if I shall withdraw myself, and make any shifts to pull my own neck out of the Choler, I shall give great offence to my weak Brethren in Christ, and advantage to the enemies to slander God's Word. It will be said, he hath been a great emboldner of others to be earnest and fervent, to fear no worldly perils and dangers, but he himself will give no such example. Wherefore I thought it my bounden duty both to God and man, being (as it were) by the great goodness of God called and appointed hereunto, to set aside all fear, perils and dangers, all worldly respects and considerations, and like as I had before, according to the measure of my small gift, within the compass of my vocation and calling, from the bottom of my heart unfeignedly moved, exhorted, and persuaded all that pro●ess God's Word, manfully to persist in the defence of the same, not with sword and violence, but with suffering and loss of life, rather than to de●ile themselves again with the whorish abominaon of the Romish Antichrist. So the hour being come with my fact and example to ratify, confirm, and protest the same to the hearts of all true Believers, and to this end (by the mighty assistance of God's holy Spirit) I resolved myself with much peace of conscience, willingly to sustain whatsoever the Romish Antichrist should do against me. — When Mr. Warren the Chancellor willed 〈◊〉 chief Jailor to carry me to the Bishop, I laid 〈◊〉 his charge the cruel seeking of my death; a●● when he would have excused himself, I told h●● he could not wipe his hands so: He was as g●●●● of my blood before God, as though he had mu●thered me with his own hands. He departed fro● me, saying I needed not to fear if I would be 〈◊〉 his belief. God open his eyes, and give him gra●● to believe this, which he and all of his inclination shall find (I fear) too true for their parts, that 〈◊〉 they which cruelly, maliciously, and spitefully persecute, molest, and afflict the Members of Chri●● for their Conscience sake, and for the true test●●mony of Christ's Word, and cause them to be mo●● unjustly slain and murdered, without speedy re●pentance shall dwell with the Devil and his Ange● in the fiery lake everlastingly, where they sha●● wish and desire, cry and call, but in vain (as the●● right companion Epulo) to be refreshed of them whom in this world they contemned, despised, disdained, as slaves, misers, and wretches.— The Bishop laid to my charge my not coming to Church Here I might have dallied with him, and put him to his proofs.— Notwithstanding I answered him through God's merciful help, that I neither ha● nor would come at their Church, as long as their Mass was used there, to save (if I had them) 〈◊〉 hundred lives.— The Bishop ask me wh● should judge the Word? I told him, Christ wa● content that the people should judge his Doctrine by searching the Scriptures, and so was Paul. Methinks ye should claim no farther privilege no● pre-eminence than they had.— The Bishop telling me, He was my Bishop, and therefore I mu●● believe him: If you say black is white (said I) must I also say as you say, and believe the same, because you say it is so? Pag. 425. — If you will be believed because you be a Bishop, Why find you fault with the people, that believed Mr. Latimer, Mr. Ridley, Mr. Hooper, etc. that were Bishops? Because they were Heretics (said the Bishop) And may not you err (quoth I) as well as they? I looked for learning at my Lord's hand to persuade me, and he oppressed me only with his Authority. He said I dissented from the Church, and asked me where my Church was before Kings Edward's time; I desired him to show me, where their Church was in Elias time, and what outward show it had in Christ's time?— The tidings that I should be carried to Lichfield did at first somewhat discourage me, fearing lest I should by reason of my great sickness through extreme handling (which I looked for) have died in the Prison, before I should come to my answer: But I rebuked immediately with God's Word this infidelity in myself, etc. after this manner, What make I of God? Is not his power as great in Lichfield as Coventry? Doth not his providence extend as well to Lichfield as Coventry? Was he not with Habakkuk, Daniel, Meshach, and jeremy in their most dangerous imprisonments? He knows what things we have need of them. He hath numbered all the hairs of our head. The Sparrow falleth not to the ground without our heavenly Father's will, much more will he care for us, if we be not faithless, whom he hath made worthy to be witnesses of his truth. So long as we put our trust in him, we shall never be destitute of his help, neither in prison, nor in sickness, nor in health, nor in death, nor before Kings, nor before Bishops. Not the Devil himself, much less one of his Ministers shall be able to prevail against us. With such like meditations I waxed cheerful of good consolation and comfort. So that hearing one say, They could not provide Horses enough for us, I said, Let them carry us in a Dung-Cart for lack of Horses, if they list, I am well content for my part.— I told jephcot the Chancellor's Servant, That they should have judgement without mercy, that showed no mercy, and this mercy I found at his hand at Lichfield. He put me into a Prison that same night, where I continued till I was condemned, in a place next to the Dungeon, etc. very cold, with small light, and there he allowed me a bundle of Straw instead of a Bed, without Chair, Form, or any other thing to ease myself withal. God of his mercy gave me great patience through prayer that night, so that if it had been his pleasure, I could have have been contented to have ended my life.— In the time of my imprisonment I gave myself continually to prayer and meditation of the merciful promises of God, made unto all, without exception of persons, that call upon the Name of his dear Son Jesus Christ. I ●ound in myself daily amendment of health of body, increase of peace in conscience, and many consolations from God by the help of his holy Spirit, & sometime (as it were) a taste and glimmering of the life to come, All for his only Son Jesus Christ's sake. To him be all the praise for ever and ever. The enemy ceased not many times sundry ways to assault me: Oftentimes objecting to my conscience my own unworthiness of the greatness of the benefit to be accounted amongst those that suffer for Christ, for his Gospel's sake. Against him I replied▪ with the Word of God on this sort. What were all those whom God had chosen from the beginning to be his Witnesses, and to carry his Name before the world? Acts 24. Rom. 11. Rom. 4. john 1. Were they not men, as well subject to sin and imperfections, as other men be?— Who gave first unto him? What hast thou that thou hast not received? All have received of his fullness. They were no bringers of any goodness to God, but altogether receivers. They chose not God first, but God chose them. They loved not God first, but he loved them first: Yea he both loved and chose them when they were his enemies, full of sin and corruption, as well as void of all goodness.— He is and will be the same God, as rich in mercy, as mighty, as able, as ready, as willing to forgive sins without respect of persons to the world's end of all them that call upon him. God is near, he is at hand, he is with all, with all (I say) and refuseth none, excepteth none, that faithfully in true repentance call upon him, in what hour, what place, or what time soever it be. It is no arrogancy nor presumption in any man to burden God (as it were) with his promise, and of duty to claim and challenge his aid, help, and assistance in all our perils, dangers, and distress, calling upon him not in the confidence of our own godliness, but in the trust of his own promises made in Christ— His Word cannot lie, Psal. 50. Call upon me in the day of trouble, and I will hear thee, and thou shalt praise me. I answered the enemy also on this manner; I am a sinner, and therefore unworthy to be a witness of this truth. What then? Must I deny his Word, because I am not worthy to pro●ess it? What bring I to pass in so doing, but add sin to sin? What is greater sin then to deny the truth of Christ's Gospel? He that is ashamed of me or of my words (saith Christ) of him also will I be ashamed before my Father, and all his Angels. I might also by the same reason forbear to do any of God's Commandments. When I am provoked to pray, the enemy may say to me, I am not worthy to pray, therefore I shall not pray, etc.— When the Bishop came to Lichfield— he persuaded me to be a Member of his Church, which had continued so many years. As for our Church (as he called it) it was not known, he said, but lately in King Edward's time. I profess myself to be a Member of that Church (said I) that is builded upon the foundation of the Prophets and Apostles, Jesus Christ being the head cornerstone. And this Church hath been from the beginning (said I) though it bear no glorious show before the world, being ever for the most part under the Cross and affliction, contemned, despised, and persecuted. The Bishop contended on the other side that they were the Church. So cried all the Clergy against the Prophets of jerusalem (said I) saying, The Church, the Church, etc. So much out of Mr. Glover's choice Letter. Pag. 427. After he was condemned, his heart was lumpish and desolate of all spiritual consolation; whereupon fearing lest the Lord had utterly withdrawn, he made his moan to Mr. Austin Bernher, his familiar friend, telling him how he had prayed night and day to God, and yet had no sense of comfort from him. The Minister desired him to wait patiently the Lords leisure; and howsoever his present feeling was, yet seeing his cause was just, he exhorted him constantly to stick to the same, and to play the man, not doubting but the Lord in his good time would visit him, and satisfy his desire with plenty of consolation, whereof (said Mr. Bernher) he was right certain and sure, and therefore desired him, whenever any such feeling of God's heavenly mercies should begin to touch his heart, that then he should show some signification thereof. The next day, as he was going to the place of his Martyrdom, and was come within light of the Stake, although all the night before, praying for strength and courage, he could feel none; suddenly he was so mightily replenished with God's holy comfort, and heavenly joys, that he cried out, clapping his hands to Austin, and saying in these words, Austin, He is come, he is come, etc. and that with such joy and alacrity, as one seeming rather to be risen from some deadly danger to liberty of life, then as one passing out of the world by any pains of death. Godfrey. When one called Godfrey de H●mmele Heretic, Ward, pag. 157. he said, No Heretic, but an unprofitable Servant, yet willing to die for his Lord, and reckoning this death no death, but a life. Goodman. Mr. Christopher Goodman, See his Sermon on Act. 4.19. Enlarged and Printed at Geneva. 1558. an exiled Minister of Christ in Queen Mary's days, declaring the cause of all the then misery in England, and the only way to remedy the same, writes as followeth from Geneva. — If all in whom the People should look for comfort, Pag. 216, etc. be altogether declined from God (as indeed they appear to be at this present time in England, without all fear of his Majesty, or pity upon their Brethren)— Then assure yourselves (dear Brethren and Servants of God) there can be no better counsel, nor more comfortable or present remedy (which you shall prove true, if God grant you his Spirit and Grace to follow it) then in continual and daily invocation of his Name, to rest wholly and only upon him, make him your shield, buckler, and refuge, who hath so promised to be to all them that are oppressed and depend upon him; to do nothing commanded against God and your conscience, preferring at all times the will of God to the will of men, saying and answering to all manner of persons, This God hath commanded, this we must do: That God hath forbidden, that we will not do. If you will rob us and spoil us for doing the Lords will, to the Lord must you make answer, and not to us; for his goods they are, and not ours. If ye will imprison us, behold you are oppressors; if ye will hang us, or burn us, behold ye are murderers of them which fear the lord— And for our part, if you take from us this vile and corruptible life, we are sure the Lord will grant it us again with joy, and immortality, both of soul and body. If God give you grace to make this or the like answer, and strength to contemn their Tyranny, you may be sure to find unspeakable comfort and quietness of conscience in the midst of your danger, and greatest rage of Satan. And thus boldly confessing Christ your Saviour before men (as by the examples of thousands of your Brethren before your faces God doth mercifully encourage you) you may with all hope and patience wait for the joyful confession of Christ again, Pag. 218. before his Father and Angels in Heaven, that you are his obedient and dearly beloved Servants; being also assured of this, that if it be the will of God to have you any longer to remain in this miserable world, that then his Providence is so careful over you, and present with you, that no man or power can take away your life from you, nor touch your body any farther than your Lord and God will permit them, which neither shall be augmented for your plain confession, nor yet diminished for keeping of silence; for nothing cometh to the Servants of God by hap or chance, whose hairs of their heads are numbered. Whereof if ye be so assured, as ye ought, there can be nothing that should make you to shrink from the Lord. If they do cast you into Prison with joseph, the Lord will deliver you: If they cast you to wild beasts and Lions, as they did D●niel, you shall be preserved: Pag. 219. If into the Sea with jonas, you shall not be drowned; or into the dirty dungeon with jeremy, you shall be delivered; or into the fiery Furnace with Shadrach, Meshach, and A●ednego, yet shall not be consumed. chose, if it be his good pleasure, that you shall glorify his holy Name by your death, what great thing have you lost? changing death for life, misery for felicity, continual vexation and trouble for perpetual rest and quietness, choosing rather to die with shame of the world, being the Servants of God, then to live among men in honour, being the servants of Satan, and condemned of God. Otherwise, if you give place to the wickedness of men to escape their malice and bodily dangers, you show yourselves therein to fear man, more than the mighty and dreadful God: him that hath but power of your body, and that at God's appointment than God, himself, who hath power, after he hath destroyed the body, to cast both soul and body into hellfire, there to remain everlastingly in torments unspeakable. And moreover, Pag. 220. that which you look to obtain by these sinful shifts, you shall be sure to lose with grief and trouble of conscience; for this saying of your Master being true and certain, that They which seek to save their life (meaning by any worldly reason or policy) shall lose it. Mat. 16. What shall be their gains at length, when by dissimulation and yielding to Popish Blasphemy, they dishonour the Majesty of God to enjoy this short, miserable, and mortal life, to be cast from the favour of God, and company of his heavenly Angels, to enjoy for a short time their goods and possessions among their fleshly and carnal Friends, whenas their conscience within shall be deeply wounded with hell-like torments? when God's curse and indignation hangeth continually over the heads of such, ready to be poured down upon them; when they shall find no comfort, but utter despair with judas, who for this worldly riches (as he did) have sold their Master, Pag. 221. seeking either to hang themselves with judas, to murder themselves with Francis Spira, to drown themselves with Justice Hales, or else to fall into a raging madness with Justice Morgan? What comfort had judas then by his money received for betraying his Master? was he not shortly after compelled to cast it from him, with this pitiful voice, Mat. 27. I have sinned in betraying innocent blood?— Then, Pag. 222. dear Brethren in Christ, what other reward can any of you look for, committing the like offences?— There is no trust but in God, no comfort but in Christ, no assurance but in his promise, by whose obedience only you shall avoid all danger. Mat. 10. And whatsoever you lose in this world, and suffer for his Name, it shall be here recompensed with double, according to his promise, and in the world to come with life everlasting, which is to find your life, when you are willing to lay it down at his Commandment. I am not ignorant how unnatural a thing it is, and contrary to the flesh, willingly to sustain such cruel death, as the Adversaries have appointed to all the Children of God, who mind constantly to stand by their procession, yet to the Spirit notwithstanding is easy and joyful; for though the flesh be frail, the Spirit is prompt and ready. Pag. 223. Whereof (praised be the Name of God) you have had notable experience in many of your Brethren, very Martyrs for Christ, who with joy patiently, and triumphing have suffered and drunk with thirst of that bitter Cup, which nature so much abhorreth, wonderfully strengthened no doubt by the secret inspiration of God's holy Spirit; so that there ought to be none among you so feeble, weak, or timorous, whom the wonderful examples of Gods present power and singular favour in those persons, should not encourage, bolden, and fortify to show the like constancy in the same Cause and Profession. Nevertheless great cause we have thankfully to consider the unspeakable mercy of God in Christ, who hath farther respect to our infirmity, that when we have not that boldness of Spirit to stand to the death, as we see others, he hath provided a present remedy, that being persecuted in one place, we have liberty to flee into another. When we cannot be in our own Country with a safe conscience (except we would make open profession of our Religion, Pag. 224. which is every man's duty, and so be brought to offer up our lives in sacrifice to God in testimony that we are his) he hath mollified and prepared the hearts of Strangers to receive us with all pity and gladness, where you may be also not only delivered from the fear of death, and the Papistical Tyranny, practised without all measure in that Country, but with great freedom of conscience hear the Word of God continually preached, and the Sacraments of our Saviour Christ purely and duly, ministered without all dregs of Popery or Superstition of man's invention, to the intent that you being with others refreshed for a space, and more strongly fortified, may be also with others more ready and willing to lay down your lives at God's appointment; for that is the chiefest grace of God, and greatest perfection, to sight even unto blood under Christ's Banner, and with him to give our lives. Pag. 225. But if you will thus flee (Beloved in the Lord) you must not choose unto yourselves places, according as you fancy, as many of us, who have left our Country have done, dwelling in Popish places among the enemies of God in the midst of impiety; some in France, as in Paris, Orleans, Rouen; some in Italy, as in Rome, Venice, Milan, which persons in fleeing from their Queen, run to the Pope, fearing the danger of their bodies, seek where they may poison their souls, thinking by this means to be less suspected of jezebel, show themselves afraid and ashamed of the Gospel, which in times past they have stoutly professed. And lest they should be thought favourers of Christ, have purposely ridden by the Churches and Congregations of his Servants, their Brethren, neither minded to comfort others there, nor to be comforted themselves; wherein they have showed the coldness of their zeal towards Religion, and given no small occasion of slander to the Word of God, which they seemed to profess. Pag. 226. — This manner of fleeing then in ungodly, etc. Neither is it enough to keep you out of the Dominions of Antichrist, and to place yourselves in corners, you may be quiet and at ease, and not burdened with the charges of the poor, thinking it sufficient if you have a little exercise in your houses in reading a Chapter or two of the Scriptures, and then will be counted zealous persons, and great Gospelers; No Brethren, and S●sters, this is not the way to show yourselves manful soldiers of Christ, except you resort where his Banner is displayed, Pag. 227. and his Standard set up, where the Assembly of your Brothers is, and his Word openly preached, and Sacraments faithfully ministered; for otherwise what may a man judge, but that such either disdain the company of their poor Brethren, whom they ought by all means to help and comfort, according to that power that God hath given them for that end only, and not for their own ease; or else that they have not that zeal to the House of God, the Assembly of his Servants, and to the spiritual gifts and graces (which God hath promised to pour upon the diligent hearers of his Word) as was in David, who desired, being a King, Psal. 84. Rather to be a doorkeeper in the House of God, then to dwell in the tents of the ungodly, lamenting nothing so much the injuries done to him by his Son Absalon (which were not small) as that he was deprived of the comfortable exercises in the Tabernacle of the Lord, which then was in Zion. Neither doth there appear in such persons that greedy desire (whereof Isaiah makes mention) which ought to be in the Professors of the Gospel, Pag. 228. Isa. 2. who never would cease or rest, till they should climb up to the Lords hill, meaning the Church of Christ, saying one to another, Let us ascend to the hill of the Lord, to the house of the God of jacob, and he will teach us his ways, and we shall walk in his footsteps; for the Law shall come forth of Zion, and the Word of the Lord from jerusalem. Which zeal the Prophet doth not mention in vain, but to show what a thirst and earnest desire should be in true Christians, and how the same appeareth in seeking and resorting to those places, where it is set forth in greatest abundance and perfection, as was after Christ's Ascension in jerusalem. And as that zeal showed them to be of Christ, by the like must we be judged Christians also, that if we flee for Christ, the places whereunto we flee, may bear witness for what cause we are fled. Pag. 229. Neither is it a sufficient excuse which many allege, that they believe to be saved by Christ, that they have sufficient knowledge of their duty, and the rest they can supply by their own diligence. I dare say their faith is not so much, but they had need to desire with the Apostles, Lord, increase our f●ith. And if they will so confess, why do they forsake the chiefest means that God hath ordained, which is the open Congregations of his people, where his Word, the fountain of Faith, is most purely preached, and where the godly Examples of others may be a sharper spur to prick them forward; and as for the knowledge and diligence of such, there may be no buckler to defend their doings; for if they have those gifts whereof they boast, where may they better bestow them then in the Church of God? except they will say they are born to themselves, and have the gifts of God, which he would have common to others, applied to their own private fancy, which is to lap them up in a clout, and not to put them forth to the vantage of the owner, as did the unprofitable Servant, Pag. 230. and as do all they to whom God hath given either learning, counsel, or worldly substance, who either for the strength of Cities, pleasantness of the air, traffic, or merchandise, or for any other worldly respect or policy do absent themselves from the Congregation and company of their poor Brethren, where Christ hath advanced his Standard, and blown his Trumpet. If God then give you not strength at the first to stand in his Profession to the death, nor that you cannot be quiet in conscience, abiding in your Country, you see how his mercy hath given you liberty to kill, and what places he hath appointed you to flee unto, that is, where you may do good to yourselves and others, where ye may be free from Superstition and Idolatry, where your faith may be increased and not diminished, and yourselves strengthened, and confirmed, and more strongly armed. But if you in tarrying will neither stand manfully to Christ your Master, but betray him, doing as the Papists do; nor yet with thanks use this remedy, that God hath granted to our infirmity, to resort to his Churches, godlily instituted, what answer shall ye be able to make to his Majesty, when he shall call for an account of your doings? How shall you avoid his wrathful indignation, now ready to be poured upon his enemies?— For in taking part with their impiety, you must be partakers of their Cup likewise. Neither is this any new or hard Doctrine, that may exceed your capacity, but may rather be termed your A. B. C. and first Principles, wherein none ought to be ignorant. That if we will be Christ's Scholars, we must learn to bear his Cross, and to follow him, not to cast it off our shoulders with the enemies, and run from him.— Be no more deceived in so plain a matter. Pag. 233. If the Lord be God, follow him, if B●al be God, go after him.— Let not the example of any lead you into error, for men are but mortal. Trust in the Lord, for he is a sure rock.— Trust not your own shifts, for they will deceive you. Mark the end of others, and in time be warned. These Lessons are hard to the flesh, but ea●●e to the spirit. The way of the Lord is a straight path, but most faithful, sure and comfortable.— From Geneva this first of jan. An. 1558. Goose. john Goose (burnt in England An. 1473.) being pressed by the Sheriff of L●ndon to recant, Clarks Martyrology pag. 57 and so deliver himself from death, answered, That for his Religion he was at a pass, and neither could nor would recant the same. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 939. When the Sheriff gave him some meat, of which he did eat heartily, he said to the standers by, I eat now a good and competent Dinner, for I shall pass a sharp shower, before I go to Supper. Gordius. Fox. Vol. 1. pag. 117. When a solemn Feast was celebrated in Caesarea, in honour to Mars, Gordius a Citizen thereof, who had been a Centurion, and had chosen exile for sometime in the heat of Persecution, left the Desert wherein he lived in exile, and got him up into the chief place of the Theatre, and with a loud voice cried out, Behold, I am found of them that sought me not, and to those that asked not for me, have I openly appeared. The Sheriff ask him, who he was, from whence he came, and for what he came thither; I am come (said he) to publish, that I set nothing by your desires against the Christian Religion, but that I profess Jesus Christ to be my hope and safety. The Sheriff threatening him with all kind of torments; It would be to me a damage (said he) if I should not endure divers torments for Christ's Cause. When he was tormented, he lifted up his eyes to Heaven, saying, The Lord is my helper, I will not fear the thing that man can do unto me; I will learn no evil, for thou Lord art with me. He blamed the Tormentors if they favoured him at all. The Sheriff promising great things, if he would deny Christ; It lieth not in you (said he) to place any in Authority, which be worthy to have a place in Heaven. When he was led out of the City to be burnt, many with tears begged him to save himself, but he said, Weep not, I beseech you, for me, but rather for those that bring us to the fire, and thereby purchase Hell fire to themselves. Truly I am ready for the Name of Christ to suffer a thousand deaths, if need were. Some persuading him to deny Christ with his tongue, and to keep his Conscience to himself: My tongue (said he) which by the goodness of God I have, cannot be brought to deny the Author and giver of it; for with the heart we believe unto righteousness, and with the mouth we confess unto salvation. Gorgius. When the Tyrant offered Gorgius promotion: Ward, pag. 141. Have ye any thing (said he) equal to, or more worthy than the Kingdom of Heaven. Gonzalve. Mr. john Gonzalve a famous Preacher in Sevil, Fox, Vol. 3. cont. pag. 12. was often observed in all his Sermons to aim at this mark, To deliver men's minds from that blind conceit of meriting by works, that so way might be made for justification only by saith in Christ Jesus, and deeply to engraft in them the knowledge of the sole merit of his plenary satisfaction. When he was led to the place of his Martyrdom, he never showed the least sign of his being dismayed, Pag. 13. but chose with great constancy and courage of heart standing above all the people, to whom he had formerly preached and delivered the pattern of sound doctrine, he began with a loud voice to recite the Psalm, which begins thus, O Lord, Psa. 28.1. my Rock, be not thou silent to me, etc. He changed not his countenance upon the Scaffold, though they had gagged him there, because he comforted and freely exhorted one of his Sisters to be constant. When the time was come that those which should be burned were brought to the place of Execution, they were every one commanded to recite the Articles of their belief; which they willingly did: but when they came to the Article, I believe the holy Catholic Church, they were bid to add the word Roman, but they were silent. Then did the Monks and Friars importune Gonzalve's Sisters, etc. to repeat the word Roman, who answered, They would if they might hear Gonzalve pronounce it. He being ungagged, the first word he spoke was, That they should be of good courage, and not to add one word more than what they had recited. Grange. Fox, Vol. 3. Com. pag. 39 The Bishop of Arres telling Mr. Peregrine de la Grange, that he was sorry to see him in that condition in Prison. Sir (said he) as for the base estate in which you now see me, God hath so comforted me therein with his grace, that I do without any great difficulty patiently suffer what he hath pleased to lay upon me; yea I praise and bless his Name, that he hath balanced the weight of my afflictions, according to the strength which he hath given me, so as I sink not under the burden; for as my sufferings in Christ abound, he causeth his consolations by Christ to abound in me also. 2 Cor. 1.3 It is usual (said the Bishop) with such as you are to glory in this kind of speech; for as soon as any afflictions do befall you, you by and by style them the sufferings of Christ; and if any of you be put to death, than it is for God's truth: but when things are laid to the touchstone, the matter is nothing so, nor so. Sir (said Mr. Grange) if your meaning be of such as have died for the Doctrine, for which I am bound with this Chain, and thus fettered with Irons, I doubt not but they have given such a reason of their Faith, that whosoever shall read their Answers, and weigh the same without partiality, must needs judge as we do. And for my own part, I am ready to make it good, 1 Tim. 6.3. Deut. 12.32. That the Doctrine I now hold and teach, is according to godliness, taken out of the pure Fountains of the holy Scriptures, without adding thereto, diminishing or varying any way therefrom. We read (said the Bishop) that in all times men have been wont to shelter themselves under the title of God's Word, even the old Heretics, etc. I am not ignorant hereof (said Mr. Grange) in regard that Satan knows how to transform himself into an Angel of light, thereby to establish his delusions, causing darkness to be taken for light: But the Holy Ghost, who is the Spirit of truth, hath in such wise discovered his juggle, that none are deluded thereby, but those who at noon day close their eyes that they may not behold the light. Do you think (said the Bishop) that the Holy Ghost hath given you such an illumination, that the truth should only be revealed to you, and to none other. God forbid Sir (said Mr. Grange) I should have any such thought. I am not of the mind of those Dreamers, who brag of their having particular Revelations of the Holy Spirit, but I speak of an ordinary and general Revelation, such as is taught us out of the Bible, etc. I am neither Calvinist nor Papist. I am a Christian; and what I hold concerning Religion is taken out of Christ's Doctrine, who is the only Doctor of his Church. What Calvin hath taught conformable to the Word of God, I am of the same mind with him. And whereas you call your Religion the Old Religion, and ours the New, it troubles me not at all; since the Father of Lie hath long since forged the same, to disgrace the Truth, etc.— See pag. 39, 40, 41, 42. In his dispute with the Bishop concerning the Real Presence, etc. We may see what holy boldness mixed with meekness the Lord had endued this holy Servant of his with. When the Provost gave him and Monsieur de Br●z (of whom before) notice, that they should die that day, they magnified God for his goodness, and gave the Provost thanks for the good news, which he had brought them. Monsieur la Grange going to the rest of the Prisoners, Pag. 43. said, I am this day to die for the Truth, and then the heavenly inheritance is prepared for me. My name is written in the Book of Life, Phil. 4. ●. Rom. 11.29. never to be blotted out, because the gifts and calling of God are without repentance.— He called for a Brush to brush his Hat and Cloak, causing his Shoes to be blacked; for now (said he) I am bidden to the marriage of the Lamb, where I am to feast with him for ever and ever. Being asked, Whether he meant to suffer with those Shackles on his heels? I would I might (said he) yea and that they would bury them with me to, that they might manifest the inhumanity of my adversaries. He told his friends, he felt such joy of the Holy Ghost in his heart, that he could not with tongue express; adding, that God showed him a thousand times more favour by taking him after this manner out of this transitory life, then if he had let him die in his bed by sickness; for now I shall die (said he) enjoying the benefit of all the powers of my soul, praying the Lord to have mercy on me. Monsieur la Grange and de Brez were sentenced to be hanged for administering the Lords Supper against an express charge by the King given them to the contrary. When la Grange was upon the Ladder, he protested with a loud voice, that he died only for preaching to the people the pure truth of God, taking Heaven and Earth to witness the same with him. Gratwick. Mr. Stephen Gratwick, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 790. seeing the Bishops that sat upon to laugh, said unto them, Why do ye laugh? Are ye confederate together for my blood, and therein triumph? You have more cause to look weightily upon the matter; for I stand here before you upon life and death. But you declare yourselves what you are. You are lapped in Lamb's apparel, but you are bend to have my blood.— Seeing you will have my blood, Pag. 792. let me say a little more for myself: On Sunday last you preached this Truth, If any man think himself Religious, and bridleth not his tongue, the same man's Religion is vain: And yet in the mean time you seduced your tongue to slander us poor Prisoners there present in Iron hands, burdening us with the names of Arrians, Herodians, Anabaptists, Sacramentarians, Pelagians: And when we stood up to purge ourselves thereof, you said, You would cut out our tongues, and cause us to be pulled out of the Church by violence. But there you gave yourself a shrewd blow, etc.— Being asked by the Bishop of Winchester if he would recant, he said, My faith is grounded more steadfastly then to change in a moment. It is no process of time can alter me, unless my faith were as the waves of the Sea. When he was condemned, he desired God with a loud voice, That he would not lay his blood to their charge if it were his good will. Green. Fox. Vol. 3. pag 622. Mr. Bartlet Green wrote in Mr. Bar●r●m calthrop's Book a little before his death, thus.— Two things have very much troubled me whilst I was in the Temple, Pride and Gluttony, which under the colour of Glory and good Fellowship, drew me almost from God.— Forsomuch as vainglory is so subtle an adversary, that almost it woundeth deadly, ere ever a man can perceive himself to be smitten, therefore we ought so much the rather by continual prayer to labour for humbleness of mind. Gluttony begins under a charitable pretence of love and society, and hath in it most uncharitableness.— Let us therefore watch and be sober; for our adversary the Devil walketh about like a roaring Lion, seeking whom he may devour. Vale (mi Bartrame) & mei memineris, ut semper simillimi efficiamur. Vale, etc. Farewell (my Bartram) and remember me, that we may be always like, Farewell at Newgate I●n. 20. A. 1556. Pag. 623. In his Letter to Mr. Philpot.— Being accused that I spoke against the Real Presence, and the Sacrifice of the Mass, and that I affirmed that their Church was the Church of Antichrist: I confessed it, and that I would continue therein, though not maintain it by learning, my conscience being satisfied in the truth, which is sufficient to my salvation.— I told Mr. Welch, Forasmuch as it pleaseth you to use me so familiarly (for he behaved himself towards me, as though I had been his equal) I shall open my mind freely to you. I consider my youth, lack of wit and learning, which would God it were but a little under the opinion that some men have of me: But God is not bound to time, wit, or knowledge, but rather chooseth the weak things of the world to confound the mighty, Rom. 9 neither can men appoint bounds to God's mercy; For I will show mercy on whom I will show mercy. There is no respect of persons with God, whether he be old or young, rich or poor, wise or foolish, Fisher or Basketmaker. God giveth knowledge of his truth, james 1. through his free grace, to whom he list.— Now I am brought hither before a great many Bishops and learned men to be made a fool and a laughingstock, but I weigh it not a rush; for God knoweth that my whole study is to please him: Besides that, I care not for man's pleasure or displeasure. As he was going to Newgate (after he was condemned) there met with him two Gentlemen, Pag. 627. that seeing him burst out into tears, to whom Mr. Green said, Ah my friends, is this your comfort you are come to give me? Must I who needed to have comfort ministered to me, become now a comforter of you?— When he was going to, and was at the Stake, he repeated this Distich, Christ Deus, sine te spes est mihi nulla salutis, Te duce vera sequir, te duce falsa nego In English thus. O Christ my God, sure hope of health, Besides thee I have none, The truth I love and falsehood hate, By thee my guide alone. These Verses he wrote in a Book of Mr. Hussey's of the Temple. Behold thyself by me, Such one was I as thou, And thou in time shall ●e, Even dust as I am now! Bartlet Green. Pag. 628. In his Letter to his Friends of the Temple.— Very Friends are they, which are knit together by the knot of Charity. Charity doth not decay, but increase in them that die faithfully.— If thy Friend be out of sight, is thy friendship ended?— If he be carried into Heaven, is Charity hindered thereby? The Fathers of the Primitive Church gave thanks for their Friends that died in the Faith, to prove that Charity died not with Death.— What saith Saint Paul, We are members of his body, of his flesh, and of his blood; we are members one of another. Is the hand or Arm, Foot or Leg a member, when it is dissevered from the body? What is it that couples us, but love? When all things shall fail, love faileth never. Hope hath his end, when we get that we hoped for. Faith is finished in Heaven. Love endureth for ever: Spiritual love, I mean; for carnal love, when that which we love is lost, doth perish with the flesh. Neither was that ever but fleshly love, which by distance of place or severing of bodies, is parted as●nder.— If we keep Christ's commandment in loving each other, as he loved us, than should our love be everlasting. This friendship Paul felt, when it moved him to say, That neither length nor breadth, neither height nor depth, should sever him from the love of Christ Now you may say, Why writeth thou this? Truly to the end, that if our friendship be stable, you may accomplish this the last request of your Friend, etc.— Mr. Fleetwood, I beseech you remember Witt●ance and Cook, two singular men among common Prisoners. Mr. Fernham, Mr. Fell, and Mr. Hussey (as I hope) will dispatch Palmer and Richardson, with his companions. I pray you Mr. Palmer think on I. Grove, an honest poor man, Tra●ford and Rice Apprice his Accomplices. My Cousin Thomas Witton (a Scrivener in Lombardstreet) hath promised to further their delivery, at the least he can instruct you which way to work. I doubt not but that Mr. Bowyer will labour for Goodwife Cooper (for she is worthy to be holpen) and B●rard the Frenchman. There be also divers others well-disposed men, whose deliverance if you will not labour for, yet I humbly beseech you to seek their relief.— For these and all other poor Prisoners I make this my humble suit and prayer to you all my especial good Friends, beseeching you by all the bonds of amity, in the bowels of mercy, to tender the cases of miserable Captives. Help to cloth Christ, visit the Afflicted, comfort the Sorrowful, and relieve the Needy. The very God of peace guide your hearts to have mercy on the poor, and love faithfully together. Amen. This present Monday when I look to die, and to live for ever. Yours for ever, Bartlet Green. In his Letter to Mrs. Elizabeth Clark.— I shall not cease with continual Prayer to labour for you, desiring Almighty God to increase that which he hath long since begun in you, of sober life, and earnest zeal towards his Region, 1 Tim. 5. She that is a true Widow and friendless, putteth her trust in God, continuing day and night in supplication and prayer; but she that liveth in pleasure is dead, even yet alive. And verily she is a true widow, that hath married Christ, forsaking the vanities of the world, and the lusts of the flesh; 1 Cor. 7. For as the married woman careth how to love and serve and please her Husband, so ought the Widow to give all her soul and heart, thoughts and words, studies and labours, faithfully to love God, virtuously to bring up her children and household, and diligently to provide for the poor and oppressed.— Not to live in pleasure, but to watch unto prayer, steadfastly laying up all her trust in God. Luke 2. Of Anna it is written, That she never went out of the Temple, but served God with fasting and prayer night and day,— to ●ring up her children and household godly in the nurture and information of the Lord. Ephes. 6. — There are most manifest examples against Parents for the offences of Children. chose how greatly might Hanna rejoice over Samu●l her Son, whom she had brought up in the House of the Lord? Pag. 629. — But above all Widows, thrice blessed was the happy Mother of the seven Sons, that so had instructed them in the fear of the Lord, that by no torments they would s●rink from the love of his Truth?— To be liberal to Strangers, 1 Tim. 5. to wash the Saints feet, and minister to them in their adversity. Saint Paul (as though they only had been therefore meet) appointed only Widows to minister to the Saints, and to gather for the poor.— Alas! That Christ so hungreth, and no man will feed him; is so sore oppressed with thirst, and no man will give him drink; destitute of all lodging, and not relieved; sick, and not visitted; imprisoned, and not seen. In times past men could bestow large sums of money on Copes, Vestments, and Ornaments of the Church: why rather follow we not St. Ambrose his example, who sold the same for the relief of the poor; or Chrysostom's command, who willed first to deck and garnish the living Temple of God? But alas! such is the wickedness of these our last days, that nothing moves us, neither the pure Doctrine, the godliness of life, nor good examples of the Ancient Fathers. If in any thing they erred, that will their charitable children embrace, publish and maintain with sword, faggot and fire: but all in vain they strive against the stream; for though in despite of the Truth, by force of the ears of crafty persuasion, they may bring themselves into the haven of Hell; yet can they not make all men believe that the banks move while the ship saileth, nor ever shall be able to turn the direct course of the stream of God's Truth.— In another Letter.— Better is the day of death (saith Solom●n) than the day of birth.— Happy are the dead that die in the Lord. Man of woman is born in travel to live in misery; man through Christ doth die in joy to live in felicity: he is born to die, and dieth to live. Straight as he cometh into the world with cries he uttereth his miserable estate; straight as he departeth with Songs he praiseth God for ever. Scarce yet in his cradle, three deadly enemies assault him, after death no Adversary may annoy him; whilst he is here he displeaseth God, when he is dead, he fulfilleth his will.— Here he dieth every hour, there he liveth continually; here is sin, there is righteousness; here is time, there is eternity; here is hearted, there is love; here is pain, there is pleasure▪ here is misery, there is felicity.— Seek therefore the things that are above, etc. Grey. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 13, 14, etc. The Lady jane Grey, Daughter to the Duke of Suffolk, whose Mother was Daughter to Mary, King Henry the Second Sister, having personated a Queen for ten days, and upon Queen M●ries Proclamation being imprisoned, the Queen sent Mr. Fecknam to her, two days before her death to commune with her, and reduce her from the Doctrine of Christ to Queen Mary's Religion. Pag. 31. The effect which communication here followeth. Madam (said Fecknam) I lament your heavy Case, etc. You are welcome unto me Sir (said the Lady jane) if you come to give me Christian Exhortation. And as for my heavy Case (I thank God) I do so little lament it, that rather I account the same for a more manifest Declaration of God's favour towards me, than ever he showed me at any time before; and therefore there is no cause, why either you or other which bear me good will, should lament or be grieved with this my Case, being a thing so profitable for my souls health. I am here come (said he) from the Queen and Council to instruct you in the true Doctrine of the right Faith, etc. I heartily thank the Queen (said she) who is not unmindful of her humble Subject, and I hope no less that you will do your duty therein, both truly and faithfully. What is then (said he) requried of a Christian? To believe (said she) in God the Father, Son, and holy Ghost, three Persons and one God. What (said he) is there nothing else required or looked for in a Christian, but to believe in him? Pag. 32. Yes (said she) We must love him with all our heart, with all our soul, and with all our mind, and our Neighbour as ourselves. Why then (said he) faith justifies not, and saveth not. Yes verily (said she) Faith (as Paul saith) only justifies. Why (said he) St. Paul saith, If I have all faith without love, it is nothing. True (said she) for how can I love him, whom I trust not? or how can I trust him, whom I love not? Faith and love go both together, and yet love is comprehended in faith. How must we love our Neighbour? (said he) To love our Neighbour (said she) is to feed the hungry, to clothe the naked, and give drink to the thirsty, and to do to him as we would do to ourselves. Why then (said he) it is necessary unto salvation to do good works also, and it is not sufficient only to believe. It is meet (said she) that a Christian in token that he follows his Master Christ to do good works, yet may we not say, that they profit to our salvation; for when we have done all, we be unprofitable servants, and faith only in Christ's blood saveth us. How many Sacraments are there? (said he) Two (said she) The one the Sacrament of Baptism, by which I am washed with water, and regenerated by the Spirit, and that washing is a token to me that I am a child of God: the other the Sacrament of the Lords S●pper, which offered to me is a sure seal and testimony that I am by the blood of Christ, which he shed for me on the Cross, made partaker of the everlasting Kingdom. There are seven (said he) By what Scripture (said she) find you that. Well (said he) we will talk of that hereafter. What do you receive in the Sacrament of the Lords Supper? Do you not receive the very body and blood of Christ? No surely (said she) I believe that the Supper I neither receive flesh nor blood, but Bread and Wine, which Bread, when it is broken, and Wine, when it is drunken, putteth me in remembrance, how that for my sins, the Body of Christ was broken, and his Blood shed on the Cross, and with that Bread and Wine I receive the Benefits that come by the breaking of his Body, and shedding of his Blood for our sins on the Cross. Why (said he) doth not Christ speak these words, Take, eat, this is my Body? Require you any plainer words? Doth he not say it is his Body? I grant he saith so (said she) and so he saith, I am the Vine, I am the Door, and yet is not the Vine, or the Door. Doth nor St. Paul say, Rom. 4. He calleth things that are not, as though they were. — When Fecknam took his leave, he said, That he was sorry for her; for I am sure (said he) that we two shall never meet. True it is (said she) that we shall never meet, except God turn your heart; for I am assured, unless you repent and turn to God, you are in an evil case, and I pray God in the Bowels of mercy, to send you his Holy Spirit.— In her Letter to her Father.— Father, although it hath pleased God to hasten my death by you, by whom my life should rather have been lengthened; yet can I so patiently take it, as I yield to God more hearty thanks for shortening my woeful days, then if all the world had been given unto my Possessions with life lengthened at my own will. Pag. 33. — Although my death at hand to you seem right woeful, to me there is nothing that can be more welcome, then from this vale of misery to aspire to that heavenly Throne of all joy and pleasure, with Christ our Saviour; in whose steadfast faith (if it be lawful for the Daughter so to write to the Father) the Lord that hitherto hath strengthened you, so continue you, that at last we may meet in Heaven, with the Father, the Son, and the holy Ghost. In her Letter to Mr. Harding (formerly her Father's Chaplain, and a zealous Preacher of the Gospel, but then tnrned Papist) she writes thus.— As oft as I call to mind the dreadful and fearful saying of God, Luke 9 That he which layeth hold on the Plough, and looketh back, is not meet for the Kingdom of Heaven; and on the other side, the comfortable words of our Saviour Christ to those, That forsaking themselves do follow him. I cannot but marvel at thee, and lament thy Case, who seemed sometime to be the lively Member of Christ, but now the deformed Imp of the Devil; sometime the beautiful Temple of God, but now the filthy and stinking Kennel of Satan; sometime the unspotted Spouse of Christ, but now the shameless Paramour of Antichrist; sometime my faithful Brother, but now a Stranger and an Apostate; sometime a stout Christian Soldier, but now a cowardly Runaway: yea, when I consider these things, I cannot but cry out upon thee, thou seed of Satan, and not of judah, whom the Devil hath deceived, the world hath beguiled, and the desire of life subverted, and made thee of a Christian an Infidel. Wherefore hast thou taken the Testament of the Lord in thy mouth? Wherefore hast thou instructed others to be strong in Christ, when thou thyself dost now so shamefully shrink, and so horribly abuse the Testament and the Law of the Lord? When thou thyself preachest not to steal, yet most abominably stealest, not from men, but from God, and committing most heinous sacrilege, robbest Christ thy Lord of his right members, thy body and soul, and choosest rather to live miserably with shame to the world, then to die, and gloriously with honour reign with Christ, in whom, even in death is life? Why dost thou now show thyself most weak, when indeed thou oughtest to be most strong? The strength of a fort is unknown before the assault, but thou yieldest thy hold, before any battery be made. Oh wretched and unhappy man, what art thou but dust and ashes? and wilt thou resist thy Maker, that fashioned and framed thee? Wilt thou now forsake him that called thee from the custome-gathering of the Romish Antichristians, to be an Ambassador and Messenger of his Word? He that first framed thee, and since thy first Creation and Birth preserved thee, nourished and kept thee, yea and inspired thee with the Spirit of Knowledge (I cannot say of grace) shall he not now possess thee? Darest thou deliver up thyself to another, being not thine own, but his? How canst thou, having knowledge, or how darest thou neglect the law of the Lord, and follow the vain traditions of men; and whereas thou hast been a public Professor of his Name, become now a Defacer of his glory? Wilt thou refuse the true God, and worship the invention of man, the golden Calf, the whore of B●bylon, the Romish Religion, the abominable Idol, the most wicked Mass? Wilt thou torment again, rent and tear the most precious Body of our Saviour Christ with thy bodily and fleshly teeth? Wilt thou take upon thee to offer up any Sacrifice unto God for our sins, considering that Christ ●ff●red up himself (as P●u● saith) u●●n the Cross a live●y Sacrifice once for all. Can neither the punishment of the Israelites, (which for their Idolatry they oft received) nor the terrible threatenings of the Prophets, nor the curse of Gods own mouth, fear thee to honour any other god than him? Dost thou so regard him that spared not his dear and onely-Son for thee, so diminishing, yea utterly extinguishing his glory, that thou wilt attribute the praise and honour due unto him to the Idols, which have mouths, and speak not, eyes and see not, ears and hear not, whitehall perish with them that made thee. Pag. ●4. — Confounded be all they that worship them.— Christ offereth up himself once for all, and wilt thou offer him up again daily at thy pleasure? But thou wilt say, thou dost it for a good intent. Oh sink of sin! Oh child of perdition! Dost thou dream therein of a good intent, where thy conscience bears thee witness of God's threatened wrath against thee? How did Saul, how for that he disobeyed the Word of the Lord for a good intent, was thrown from his worldly and temporal Kingdom?— Wilt thou for a good intent dishonour God, offend thy Brother, and danger thy soul, wherefore Christ hath shed his most precious blood? Wilt thou for a good intent pluck Christ out of Heaven, and make his death void, and deface the triumph of his Cross by offering him up daily? Wilt thou either for fear of death, or hope of life, deny and refuse thy God, who enriched thy poverty, healed thy infirmity, and yielded to thee his Victory, if thou couldst have kept it? Dost thou not consider, that the thread of thy life hangeth upon him that made thee, who can (as he please) either twine it harder to last the longer, or untwine it again to break the sooner? Dost thou not then remember the saying of David, Psa. 104. When thou tookest away thy Spirit (O Lord) from men, they die, and are tur●●d again to their dust; but when thou lettest thy breath 〈◊〉 forth, they shall be made, and thou shalt renew the face of the earth. Remember the saying of Christ in his Gospel; Mat. 10. Whosoever seeketh to save his life shall lose it, but whosoever will lose his life for my sake shall find it. Again, Whosoever loveth Father or Mother above me, is not meet for me. He th●t will follow me, let him forsake himself, and take up his Cross, and follow me. What Cross? the Cross of infamy and shame, of misery and po●●●●● of affliction and persecution for his Names 〈◊〉 Let the oft falling of these Heavenly Showers 〈◊〉 thy stony heart. Let the two-edged sword of God's holy Word sheer asunder the sinews of worldly respects, even to the marrow of thy carnal heart, that thou mayest once again forsake thyself, and embrace Christ, and like as good subjects will not refuse to hazard all in the defence of their earthly and temporal Governor, so fly not like a white-livered Milksop from the standing wherein thy chief Captain Christ hath hath set thee in array of this life. Psal. 16. Fight manfully, come life, come death, the Quarrel is Gods, and undoubtedly the Victory is ours. But thou wilt say, I will not break unity; what? not the unity of Satan and his members? not the unity of darkness? not the agreement of Antichrist and his adherents?— Tully saith of Amity, Amicitia non est nisi inter bonos. But mark my Friends; yea Friend, if thou be'st not God's enemy, there is no unity, but where Christ knitteth the knot among such as he is.— The agreement of all men is not an unity, but a conspiracy. Thou hast heard some threatenings against those that love themselves above Christ, and against those that deny him for love of life; saith he not, He that denies me before men, Mat. 10. I will deny him before my Father in Heaven. And to the same effect writeth Paul, It is impossible that they which were once enlightened, and have tasted of the Heavenly Gift, and were partakers of the Holy Ghost, and have tasted of the good Word of God, if they fall away, etc. should be renewed again by repentance. Heb. 10. And again, If we shall willingly sin after we have received the knowledge of his Truth, there is no oblation left for sin, but the terrible expectation of judgement and fire, which shall devour the adversaries. Thus Paul writeth, and this thou readest, 〈◊〉 dost thou not quake and tremble? Well, if these terrible and thundering threatenings cannot stir thee to cleave unto Christ, and forsake the world; yet let the sweet consolation and promises of the Scriptures, let the example of Christ and his Apostles, holy Martyrs and Confessors encourage thee to take faster hold of Christ. Mat. 5. Harken what he saith, Blessed are you when men revi●e you, and persecute you for my sake: Rejoice and be glad, for great is your reward in Heave●; For so persecuted they the Prophets, that were before you. Hear what Isaiah saith, Isa. 51. Fear not the curse of men, be not afraid of their blasphemies; for worms and moths shall eat them up like cloth and wool, but my righteousness shall endure for ever, and my saving health from generation to generation. What art thou then (saith he) that fearest a mortal man, the child of man, which fadeth away like the flower, and forgetteth the Lord that made thee, that spread out the Heavens, and laid the foundation of the earth? I am the Lord thy God, that maketh the sea to rage, and be still, whose Name is the Lord of Hosts: I shall put my Word in thy mouth, and defend thee with the turning of the hand. Christ also saith unto his Disciples, Luke 12. Mat. 13. They shall accuse you, and bring you before Princes and Rulers for my Names sake; and some of you they shall persecute and kill; but fear you not, and care you not what you shall say; for it is ●e Spirit of your Father that speaketh within you, even the hairs of your head are all numbered. Pag. 35. Lay up treasures for yourselves, where no thief cometh, nor moth corrupteth. Fear not them that kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul; Mat. 10. john 15. but fear him that hath power to destroy both soul and body. If ye were not of the world, the world would love his own; but because ye are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you. Let these and such like consolations taken out of Scriptures, strengthen you to God-ward. Let not the examples of holy men and women go out of your mind, as Daniel and the rest of the Prophets, of the three children, etc.— Return, return again into Christ's war, and as becometh faithful warrior, Eph. 6. put on that armour that St. Pau● teacheth to be most necessary for a Christian man▪ And above all things take unto you the shield o● Faith, and be you provoked by Christ's own example, to withstand the Devil, to forsake the world, and to become a true and faithful member of his mystical Body, who spared not his own Body for our sins. Throw down yourself with the fear of his threatened vengeance for this so great and heinous offence of Apostasy, and comfort yourself on the other hand with the mercy, blood, and promise of him, who is ready to turn unto you, whensoever you turn unto him. Disdain not to come again with the lost Son, seeing you have so wandered with him. Be not ashamed to turn again with him from the swill of Strangers to the delicate of your most benign and lov●ng Father, acknowledging that you have sinned both against Heaven and against Earth: Against Heaven, by staining the glorious Name of God, and causing his most sincere and pure Word to be evil spoken of through you: Against Earth, by offending so many of your weak Brethren, to whom you have been a stumbling block through your sudden sliding. Be not ashamed— to weep bitterly with Peter— to wash away the filth and mire of your offensive fall— to say with the Publican, Luke 18. Lord, be merciful to me a sinner. Remember the horrible History of julian of old, and the lamentable case of Spira of late, whose case (methinks) should be so green in your remembrance, that being a thing of our time, you should fear the like inconvenience, seeing you are fallen into the like offence. Last of all, 〈◊〉 the lively remembrance of the last Day be always before your eyes, remembering the terror that at that time shall befall the Runagates and Fugitives from Christ, who setting more by the world then by Heaven, more by their life then by him that gave them life, did shrink, yea fall away from him that forsook not them; and chose, the inestimable joys prepared for them, that fearing 〈◊〉 peril, nor dreading death, have manfully fought and victoriously triumphed over all power of darkness, over hell, death, and damnation, through their most renowned Captain Christ, who now stretcheth out his arms to receive you, ready to fall upon your neck, and kiss you, and to feast you with the dainties and delicates of his own precious blood; which undoubtedly, if it might stand with his determinate purpose, he would not let to shed again, rather than you shall be lost.— The night before she suffered, she sent unto her Sister, the Lady K●therine the New Testament in Greek, at the end whereof she wrote thus. I have sent you (good Sister) a Book, which although it be not outwardly trimmed with Gold, yet inwardly it is more worth than precious stones. It is the Book of the Law of the Lord. It is his Testament and last Will which he bequeathed unto us wretches, which shall lead you to the path of eternal joy; and if you with a good mind read it, and with an earnest mind do purpose to follow it, it shall bring you to an immortal and everlasting life. It shall teach you to live, and learn you to die. It shall win you more than you should have gained by the possession of your woeful Father's lands; for, as if God had prospered him, you should have inherited his lands: so if you ply diligently this Book, seeking to direct your life after it, you shall be an inheriter of such riches, as neither the covetous shall withdraw from you, nor the thief steal, nor the moth corrupt. Desire with David to understand the Law of the Lord God. Live still to die, that you by death may purchase eternal life. Trust not that the tenderness of your age shall lengthen your life: the young die (if God call) assoon as the old. Labour always to learn to die, defy the world, deny the Devil, and despise the flesh, and delight yourself only in the Lord. Be penitent for your sins, but yet despair not; be strong in faith, and yet presume not. Desire with St. Paul to be dissolved, and to be with Christ, with whom, even in death, there is life. Be like the good Servant, and even at midnight be waking, lest when death cometh, and stealeth upon you, as a thief in the night, you be with the evil Servant found sleeping, and least for lack of oil ye be found like the foolish women, and like him that had not on the Wedding Garment, and then ye be cast out from the Marriage. Rejoice in Christ, as I do. Follow the steps of your Master Christ, and take up your Cross. Lay your sins on his back, and always embrace him. And as concerning my death, rejoice as I do, that I shall be delivered of this corruption, and put on incorruption; for I am assured, that I shall for losing of a mortal life, win an immortal life, the which I pray God grant you, and send you of his grace to live in his fear, and to die in the true Christian Faith, from the which (in God's Name) I exhort you that you never swarve, neither for hope of life, nor fear of death; for if you will deny his truth for to lengthen your life, God will deny you, and yet shorten your days. And if you will cleave unto him, he will prolong your days to your comfort and his glory; to the which glory God bring me now, and you hereafter, when it shall please him to call you. Fare you well (good Sister) and put your only trust in God, who only must help you. In her Speech upon the Scaffold.— Good people, I am come hither to die, and by a Law I am condemned to the same. The Fact against the Queen's Highness was unlawful, and the consenting thereunto by me; but touching the procurement and desire thereof, I do wash my hands thereof in innocency before God and you, and therewith she wrung her hands. I pray you bear me witness, that I die a true Christian, and that I look to be saved by no other mean, but only by the mercy of God in the blood of his only Son Jesus Christ. I confess, when I did know the Word of God, I neglected the same, loved myself and the world, and therefore this plague is worthily happened to me for my sins; and yet I thank God of his goodness, that he hath thus given me a time and respite to repent; and now, good people, while I am alive, I pray you assist me with your Prayers.— In her Prayer.— Thou, O Lord, art the only Defender and Deliverer of those that put their trust in thee; and therefore I being defiled with sin, etc. overwhelmed with miseries, vexed with temptations, and grievously tormented. With the long imprisonment of this vile mass of clay, my sinful body, doth come unto thee (O merciful Saviour) craving thy mercy and help, who hast said, Thou wilt not suffer us to be tempted above our power.— O merciful God, consider my misery best known unto thee, and be thou unto me a strong Tower of defence. Suffer me not to be tempted above my power, but either be thou a Deliverer to me out of this great misery, or else give me grace patiently to bear thy heavy hand and sharp correction. It was thy right hand that delivered the people of Israel out of the hands of Pharaoh, who for the space of four hundred years did oppress them, and keep them in bondage. O deliver me sorrowful wretch! (for whom thy Son Christ shed his precious blood on the Cross) out of this miserable captivity and bondage. How long wilt thou be absent? for ever? O Lord, hast thou forgotten to be gracious, and shut up thy loving kindness in displeasure? Wilt thou be no more entreated? Is thy mercy clean gone for ever, and thy promise come utterly to an end for evermore? Why dost thou make so long tarrying? Shall I despair of thy mercy O God? far be that from me. I am thy workmanship, created in Christ Jesus; give me therefore grace to tarry thy leisure.— When the Handkerchief was tied about her eyes, she kneeling down, and feeling for the Block said, What shall I do? where is it? and being directed by one of the Standards by, she laid her head down upon the Block, and stretching forth her Body, said, Lord, into thy hands I commend my Spirit. Clark's second Vol. of Lives, p. 60, etc. In her troubles she writ the following Verse with a pin. Non aliena putes homini, quae obtingere possunt; Sors hodierna mihi, tunc erit illa tibi. In English thus, Think nothing strange which man cannot decline, My Lot's to day, to merren may le thine. Deo juvante, nil nocet livor malus: Et non juvante, nil juvat labor gravis. Post tenebras spero lucem. In English thus, If God protect me, malice cannot end me, If not, all I can do will not defend me. After dark night I hope for light. H. Haggar. He was persecuted for saying, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 44. (A. 1520.) that There should be a battle of Priests, and all the Priests should be slain: and that the Priests should a while rule, but they should all be destroyed for making of false gods.— That the men of the Church should be put down, and the false gods that they m●ke: and after that, they should know more, and then should be a merry world. Hale. When Thomas Hale was taken by an Alderman of Bristol and another, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 892. he said unto them, You have sought my blood these two years, and now much good do it you. He was burned A. 1557. for saying, The Sacrament of the Altar is an Idol. Hall. Nicholas Hall in his Answer to the first Article against him, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 381. granted himself a Christian man, and acknowledged the determinations of the holy Church, i. e. of the Congregation, or Body of Christ: but denied to call the Catholic and Apostolic Church his Mother, because he found not this Word, Mother, in the Scripture. To the second he said, That whereas before he held the Sacrament to be but only a token or remembrance of Christ's death, now he said, that There is neither token nor remembrance, becasue it is now misused, and clean turned from Christ's institution, etc. Hallewin. Harman. Fox, Vol. 3. cont. p. 7. When Cornelius Hallewin of Antwerp had received a sharp Letter, sent him from the Minister of the Flemish Church, upon the occasion of a recantation spread and falsely fathered upon Cornelius: the blood gushed out of his nose, he spread abroad his arms, and made pitiful out-cries. What to deny the Truth (said he) God forbid! O that the faithful should conceive so hardly of me! Good God, thou knowest I am innocent, nor have I this way offended. When he was condemned to die, the Margrave offered him, that he should die a more easy kind of death, if he would give ear to the Priests, which he had brought to him to Prison: No Sir (said he) God forbid I should do such a thing. Do ye with my body what ye will. As they bound him and Harman of Amsterdam Harman willed the Margrave to take heed what he did; for (said he) this will not go for payment in God's sight in bereaving us thus of our Lives. I wish you therefore to repent before it be too late. You cannot long continue this tyrannous course; for the Lord will shortly avenge it. A Cross being offered them, and a promise that they should be beheaded, and not burnt, if they would take it into their hands, they said, They would not give the least sign, that might be, of betraying the Truth, and that it was all one to them what death they were put to, so they died in and for the Lord. The punishment (they said) could last but for a while, but the glory to come was eternal. At the Stake Cornelius fell on his knees, praying God to forgive his enemies, who had sinned through ignorance. When the Margrave of Antwerp offered Halle●i● and Harmar mitigation of torments upon abjuation: Ward, pag. 157. We are resolved (said they) these momentary afflictions are not worthy that exceeding weight of glory, that shall be revealed. Hallingdale. Articles against john Hallingdale. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 856. — (3) That during the reign of King Edward, he did depart from his former Faith and Religion, and so doth continue, and determineth so to do, (as he saith) to his life's end. (4) That he hath divers times said, That the Faith, Religion, and Ecclesiastical Service, received, observed, and used now in this Realm is not good, but against God's command, etc. And that he will not in any wise conform himself to the same, ●ut speak, and think against it during his natural life. (5) That he absenteth himself continually from his Parish Church, etc. (6) That he will not have his Child by his will (as he saith) confirmed by the Bishop. Unto all which Articles he made this answer, that he confessed all, and every part to be true. He told B●nner, Rev l. 18. that the blood of the Prophets, and of the Saints, and of all that were slain upon the Earth, was found in the Babylonical Church, which is the Church where the Pope is head.— Because I will not come to your Babylonical Church, therefore you go about to condemn me. Being demanded whether he would recant, he answered, That he would continue, and persist in his Opinions to the death. When the Sentence was read, He openly thanked God, that he never came into the Church, since the abomination came into it. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 708. When William Hallywell and the twelve more (that were burnt in one Fire at Stratford the how near London) were condemned, and carried down thither to be burnt, they were divided into two parts, in two several Chambers: Thereupon the Sheriff came to the one part, and told them, That the other had recanted, and their lives therefore should be saved, willing and exhorting them to do the like, and not to cast away themselves: unto whom they answered, That their Faith was not built on man, but on Christ crucified: Then the Sheriff went to the other part, and said the like to them; but they answered as their Brethren had done before, That their Faith was not built on man, but on Christ and his Word. Hamelin. Fox, Vol. 3. cont. pag. 5. Mr. Philibert Hamelin of Tournay, refusing offers of escape out of Prison, said, I esteem it altogetder unleseeming for a man, that is called to preach God's Word unto others, to run away, and to break Prison, for fear of danger, but rather to maintain the Truth taught even in the midst of the flaming fire. After Sentence of death was passed upon him, he eat his meat as joyfully, as though he had been in no danger, speaking to them of the happiness of eternal life, evidencing that A good conscience is a continual feast. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 151. When he was apprehended, there was apprehended with him, his Host, whom he thought he had converted, but afterward he renounced Christ and his Word: Whereupon he said unto him, O unhappy, and more than miserable! Is it possible for you to be so foolish, as for the saving of a few days, which you have ●o ●●ve by the course of nature, so to start away, and deny the Truth? Know you therefore, that although you have by your folishness avoided the corporal fire, yet your life shall be never the longer; for you shall die before me, and God shall not give you the grace, that it shall be for his Cause, and you shall be an example to all Apostates. Immediately after, as he was going out of the Prison he was slain by two Gentlemen, that had a quarrel with him: whereof when Mr. Hamelin heard, he professed he knew of no such thing before, but spoke as pleased God to guide his tongue. And thereupon discoursed excellently of the providence of God, to the conversion of some present. When he was in Prison a Priest came in one Sabbath with all his furniture to say Mass: but Mr. Hamelin, when he saw him, pulled off his garments, etc. saying, Is it not enough for you to blaspheme God in Churches, but you must also pollute the Prison with your idolatry? Hamilton. Mr. Patrick Hamilton, The Eccles. Hist. of Scorl. p. 4. Brother's Son to james Hamilton, Earl of Arran, and Sister's Son to john Stuart, Duke of A●thai, hating the world, and the vanity thereof, left Scotland, and traveled into Germany, where he became intimate with Martin Luther, Philip Melancthon, Francis Lambert, and became an eminent Professor, the zeal of God's glory did eat him up, so that he could not choose, but he must return into his own Country to make known the Gospel. Articles objected against him. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 227. — That the Pope is Antichrist.— That the Pope's Laws be of no strength.— That he doubted, Whether all Children, departing immediately after their Baptism, are saved or condemned. At the place of Execution he gave his Servant Scot Hist. pag. 4. (who had been his Chamberlain a long time) his Gown, Coat, etc. saying, These will not profit in the fire, they will profit thee. After this, of me thou canst receive no commodity, except the example of my death, Pag. 6. which I pray thee bear in mind; for albeit it be bitter to the flesh, and fearful before men, yet it is the entrance unto eternal life, which none shall possess that denies Christ jesus before this wicked Generation. The fire being kindled, he cried with a loud voice, Lord jesus, receive my spirit. How long shall darkness overwhelm this Realm? And how long wilt thou suffer this tyranny of men? A Black Friar, called Campbel, who had pretended some love to the Gospel, cried out to him, Convert Heretic, call upon our Lady, say, Salve Regina, etc. His answer was, Depart and trouble me not, thou Messenger of Satan.— Wicked man, thou knowest the contrary, and the contrary to me thou hast confessed. I appeal thee before the tribunal seat of Christ jesus. Vol. 2. pag. 228. Mr. Fox saith, That he cited him to appear before the High God, as general Judge of all men, to answer to the innocency of his death, etc. between that and a certain day of the next Month, which he there named: and that the Friar died before the said day came, without remorse of conscience, that he had persecuted the innocent. He was burnt Febr. ult. A. 1527. Pag. 229. In his Treatise styled Patrick's places, by Mr. john Frith, who translated it out of Latin into English.— He that loveth God loveth his Neighbour. If a man say, 1 john 4. Rom. 13. Galat. 5. john 16. Pag. 230. Rom. 9 I love God, and yet hateth his Brother, is a Liar, etc. He that loveth his Neighbour as himself, keepeth all the Commandments of God.— He that hath faith loveth God. My Father loveth you, because you love me, and believe that I am come of God.— It is not in our power to keep any one of the Commandments of God.— But you will say, Wherefore doth God bid us do that which is impossible for us? I answer, To make thee know that thou art but evil, and that there is no remedy to save thee in thine own hand, and that thou mayest seek remedy at some other, etc.— The remedy is showed in the Gospel.— To believe God is to believe his Word, and to account what he saith true.— Faith is the gift of God.— Faith is not in our power. Pag. 231. — He that lacketh Faith cannot please God.— All that is done in Faith pleaseth God. Pag. 232. — He that believeth the Gospel shall be saved.— No manner of works make us righteous. Pag. 233. — He that thinks to be saved by his works, calleth himself Christ— Thou must do good works, but beware that thou do them not to deserve any good through them.— Mrs. Katherine Hamilton (Sister to Mr. Patrick) was also accused; See the Preface before the Eccles. Hist. of Scotland. and being questioned about works, she answered, That none was saved by his works. One thereupon speaking to her of the works of Congru● and Condigno, she answered, Work here, work there, what kind of working is all this? No works can save me, but Christ's. hamel. When Godfrey hamel was condemned for an Heretic: Fox, Vol. 2. pag 127. Nay (said he) not an Heretic, but an unprofitable Servant of jesus Christ. When the Hangman went about to strangle him, to diminish his punishment, he refused it, saying, That he would abide the Sentence, that the judges had given. Hankes. Mr. Thomas Hankes being asked by Bonner why he suffered his Child to be unchristened so long? Fox, Vol. 3 pag. 256. answered, Because we be bound to do nothing contrary to the Word of God. Being told, that Baptism is commanded by the Word of God: His institution therein (said he) I do not deny; but all things invented and devised by man, etc. But will you (said Bonner) deny that which all the World and your Father have been contented withal? What my Father (said Hankes) and all the W●rld hath done I have nothing to do with, but what God hath commanded me to do, to that stand I. Pag. 257. Bonner telling him that Baget was converted to think well of their Baptism: I build my faith (said he) neither upon this man, nor upon you; but upon Christ, who is the founder and author of all men's faith. Bonner threatening to take another course with him: Whatsoever ye do (said he) I am ready to suffer it; for I am in your hands to abide it. Bonner telling him he would not have any Heresy talked in his House: Why (said he) is the Truth become Heresy? God hath commanded that we should have none other talk in our House, in our Beds, at our Meat, and by the way, but all Truth. Darbishire (Bonner's Kinsman) telling him, he was too curious; for he would have nothing but his pretty God's Book: he answered, And is it not sufficient for my salvation? Yes (said D.) for our salvation; but not for our instruction. God send me the salvation (said H.) and you the instruction. Bonner threatening him again: You are (said he) in the hands of God, and so am I.— That which I have said, I will stand to it God willing, there is no way to remove it. Bonner telling him that a Faggot would make him know and believe the Sacrament of the Altar: No, no (said he) a point for your Faggot. What God thinketh meet to be done, that shall ye do, and more ye shall not do. Bonner telling him, That he was willing to teach him, but he was so stubborn, that he would not learn: Except ye learn me (said he) by the Word of God, I will never credit you, nor believe you. Harpsfield telling him, If his Child died unchristened, he was damned and his Child both: judge you no farther (said he) than ye may by the Scriptures.— How can your Child being an Infant (said Harpsfield) believe? Pag. 259. The deliverance of it (said Hankes) from sin standeth in the faith of his Parents: Saint Paul saying, 1 Cor. 7. — Else were your Children unclean. To trust to any (said Bonner) we bid you not; but to pray to them, we bid you: They that list (said Hankes) receive your Doctrine. You teach me, that I should not believe, nor trust in any, but to call on them; and Saint Paul saith, How shall I call on him, on whom I believe not? Bonner calling him fool: he said, A Bishop must be blameless, or faultless, sober, discreet, no chider, nor given to anger. Mr. Hankes telling Bonner, That Christ saith, These tokens shall follow them that believe in me: Pag. 260. Mark 16 They shall speak with new tongues, c●st out Devils; and if any drink deadly poison, it shall not hurt them. Bonner asked him, With what new tongues do ye speak? Forsooth (said Hankes) where before I came to the knowledge of God's Word, I was a foul Blasphemer and filthy talker. Since I came to the knowledge thereof, I have praised God with the s●me tongue, and is not this a new tongue? How do you (said Bonner) cast out Devils? Christ (said Hankes) did c●st them out by his Word; and he hath left the same Word, that whosoever doth credit, and believe it, shall c●st out Devils. Did you (said Bonner) ever drink deadly poison? Yea forsooth thee I have (said Hankes) for I have drunk of the pestilent Traditions and Ceremonies of the Bishop of Rome. Bonner threatening that he should be burnt for an Heretic: Where prove ye (said Hankes) that Christ, or his Apostles did kill any man for his faith? Did not Paul (said B.) excommunicate? Yes, my Lord (said H.) but there is a great difference between excommunication, and burning.— If you will have us grant you to be of God, then show mercy; for that God requireth. An old Bishop persuading him to learn of his Elders to bear somewhat: I will bear with nothing (said he) that is contrary to the Word of God. Pag. 261. Fecknam charging him for building his Faith on Latimer, ●ranmer, Ridley, etc. I build my Faith (said he) upon no man, and that ye well know; for if those men, and as many more, as they be, should recant, and deny that they have said, or done, yet will I stand to it, and by this shall ye know that I build my Faith upon no man. Chadsey ask him, What he said of the Bishop of Rome? From him (said he) and all his detestable enormities, good Lord deliver us. Bonner saying, You speak of Idols, and you know not what they mean: God hath taught us what they be; (said Hankes) for whatsoever is made, graven, or devised by man's hand, contrary to God's Word, the same is an Idol.. Pag. 262. Chadsey telling him, It was pity he should live: In this case (said he) I desire not to live, but rather to die.— I wou●d my part might be to morrow. Bonner threatening to send him to Newgate: My Lord (said he) you can do me no better pleasure. Pag. 263. Bonner telling the Keeper, His Prisoner would not go to the Sermon: Yes, my Lord (said he) I pray you let me go, and that that is good I will receive, and the rest I will leave behind me. Bonner ask after his imprisonment, Whether he was the same man he was before? he answered, I am no Changeling, nor none will be. Miles Huggard ask him, Where he proved that Infants were to be baptised? Go teach all Nations (said he) baptising them in the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Sir, here is none excepted. Bonner threatening him again: Pag. 264. Ye shall do no more (said he) than God shall give you leave.— As for your cursings, rail, and blasphemings, I care not for them; for I know the moths and worms shall eat you, as they eat cloth or wool.— His examination he writ himself, and subscribed it, T.H. Who desireth all faithful men, and Brethren, to pray unto God to strengthen me in his Truth unto the end. Pray, pray, pray, gentle Brethren, pray. Bonner advising him at his public examination to speak advisedly; Pag. 265▪ for he stood upon life and death: Well (said he) I will willingly receive what shall be put unto me.— My Lord, as you be my friend in causing these my sayings to be written; so do you cause them to be read, and yet I will never go from them. Being exhorted to return again to the bosom of the Mother Church: No, my Lord, (said he) that will I not; for if I had an hundred bodies, I would suffer them all to be t●rn in pieces, rather than I will abjure, or reca●t. Some of his Friends being not a little confirmen by his example, and discourses, yet being somewhat afraid of so sharp a punishment, desired him a little before his death, that in the midst of the flame he would show some token, if he could, whereby they might be more certain, whether the pain of burning were so great, Pag. 266. that a man might not therein keep his mind quiet and patient▪ Whereupon it was agreed between them, that if the rage of the pain were tolerable, than he should lift up his hands above his head towards Heaven, before he gave up the ghost. Accordingly, when he had continued long in the fire, his speech taken away, his skin drawn together, his fingers consumed, so that all concluded he was dead; contrary to all expectation, he reached up his hands, burning on a light fire, over his head, to the living, God and with great rejoicing (as it seemed) clapped them three times together. He was burned to ashes, june 10. 1555. In his Letter to the Congregation.— The holy Spirit conduct and lead you all in all your doings, that you may always direct your deeds according to his holy Word, that when he shall appear to reward every man according to his works, ye may as obedient children, be found watching, ready to enter into his everlasting Kingdom, with your Lamps burning, and not be ashamed of this life, which God hath lent you, etc. All flesh (saith the Prophet) is gr●ss, and all his glory as the flower of the field, which for a season showeth her beauty, and as soon as the Lord blows upon it, it withereth away, and departeth. Here we are as Pilgrims and Strangers, following the footsteps of Moses, among many unspeakable dangers, etc.— in danger of that dreadful Dragon, and his sinful seed, to be tempted, devoured, and tormented, who ceaseth not behind every Bush to lay a ba●t, etc. casting abroad his Apples in all places, times, and seasons, to see if Adam will be alured and enticed to leave the living God, and his most holy commandment, etc. promising the world at will, to all that will fall down, and for a mess of pottage sell, and set at naught the everlasting Kingdom of Heaven.— Therefore I am bold in bonds (as entirely desiring your everlasting felicity) to warn you, and most heartily desire you to watch and pray.— On the high mountains doth not grow most plenty of grass, neither are the highest trees farthest from danger, but seldom sure, and always shaken of every wind that bloweth. Such a deceitful thing (saith our Saviour) is honour and riches, that without grace, it choketh up the good seed sown, etc. It maketh a man think himself somewhat, that is nothing at all; for though for our honour we esteem ourselves, and stand in our own light, yet when we shall stand before the living God, there shall be no respect of persons; Prov. 1. for riches helpeth not in the day of vengeance, nor can we make the Lord partial for money. — Though the world rage, and blaspheme the Elect of God, ye know that it did so unto Christ, his Apostles, and to all that were in the Primitive Church, and shall be unto the world's end.— I beseech you in the bowels of Christ my Lord Jesus, stick fast unto the Truth: let it never depart out of your hearts and conversations, etc. Yours in him that liveth for ever. In his Letter to his Wife, Pag. 267. after his Condemnation.— I exhort you to love God with all your heart, and soul, and mind, etc. To lay sure hold on all his promises, that in all your troubles you may run straight to the great mercy of God, etc. And be sure that neither Devil, Flesh, nor Hell shall be able to hurt you. But if you will not keep his holy Precepts, and call for Gods help to walk in the same, but will leave them, and do as the wicked world does, then be sure to have your part with the wicked world in the burning lake. Beware of Idolatry, which most of all stinks in God's Nostrils, and hath been of all good men detested from the beginning of the world, for the which what Kingdoms, etc. God hath punished with most terrible plagues, etc. to the utter subversion of them, is manifestly to be seen through the whole Bible; yea, for this he draadfully plagued his own people, etc. But how he hath preserved those that abhorred superstition and idolatry, etc. is also to be seen from the beginning, out of what great danger he hath delivered them; yea, when all hope of deliverance was past, as touching their expectation, etc. I exhort you also in the bowels of Christ, that you will exercise, and be steadfast in Prayer, the only mean to obtain of God whatsoever we desire, so it be asked in Faith. O what notable things do we read in Scripture, that have been obtained through fervent Prayer!— Whatsoever you desire of God in Prayer, ask it for Jesus Christ's sake, for whom and in whom God hath promised to give us all things necessary. Though what we ask come not by and by, continue still knocking, and he will at length open his treasures of mercy, etc.— Yet once again I warn you, that ye continue fervent in Prayer, etc. Pag. 268. In his Letter to Mr. Throgmorton.— Whereas the love of God hath moved you to require my Son to be brought up before your eyes, and the self same love hath also moved me to leave him in your hands as a Father in my absence, I shall require you in God's behalf, according to your promise, that ye will see him brought up in the fear of the Lord, and instructed in the knowledge of his holy Word, that he may learn to leave the evil, and know the good, etc. And this I require you to fulfil, or cause to be fulfilled, as ye before the Living God will make answer for the same.— Yours, and all men's in Christ jesus. Hector. Bartholomew Hector, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 155. being condemned, was threatened, that if he spoke any thing to the People, his Tongue should be cut off; yet he did not forbear. He prayed for the Judges, That God would forgive them, and open their eyes. He refused a Pardon, offered him at the Stake. At his Death many wept, saying, Why doth this man die, who speaketh of nothing but of God? When he was called before Authority to be examined, Fox, Vol. 3. cont. pag. 5. he would answer them to nothing before he had made his Prayer to God: Whereupon falling down upan his knees, he said, Lord, open my mouth, and direct my Speech to utter that only, that may tend to thy honour and glory, and the edification of thy Church. When he was bound to the Stake, Gunpowder and Brimstone was brought to be placed about him; he lifting up his eyes to Heaven, said, Lord, how sweet and welcome is this to me? Hernaudes. Mr. julian Hernaudes, Fox, Vol. 3. cont. p. 14. (a Spanish Martyr) came from the Wrack, and the Tortures of the Inquisition inflicted on him, for bringing with him, and causing to be brought into Spain, many Books of the Holy Scriptures in Spanish) as from a Conquest, saying to his Fellow-prisoners as he passed by them, These Hypocrites are gone away confounded, no less than wolves, that have been long hunted. When he was brought forth to his Execution, he said to the rest, Courage, my valiant and constant Brethren, now is the hour come, in which as the true Champions of jesus Christ, we must witness his Truth before men, and for a short trial for his sake we shall triumph with him for ever and ever. Herwyn. Fox, Vol. 3. cont. p. 17. When john Herwyn of Flanders, was led to Prison, the Bailiff meeting certain Drunkards in the Street, and saying, They say we have many Gospelers in Houscot, but it little appears by these disorders: he replied, Mr. Bailiff, is drunkenness a sin? What of that (said the Bailiff) Why then (said Herwyn) commit you not these fellows to Prison, seeing it is your office to punish vice, and to protect such as fear God? After he was in Prison, because he was not called forth before the Magistrates, assoon as he desired and expected, he grew heavy and sad, ask, Why they so delayed the matter? for his heart was fired with an holy zeal to confess Christ before his Judges. When he was brought forth, he admonished his Judges to examine the Doctrine of the Roman Church by the true Touchstone, which is the holy Scripture, that so they might discern how opposite and contrary the one is to the other. Consider also (said he) what the words of St. Peter import, where the affirms, That we ought to obey God rather than man, etc. When he craved for Justice, either one way or another, they urged him to desist from his Opinion; but he answered, That his faith was not built on an Opinion, Psal. 14. but (said he) the Lord hath taught me to eschew evil, and do good. Seest thou not (said they) how these opinions have troubled the world? and how many of the learneder sort do contradict them? So far is it off (said he) that the Doctrine of the Gospel should be the cause of troubles, debates and strifes, which reign in the world. These troubles indeed arise from the rage of men. And as for your learned men, it is impossible for humane wisdom to comprehend the Doctrine of God; for which cause Christ saith, Father I thank thee, that thou hast hid these secrets from the wise men of the world, and hast revealed them unto Babes. When those two Malefactors that were coupled with him broke Prison and fled, he might have escaped, but fearing his flight might be imputed to the godly Christians in the City, he would not fly. When he was advertised of his Sentence, He thanked God for advancing him to so high an honour as to be counted worthy to suffer for his Name. As he passed forth from the Court, viewing the people, who waited to see him, he said, See here how this wicked world rewards the poor Servants of Christ. Whilst I gave myself to drunkenness, etc. I was never in danger of these bands (lifting up his hands which were bound) I was then counted a good fellow, and at that time, who but I? But no sooner began I by conversion to ask after a godly life, but the world made war upon me, and became my enemy, persecuting and imprisoning me, and now lest of all sending me to the place where I must pay my last debt. Mat. 10.24. john 15.20. But the Servant is no better than his Lord; for seeing they persecuted him, no question they will persecute us. At the Stake he said, Brethren, I fight under the Standard, and in the quarrel of my great Lord and Captain Christ— I am now going to be crucified; follow you me, when God of his goodness shall call yo● to it. He was burnt Nou. 4. An. 1560. Hierome. I find two of this Name. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 5●4. 1. Mr. William Hierome, Vicar of Stepney near London. Being accused for preaching against Magistrates, he affirmed (as before he had preached) That 〈◊〉 Magistrate of himself could make any Law or Laws 〈◊〉 bind the infe●i ur people, unless it were by the power and authority of his or their Princes to him or them given, but only the Prince. Adding, If the Prince make Laws consenting to God's Laws, we are bound to obey them; and if he make Laws repugnant to the Laws of God, etc. yet we are bound not violently to resist, or grudge against him. At the Stake he gave the following Exhortation to the people; Pag. 527. I say unto you, good Brethren, that God hath bought us all with no small price, neither with gold, nor silver, nor other such things of small value, but with his most precious blood. Be not unthankful therefore, but do what you can to keep his Commandments, Pag. 528. i. e: love your Brethren.— If God hath sent thee plenty, help thy neighbour that hath need, give him good counsel, if he lack.— Bear your Cross with Christ— Let all Christians put no trust nor confidence in their works, but in the blood of Christ, to whom I commit my soul, beseeching you all to pray to God for me, and for my Brethren here present with us, etc. 2. Mr. Hierome of Prage. Fox Vol. 1. pag. 832. When he was brought Prisoner to Constance, several of the Bishops said unto him; Hierome, why didst thou fly, and didst not appear when thou wast cited? He answered, Because I could not have any safe conduct, etc. and I would not myself be the occasion of my perils and danger; but if I had known of this citation, although I had been in Bohemia, I would have returned again. When certain cried out, Pag. 833. Let him be burned, let him be burned; He answered, If my death doth delight and please you, in the Name of God let it le so. When he was welcomed to Prison by a Friend of Mr. Hus, saying to him, Be constant, and fear not death for the Truth's sake, of the which, when you ●ere at liberty, you did preach so much goodness; He answered, Truly Brother, I do not fear death; and forasmuch as we know that we have spoken. much thereof in times past, let us now see what may be known or done in ●ffect. Vitus ask him how he did, He answered, Truly Brother I do very well. After a long sore imprisonment he was forced to recant and consent unto the death of Mr. john Hus, that he was justly condemned, and put to death; but his hopes of freedom thereupon were disappointed, Pag. 834. for they caused him to be carried back unto the same Prison, but not so straight chained and bound as before. After his Recantation and Consent to the death of Mr. Hus, he refused to answer to any Questions propounded to him in private, except he might be brought before the Council; They supposing he would confirm his former Recantation, sent for him May 25. An. 1416. When he was brought before them, Pag. 835. he began with Prayer to God, beseeching him to give him Spirit, ability and utterance, which might most tend to the profit and salvation of his own soul. Then he spoke unto them thus; I know that there have been many excellent men which have suffered much otherwise, than they have deserved, being oppressed with false witnesses, and condemned with wrong judgement, as Socrates, Plato, Anaxagoras, Zeno, Boetius, Moses, joseph, Isaiah, Daniel, and almost all the Prophets, etc. john Baptist, Christ, Stephen, and all the Apostles who were condemned to death not as good men, but as seditious stirrers up of the people, and contemners of the gods and evil doers.— This was the old manner of ancient and learned men, and most holy Elders, that in matters of Faith they did differ many times in Arguments, not to destroy the Faith, but to find out the Verity: So did Augustine and Hierome dissent.— As for Mr. Hus, he was a good, just, and holy man (to his knowledge) and much unworthy that death which he did suffer. Pag. 836. — At last he added, That all the sin● that ever he had committed did not so much gnaw and trouble his conscience, as did that only sin, which he had committed, in that most pestiferous fact, whenas in his Recantation he had unjustly spoken against that good and holyman and his Doctrine, and especially in consenting to his wicked condemnation. Concluding that he did utterly revoke that wicked Recantation, which he made in that cursed place, and that he did it through weakness of heart and fear of death, and that whatsoever he had spoken against that blessed man, he had altogether lied upon him, and that it did repent him with his whole heart that ever he did it.— Being again brought forth to have judgement given him, and pressed to recant what he had before spoken in open audience in commendation of Mr. Wickliff and Mr. Hus, He said unto them, I take God to my witness, and I protest here before you all, that I do believe and hold the Articles of the Faith, as the holy Catholic Church doth hold and believe the fame; but for this cause shall I now ce●oondemned, for that I will not consent with you to the condemnation of those most holy and blessed men aforesaid, whom you have most wickedly condemned, for their detesting and abhorring your wicked and abominable life. After the Bishop of Londy had ended his Sermon, which was but an exhortation to condemn Mr. Hierome, he said unto them, You shall condemn me wickedly and unjustly; but I after my death will leave a remorse in your conscience, and a nail in your heart, and here I cite you to answer unto me before the most high and just judge within an hundred years. This Prophecy was printed in the Coin called moneta Hussi, Pag. 830. of the which Coin I myself (saith Mr. Fox) have one of the Plates, having the following superscription printed about it, Centum revolutis annis D●o respondebitis & mihi. An hundred years come and gone, With God and me you shall reckon. After Sentence was pronounced against him, Pag. 837. a long Mitre of paper, painted about with red Devils, was brought to him, whereupon he said, Our Lord jesus Christ, whenas he should suffer death for me, most wretched sinner, did wear a Crown of Thorns upon his Head, and I for his sake, instead of that Crown will willingly wear this M●tre or Cap. When the fire was kindled, Pag. 838. he said, Into thy hands O Lord I commend my Spirit.— O Lord God, Father Almighty, have mercy upon me, and pardon mine offences, Clarks Mart. of Eccl. Hist. pag. 223. for thou knowest how sincerely I have loved thy Truth. When the Executioner began to kindle the fire behind him, he bade him kindle it before his face; for (said he) If I had been afraid of it, I had not come to this place, having had so many opportunities offered to me to escape it. At the giving up of the ghost he said, Hanc animam in flammis offero Christe tibi. This soul of mine in flames of fire, O Christ I offer thee.— Fox. Vol. 1. pag. 830. In his Letter to Mr. john Hus.— My Master, in those things which you have both written hitherto, and also preached after the Law of God, against the pride, avarice, and other inordinate vices of the Priests, go forward, be constant, and strong, and if I shall know that you be oppressed in the cause, and if need shall so require, of mine own accord I will follow after to help you as much as I can. Petrie's Church Hist. Cent. 15. p. 539. In the Letter of Poggius (Secretary to the Council of Constance) to Leonard Aretin concerning Hierome's death.— I profess I never said any man, who in talking, especially for life and death, hath come nearer the eloquence of the Ancients, whom we do so much admire. It was a wonder to see with what words, with what Eloquence, Arguments, Countenance, and with what confidence he answered his Adversaries, and maintained his own Cause: that it is to be lamented that so fine a wit had strayed into the study of Heresy, if it be true that was objected against him.— When it was refused that he should first plead his own Cause, and then answer to the rail of Adversaries, he said, How great is this iniquity, that when I have been three hundred and forty days in most hard prisons, in filthiness, in dung, in fetters, and want of all things, ye have heard my Adversaries at all times, and ye will not hear me one hour?— Ye are men, and not gods; ye may slip, and err, and be deceived, and seduced, etc. When it was demanded what he could object to the Articles against him? It is almost incredible to consider how cunningly he answered, and with what Arguments he defended himself. He never spoke one word unworthy of a good man; that if he thought in his heart, as he spoke with his tongue, no cause of death could have been against him, no not of the meanest offence.— In the end Poggius saith, O man, worthy of everlasting remembrance among men! This Epistle is in Fascicu●. r●●. expetend. fol. 152. Holland. A Friend of Mr Roger Holland's thanking the Bishop for his good will to his Kinsman, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 875. and beseeching God that he might have grace to follow his Council; Sir (said Mr. Holland) You crave of God you know not what, I beseech God to open your eyes to see the light of his Word. Roger (said his Kinsman) hold your peace, lest you fare the worse at my Lords hands. No (said he) I shall far as it pleaseth God, for man can do no more than God doth permit him. The Register ask him, Whether he would submit himself to the Bishop, before he was entered into the Book of contempt. I never meant (said he) but to submit myself to the Magistrate, as I learn of St. Paul, Rom. 13. yet I mean not to be a Papist; they will not submit themselves to any other Prince or Magistrate, than those that must first be sworn to maintain them and their doings. B●nner telling him, Roger, I perceive thou wilt be ruled by no good counsel, etc. He answered, I may say to you my Lord, as Paul said to Felix, and to the jews, Acts 22. 1 Cor. 15. It is not unknown to my Master, whose Apprentice I was, that I was of this your blind Religion, etc. having that liberty under your auricular Confession, that I made no conscience of sin, but trusted in the Priest's absolution, etc. So that Lechery, Swearing, and all othervices I accounted no offence of danger, so long as I could for money have them absolved. Pag. 876. — And thus I continued, till of late God hath opened the Light of his Word, and called me by his grace to repentance of my former idolatry and wicked life.— The antiquity of our Church is not from Pope Nicholas or Pope jone, but our Church is from the beginning, even from the time that God said to Adam, That the seed of the woman should break the Serpent's head, etc. All that believed this promise were of the Church, though the number were oftentimes but few and small, as in Elias days, when he thought there was none but he that had not bowed the knee to Baal, etc. Moreover of our Church have been the Apostles and Evangelists, the Martyrs and Confessors that have in all Ages been persecuted for the testimony of the Word of God.— Pag. 877. After Sentence was read against him, he said, Even now I told you that your authority was of God and by his sufferance, and now I tell you, God hath heard the prayer of his Servants, which hath been poured forth with tears for his afflicted Saints, which daily you persecute. This I dare be bold in God to speak (which by his Spirit I am moved to say) that God will shorten your hand of cruelty, that for a time you shall not molest his Church. And this shall you in short time perceive, my dear Brethren, to be the most true; for after this day, in this place, shall there not be any by him put to the trial of Fire and Faggot. Which accordingly came to pass. He was the last burnt in Smithfield. Then he began to exhort his Friends to repentance, Pag. 878. and to think well of them that suffered for the testimony of the Gospel. The day that Mr. Holland and the rest suffered, a Proclamation was made, that none should be so bold as to speak to them, or receive any thing of them upon pain of imprisonment. Notwithstanding the people cried out, desiring God to strengthen them; and they prayed for the people and the restoring of his Word. At length Mr. Holland embracing the Stake and the Reeds, said, Lord I most humbly thank thy Majesty, that thou hast called me from the stake of death unto the light of thy heavenly Word, and now unto the fellowship of thy Saints, that I may sing and say, Holy, holy, holy Lord God of Hosts. Lord into thy hands I commit my spirit. Lord, bless these thy people, and save them from idolatry. Hooper. Mr. john Hooper in his exile writ a Declaration of Christ and his Office, and a Declaration of the holy Commandmants of Almighty God, etc. In his Epistle (before his Declaration of Christ and his Office) to the Duke of Somerset. See his Declaration of Christ and his Office, Printed at Zurick An 1547. — Because the right of every just and lawful Heir is half lost and more, when his Title and Claim is unknown, I have written this little Book, containing what Christ is, and what his Office is, that every godly man may put to his helping hand to restore him again to his Kingdom,— who hath sustained open and manifest wrong this many years, as it appeareth by his evidence and writing, the Gospel sealed with his precious blood.— In his Declaration— ch. 3.— Jesus Christ in all things executed the true Office of a Bishop, to whom it appertained to teach the people, which was the chiefest part of the Bishop's Office, and most diligently and straight commanded by God. As all the Books of Moses and the Prophets teach, and Christ commanded Peter, john 20. and Paul all the Bishops and Priests of his time, Acts 20.— Christ left nothing untaught, but as a good Doctor manifested unto his Audience all things necessary for the health of man, john 4.— He gave also his Apostles and Disciples after his resurrection commandment to preach, and likewise what they should preach, Go into all the world and preach the Gospel to every creature, teaching them to observe what I have commanded, Matt. 28.— As they did most sincerely and plainly without all glosses or additions of their own inventions, and were as testimonies of the Truth, and not the Authors thereof.— Always in their Doctrine they taught the thing that Christ first taught and Gods holy Spirit inspired them, Gal. 1. 2 Cor. 3. Holy Apostles never took upon them to be Christ's Vicar in the Earth, nor to be his Lieutenant; But said, Let a men so account of us, as of the Ministers of Christ, and Stewards of the Mysteries of God, 1 Cor. 4.1. And in the same Epistle the Apostle Paul hiddeth the Corinthians to follow him in nothing, but where he followed Christ, chap. 11. They ministered not in the Church, as though Christ was absent, although his most glorious Body was departed into the Heavens above, but as present, that always governeth his Church with his Spirit of Truth, as he promised, Matth. ult. Behold I will be with you to the end of the world. In the absence of his Body he hath commended the protection and governance of his Church to the Holy Ghost, one and the same God with the Father and himself.— It was no little pain that Christ suffered in washing away the sins of this Church: therefore he will not commit the defence thereof to man. It is no less glory to defend and keep the thing won by force, than it is by force to obtain the victory.— Therefore he keepeth the defence and governance of the Church only and solely himself, in whom the Devil hath not a jot of right. Though the Apostles were instructed in all truth, etc. they were but Ministers, Servants, Testimonies, and Preachers of this verity, and not Christ's Vicars on Earth, etc. but only appointed to approve the thing to be good, that God's Law commanded, and that to be ill, which the Word of God condemned. Seeing that Christ doth govern his Church always by his holy Spirit, and bindeth all the Ministers thereof unto the sole Word of God: what abomination is this, that one Bishop of Rome, etc. should claim to be Christ's Vicar on Earth, and take upon him to make any Laws in the Church of God to bind the conscience beside the Word of God, and by their Superstition and Idolatry put the Word of God out of his place?— All, that are not blinded with the smoke of Rome, know the Bishop of Rome to be the Beast john describeth in the Apocalypse, as well as the Logician knoweth that risibilitate distinguitur homo a caeteris animantibus. Christ's supremacy and continual presence in the Church admits no Lieutenant, nor general Vicar: Likewise it admitteth not the Decrees and Laws of men brought into the Church, contrary unto the Word and Scripture of God, which is only sufficient to teach all verity and truth, for the salvation of man.— ch. 4.— This Law teacheth man sufficiently as well what he is bound to do unto God, as unto the Princes of the world, Rom. 13. 1 Pet. 2. Nothing necessary for man but in this Law it is prescribed. Of what degree, vocation, or calling soever he be, his duty is showed unto him in the Scripture. And in this it differeth from man's laws, because it is absolutely perfect, and never to be changed, nothing to be added to it, nor taken from it. And the Church of Christ the more it was, and is burdened with man's laws, the farther it is from the true and sincere verity of God's Word.— Though Basil, Ambrose, Epiphanius, Augustine, Bernard, and others erred not in any principal Article of the Faith, yet they did not inordinately, and more then enough extol the Doctrine and Tradition of men, and after the death of the Apostles, every Doctor's time was subject to such Ceremonies and manners, that were neither profitable nor necessary.— — Unto the writings of Scripture only, and not unto the writings of men, God hath bound and obligated his Church. In this passage. I admonish the Christian Reader that I speak not of the Laws of Magistrates or Princes, that daily order new Laws for the preservation of their Commonwealths, as they see the necessity of their Realms or Cities require; but of such Laws, as men have ordained for the Church of Christ, which should be now and for ever governed by the Word of God.— This Law must prevail. We must obey God rather then man. The example hereof we have in Daniel of the Three Children, who chose rather to burn in the fiery Furnace, then to worship the Image that Nabuchadnezzar had made. So did the Apostles, Acts 5.— Cursed be those that make such Laws; and cursed be those that with sophistry defend them.— ch. 5.— The Authority of God's word requireth me to pronounce this true Judgement in the case of Images that be not worshipped in the Church, that their presence in the Church is against God's Word, as well as to say, Sancta Maria ora pro nobis. — The Old Testament saith, Exod. 20. Deut. 6. Thou shalt make no Image. The New saith, that Christ came not to destroy the Law, but to fulfil it, Matth. 5. Christ therefore hath left the commandments of the old Law unto the Church, in which he saith, Thou shalt not make any Image.— Of late years' Images were in the Temple, and honoured with pater noster, heart and mind, leg and knee: Now they be applied to another use to teach the people, to be laymen's Books, as Damascene, etc. saith. O blasphemous and devilish Doctrine!— The most perfect Churches of the Prophets, Christ, and his Apostles used no such mean: and we ought to follow them and the Word of God, writ by the Prophets and Apostles.— The words of Gregory ad Seren. Episcop. M●ssil. part. 10. Ep. 4. should move no man, though he say, Quod legentibus Scriptura, hoc ideotis pictura praestat cernentibus. This is but Gregory's opinion. Epiphanius was not of his mind, He willed the occasion of ill to be taken out of the Church, as Paul commandeth, 1 Thes. 5. This Doctor was (as all men know) of singular learning and virtue. Again against the Authority of Gregory the Great I set the Authority of Athanasius the Great, who denieth in express words the Images to be the Books of the Lay people. Lactantius Firmianus crieth so out against Images, that he saith there can be no true Religion where they be. Tertullian judgeth the same.— Loved we God we would be content with the Scripture.— Shall not the Patriarches, Prophets, Christ and his Apostles suffice the Church of God? What although many learned men have approved Images, should their wisdom maintain any contrary to the Word of God?— Such as defend them have nothing but sophistical arguments to blind the people with. The Scripture nor Apostles Church used none. Had all Asia, Africa, and Europe, and Gabriel the Archangel descended from Heaven approved the use of Images, forasmuch as the Apostles never taught nor wrote any such thing, their Authority should have no place; the Word of God solely and only is to be preferred, which forbiddeth Images.— ch. 10.— The Office of Christ to sanctify us (according to john 17.1 sanctify myself, that they may be sanctified) doth abrogate all other things that man's constitutions attribute any holiness unto, as bewitched water, etc. for only Christ sanctifieth, and all holiness we must attribute unto him.— Sacraments must be used holily, yet not have this Office of Christ added to them.— ch. 11.— In the later days when Christ, as King, was to be born, the Angel declared the Power and Puissance of his Kingdom. He shall reign over the house of Jacob, and of his Kingdom there shall be no end, Luke 1. Although the Commonwealth of the Church hath no certain place appointed, where it shall remain, as it was appointed in the old Law, yet certain we be that this Kingdom of Christ remaineth upon the Earth, and shall do till the Earth be burned, Matth. 16.28. 1 Cor. 15. Howbeit as Christ won and obtained this Kingdom in the later days without shield or spear, so doth he preserve it with his holy Spirit, and not with carnal weapons. My Kingdom is not of this world, John 18. Meaning he would not reign in this world, as a Prince of this world in pomp and pride, but defend his people with his holy Spirit, that the Devil and the World should not break their patience, though many afflictions and sorrows should fight against them for the Truth's sake. Christ doth not deny to be King of the world, but he meant not to reign worldlily, to the hindrance and defacing of the Emperor's Dignity and Title; as the Jews falsely accused him, as Cyrillus l. 12. c. 10. in johannem saith.— This Kingdom shall be ever persecuted till the world's end. Isaiah the Prophet described the Church of this present life, saying, He will give you the bread of adversity, and the water of affliction, but he will not remove thy teachers, chap. 30.20. Thus the Church shall always remain but in affliction. I know such as favour not the Truth, will interpret my words, that I condemn all Princes and Kings, as enemies of the Gospel, because they peaceably enjoy their Kingdoms, whereas I wish them always so to do to the glory of God: but of the one thing I will assure every Prince of world; The more sincere he is in the Cause of God, the more shall be his Cross.— God indeed preserveth above humane reason his Ministers, as he did jacob from the hands of Esau, David from Saul, Daniel from the Lions, and Paul in the Ship, when there was no humane hope of salvation.— Likewise he governeth his Church with his only Laws.— The only Law whereunto this Congregation is bound is the Gospel, as Christ saith; john 4. The Holy Ghost shall teach you all things, and bring to your remembrance all things which I have said unto you. Here Christ bindeth the Apostles and all the Church unto the things that he had taught them.— Such as teach the people to know the Commonwealth of the true Church by these signs, the traditions of men, and the succession of Bishops, teach wrong. Those two false opinions have given unto the succession of Bishop's power to interpret the Scripture, and power to make such Laws in the Church, as it pleased them.— God hath given the Civil Magistrates power and authority to make such Laws for the Commonwealth as shall be agreeable with reason, and not against God's Law, and likewise power to interpret the same Laws: but this is not to be admitted in the Church, unto whom God hath given the Gospel, and interpreted the same by his only Son, taught the meaning and contents thereof himself.— The adversaries of the Truth defend many an error under the name of the holy Church: when the Church therefore is named, diligently consider when the Articles they would defend, were accepted of the Church, by whom, and who was the Author of them. Leave not till the matter be brought unto the first original and most perfect Church of the Apostles. If thou find by their writings, that their Church used the thing that the Preacher would prove, then accept it, or else not. Be not amazed, though they speak of never so many years, nor name never so many Doctors.— If either the Authority of Bishops, or the greater part should have power to interpret the Scripture, the sentence of the Pharisees should have been preferred before the sentence of Zachary, Simion, Elizabeth, or the blessed Virgin. Consider the true Church is many time but a small Congregation, as Isaiah saith, Unless God had left us a remnant, we had been as Sodom. Therefore the interpretation of the Scripture is not obligated to ordinary power, nor the most part.— Beware of deceit, when thou hearest the name of the Church. The verity is then assaulted. They call the Church of the Devil, the holy Church many time.— Remember, Christian Reader, that the gift of interpreting the Scripture is the light of the Holy Ghost given unto the humble and penitent person, that seeketh only to honour God, and not unto those persons that claim it by title or place, because he is a Bishop, or followed by succession Peter or Paul.— Remember therefore to examine all Doctrine by the Word of God; for such as preach it aright, have their infirmities and ignorance, they may depart from the Truth, or else build some superstition and false Doctrine upon the Gospel of Christ. Superstition is to be avoided, false Doctrine to be abhorred, whosoever be the Author thereof, Prince, Magistrate, or Bishop. As the Apostles made answer, Acts 5. We ought to obey God rather then man.— ch. 13.— The Law is necessary for a justified man to teach him with what works he should exercise his faith, will, and obedience unto God. We may not choose works of our own wisdom to serve him withal. He would have us to be governed by his Word, as David saith, Thy Word is a light unto my feet: And Christ, In vain do they worship me by the commands of men.— In the second Declaration. See his Declaration of the ten holy Commandments of Almighty God, Printed A. 1548. pag. 8, 9 — Moses commandeth, Deut. 4 that no man should decline from this Law, neither to the right, nor left hand, i. e. That no man should add to, or take any thing from it, but simply to observe it, as it is given or written to us. From this right line and true rule of God's Word man erreth divers ways: Sometimes by ignorance, because he knoweth not, or will not know, that only the express Word of God sufficeth. He holdeth with the most part, and condemneth the better, as it is to be seen at this present day. This reason taketh place, it is allowed of the most part, and established by so many holy and learned Bishops, therefore it is true, etc. Another way that leadeth from the Word of God, is many times the power and authority of this world, as we see by the Bishop of Rome, and all his adherents, who give more credit to one Charter and Gift of Constantine, then to the whole Bible. Another erreth by mistaking of the time, making his superstition far elder than it is, etc. One saith thus, My Father believed, and should I believe the contrary?— Whereas no Law at all should be spoken of conscience, Pag. 11. but the only Word of God, which never altered, nor can be altered, Matt. 5. Luk. 10. Psal. 18.119. If Heavens and Earth made by word cannot be altered, how much more the Word itself! Unto which Law, the conscience of man in matters of faith is bound only. Pag. 13. — Such as can interpret nothing, will say, I have an ill opinion of God in Heaven, and of the superior Powers on Earth, because I damn the Disciples of the false Doctors with the Doctors, and take from all Powers on Earth authority to prescribe unto their Subjects any Law touching Religion of the soul. As concerning those that be seduced by false Teachers, St. Luke c. 6. and Ezekiel 3. and 13. judge as I do.— Both he that leadeth to damnation, and he that is led, Pag. 14. falleth into the pit.— Notwithstanding I believe, that in the midst of darkness, when all the world (as far as man might judge) had sworn unto the Bishop of Rome, Christ had his Elect, that never consented to his false Laws, as it was in the time of Elias, 1 Kings 19 where God saith, He had preserved seven thousand that had not bowed the knee to Baal. Pag. 15. — As many as die before us, seduced by false Teachers without repentance, the Scripture condemneth: As many as believed them not, but trusted to the Scripture (or else deceived, yet repent before they died) live eternally in joy and solace and are saved, as john saith Rev. 13. in the blood of the Lamb.— As touching the superior Powers of the Earth, it is not unknown to all men that have read and marked the Scripture, that it pertaineth nothing to their Office to make any Law to govern the Consciences of their Subjects in Religion, but to reign over them in this case, as the Word of God commandeth. Howbeit in their Realms they may make what Laws they will, Pag. 16. and as many as they will; command them to be kept as long as it pleaseth them, and change them at their pleasure, as they shall see occasion for the wealth and commodity of their Realms:— Unto the which superior Powers we owe all obedience, both of body and goods, and likewise our daily prayer for them to Almighty God, etc. And as many divers Commonwealths as there be, so many divers Laws there may be. Howbeit all Christian Kings and Kingdoms with other Magistrates, should reign by one Law, and govern the Churches of their Realms solely by the Word of God, which is never to be changed. Pag. 17. — Thus Christ commanded his Apostles to teach, and their Audience to hear the things he commanded, Matth. 28. Mark 16.— Moses prescribeth unto his Audience seven Rules, Pag. 26. wherewith he prepareth them to the receiving of the ten Commandments. (1) A right persuasion of God's Word, that God will undoubtedly give the good promised to the good, and inflict the evil threatened against the evil. Pag. 29. — (2) To have a right opinion of the Magistrates and superior Powers of the Earth, to give them no more, nor any less honour and reverence then the Word of God commandeth.— For lack of this preparative the world hath erred from the Truth this many years. Men do not look what Gods Word saith, but extol the authority of man's Laws, preferring the decree of a general or provincial Council before the Word of God. Pag. 30. — (3) Another preparative is obedience both to God and man. It were as good ne'er read the Law, in case we mind not to be obedient.— (4) To observe jus gentium. Pag. 31. — (5) To esteem the Doctrine of the Commandments, Pag. 32. as it is worthy. Pag. 34. — (6) A true and right understanding of the Law, not to constrain the letter against the mind of the Text, but behold always the consent of the Scripture. Pag. 36. — (7) To add nothing to this Law, neither to take any thing from it.— If thou judgest that God's Law containeth one part of such Doctrine as is necessary for man's salvation, and the Bishop's Laws another part, thou contemnest and dishonourest the whole Law, and the Giver thereof, and offendest against that command, Deut. 4.12. and Prov. 30. Pag. 64. — Every thing that we do for the honour of God, not commanded by his Word, is as strange, and not accepted by God; as all good intentions, feigned works by man, and all things commanded by general Councils, not expressed in the Word of God, by the Patriarches, Prophets, Christ, and the Apostles, which be and ever were before God the holy and Catholic Church. Whosoever add any thing to their Laws are the Church of Antichrist, Deut. 4.12. Revel. 22. Nadab and Abihu offered strange fire, i. e. such as he commanded not. Pag. 68 — Read the Commentaries of Thom. Val●●s and Nicol. in Aug. de Civit. Dei, l. 4. and they will tell thee what superstition is, if thou believe not the Scripture. Superstition (say they) is a superfluous Religion, what ways soever it be superfluous whether it be of the superfluity of the things honoured, or of the things used for Religion, or of the manner in Religion. This doubtless is understood by the name of Superstition, from whence soever the name hath its rise; whatsoever thou dost to please God Almighty, if it be not commanded in his Word, Pag. 70. it is superfluous superstition.— The purpose, end and will of the second Commandment is, That God's pleasure is unto us, that we do not profane or dishonour the true Religion or honour of God with superstitious Rites or Ceremonies not commanded by him. Pag. 77. — I am a jealous God, q. d. when we two were married together for the love that I bore unto thee, I gave thee certain Rules and Precepts how in all things thou mayest keep my love and good will towards thee, and thou promisedst me obedience to my Commandments, Exod. 19 So honour me therefore, and love me as it standeth written in the Writings and Indentures written between us both, I cannot suffer to be otherwise honoured, than I have taught in my Tables and Testament.— Against obeying of God's Laws, Pag. 209. the first Sophism or carnal Objection is, when men say it is no place nor time to learn or obey God's Laws, we be not in the Temple, etc. but in the broad world, and must do as other men do, and rather serve the place we be in, & u●ulare cum lupis, bark with the wolf, then speak of the Scripture: Deut. 29, 30. besides, it is too dangerous a season, let it pass till the world be no more quiet, etc.— This Objection Moses breaketh, and proveth that the Law should be always received, and in every place.— Those that observed it in the wilderness God fed by miracle from Heaven, and preserved all their apparel, Pag. 210. that it consumed not, nor perished in the wearing for the space of forty years.— A second Objection is, when men put from themselves the obedience of the Law unto others, saying, Let the Priests, etc. learn and keep the Law, what should a Prince, Magistrate, or Gentleman be so bound? Youth cannot be tied to so straight Canons, it must not be so bridled, etc. This wicked acceptation of persons Moses destroyeth, yea all (saith he) stand this day before the Lord your God, Pag. 211. your Princes, your Tribes, your Elders, your Officers, and all men of Israel, your children, your wives, and thy Guest, etc. No manner of prison is excluded from the League. Pag. 212. — A third is presumption, when men know what is to be done, yet against their knowledge presuming of God's mercy, Pag. 213. do the thing that is evil, saying, If I walk in the imagination of my heart, and take my pleasure, there is no danger, etc. But (saith Moses) the Lord will not favour such an one, but then be angry, and kindle his ire against him, so that every curse written in this Book, shall rest on him, etc. A fourth is Animosity, Pag. 218. thus reasoning with one's self, who knoweth what his last hour shall be?— But (saith Moses) Secret things belong to God, but the things that God hath revealed to us and our children for ever, Pag. 222. that we do all the precepts of this Law.— A fifth is Desperation, when men think it is in vain for them to observe God's Laws, there is no hope of their salvation, etc. It is impossible for him to return to God, and do all that God requireth, etc. Moses gives a remedy against this dangerous disease, Pag. 224. showeth the way to God, declareth, That God is full of mercy, Pag. 229. and ready to forgive, etc.— A sixth is the pretence of Ignorance, saying, The Scripture, the Laws of God have so many mysteries, too hard for our capacities, etc. Besides the Doctor's brawl and chide between themselves, and how should the Unlearned understand it aright? Who can tell (saith another) whether this be the true Law or not? If it were the true Law of God, than it should contain all verities, and have no deed of man's Laws. Now the greatest part of Christians in name say, That this Law is not sufficient, except it be holp and aided by the Law of the Bishops.— Moses answereth and saith, Pag. 230: This Law is sufficient, simple and plain, easy to be understood, a perfect Doctrine, and required of all men; the Commandment that I prescribe unto thee to day is not far above thee, nor put far from thee, etc. By which words it appeareth, that God hath made his will and pleasure simple and plainly open to his people, etc. Yea the Law of God to do well by is written naturally in the heart of every man, Pag. 231. etc. though there were no Law written, etc. man's conscience would tell him when he doth well and when ill. Pag. 234. — Farewell in our only and sole joy and consolation, Christ Jesus. This holy Exile parting with Mr. Bullinger and his Friends at Zurick, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 145. declared that the principal cause of his return to his own Country was the matter of Religion, etc. Be sure (said he) neither the nature of the Country, nor pleasure of commodities, nor newness of friends shall ever induce me to the oblivion of such friends and Benefactors, and therefore you shall be sure from time to time to hear from me how it goes with me, but the last news of all I shall not be able to write; for there said he, (taking Mr. Bullinger by the hand) where I shall take most pains, there shall you hear of me to be burned to ashes, and that shall be the last news, which I shall not be able to write.— When he was made Bishop of Worcester and Gloucester, the Arms allotted him (probably by his own appointment) were, Pag. 146. a Lamb in a fiery Bush, and the Sunbeams from Heaven descending down upon the Lamb, rightly denoting as it seemed, the manner of his suffering, which afterward followed. After his return, in his Sermons he corrected sin, and sharply inveighed against the iniquity of the world, and corrupt abuses of the Church.— When he was elected Bishop of Worcester and Gloucester, he made humble supplication to the King, either to discharge him of the Bishopric, or to dispense with him as to the wearing of such Garments and Apparel as the Popish Bishops were wont to do. His Petition the King granted, as appears by his Letter to the Archbishop of Canterbury, telling him, That the Rites and Ceremonies he would be dispensed in were offensive to his conscience. The Oath also, Pag. 147. used then commonly in the Consecration of Bishops was against his conscience, as appears by the Earl of Warwick's Letter to the Archbishop, writ by the King's desire. Pag. 149. In the beginning of Queen Mary's Reign, when notice was given him that he should be sent for to London, and how dangerous it was for him to appear, he gave this Answer: Once I did flee, but now because I am called to this Place and Vocation, I am throughly persuaded to tarry, and to live and die with my sheep. Pag. 150. When he was imprisoned in the Fleet, he writes thus: I am so hardly used, that I see no remedy (saving God's help) but I shall be cast away in Prison before I come to Judgement. But I commit my just cause to God, whose will be done, whether it be by life or death. Winchester exhorting him to the unity of the Catholic Church, and to acknowledge the Pope's Holiness to be Head of the same Church, promising him the Queen's mercy; he answered, That forasmuch as the Pope taught Doctrine altogether contrary to the Doctrine of Christ, he was not worthy to be accounted a Member of Christ's Church, much less to be Head thereof; wherefore he would in no wise condescend to any such usurped Jurisdiction, neither esteemed he the Church, whereof they called him Head, to be the Catholic Church of Christ, Pag. 151. for the Church of Christ only heareth the voice of her Spouse Christ, and flieth the strangers. Howbeit (said he) if in any point to me unknown, I have offended the Queen's Majesty, I shall humbly submit myself to her mercy, if mercy may be had with safety of conscience, and without the displeasure of God. Come Brother (said he to Mr. Rogers, who was sent with him to the Counter in Southwark) must we two take this matter first in hand, and begin to fire these Faggots? Yea Sir (said Mr. Rogers) by God's grace. Doubt not (said Mr. Hooper) but God will give strength. The Sheriff telling Mr. Hooper he wondered that he was so hasty and quick with the Lord Chancellor, he answered Mr. Sheriff, I was nothing at all impatient, although I was earnest in my Master's Cause, and it standeth me so in hand; for it goeth upon life and death, not the life and death of this world only, but also of the world to come. In his Letter for the stopping of certain false rumours spread abroad concerning his Recantation, by the Bishops and their Servants.— The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with all them that unfeignedly look for the coming of our Saviour Christ. Amen. Dear Brethren and Sisters in the Lord, and my Fellow-Prisoners for the Cause of God's Gospel, I do much rejoice and give thanks unto God for your constancy and perseverance in affliction, unto whom I wish continuance to the end. And as I do rejoice in your faith and constancy in afflictions that be in Prison, even so I do mourn and lament to hear of our dear Brethren, that yet have not felt such dangers for God's Truth, Pag. 152. as we have, and do feel, and be daily like to suffer more, yea the very extreme and vile death of the fire; yet such is the report abroad (as I am credibly informed) that I john Hooper, a condemned man for the Cause of Christ, should now after sentence of death (being in Newgate Prisoner, and looking daily for Execution) recant and abjure that which heretofore I have preached; and this talk ariseth of this, That the Bishop of London and his Chaplains resort unto me. Doubtless if our Brethren were as Godly as I could wish them, they would think that in case I did refuse to talk with them, they might have just occasion to say that I were unlearned, and durst not speak with learned men; or else proud, and disdained to speak with them.— But I fear not their Arguments, neither is death terrible to me.— I am more confirmed in the truth, which I have preached heretofore, by their coming. Therefore ye that may send to the weak Brethren, pray them that they trouble me not with such reports of Recantations as they do, for I have hitherto left all things of the world, and suffered great pains and imprisonment, and I thank God I am as ready to suffer death as a mortal man may be. It were better for them to pray for us, then to credit or report such rumours that be untrue. We have enemies enough of such as know not God truly: but yet the false report of weak Brethren is a double cross. I wish your eternal salvation in Jesus Christ, and also require your continual Prayers, that he which hath begun in us may continue it to the end. I have taught the truth with my tongue, and with pen heretofore, and hereafter shortly will confirm the same by God's grace with my blood. Newgate Feb. 2. 1554. Your Brother in Christ J. H. When the Keeper told him he should be sent to Gloucester to be burned, he rejoiced very much, lifting up his eyes and hands to Heaven, he praised God that he saw it good to send him among the people over whom he was Pastor, Pag. 153. there to confirm with his death the truth which he had before taught them, not doubting but the Lord would give him strength to perform the same to his glory. Sir Anthony Kingston (formerly his Friend, than a Commissioner to see Execution done upon him) coming to him a little before his death, bid him consider that life was sweet, & death was bitter, etc. It is true (said Mr. Hooper) I am come hither to end this life, and to suffer death here, because I will not gainsay the former truth which I have heretofore taught among you.— True it is that daath is bitter, and life is sweet; but alas! consider that the death to come is more bitter, and the life to come is more sweet; therefore for the desire and love I have to the one, and the terror and fear of the other, I do not so much regard this death, nor esteem this life, but have settled myself through the strength of God's holy Spirit, patiently to pass through the torments and extremities of the fire now prepared for me, rather than to deny the truth of his Word, desiring you and others in the mean time to commend me to God's mercy in your Prayers. I thank God (said the Knight) that ever I knew you; for God did appoint you to call me, being a lost child, and by your good instructions, where before I was both an Adulterer and Fornicator, God hath brought me to the forsaking and detesting of the same. If you had the grace so to do (said the Bishop) I do highly praise God for it, and if you have not, I pray God you may have, and that you may continually live in his fear. The Knight and the Bishop parting with tears, the Bishop told the Knight, that all the troubles he had sustained in Prison, had not caused him to utter so much sorrow. A Papist telling him he was sorry to see him in that case. Be sorry for thyself man (said he) and lament thine own wickedness; for I am well, I thank God, and death to me for Christ's sake is welcome. Pag. 154. When he was committed to the Sheriff of Gl●cester, the Mayor and Aldermen at first saluted him, and took him by the hand. Mr. Mayor (said Mr. Hooper) I give most hearty thanks to you and to the rest of your Brethren, that you have vouchsafed to take me a Prisoner and condemned man by the hand, whereby to my rejoicing it is somewhat apparent that your old love and friendship towards me is not altogether extinguished, and I trust also that all the things I have taught you in times past are not utterly forgotten, etc. For the which most true and sincere Doctrine, because I will not now account it falsehood and Heresy, as many other men do, I am sent hither by the Queen's command to die, and am come where I taught it to confirm it with my blood. And now Mr. Sheriffs,— My request to you is, That there may be a quick Fire, shortly to make an end, and in the mean time I will be as obedient unto you, as yourselves would wish. If you think I do amiss in any thing, hold up your finger and I have done: for I am not come hither as one enforced or compelled to die; for it is well known I might have had my life with worldly gain; but as one willing to offer and give my life for the truth, rather than to consent to the wicked Papistical Religion of the Bishop of Rome, etc.— When the Sheriffs fetched him from his Chamber to the place of Execution with Bills, Weapons, etc. Mr. Sheriffs (said he) I am no Traitor, neither needed you to have made such a business to bring me to the place where I must suffer; for if ye had willed me, I would have gone alone to the Stake, and have troubled none of you all. When he saw the multitude of People that were assembled, he said unto them that were about him, Alas! why be these People assembled and come together? peradventure they think to hear something of me now, as they have in times past; but alas! speech is prohibited me. Notwithstanding the cause of my death is well known unto them: when I was appointed here to be their Pastor, I preached unto them true and sincere Doctrine, and that out of the Word of God; because I will not account the same to be Heresy and untruth, this kind of death is prepared for me. When he was come to the place where he was to suffer, after he had begun to pray, a Box was brought and laid before him upon a stool, with his Pardon (or at leastwise it was feigned so to be) from the Queen, if he would turn; at the sight thereof he cried, If you love my soul away with it, if you love my soul away with it. In his Prayer he was overheard to say; Lord, I am Hell, but thou art Heaven; I am swill, and a sink of sin, but thou art a gracious God and merciful Redeemer. Pag. 155. — Thou art ascended into Heaven, receive me Hell to be partaker of thy joys, where thou sittest in equal glory with thy Father; for well knowest thou wherefore I am come hither to suffer, and why the wicked do persecute this thy poor Servant, not for my sins and transgressions against thee, but because I will not allow their wicked doings to the contaminating of thy blood, and to the denial of the knowledge of thy Truth, wherewith it did please thee by thy holy Spirit to instruct me, the which with as much diligence as a poor wretch might (being thereto called) I have set forth to thy glory. And well seest thou, my Lord and God; what terrible pains and cruel torments be prepared for thy Creature; such, Lord, as without thy strength none is able to bear, or patiently to pass. But all things that are impossible with man are possible with thee. Therefore strengthen me of thy goodness, that in the fire I break not the Rules of patience, or else assuage the terror of the pains as shall seem most to thy glory. When he was at the Stake, three irons made to bind him to the Stake, were brought; one for his Neck, another for his Middle, and the third for his Legs. He refusing them, said, Ye have no need thus to trouble yourselves, for I doubt not but God will give strength sufficient to abide the extremity of the fire without bands: notwithstanding, suspecting the frailty and weakness of the flesh, but having assured confidence in God's strength, I am content ye do as ye shall think good. When he was first scorched with the fire, Pag. 156. he prayed, saying mildly, and not very loud (but as one without pains) O Jesus the Son of David have mercy upon me, and receive my soul. When the second fire was spent, and only burnt his lower parts, he said, for God's love (good people) let me have more fire. In the third fire he prayed with somewhat a loud voice, Lord Jesus have mercy on me, Lord Jesus have mercy on me, Lord Jesus receive my Spirit. The Reasons of Mr. Hooper's refusing the Episcopal Habits, etc. I find thus. C. Why do not you my Lord use these innocent and harmless weeds? See Cabal. p. 13, 14. H. I put myself upon the trial of the Searcher of Hearts, that no obstinacy, but mere Conscience makes me refuse these Ornaments. C. These Ornaments are indifferent of themselves, and of ancient use in the Church. H. They are useless being ridiculous and superstitious. C. Nay, my Lord, being enjoined by lawful Authority, they become necessary, not to salvation, but to Church-unity. H. Being left indifferent by God, it is presumption in man to make them necessary. C. By a moderate use of these Ceremonies we may gain Papists into the Church. H. While you hope to gain Papists into the Church, you lose many Protestants out of it. C. You discredit other Bishops, who have used this Habit. H. I had rather discredit them then destroy mine own conscience. C. How think you, being a private person, to be indulged with, to the disturbance of the public Uniformity of the Church? H. If it please your Grace but to read these Letters, I hope you will be satisfied (and then he produced the Letters from the Earl of Warwick, an● King Edward.) C. These are to desire, that in such reasonable things, wherein my Lord Elect of Gloucester craveth to be born withal at your hands, you would vouchsafe your Grace's favour; the principal cause is, that you would not charge him with any thing burdenous to his Conscience. I. Warwick. WE do understand you stay from Consecrating our well beloved Mr. J. Hooper, because h● would have you omit and let p●ss c●rtain Rites and Ceremonies offensive to his Conscience, whereby you thi●● you shall fall in praemunire of Laws; We have thought good by advice of Our Council to discharge you 〈◊〉 manner of Dangers, Penalties, and Forfeiture 〈◊〉 should run into, by omitting any of the s●me, and 〈◊〉 Our Letters shall be your sufficient Warrant and Discharge. Edward Rex. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 116. In his Letter writ in Answer to one sent hi● concerning certain taken in Bow Church-yard whilst they were praying.— I do rejoice in th●● men can be so well occupied in this perilous time and flee for remedy to God by Prayer, as well fo● their own lacks and necessities, as also charitably to pray for them that persecute them. So doth the Word of God command all men to pray charitably for them that hate them, and not to revile any Magistrate with words, or to mean him evil by force and violence. They also may rejoice that in well doing they were taken to Prison.— Thus fare you well, and pray God to send his true Word into this Realm again amongst us, which the ungodly Bishops have now banished. In his Letter to those Christians so taken Prisoners.— The grace, Pag. 117. favour, consolation, and ●●d of the Holy Ghost be with you now and ever. So be it. Dear Beloved in the Lord, ever since I ●eard of your imprisonment I have been marvellously moved with great affections and passions, as well of mirth and gladness, as of heaviness and sorrow. Of gladness in this, that I perceived how ye be bend and given to prayer and invocation of God's help in these dark and wicked proceedings of men against God's glory. I have been sorry to perceive the malice and wickedness of men to be so 〈◊〉 devilish, and tyrannical to persecute the 〈◊〉 of God for serving of God, etc. These 〈◊〉 doings do declate, that the Papists Church is 〈◊〉 bloody and tyrannical, then ever was the 〈◊〉 of the Ethnics and Gentiles.— Trajan the Emperor commanded, That no man should be persecuted for serving of God: but the Pope and his Church have cast you into Prison, being taken doing the Work of God, and one of the excellentest Works, that is required of Christians, viz. whilst ye were in Prayer.— O glad may ye be that ever ye were born to be apprehended, whilst ye were so virtuously occupied. Blessed be they that suffer for righeeousness sake. If God had suffered them that took your bodies, then to have taken your life also, now had you been following the Lamb in pertual joys, away from the company and assembly of wicked men. But the Lord would not have you suddenly so to depart, but reserveth you gloriously to speak and maintain his Truth to the world. Be ye not careful what ye shall say; for God will go out and in with you, and will be present in your hearts and in your mouths to speak his wisdom, though it seems foolishness to the world. He that hath begun this good work in you, continue in the same unto the end. Pray unto him, Mat. 10. that ye may fear him only, that hath power to kill both body and soul, and to cast them into hell fire. Luke 12. Be of good comfort, all the hairs of your head are numbered, and there is not one of them can perish, except your heavenly Father suffer it to perish. Now you be in the field, and placed in the forefront of Christ's battle. Doubtless it is a singular favour of God, and a special love of him towards you, to give him this pre-eminence, as a sign that he trusteth you before others of his people. Wherefore (dear Brethren and Sisters) continually fight this Fight of the 〈◊〉 Your Cause is most just and godly, ye stan● 〈◊〉 the true Christ (who is after the flesh in He●●●●) and for his true Religion and Honour, 〈…〉 amply, fully, sufficiently, and abundantly contained in the holy Testament, sealed with Christ's own blood. How much be ye bound to God, who put● you in trust with so holy and just a Cause? Remember what lookers on you have to see and behold you in your fight, God and all his holy Angels, who be ready always to take you up into Heaven, if ye be slain in his Fight. Also you have standing a● your backs all the multitude of the Faithful, who shall take courage, strength, and desire to follow such noble and valiant Christians, as you be. Be not afraid of your Adversaries; 1 john 4. for he that is in you, is stronger than he that is in them. Shrink not although it be pain to you: your pains be not now so great, as hereafter your joys shall be. Read the comfortable Chapters to the Romans, 8.10, 15. Hebrews 11.12. And upon your knees thank God that ever ye were accounted worthy to suffer any thing for his Names sake. Read the second Chapter of Luke, and there you shall see how the Shepherds, that watched their Sheep all night, as soon as they heard that Christ was born at Bethlehem, by and by went to see him. They did not reason nor debate with themselves, who should keep the Wolf from the Sheep in the mean time, but did as they were commanded, and committed their Sheep unto him, whose pleasure they obeyed. So let us do now we be called, commit all other things to him that calleth us. He will take heed that all things shall be well. He will help the Husband: he will comfort the Wife: he will guide the Servants: he will keep the House: he will preserve the Goods; yea rather then it should be undone, he will wash the Dishes, and rock the Cradle. Cast therefore all your care upon God; for he careth for you. Besides this, you may perceive by your imprisonment, that your Adversaries weapons against you be nothing but flesh, and blood, and tyranny, for if they were able, they would maintain their Religion by God's Word; but for lack of that, they would violently compel, such as they cannot by holy Scripture persuade; because the holy Word of God, and all Christ's doings be contrary unto them. I pray you pray for me, and I will pray for you. Fleet, jan. 14. 1555. Pag. 156. In a Letter to certain of his Friends.— Now is the time of trial, to see whether we fear more, God or man. It was an easy thing to hold with Christ, whilst the Prince and world held with him; but now the world hateth him, it is the true trial who be his. Wherefore in the Name, and in the Virtue, Strength, and Power of his holy Spirit, prepare yourselves in any case to adversity and constancy. Let us not run away, when it is most time to fight. Remember none shall be crowned, but such as fight manfully; and he that endureth to the end shall be saved. Ye must now turn all your cogitations from the peril you see, and mark the felicity that followeth the peril, either victory in this world of your enemies, or else a surrender of this life to inherit the everlasting Kingdom▪ Beware of beholding too much the felicity, or misery of this world; for the consideration and too earnest love or fear of either of them draweth from God. Wherefore think with yourselves, as touching the felicity of the world, it is good; but yet none otherwise than it standeth with the favour of God. It is to be kept; but yet so far forth, as by keeping of it we lose not God. It is good abiding and tarrying still among our friends here; but yet so, that we tarry not therewithal in God's displeasure, and hereafter dwell with the Devils in fire everlasting. There is nothing under God, but may be kept, so that God, being above all things we have be not lost. Of adversity judge the same. Imprisonment is painful, but yet liberty upon evil conditions is more painful. The Prisons stink; but yet not so much as sweet Houses, where the fear and true honour of God is lacking. I must be alone and solitary: It is better to be so, and have God with me, then to be in company with the wicked. Loss of Goods is great; but loss of God's grace and favour is greater. I am a poor simple creature, and cannot tell how to answer before such a great sort of noble, learned, and wise men: It is better to make answer before the pomp and pride of wicked men, then to stand naked in the light of all Heaven and Earth before the just God at the later day. I shall die then by the hands of the cruel man: He is blessed, that loseth his life full of miseries, and findeth the life of eternal joys. It is pain and grief to depart from Goods and Friends; but yet not so much as to depart from grace and Heaven itself. Pag. 157. Wherefore there is neither felicity, nor adversity of this world, that can appear to be great, if it be weighed with the joys or pains in the world to come. I can do no more, but pray for you; do the same for me, for God's sake. For my part (I thank the heavenly Father) I have made mine accounts, and appointed myself unto the will of the heavenly Father: as he will, so I will by his grace.— I am a precious jewel now, and daintily kept, never so daintily; for neither mine own man, nor any of the Servants of the House may come to me, but my Keeper alone. jan. 21. 1555. In another Letter.— The grace, mercy, Pag. 158. and peace of God the Father, through our Lord Jesus Christ, be with you my dear Brethren, and with all those that unfeignedly love and embrace his holy Gospel. Amen. We must give God thanks for the Truth he hath opened, etc. and pray unto him, that we deny it not, nor dishonour it with idolatry; but that we may have strength and patience, rather to die ten times, then to deny him once. Blessed shall we be, if ever God make us worthy of that honour to shed our blood for his Names sake: and blessed then shall we think those Parents, which brought us into this world, that we should be carried from this mortality into immortality. If we follow the command of Paul, that saith, Col. 3. If ye be risen with Christ, s●ek those things which are above, where Christ sitteth at the right hand of God; we shall neither depart from the vain transitory goods of this world, nor from this wretched and mortal life, with so great pains, as others do.— There is no better way to be used in this troublesome time for your consolation, than many times to have Assemblies together of such men and women, as be of your Religion in Christ, and there to take and renew among yourselves the truth of your Religion, to see what ye be by the Word of God, and to remember what ye were before ye came to the knowledge thereof; to weigh and confer the dreams and false lies of the Preachers, that now preach, with the Word of God, that retaineth all truth: and by such talk, and familiar resorting together, ye shall the better find out all their lies, that now go about to deceive you, and also both know and love the Truth that God hath opened to us. It is much requisite that the Members of Christ comfort one another, make prayers together, confer one with another; so shall ye be stronger, and God's Spirit shall not be absent from you, but in the midst of you, to teach you, to comfort you, to make you wise in all godly things, patient in adversity, and strong in persecution. Ye see how the Congregation of the wicked, by helping one another, make their wicked Religion and themselves strong against God's Truth and his people.— Ye may perceive b●● the life of our forefathers, that Christ's words, In the world ye shall have trouble: H● that will live godly in Christ must suffer persecution, be true; for none of all his before our time escaped trouble: then shall ye perceive that it is but a folly for one that professeth Christ truly, to look for the love of the world. Ye be no better than your forefathers. Be glad that ye may be counted worthy Soldiers for this War: and pray to God when ye come together, that he will use and order you and your doings. (1) That ye glorify God. (2) That ye edify the Church and Congregation. (3) That ye profit your own souls. In all your doings beware ye be not deceived; for although this time be not yet so bloody and tyrannous, as the time of our forefathers, that could not bear the Name of Christ, without danger of life and goods; yet is our time more perilous for soul and body. Therefore of us Christ said, Luke 18. Think ye when the Son of man cometh, he shall find faith upon the earth? He speaks not of being christened and in name a Christian, but of saving Faith: and doubtless the scarcity of Faith is now more (and will, I fear, increase) than it was in the time of the greatest Tyrants, that ever were. In Rev. 6. ye may perceive that at the opening of the fourth Seal came out a pale Horse, and he that sat upon him was called Death, and Hell followed him. This Horse is the time, when Hypocrites and Dissemblers entered into the Church, under pretence of the true Religion, etc. that have killed more souls with heresy and superstition, than all the Tyrants that ever killed bodies by fire, sword, or banishment, etc. and all souls, that trust to these Hypocrites, live to the Devil in everlasting pain, as is declared by Hell's following the pale Horse. These pale Hypocrites have stirred up Earthquakes, i. e. the Princes of the world against Christ's Church. They have darkened the Sun, and made the Moon bloody, and have caused the Stars to fall from Heaven, i. e. they have darkened with mists, and daily darken the Sun of God's Word, imprisoned, and chained, and butchered Gods true Preachers, Pag. 159. which fetch only light at the Sun of God's Word, that their light cannot shine unto the world, as they would: Whereupon it comes to pass, that many Christians fall from God's true Word to hypocrisy, most devilish superstition and idolatry.— In his Letter to Bishop Farrar, Doctor Tailor, Mr. Bradford, and Mr. Philpot, Prisoners in the King's Bench in Southwark.— I am advertised, that we shall be carried shortly to Cambride, there to dispute for the Faith and for the Religion of Christ (which is most true) that we have and do profess. I am (as I doubt not ye be) in Christ ready) not only to go to Cam●ridge, but also to suffer, by God's help, death itself in the maintenance thereof.— I write this to comfort you in the Lord, that the time draweth near, and is at hand, that we shall testify before God's enemies God's Truth.— May 6. 1554. Yours, and with you unto death in Christ, J. H. Pag. 160. In his Letter to his Wife.— As the Devil hath entered into their hearts, that they themselves cannot, or will not come to Christ to be instructed by his holy Word; so can they not abide any others to become Christians, and lead their lives after the Word of God, but hate, persecute, rob, imprison, and kill them, whether male or female; though they have never offended Gods or Man's Law, yea though they daily pray for them, and wish them Gods grace; having no respect to nature. The Brother persecuteth the Brother, the Father the Son, and most dear Friends are become most mortal Enemies. And no marvel; for they have chosen sundry Masters, the one the Devil, the other God. The one agree with the other, as God and the Devil agree between themselves. Gen. 21. Gal. 4. — As he that was born after the flesh persecuted in times p●st him that was born after the Spirit, even so it is now. Therefore forasmuch as we live in this life amongst so many great perils and dangers, the only remedy is what Christ hath appointed, Luke 21. Ye shall possess yourselves in patience.— When troubles come we must be patient, and in no case violently, nor seditiously to resist our persecutors; because God hath such care of us, that he will keep in the midst of all troubles the very hairs of our heads, etc. And seeing he hath such care of the hairs of our heads, how much more doth he care for our life itself? Their cruelty hath no farther power than God permitteth, and that which cometh unto us by the will of our heavenly Father, can be no harm, loss, destruction to us, but rather gain, wealth, and felicity. That the spirit of man may feel these consolations, the giver of them, the heavenly Father, must be prayed unto for the merits of Christ's Passion; for it is not the nature of man that can be contented, until it be regenerated and possessed with God's Spirit, to bear patiently the troubles of mind or body. When the mind of man sees troubles on every side, threatening poverty, yea death, except the man weigh these brittle and uncertain treasures, that be taken from him, with the riches of the life to come, and this life of the body with the life in Christ's blood, and so for the love and certainty of the heavenly joys contemn all things present, doubtless he shall never be able to bear the loss of goods and life.— The Christian man's faith must be always upon the resurrection of Christ, when he is in trouble, and in that glorious resurrection he shall see continual joy, yea victory and triumph over all persecution, trouble, sin, death, hell, the Devil, and all other persecutors; the tears and weep of the faithful dried up, their wounds healed, their bodies made immortal in joy, their souls for ever praising the Lord, in conjunction and society everlasting with the blessed company of God's Elect in perpetual joy. If ye le risen with Christ, Col. 3. seek the things which are above, where Christ sitteth at the right hand of God the Father. When he biddeth us seek the things that are above, he requireth that our minds never cease from prayer and study in God's Word, until we see, know, and understand the vanities of this world, the shortness and misery of this life, and the treasures of the world to come, the immortality thereof, the joys of that life, and so never cease seeking, until such time as we know certainly and be persuaded what a blessed man he is, that seeketh the one and findeth it, and careth not for the other though he lose it; and in seeking, Pag. 161. to have right judgement between the life present and the life to come, we shall find how little the pains, imprisonment, slanders, lies, and death itself is in the world, in respect of pains everlasting, the Prison infernal, and Dungeon of Hell, the Sentence of God's Judgement, and everlasting Death. When a man hath by seeking the Word of God found out what the things above be, then must he set his affections upon them. And this Command is more hard than the other; for for man's knowledge many times sees the best: men know that there is a life to come, better than this present, etc. Yet they set not their affection upon it, they do more affect and love indeed a trifle of nothing in this world, that pleaseth their affection, than the treasure of all treasures in Heaven. We must set our affections on things above, i. e. when any thing worse than Heaven, offereth itself to be ours, if we will give our good wills to it, and love it in our hearts, than ought we to see by the judgement of God's Word, whether we may have it without God's displeasure; if we cannot, if the riches of this world may not be gotten nor kept by God's Law, neither our lives continued without the denial of his honour, we must set our affections upon the riches and life that is above, and not upon things that be upon the earth. This second Command requires, that as our mind judgeth Heavenly things to be better than Earthly, and the life to come better than the present life; so we should choose them before other, and prefer them, etc. These things be easy to be spoken of, but not so easy to be used and practised.— Read Psa. 88 wherein is contained the prayer of a man, that being vexed with Adversaries and persecutions, saw nothing but death and hell, apprehending not only man, but God angry with him; yet he by Prayer humbly resorted unto God, and put the hope of his salvation in him, whom he felt his enemy.— In this Command (possess your lives by your patience) God requires every one to be patient, he saith not, It is sufficient that other holy Patriarches, Prophets, Apostles, Evangelists, and Martyrs continued their lives in patient suffering the troubles of this world; but Christ saith it to every one of his people. By your patience continue you your life, not that man hath patience in himself, but that he must have it for himself of God, the only Giver of it, if he purpose to be a godly man. Besides, as our Profession and Religion requireth patience outwardly, without resistance and force, so requireth it patience of the mind, and not to be angry with God, although he use us, that be his own creatures, as him listeth. We may not murmur against God, Pag. 162. but say always his Judgements be right and just, and rejoice that it pleaseth him to use us, as he used heretofore such as he most loved in this world. Have a singular care to this command, be glad and rejoice, etc. he showeth great cause why, because your reward is great in Heaven. Christ also takes from us all shame and rebuke, Mat. 5. as though it were not an honour to suffer for him, because the wicked world doth curse and abhor such poor troubled Christians. He placeth all his honourably, saying, Even so persecuted they the Prophets that were before you.— We may learn by things that nourish and maintain us, both meat and drink, what loathsomeness, and (in a manner) abhorring they come to before they work their perfection in us, etc. that whosoever saw the same would loathe and abhor his own nourishment, before it come to its perfection. Is it then any marvel if such Christians, as God delighteth in, be so mangled and defaced in this world, which is the Kitchen and Mill, to boil and grind the flesh of God's people in, till they achieve their perfection in the world to come?— Raw flesh is not meat wholesome for man, and unmortified men and women be not creatures meet for God. Christ's people must be broken and all to torn in the Mill of this world, and so shall they be most fine meat to their Heavenly Father.— We must therefore patiently suffer, and willingly attend upon God's doings, although they seem clean contrary, after our judgement, to our wealth and salvation, as Abraham did, when he was bid to offer his Son Isaac, in whom God promised the Blessing and multiplying of his seed. joseph at the last came to that which God promised him, although in the mean time, after the Judgement of the world, he was never like to be, as God said he should be Lord over his Brethren. When Christ would make the blind man to see, he put clay upon his eyes, which after the judgement of man was a means rather to make his double blind, then to give him his sight, but he obeyed and knew that God could work his desire, what means soever he used contrary to man's reasons.— To judge things indifferently, the trouble be not yet generally, as they were in our good Father's time, soon after the death and resurrection of our Saviour Christ— Was there ever such trouble as Christ threatened upon jerusalem? Mat. 24. Towards the end of the world we have nothing so much extremity as they had then, but even as we be able to bear.— In another Letter.— I require you not to forget your duty towards God in these perilous days, in the which the Lord will try us. I trust you do increase by the reading of the Scriptures, the knowledge you have of God, and that you diligently apply yourself to follow the same; for the knowledge helpeth not, except the life be according thereto. — I commend you to God, and the guiding of his ghost Spirit, to establish and confirm you in all well doing, and keep you blameless to the day of the Lord, watch and pray, for this day is at hand. In his Letter to his charitable Friends in London. — For your liberality I most heartily thank you, and praise God highly in you for you, etc. praying him to preserve you from all famine, scarcity, and lack of the truth of his Word, which is the lively food of your souls, as you preserve my body from hunger, and other necessities that would happen unto me, were it not cared for by the charity of godly people. Such as have spoiled me of all that I had, have imprisoned me, and appointed not one halfpenny to feed or relieve me withal; but I do forgive them, and pray for them daily in my poor Prayer to God, and from my heart I wish their salvation, and quietly and patiently bear their injuries, wishing no farther extremity to be used towards us: yet if the contrary seem best to our heavenly Father, I have made my reckoning, and fully resolved to suffer the uttermost that they are able to do against me; yea death itself by the aid of Christ Jesus, who died the most vile death of the Cross for us, wretched and miserable sinners. But of this I am assured, that the wicked world with all his force and power shall not touch one of the hairs of our heads without leave and licence of our heavenly Father, whose will be done in all things. If he will life, life be it; if he will death, death be it; only we pray that our wills may be subject to his will.— If we be contented to obey God's will, and for his Commands sake to surrender our goods and our lives to be at his pleasure, it maketh no matter whether we keep goods and life, or lose them. Nothing can hurt us that is taken from us for God's Cause, nor can any thing at length do us good that is preserved contrary to God's command. Let us wholly suffer God to use us and ours after his holy wisdom, and beware we neither use nor govern ourselves contrary to his will by our own wisdom; for if we do, our wisdom will at length prove foolishness. It is kept to no good purpose, that we keep contrary to his Commandments. It can by no means be taken from us, that he would should tarry with us. He is no good Christian that ruleth himself and his, as worldly means serve; for he that so doth, shall have as many changes as chances in the world. To day with the world he shall like and praise the truth of God, to morrow, as the world will, so will he like and praise the falsehood of man; to day with Christ, to morrow with Antichrist.— Glorify your heavenly Father both with your inward and outward man. If ye think ye can inwardly in the heart serve him, and yet outwardly serve with the world in external service the thing that is not of God, ye deceive yourselves; for both the body and soul must concur together in the honour of God; 1 Cor. 6. for if an honest wife be bound to give both heart and body to faith and service in marriage, and if an honest wife's faith in the heart cannot stand with a whorish or defiled body, much less can the true faith of a Christian in the service of Christianity stand with the bodily service of external idolatry; for the mystery of Marriage is not so honourable between man and wife, as it is between Christ and every Christian. Therefore (dear Brethren) pray to the heavenly Father, that as he spared not the soul nor the body of his dearly beloved Son, but applied both of them with extreme pain, to work our salvation both of soul and body: so he will give us all grace to apply our souls and bodies to be Servants to him.— Let us not deride ourselves, and say our souls serve him, whatsoever our bodies do to the contrary for civil order and policy. But alas! I know by myself what troubleth you, Pag. 164. viz. the great danger of the world, that will revenge (ye think) your service to God with sword and fire, with loss of goods and lands: but (dear Brethren) weigh on the other side, that your enemies and Gods enemies shall not do as much as they would, but as much as God shall suffer them, who can trap them in their own counsels, and destroy them in the midst of their furies. Remember ye be the Workmen of the Lord, and called into his Vineyard, there to labour till Evening-Tide, that you may receive your penny, which is more worth than all the Kingdoms of the Earth; but he that called us into his Vineyard, hath not told us how sore and how fervently the Sun shall trouble us in our labour, but hath bid us labour, and commit the bitterness thereof to him, who can and will so moderate all afflictions, that no man shall have more laid upon him, then in Christ he shall be able to bear, unto whose merciful tuition and defence I commend both your souls and bodies. Yours with my poor Prayer. J. H. In a Letter to a Merchant of London.— I thank God and you for the great help and consolation I have received in time of adversity by your charity, but most rejoice that you be not altered from truth, although falsehood cruelly seeketh to disdain her. Judge not my Brother truth by outward appearance, for truth now worse appeareth, and is more vilely rejected then falsehood. Leave the outward show, and see by the Word of God what is truth, and accept truth, and dislike her not, though man call her falsehood. As it is now, so it hath been heretofore: truth hath been rejected, and falsehood received. Such as have professed truth, have smarted, and the friends of falsehood laughed them to scorn. The one having the commendation of truth by man, but the condemnation of falsehood by God, flourishing for a time with endless destruction; the other afflicted a little season, but ending with immortal joys. Wherefore, dear Brother, ask and demand of your Book, the Testament of Jesus Christ, in these woeful and wretched days, what you should think, and what you should stay yourselves upon for a certain truth, and whatsoever you hear taught, try it by your Book, whether it be true or false. The days be dangerous and full of peril, not only for the world, and worldly things, but for Heaven and heavenly things. It is a trouble to lose the treasure of this life, but yet a very pain if it be kept with the offence of God. Cry, call, pray, and in Christ daily require help, succour, mercy, wisdom, grace, and defence, that the wickedness of this world prevail not against us.— In his Letter to Mrs. Wilkinson.— I am very glad to hear of your health, and do thank you for your loving tokens; but I am a great deal more glad to hear how Christianly you avoid idolatry, and prepare yourself to suffer the extremity of the world, rather than to endanger yourself too God. You do as you ought to do in this behalf, and in suffering of transitory pains, you shall avoid permanent torments in the world to come. Use your life and keep it with as much quietness as you can, so that you offend not God. The ease that cometh with his displeasure turneth at length to unspeakable pains; and the gains of the world, with the loss of his favours is beggary and wretchedness.— In his Letter to Mr. Hall and his Wife.— The days be dangerous and full of peril; but let us comfort ourselves in calling to remembrance the days of our Forefathers, upon whom the Lord sent such troubles, that many hundreds, yea thousands died for the testimony of Jesus Christ, both men and women, suffering with patience and constancy as much cruelty as Tyrants could devise, and so departed out of this miserable world to the bliss everlasting, where now they remain for ever, looking always for the end of this sinful world, when they shall receive their bodies again in immortality, and see the number of the Elect associated with them in full and consummate joys; and as virtuous men suffering Martyrdom now rest in joys everlasting, their pains ending their sorrows, and beginning their ease: so did their constancy and steadfastness animate and confirm all good people in the truth, and gave them encouragement to suffer the like, rather than to fall with the world to consent unto wickedness and idolatry. Wherefore, my dear Friends, seeing God hath illuminated you in the same true faith, wherein the Apostles, and Evangelists, and all Martyrs suffered most cruel death, thank him for his grace in knowledge, and pray to him for strength and perseverance, that ye be not ashamed nor afraid to confess it. Ye be in the truth, and the gates of Hell shall never prevail against it, nor Antichrist with all his Imps prove it false; they may persecute and kill, but never overcome. Be of good comfort, and fear God more than man. This life is short and miserable; happy be they that can spend it to the glory of God. In his Letter to Mrs. Warcop. Pag. 165. — I did rejoice to understand, that you be fully resolved by God's grace to suffer extremity, rather than to go from the truth which you have professed.— As you be travelling this perilous journey, take this Lesson with you, practised by the Wise men, Matth. 2. Such as traveled to find Christ, followed only the Star, and as long as they saw it, they were assured they were in the right way, and had great mirth in their journey; but when they entered into jerusalem, whereas the Star led them not thither, but to Bethlem, and there asked the Citizens the thing that the Star showed before, they were not only ignorant of Bethlem, but lost the sight of the Star, etc.— The Word is the only Star that showeth us where Christ is, and which way we may come unto him; But as jerusalem stood in the way, and was an impediment to the Wise men, so doth the Synagogue of Antichrist, that beareth the Name of jerusalem, i. e. the Vision of Peace, and among the people now is called the Catholic Church, standeth in the way that Pilgrims must go by through this world to Bethlem, i. e. the house of bread or plentifulness, and is an impediment to all Christian Travellers; yea, and except the more grace of God be, will keep the Pilgrims still in her, that they shall not come where Christ is at all; and to stay them indeed, they take away the Star of Light, which is God's Word, that it cannot be seen.— Ye may see what great dangers happened unto these Wise men, whilst they were learning of Liars; where Christ was. (1) They were out of their way. And (2) They lost their Guide and Conductor.— If we come into the Church of men, and ask for Christ, we go out of the way, and lose also our Conductor and Guide, that only leadeth us straight thither.— Sister, take heed, you shall in your journey towards Heaven meet with many a monstrous beast: have salve therefore of God's Word; therefore ready you shall meet husbands, children, lovers and friends, that shall, if God be not with them, be very le●s and impediments to your purpose. You shall meet with slander and contempt of the world, and be accounted ungracious and ungodly, you shall hear and meet with cruel tyranny to do you all extremities; you shall now and then see the troubles of your own conscience, and feel your own weakness; you shall hear that you be cursed by the sentence of the Catholic Church, with such like terrors, that pray to God, and follow the Star of his Word, and you shall arrive at the Port of Eternal Salvation, by the merits only of Jesus Christ— Hudson. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 869. When Thomas Hudson of Ailesham in Norfolk saw the Constables come to his house to apprehend him, he said; Now mine hour is welcome, friends, welcome, you be they that shall lead me to life in Christ. I thank God therefore, and the Lord enable me thereto for his mercy's sake; for his desire was, and he ever prayed (if it were the Lords will) that he might suffer for the Gospel of Christ. When Berry threatened him, saying, I will write to the Bishop my good Lord, etc. O Sir (said he) there is no Lord but God, though there be many lords and many gods. Wilt thou recant (said Berry the Priest) or no? The Lord forbid (said Hudson) I had rather die many deaths then to do so. Pag. 870. When he came first to the Stake, he was very sad, not for his death, but for lack of feeling his Christ; and therefore came from his Fellow-sufferers under the Chain, and fell down upon his knees, and prayed; and at last he rose with great joy, as a man new changed, even from death to life, and▪ said, Now I thank God I am strong, and pass not what man can do unto me. Hullier. Mr. john Hullier, Fox, Vol 3. pag. 696. Conduct in King's College at Cambridge, suffered martyrdom at Cambridge, April 2. A. 1556. In his Letter to the Christian Congegation.— It standeth now most in hand (O dear Christians) all them that look to be accounted of Christ's flock at the great and terrible day, when a separation shall be made, etc. faithfully in this time of great afflictions, to hear our Master Christ's voice, the only true Shepherd of our souls, who saith, Whosoever shall endure to the end shall be saved. Mat. 24. — In this time we must needs either show that we be his faithful Soldiers, Ephes. 6. and continue in his battle to the end, putting on the armour of God, the buckler of Faith, the breastplate of Love, the helmet of Hope and Salvation, and the Sword of his holy Word, with all instance of supplication and prayer, or else, if we do not work and labour with these, we are Apostates and false Soldiers, shrinking most unthankfully from our Gracious and Sovereign Lord and Captain Christ, and leaning to Belia●; Luke 14. for he saith plainly, Whosoever beareth not my Cross, and followeth me, cannot be my Disciple, and, Mat. 6. No man can serve two Masters; for either he must hate the one and love the other, or else he shall lean to the one and despise the other. Elias also said unto the people, 1 Kin. 18. Why halt ye between two opinions? If the Lord be God, follow him; or if Baal be he, follow him.— If Christ be that only good and true Shepherd, that gave his life for us, then let us, that bear his mark, and have our consciences sprinkled with his blood, follow altogether for our salvation his heavenly voice and calling, according to our profession and first promise. If we shall not, certainly (say what we can) though we bear the Name of Christ, we are none of his Sheep indeed; for he saith manifestly, john 10. My sheep hear my voice and follow me: A stranger they will not follow, but will flee from him; for they know not the voice of a stranger.— The craft and wiliness of our subtle enemy is manifold and divers, and full of close windings:— At this present day if he cannot induce one throughly, as others do, to savour his devilish Religion, and of good will and free heart to help to uphold the same, yet he will inveigle him to resort to his wicked and whorish School-house, and to keep company with his Congregation there, and to hold his peace and say nothing, whatsoever he think, etc. by that subtle means flattering him, that he shall both save his life and also his goods, and live in quiet. But if we look well on Christ's holy Will and Testament, we shall perceive that he came not to make any such peace upon Earth, nor that he gave any such peace to his Disciples, I leave peace with you (saith he) my peace I give you, john 14.15, 16. not as the world giveth it, give I unto you. Let not your heart be troubled and fearful. These things have I spoken unto you, that in me ye should have peace, in the world ye shall have affliction; Luke 14. but be of good cheer, I have overcome the world. The Servant is not greater than his Lord and Master; if they have persecuted me, they shall also persecute you. If any man come to me and hateth not his father and mother, etc. yea and moreover his own life, it is not possible for him to be my Disciple. Blessed be ye, that now weep; for ye shall laugh: and woe be unto you that now laugh, for ye shall mourn and weep. Pag. 697. He that will find his life, shall lose it. Therefore the God of that true peace and comfort, preserve us that we never obey such a false Flatterer, who at length will pay us home once for all, bringing for temporal peace and quietness, everlasting trouble, etc. for these vain and transitory goods, extreme loss of the eternal treasure and inheritance; for this mortal life, deprivation of the most joyful life immortal, and endless death most miserable, etc.— I judge it better to go to School with our Master Christ, and to be under his Ferula and Rod (although it seems sharp and grievous for a time) that at length we may be inheriters with him of everlasting joy, rather than to keep company with the Devils Scholars, the adulterous generation, in his School, that is all full of pleasure for a while, and at the end to be paid with the wages of continual burning in the most horrible Lake, which burneth evermore with fire and brimstone, etc.— What doth he else, I pray you, that resorteth to the Ministration and Service, that is most repugnant to Christ's holy Testament, there keeping still silence, and nothing reproving the same, but in the face of the world by his very deed itself, declare himself to be of a false, fearful, dissembling, feigned, and unfaithful heart, discouraging, as much as lies in him, all the residues of Christ's Host, and giving a manifest offence unto the weak, and also confirming, encouraging, and rejoicing the hearts of the adversaries in all their evil doing? by which he showeth himself, neither to love God, whom he seeth to be dishonoured and blasphemed of an Antichristian Minister, nor yet his Neighbour, before whom he should rebuke the evil, according to the command, Thou shalt not hate thy Neighbour, Leu. 18. 2 Tim. 1. but reprove him, etc.— But God hath not given us the spirit of fear, but of power and love. Be not ashamed to testify our Lord, but suffer adversity with the Gospel, M●●. 10. 1 Pet. 3. through the power of God, etc. Fear not them that kill the body, etc. Fear not, though they seem terrible unto you, neither be troubled, but sanctify the Lord God in your hearts. Only let your conversation be as becomes the Gospel, Phil. 1. etc. in nothing fearing your adversaries, which is to them a token of damnation, and to you of salvation, and that of God; for unto you it is given not only to believe in Christ, but to suffer for his sake.— In the Revelation it is written, Rev. 21. That the fearful shall have their part with the Unbelieving and Abominable, in the Lake that burneth with fire and brimstone, which is the second death. Matt. 7. — Wide is the gate and broad is the way which leadeth to destruction, and many there be that go in thereat; but straight is the gate, and narrow is the way that leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it.— Thus I wholly commit you to him, Pag. 698. and to the Word of his grace, which is able to build further, beseeching you most heartily to pray for me, that I may be strong in the Lord and in the power of his might, and stand perfect in all things, being always prepared and ready, looking for the mercy of our Lord unto eternal rest, and I will pray for you, as I am most bound. So I trust he will graciously hear us for his promise sake in Christ. Your Christian Brother, a Prisoner of the Lord, John Hullier. In another Letter to the Congregation of Christ's faithful followers.— Most dear Christians, having now the sweet comfort of Gods saving health, and being confirmed with his free Spirit, (be he only praised therefore) I am constrained in my conscience to admonish you, as ye tender the salvation of your souls, by all manner of means to separate yourselves from the Antichristian Company, considering what is said in the Revelation, If any man worship the Beast and his Image, Revel. 14. and receive his mark in the forehead, or in his hand, the same shall drink of the wine of the wrath of God, which is poured into the cup of his wrath, etc.— The Beast is none other, but the carnal and fleshly Kingdom of Antichrist.— What do they else but worship this Beast and his Image, 2 Pet. 2. who after they had escaped from the filthiness of the world, through the knowledge of the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, are yet again tangled therein, and overcome, using dissimulation for fear of their displeasure, doing one thing outwardly, and thinking inwardly another: So having them in reverence under a cloak and colour, to whom they ought not so much as to say, joh. Ep. 2. God speed; and adjoining themselves to the Malignant Congregation, which they ought to abhor as a Den of Thiefs and Murderers, and a Brothel-house of most blasphemous Fornicators.— But this feignedness and dissimulation, Christ and his Gospel will no ways allow. Luke 9 — Whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my words in this adulterous and sinful generation, of him also shall the S●n of man be ashamed, when he shall come in the glory of his Father, Mal. 1. Heb. 6. Luke 6. etc. Cursed be the dissemblers, etc. Ye were once enlightened, and tasted of the heavenly gift.— And no man that putteth his hand to the Plough and looketh back, is apt for the Kingdom of God.— They went out from us, 1 john 2. but they were not of us; for if they had been of us, no doubt they would have continued with us.— Wherefore, good Christians, for God's dear love, deceive not yourselves through your own wisdom, 1 Cor. 3. and through the wisdom of the world, which is foolishness before God; but certify and stay your own consciences with the faithful Word of God, Psa. 145. Hebr. 3. etc. Though God's mercy is over all his works, yet it doth not extend but only to them that hold fast the confidence and rejoicing of hope unto the end, not being weary of well doing, but rather every day waxing stronger and stronger in the inward man. In the Revelation, where it is entreated of the Beast and his Image, Revel. 13. it is said, Here is the sufferance of Saints, and here are they that keep the Commandments and Faith of jesus Christ; intimating, that God doth use those wicked men as instruments for a time, to try the patience and faith of his peculiar people, etc.— Peradventure you will say, What shall we do? shall we cast ourselves headlong to death? I say not so; but this I say, That we are all bound (if ever we look to receive salvation at God's hands) in this case to be wholly obedient to his determinate counsel, etc. and then to cast all our care on him, who worketh all in all for the best unto them that love him. Now thus be commandeth, Come away from her my people, Revel. 18. that ye be not partakers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues.— Come out from among them, Pag. 699. and join not yourselves to their unlawful Assemblies; yea, do not once show yourselves with the least part of your body to favour their wicked doings.— Now choose you which way you will take, either the narrow, etc. or the broad way, etc. I for my part have now written this short Admonition to you of good will, (as God is my witness) to exhort you to that way, which at length you shall prove and find to be best; and I do not only write this, but I will (with the assistance of God's grace) seal it with my blood.— Hunter. Atwell a Sumner, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 190. telling William Hunter it was never a merry world since the Bible came abroad in English: Say not so for God's sake (said Hunter) for it is God's Book, out of which every one that hath grace may learn to know what things both please God, and also what displeaseth him. Could not we tell (said Atwell) before this time how God was served? No (said Hunter) nothing so well as we may now, if that we might have his blessed Word amongst us still, as we have had. You must turn or burn, (said Atwell) God give me grace (said Hunter) that I may believe his Word and confess his Name, whatsoever come thereof. Whereas you doubt of my belief (said Hunter to Wood the Vicar of Southwell) I would it were tried, Pag. 19 Whether that you or I would stand faster in our Faith. Yea thou Heretic (said Wood) wouldst thou have it so tried? That which you call heresy (said Hunter) I serve my Lord God withal; I would that you and I were fast tied to a Stake, to prove, whether that you or I would stand strongest to our Faith. It shall not be so tried (said Wood) No (said Hunter) I think so; for if I might, I think I know who would soon recant; for I durst set my foot against yours eyes to the death. Bonner telling him, Pag. 192. That he was content he should keep his conscience to himself, so that he would go to Church, and receive, etc. No (said he) I will not do so for all the good in the world. Then (said Bonner) I will make you sure enough, I warrant you. Well (said Hunter) you can do no more than God will permit you. Well (said B.) will you recant indeed by no means? No (said H.) never while I live, God willing. Bonner ask him how old he was, he said, He was Nineteen years old. Well (said B.) you will be burned ere you be Twenty, if you will not recant. H. answered, God strengthen me in his Truth. Pag. 193. Bonner, even after Sentence was past, offering him, if he would then recant, to make him a Freeman of the City, and to give him Forty pound in money to set up with, or to make him Steward of his House, etc. Hunter said unto him, My Lord, if you cannot persuade my Conscience by Scriptures, I cannot find in my heart to turn from God for the love of the world; for I count all things worldly but loss and dung in respect of the love of Christ. If thou diest in this mind (said B.) thou art condemned for ever. God judgeth righteously (said H.) and justifieth them, whom man condemneth unjustly. When he was brought to Burntwood to be burned, his Father and Mother came to him, and desired heartily of God that he might continue to the end in that good way, which he had begun, and his Mother said unto him, That she was glad that ever she was so happy to bear such a Child, which could find in his heart to lose his life for Christ's Names sake. Then said he to his Mother, For my little pain which I shall suffer, which is but short, Christ hath promised me a Crown of Joy. May you not be glad of that, Mother? With that his Mother kneeled down on her knees, saying, I pray God strengthen thee, my Son to the end: Yea I think thee as well bestowed, as any Child that ever I bore. His Father said, I was afraid of nothing but that my Son should have been killed in the Prison for hunger and cold, the Bishop was so hard to him. The night before his Execution, he had a dream, that he was where the Stake was pitched where he should be burned, and that it was at the Towns end, where the Butts stood, (which was so indeed) and that he met his Father going to the Stake, and that there was a Priest at the Stake, which went about to have him recant, and that he said to him, Away false Prophet, and that he exhorted the people to beware of him, and such as he was: which things came to pass accordingly. Whilst he was led to the Stake, the Sheriff's Son came to William and embraced him, saying, William be not afraid of these men, who are here present with Bills and Weapons, ready prepared to bring you to the place where you shall be burned. William answered, I thank God I am not afraid; for I have cast my account, what it will cost me already. Then the Sheriff's Son could speak no more to him for weeping. When he met his Father (according to his dream) his Father said unto him, God be with thee Son William. William answered, God be with you good Father, and be of good comfort; for I hope we shall meet again when we shall be merry. At the Stake the Sheriff told him, That there was a Letter from the Queen; if he would recant, he should live, if not, he must be burned. No (said William) I will not recant, God willing. Mr. Brown telling him (upon his desire to the people to pray for him as long as he was alive) I will pray no more for thee, than I will pray for a Dog. Mr. Brown (said William) now you have that you sought for, and I pray God it be not laid to your charge in the last day; howbeit I forgive you. I ask no forgiveness of thee (said Mr. Brown) Well (said William) if God forgive you not, I shall require my blood at your hands. Then said William Hunter, Son of God shine upon me. Immediately the Sun in the Firmament shined out of a dark cloud, so full in his face, that he was constrained to look another way. When the Priest came (according to his dream) he said, Away thou false Prophet. Beware of them good people, and come away from their abominations, lest that you be partakers of their plagues. Then (said the Priest) look how thou burnest here, so shalt thou burn in Hell. William answered, Thou liest, thou false Prophet, away thou false Prophet, away. When the fire was kindled, his Brother said to him, William, think on the holy Passion of Christ, and be not afraid of Death. William answered, I am not afraid. Then lift he up his hands to Heaven, and said, Lord, Lord, Lord, receive my spirit. Higbed. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 196. Mr. Higbed of Essex being pressed by Bonner to recant, answered, I will not abjure; for I have been of this mind these sixteen years, and do what ye can, ye shall do no more than God will permit you to do, and with what measure ye measure unto us, look for the same again at God's hands. Pag. 198. When his Articles and Answers were read, he said,— Ye go about to trap us with your subtleties and snares; and though my Father and Mother and other my Kinsfolk did believe as you say, yet they were deceived in so believing: and whereas you say Doctor Cranmer and others, etc. be Heretics, I do wish that I were such an Heretic, as they were and be. Then Bonner asked him again, Whether he would turn from his error and come to the unity of their Church? No (said he) I would ye would recant; for I am in the truth, and you in error. Hus. Mr. john Hus preaching at the honourable and very solemn Funeral of three in Prague, Fox Vol. 1. pag. 778. who had been put to death in Prison, for calling the Pope Antichrist, and speaking against Indulgences, at whose Funeral was sung on this wise, These be the Saints which for the Testament of God gave their bodies, etc. much commended them for their constancy, and blessed God the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who had hid the way of his Verity so from the prudent of the world, and had revealed it to the simple, who chose rather to please God, then man. This occasioned his expulsion out of Prague, being before excommunicated by the Pope. The Emperor having given safe conduct to Mr. john Hus to come to the general Council at Constance, Pag. 786. he promised to come, professing he was ready always to satisfy all men, which shall require him to give a reason of his faith and hope, etc. and giving notice to all, that could object any error or heresy to him to appear, and not spare him.— The Twenty sixth day after he came to Constance, Pag. 789▪ 790. two Bishops, etc. were sent to him to bring him before the Pope and his Cardinals: To whom he answered, I am not come to defend my Cause particularly before the Pope and his Cardinals, but to appear before the whole Council, and there answer for my defence openly, etc. unto all such things as shall be demanded, or required of me. Notwithstanding forasmuch as you do require me so to do, I will not refuse to go with you; and if it happen that they evil entreat me, yet nevertheless I trust in my Lord Jesus, that he will so comfort and strengthen me, that I shall desire much rather to die for his glory sake, then to deny the Verity, which I have learned by his holy Scriptures. When he came to the Cardinals, they told him they had heard that he had taught great and manifest errors through the Realm of Bohemia, etc. You shall understand (answered Mr. Hus) that I am thus minded and affectioned, that I should rather choose to die, than I should be found culpable of one only error, much less of many and great errors: For this cause I am willingly come to the general Council, to receive correction, if any man can prove any errors in me. Pag. 791. Some of the Articles presented to the Council against him.— (4) He saith that all Priests be of like power. (8) He holdeth this opinion, That a man being once ordained a Priest or a Deacon, cannot be forbidden or kept back from the office of preaching. Pag. 799. When several false witnesses rose up against him, he said, Albeit they were as many more in number as they are, I do much more esteem, yea and without comparison regard the witness of my Lord God before the witness of all mine adversaries. Pag. 800. He being asked whether it was lawful for him to appeal unto Christ, answered, Verily I do affirm before you all, that there is no more just, nor effectual plea, then that which is made unto Christ; forasmuch as the Law doth determine, that to appeal is no other thing then in a cause of grief or wrong done by an inferior Judge to implore and require aid and remedy at an higher Judges hands. Who is then an higher Judge than Christ? Who can know, or judge the matter more justly, or with more equity? In him is found no deceit, nor can he be deceived. Who can better help the miserable and oppressed than he? It being in his Accusation, that he counselled the people to resist with the sword all such as did gainsay his Doctrine, etc. he answered, That he at all times when he preached, did diligently admonish and warn the people, that they should arm themselves to defend the truth of the Gospel, according to the saying of the Apostle, With the helmet and sword of salvation; & that he never spoke of any material sword, but of that which is the Word of God. Some more Articles against him, taken out of his Treatise of the Church. Pag. 802. (1) There is but one holy universal, or Catholic Church, which is the universal Company of all the Predestinate. (6) A reprobate man is never a member of the holy Church. Pag. 804. — (18) An Heretic ought not to be committed to the secular powers to be put to death, for it is sufficient that he suffer the Ecclesiastical censure. In his appeal. Pag. 805. — Forasmuch as the most mighty Lord, One in Essence, Three in Person, is both the chief and first, and also the last and uttermost refuge of all those which are oppressed:— and forasmuch as the Lord Jesus Christ, very God and Man, being compassed in with the Priests, Scribes, and Pharisees, wicked Judges and Witnesses, etc. hath left behind him this godly example for them that shall come after him, to the intent they should commit all their causes into the hand of God.— O Lord behold my affliction, etc. thou art my Protector and Defender. O Lord, thou hast given me understanding, and I have acknowledged thee.— For mine own part I have been as a meek Lamb, which is led unto sacrifice, and have not resisted against them.— Deliver me from mine enemies, for thou art my God.— I appeal to the Sovereign and most just Judge, who is not defiled with cruelty, nor can be corrupted with gifts and rewards, neither yet be deceived by false witness.— ay john Hus do present and offer this my appeal to my Lord Jesus Christ, Pag. 806. my just Judge, who knoweth, and defendeth, and justly judgeth every man's just and true cause. The day before his condemnation, when four Bishops were sent by the Emperor to him, to know whether he would stand to the judgement of the Council, Pag. 816. Mr. john de Clum spoke thus unto him: Mr. I. Hus,— I require you, if you know yourself guilty of any of those errors which are objected against you, that you will not be ashamed to alter your mind to the will of the Council; if contraiwise, I will be no Author to you that you should do any thing contrary to your conscience, but rather to suffer any kind of punishment, then to deny that which you have known to be the truth. Mr. Hus with tears answered, Verily as before I have oftentimes done, I do take the most High God for my witness, that I am ready with my whole heart and mind, if the Council can instruct me any better by the Scripture to change my purpose. One of the Bishops telling him he should not be so arrogant as to prefer his own opinion before the judgement of the whole Council; Pag. 817. he said, If he which is the meanest or least in all this Council can convict me of error, I will with an humble heart and mind do whatsoever the Council shall require of me. Pag. 819. When they condemned his appeal as heretical, he said, O Lord Jesus Christ, whose Word is openly condemned here in this Council, unto thee again do I appeal, which when thou wast evil entreated of thine enemies, didst appeal unto God thy Father, committing thy Cause unto a most just Judge, that by thy example we also, being oppressed with manifest wrongs and injuries, should flee unto thee. Whilst they were reading his Sentence— He interrupted them often; Pag. 820. and specially when he was charged with obstinacy, he said with a loud voice, I was never obstinate, but as always heretofore, even so now again I desire to be taught by the holy Scriptures; and I do profess myself to be so desirous of the truth, that if I might by one only word subvert the errors of all Heretics, I would not refuse to enter into what peril soever it were to speak it. When the Sentence was ended, kneeling down upon his knees, he said; Lord Jesus Christ, forgive mine enemies, by whom thou knowest that I am falsely accused, etc. forgive them for thy great mercy's sake. When he was degraded, he spoke to the people thus; These Lords and Bishops do exhort and counsel me, that I should here confess before you all, that I have erred; the which thing to do, if it might be done with the infamy and reproach of man only, they might peradventure easily persuade me thereunto, but now truly I am in the sight of the Lord my God, without whose great ignominy and grudge of mine own conscience, I can by no means do that which they require of me.— With what countenance should I behold the Heavens? With what face should I look upon them whom I have taught, whereof there is a great number, if through me it should come to pass that those things, which they have hitherto known to be most certain and sure, should now be made uncertain? Should I by this my example astonish or trouble so many souls, so many consciences, endued with the most firm and certain knowledge of the Scriptures and Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ, and his most pure Doctrine, armed against all the assaults of Satan? I will never do it, neither commit any such kind of offence, that I should seem more to esteem this vile carcase appointed unto death, than their health and salvation. When one of the Bishops took from him the Chalice, saying, O cursed judas, etc. We take away from thee this Chalice of thy salvation. But I trust (said he) unto God the Father Omnipotent, and my Lord Jesus Christ, for whose sake I do suffer these things, that he will not take away the Chalice of his Redemption, but have a steadfast and firm hope that this day I shall drink thereof in his Kingdom. The other Bishops took away the Vestments put upon him, and each of them giving him their curse. Whereunto he sa●d, That he did willingly embrace and hear those blasphemies for the Name of our Lord Jesus Christ. When the Bishops caused to be made a Crown of Paper, in which were printed three ugly Devils, and this title set over their heads, H●resiarcha, A Ringleader of an Heresy, and he saw it, he said, My Lord Jesus Christ for my sake did wear a Crown of Thorns, why should not I then for his sake wear this light Crown, be it never so ignominious: Truly I will do it, and that willingly. When it was set upon his head, the Bishops said, Now we commit thy soul unto the Devil. But I (said Mr. Hus, lifting up his eyes toward Heaven) do commit my Spirit into thy hands, O Lord Jesus Christ, unto thee I commend my Spirit which thou hast redeemed. Pag. 821. When the people heard his prayers at the Stake, they said, What he hath done afore we know not, but now we see and hear that he doth speak and pray very devoutly and godlily. After he had prayed some while, being raised by his Tormentors, with a loud voice he said, Lord Jesus assist and help me, that with a constant and patient mind I may bear and suffer this cruel and ignominious death, whereunto I am condemned for the preaching of thy most holy Gospel and Word. When he beheld the Chain with which his Neck was to be tied to the Stake, he smiling, said, That he would willingly receive the same Chain for Jesus Christ's sake, who (he knew) was bound with a far worse Chain. The Duke of Bavaria, Pag. 822. before the fire was kindled, coming to him, and exhorting him to be mindful of his safeguard, and renounce his errors, he answered; What error should I renounce, whenas I know myself guilty of none? for as for those things that are falsely alleged against me, I know that I never did so much as once think them, much less preach them; for this was the principal end and purpose of my Doctrine, that I might teach all men repentance and remission of sins, according to the verity of the Gospel of Jesus Christ, Clarks first Volume of Lives, pag. 217. and the Exposition of the holy Doctors; wherefore with a cheerful mind and courage I am here ready to suffer death. Leigh's Saints Encouragements in evil times-out of Luther 's Preface before Daniel. He told them at his death, That out of the ashes of the Goose (so Hus in the Bohemian Language signifies) an hundred years after God would raise up a Swan (so Luther in that Language signifies) in Germany, whose singing should affright all those Vultures, and who should escape their burning. This Prophecy was exactly fulfilled in Lut●er, who rose up just an hundred years after 1415 (the year when Mr. Hus was burnt) and though he so enraged the Pope and his powerful party; he died in his bed. Pag. 823. In his Letter to the people of Prague.— Be circumspect and watchful, that ye be not circumvented by the crafty trains of the Devil; and the more circumspect ye ought to be, for that Antichrist laboureth the more to trouble you. The last judgement is near at hand, death shall swallow up many, but to the elect children of God, the Kingdom of God draweth near, because for them he gave his own body. Fear not death, love together one another, persevere in understanding the good will of God without ceasing. Let the terrible and horrible Day of Judgement be always before your eyes, that you sin not, and also the joy of eternal life, whereunto you must endeavour. Let the passions of our Saviour be never out of your minds, that you may bear with him and for him gladly whatsoever shall be laid upon you; for if you shall consider well in your minds his Cross, nothing shall be grievous unto you, and patiently you shall give place to tribulations, cursings, rebukes, stripes and imprisonment, and shall not doubt to give your lives for his holy truth, if need require. Know ye, Well Beloved, that Antichrist being stirred up against you, deviseth divers persecutions.— But I am in good hope, Pag. 824. that through the mercy of our God, and by your Prayers, I shall persist strongly in the immutable verity of God unto the last breath.— I commend you to the merciful Lord Jesus Christ, our true God, and the Son of the immaculate Virgin Mary, who hath redeemed us by his most bitter death, without all our merits from eternal pains, from the thraldom of the Devil and from sin. From Constance, A. 1415. In his Letter to his Benefactors.— I exhort you by the bowels of Jesus Christ, that now ye setting aside the vanities of this present world, will give your service to the eternal King Christ the Lord. Trust not in Princes, nor in the Sons of men, in whom there is no health; for the Sons of men are dissemblers and deceitful. To day they are, to morrow they perish; but God remaineth for ever. He hath his Servants not for any need he hath of them, but for their own profit, unto whom he performeth that which he promiseth, and fulfilleth that which he purposeth to give. He casteth off no faithful Servant from him; for he saith, Where I am, there also shall my Servant be; yea, the Lord maketh every Servant of his to be the Lord of all his possession, giving himself unto him, and with himself all things.— O happy is that Servant, whom when the Lord shall come, he shall find watching. Happy is the Servant which shall receive that King of Glory with joy. Wherefore well beloved Lords and Benefactors, serve you that King in fear.— In his Letter to the Lord john de Clum.— The iniquity of the great Strumpet, i. e. of the malignant Congregation (whereof mention is made in the Apucalyps) is detected, and shall be more detected; with the which Strumpet the Kings of the Earth do commit fornication, fornicating spiritually from Christ; and as is there said, sliding back from the truth, and consenting to the lies of Antichrist, through his seduction, and through fear, or through hope of confederacy, forgetting of worldly honour. — I rejoiced to perceive your mind now to give over the vanity and painful service of this present world, and to serve the Lord Jesus Christ quietly at home, whom to serve is to reign, as Gregory saith, whom he that serveth faithfully hath Jesus Christ himself in the Kingdom of Heaven to minister unto him, as himself saith, Blessed is that Servant, whom when the Lord shall come he shall find waking, and so doing. Verily I say unto you, that he rising shall gird himself, and shall minister unto him. This do not the Kings of the world to their Servants.— In another Letter.— As touching death, God doth know why he doth defer it both to me and to my well beloved Brother Mr. Jerome, who I trust will do holily and without blame, and do know also that now he suffereth more valiantly than I myself a wretched sinner. God hath given us a long time that we may call to mind our sins the better, and repent for the same more fervently. He hath granted us time, that our long and great temptation should put away our grievous sins, and bring the more consolation. He hath given us time, wherein we should remember the horrible rebukes of our merciful King and Lord Jesus, and should ponder his cruel death, and so more patiently may learn to bear our afflictions. And moreover, that we might keep in remembrance how the joys of the life to come are not given after the joys of this world immediately, but through many tribulations the Saints have entered into the Kingdom of Heaven; for some of them have been cut and chopped all to pieces, some their eyes bored through, some sod, some roasted, some flain alive, some burned quick, stoned, crucified, grinded between millstones, drawn and haled hither and thither unto Execution, drowned in waters, strangled, and hanged, torn in pieces, vexed with rebukes before death, pined in prisons, and afflicted in bonds: and who is able to recite all the torments and sufferings of the holy Saints, which they suffered under the Old and New Testament, for the verity of God?— And it will be a marvel if any man now shall escape unpunished, who dare boldly resist the wickedness and perversity, especially of those Priests which can abide no correction.— In another Letter. Pag. 825. — I desire, that if Audience be given me, that the King will be there present himself, etc. And that you Right Noble and Gracious Lord john, with the Lord Henry, and the Lord Wencelaus, etc. if you may, will be present, and hear what the Lord Jesus Christ, my Procurator, and Advocate, and most gracious Judge will put into my mouth to speak, that whether I live or die, you may be true and upright witnesses with me, lest lying lips should say hereafter, that I swerved from the truth which I have preached.— In another Letter.— My faithful and beloved in Christ, be not afraid with their Sentence in condemning my Books, they shall be scattered hither and thither abroad, like light Butterflies, and their Statutes shall endure as Spiderwebs. They were about to shake my constancy from the verity of Christ, but they could not overcome the virtue of God in me. They would not reason with the Scriptures against me, etc. And when I said I was desirous to be instructed, if I did in any thing err, the chief Cardinal answered, Because thou wouldst be informed, there is no remedy but that thou must first revoke thy Doctrine, according to the determination of fifty Bachelors appointed. O high instruction! — These things I thought good to write unto you, that you may know how they have overcome with no grounded Scripture, nor with reason, but only did essay with terrors and deceits to persuade me to revoke and to abjure. But our merciful God, whose Law I have magnified, was and is with me, and I trust so will continue, and will keep me in his grace unto death.— In another Letter.— Beloved, I thought it needful to warn, that you should not be discouraged, because the Adversaries have decreed that my Books shall be burnt. Remember how the Israelites burned the Preachings of the Prophet jeremy, and yet they could not avoid the things that were prophesied of in them; Pag. 826. for after they were burnt, the Lord commanded to write the same Prophecy again, and that larger; which was done.— It is also written in the Books of the Maccabees, that the wicked did burn the Law of God, and killed them that had the same. Again, under the New Testament they burned the Saints with the Books of the Law of God.— Remember the sayings of our merciful Saviour, by which he forewarneth us; There shall ●e (saith he) before the Day of judgement great tribulation, Mat. 24. such as was not from the beginning, until this day, nor shall be afterwards. So that even the Elect of God should be deceived, if it were possible: but for their sakes those days shall be shortened. — The Council of Constance shall not extend to Bohemia; for I think that many of them which are of the Council shall die before they shall get from you my Books. They shall depart from the Council, and be scattered abroad throughout all parts of the world, like Storks, and then they shall know when Winter cometh what they did in Summer. I trust in God that he will send after me those that shall be more valiant; and there are alive at this day that shall make more manifest the malice of Antichrist, and shall give their lives to the death for the truth of our Lord Jesus Christ, who shall give both to you and me the joys of life everlasting.— This Epistle was written upon St. john Baptist's day in Prison and in cold Irons, I having this Meditation with myself, that john was beheaded in his Prison and bonds for the Word of God. In another Letter.— I desire you, if any man at any time have noted any levity, either in my talk, or in my conditions, that he do not follow the same, but pray to God for me, to pardon me that sin of lightness. Pag. 827. — I look next day for the Sentence of death, having a full trust that he will not leave me to deny his truth, etc. How mercifully the Lord God hath dealt with me in marvellous temptations ye shall know, whenas hereafter by the help of Christ we shall all meet together in the joy of the world to come.— I beseech you pray to God for our enemies.— In another Letter to a Minister.— My dear Brother, be diligent in preaching the Gospel, neglect not your Vocation, labour like a blessed Soldier of Christ. First live godlily and holily. Secondly, teach faithfully and truly. Thirdly, be an example to others in well doing, that you be not reprehended in your sayings.— Preach continually, but be short and fruitful.— Never affirm or maintain those things that be uncertain or doubtful.— Exhort men to the confession of their Faith.— Against fleshly lust preach continually all that ever you can, for that is the raging beast which devoureth men, for whom the flesh of Christ did suffer. Pag. 828. In another Letter.— O holy God, how largely doth Antichrist extend his power and cruelty? But I trust that his power shall be shortened, and his iniquity shall be detected more and more amongst the faithful people.— Let Antichrist rage so much as he will, yet he shall not prevail against Christ— I am greatly comforted in those words of our Saviour, Happy be you, when men shall hate you, and shall separate you, and shall rebuke you, and shall c●st out your name as execrable, for the Son of man. Rejoice and be glad; Luke 6. for great is your reward in Heaven. O worthy, yea a most worthy consolation, which not to understand, but to practiae in time of tribulation, jam. 1. is an hard Lesson!— Certainly it is a great matter for a man to rejoice in trouble, and to take it for joy to be in divers temptations. A light matter it is to speak it, and to expound it; but a great matter to fulfil it. For why? our most patient and most valiant Champion himself, etc. was troubled in spirit, and said, My soul is heavy unto death, etc. and yet he notwithstanding, being so troubled, said to his Disciples, Let not your hearts be troubled.— O most merciful Christ, draw us weak creatures after thee; for except thou shouldst draw us, we are not able to follow thee.— Without thee we can do nothing, much less enter into the cruel death for thy sake. Give us that prompt and ready spirit, a bold heart, an upright faith, a firm hope, and perfect charity, that we may give our lives patiently and joyfully for thy Names sake. Pag. 829. In another Letter.— I love the counsel of the Lord above gold and precious stones. Wherefore I trust in the mercy of Jesus Christ, that he will give me his Spirit to stand in his Truth. Pray to the Lord, for the spirit is ready, but the flesh is weak.— Know this for certain, that I have had great conflicts by dreams, in such sort as I had much ado to refrain from crying out. I dreamt of the Pope's escape before he went; and after the Lord john had told me thereof, immediataly in the night it was told me, that the Pope should return to you again. I dreamt also of the apprehending Mr. Hierom, although not in full manner as it was done. All the imprisonments, whither and how I am carried, were opened to me before, although not fully after the same form and circumstance. Many Serpents oftentimes appeared to me, having heads also in their tail; but none of them could bite me. These things I write, not esteeming myself a Prophet, or that I extol myself, but only to signify to you what temptations I had in body and also in mind, and what great fear I had, lest I should transgress the Commandments of the Lord Jesus Christ— In a Letter to the Lord john de Clum.— I pray you expound to me the dream of this night. I saw how that in my Church of Bethlem they came to raze all the Images of Christ, and did put them out. The next day after I arose and saw many Painters which made more fairer Images, and many more than I had done before, which thing I was very glad and joyful to behold. And the Painters with much people about them, said, Let the Bishops and Priests come now, and put out these Pictures. Which being done, much people seemed to me in Bethlem to rejoice, and I with them: and I awaking therewith, felt myself to laugh, etc.— This Vision the Lord john and Mr. Hus himself in his Book of Epistles (Ep. 45.) seemeth to expound, and applieth the Images of Christ to the preaching of Christ and of his life. The which preaching and doctrine of Christ, though the Pope and Cardinals should extinguish in him, yet did he foresee and declare, that the time should come, wherein the same doctrine should be revived again by others so plenteously, that the Pope with all his power should not be able to prevail against it. Pag. 830. In the Forty eighth Epistle, seeming to speak with the same Spirit of Prophecy, he hath these words; But I trust those things, which I have spoken within the House, hereafter shall be preached upon the top of the House. In a certain Treatise also by him written, De Sacerdotum & Monachorum carnalium abominatione, speaking Prophetically of the reformation of the Church, he hath these words; Moreover hereupon note and mark by the way, that the Church of God cannot be reduced to its former dignity, or be reform before all things first be made new. The truth whereof is plain by the Temple of Solomon.— As my mind now giveth me, I believe that there shall arise a new people, form after the new man, which is created after God: of the which people new Clerks and Priests shall come and be taken, which all shall hate covetousness, and the glory of this life, hastening to an heavenly conversation. All these things shall come to pass, and be brought by little and little in order of times, dispensed of God for the same purpose: and this God doth and will do for his own goodness and mercy, and for the riches of his great longanimity and patience, giving time and space of repentance to them, that have long lain in their sins, to amend, and fly from the face of the Lords fury, whilst in the mean time the carnal people, and carnal Priests successively shall fall away and be consumed as with the moth, etc. In another Letter.— You know how I have detested the avarice and inordinate life of the Clergy; wherefore, through the grace of God; I suffer now persecution, which shortly shall be consummate in me, neither do I fear to have my heart poured out for the Name of Christ Jesus.— If you shall be called to any Cure in the Country, let the honour of God and the salvation of souls move you thereunto, and not the having of the living or Commodities thereof.— See that you be a Builder of your Spiritual House, being gentle to the poor, and humble of mind, and waste not your goods in great fare. I fear if you do not amend your life, ceasing from your costly and superfluous apparel, lest you shall be grievously chastised, as I also wretched man shall be punished, which have used the like, being seduced by custom and evil men, and worldly glory, whereby I have been wounded against God with the spirit of pride. And because you have notably known both my preaching and outward conversation, even from my youth, I have no need to write many things to you, but to desire you for the mercy of Jesus Christ, that you do not follow me in any such levity and lightness, which you have seen in me. You know how before my Priesthood (which grieveth me now) I have delighted oftentimes to play at Chess, and have neglected my time, and have unhappily provoked both myself and others to anger by that Play. Wherefore (besides other my innumerable faults) for this I desire you to invocate the mercy of the Lord, that he will pardon me:— This Letter to this Minister was not to be opened by him before he was sure of Mr. Hus his death. In a Treatise De Sacerdotum, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 381. etc. before mentioned, he hath these words, In writing these things, (and what else I have written before) nothing else hath moved me hereunto, but only the love of our Lord Jesus crucified, whose prints and stripes (according to the measure of my weakness and vileness) I covet to bear in myself, beseeching him to give me grace, that I never seek to glory in myself, or in any thing else, but only in his Cross, and in the inestimable ignominy of his Passion. I do not therefore doubt but these things will like all such as unfeignedly love the Lord Christ crucified, and will not mislike not a little all such as be of Antichrist, durst not have so written unless the Lord Jesus Christ crucified by his inward motion had so commanded me.— Hyperius. Ward 's Living Speeches, etc. pag. 155. O what a difference is there (said Martin Hyperius) betwixt this and eternal fire? Who would shun this to leap into that? FINIS. A CLOUD OF WITNESSES; OR, THE Sufferers Mirror, Made up of The SWANLIKE-SONGS, and other CHOICE PASSAGES of several MARTYRS and CONFESSORS to the end of the Sixteenth Century, in their Treatises, Speeches, Letters, Prayers, etc. in their Prisons, or Exiles; at the Bar, or Stake, etc. Collected out of The Ecclesiastical Histories of Eusebius, Fox, Fuller, Clark, Petrie, Scotland, And Mr. Samuel Ward's Life of Faith in Death, etc. and Alphabetically disposed. By T. M. M.A. The second Part. Deut. 32.7. Remember the days of old, consider the years of many generations: ask thy Father, and he will show thee, thy Elders, and they will tell thee. Psal. 44.22. For thy sake we are killed all the day long: we are counted as Sheep to the slaughter. Phil. 1.28. In nothing be terrified by your adversaries, etc. Printed for the Author, and are to be sold by Robert Boulter. 1665. A brief account of what may be expected in this Collection by a friend to the Author. READER, IT is a comfort Thetis gives her brave Son in Homer, that though he should be short lived, yet he should continue himself in the admiration of posterity. Though these blessed Martyrs, and Saints departed sought not glory to themselves, yet they all obtained a good report, and their memory is blessed, whilst the memory of the wicked rots, or which is far worse) stinks. I grant many of them went in a fiery Chariot to Heaven; yet those Mantles that fell from them may, through the concurs of God, so spirit oth●rs, that they may do worthily in Ephrat●, though they never arrive to the glory of the ●irst Worthies. I doubt not but many of them might, by their staying l●nger in their houses of Booths, have been very beneficial to the World; yet Sampson's violent death was not without profit to the Church of God in pulling down the House of the Philistines: And therefore I cannot but commend the Essay, and elaborate Collections of this Author, in reviving the Memories of these Ancient Christians. It was well observed by Sir Francis Bacon, That old Wood is best to burn, and old Friends best to trust, and old Books best to read. Hence Scholars set a great price upon an ancient Manuscript. Here are old things, men of ancient days, and old Books in a new Edition, for thy benefit. Here you will not find the fault, that Historians are commonly guilty of, who, like flattering Limners, draw too favourably, or shadow over a wrinkle, and slily forge in some secret grace: Here is an honest Pen modestly, but yet faithfully giving thee an account of Believers, who through much faith, patience, and tribulation entered into the Kingdom of Heaven. Here are worthy Patterns for you to follow; glorious Copies for you, who are but Beginners in the World, to write after. They all call upon you so to follow them, as they followed Christ. Here is a Cloud of Witnesses, which if you have (with jesus) in your eye, you will be the better prepared to lay aside every weight, and to run with patience the race that is set before you. Man is led by nothing better than by example; and examples of great Ones are most effectual: Such are these. I know abundantly how this lazy formal Age is ready to look on Scripture-Worthies, as men unimitable; as Giants, to whose stature they despair ever to arrive: But h●re you may be tolled on in your active and passive obedience, as lazy Travellers will h●ld out with good Company, which beat the Path before them: Here is no excuse left of frailty, which we are ready to make against obedience; for th●se precedents in all Ages abudantly testify, that we frail men, by the power of the same grace of God, may reach to the same perfections. We are too apt in these days to think ourselves good enough, if we find any worse than ourselves; but we should not content ourselves to run with the Footmen, but to excel the best. I have of late thought it a very high way to growth and perfection, to collect some of the choicest frames of the best Christians, and always set them before us: Blessed be the Lord, this is done to thy hand; and mayest thou reap the advantage of this labour. Here thou mayest read thy defects in these holy men's excesses, and amend thyself without any diminution to their glory. Here thou mayest receive light from that which dazleth thee, and lustre from that which (at present) eclipseth thee. When thou considerest what a dastardly, cowardly Spirit is within thee, what an Enemy of the Cross of Christ thou art, here is that which will promote thy shame, that these (under the dawnings of Gospel-glory and grace) should be as bold as Lions, whilst thou art as timorous as an Hare. How do we shrink and tremble, whilst these were as Rocks in the midst of the Floods, standing unmoveable when the Winds blue, and the Seas made a noise. I heartily wish that the dew of Heaven may fall upon these holy Relics, that such a Spirit may attend the Reader as did these, when called before Kings and Rulers for the Name of Christ. I heartily wish that these experiments of God's presence with his suffering and witnessing Saints, may help thee to trust in God. I kn●w you ought to trust God upon his single Bond, without a Pawn or Pledge of his Power and Faithfulness; but certainly Faith is wonderfully holpen by former experiences in all Ages: and therefore let this Epitome of the Bo●k of Martyrs (as to the Martyr's sayings) strengthen thy confidence, and make thee r●ly on God, as a constant tried Friend. Th●se are all great instanc●s, that God is seen in the Mount; that he hath good will to the flaming Bush; that he is willing to accompany the Church in the fiery Furnace. Say after the perusal of this Manual, I dare trust in God in the greatest difficulties; I will take no th●ught what to answer to the Sons of men, but will believe it shall be given in that hour; I will cast all my care on him; I will assure myself, that as my tribulations do, so my consolations shall, abound; he hath been others help, therefore under the shadow of his wings will I rejoice; They that know thy Name, Ps. 9.10. will put their trust in thee; for thou Lord hast not forsaken them that seek thee; Psal. 22.4, 5. Our Fathers trusted in thee: they trusted, and thou didst deliver them: they cried unto thee, and were delivered: they trusted in thee, and were not confounded. Here you have Gods former dealings with, and appearings for his suffering Saints to publish to thee and me, what his future behaviour will be. What David said of the tried sword, we may of God much rather, Psal. 77.5, 10. There is none like it. I have considered the days of old, the years of ancient times. I will remember the years of the right hand of the most High. Moreover in these Glean thou wilt see the excellency of Christ, and the high advantages of Faith, in that the Lord Christ is worthy, for whose sake all is to be parted from. Here is the Lord jesus rated and valued above all the comforts, contentments, and happiness of both the worlds: not that these were of a Stoical Apathy, or prodigal of their blood and lives; only Christ was the first Figure, and all the world but empty cyphers without him. The estimate which their souls set on Christ, did infinitely exceed the rate, which they s●● on any thing else: all was but dross and dung, this is the voice of all these Saints ●●arted, Christ is not valued at all, if he be not valued above all. What shall I say more? Here you may see somewhat to shore up the dejected Christians, who may be too much discouraged at the low condition of God's Church: upon reading here sad Melancthon may be contented to let God continue the reins of Government in his own hands; and we may, when even sinking, lea●● of Austin; Let the world (said he) sink or swim, be ruined or prosper, I will bless the Lord that made the world. Here you may (in short) see the Cavils against the Cross, blown off to your hand: the objections against the Truth abundantly silenced. Here you will meet with seasonable Cautions against unscriptural Compliances. Here cases of the present Age are briefly debated and cleared: and here you may have a Directory how to keep your Consciences inoffensive towards God, towards the Saints, and towards them that are without. But (Reader) I will not detain thee from enjoying the labours of my Friend. The Lord bless them to thee and me. See that thou refuse not him that speaketh from Heaven, nor these, whose blood (like their Masters) cries against their enemies for vengeance; but calls aloud to you to stand fast in the Faith once delivered, and to consider the end of their Warfare: which that thou mayest, is heartily desired by A Cordial Friend to all the Friends of Christ, S.L. Swanlike SONG'S.. The Second Part. I. jeuville. NIcholas jeuville, Fox, Vol. 3. cont. p. 6. being condemned to be burned alive, and his tongue to be cut out, the Tormentor putting the Halter about his Neck, said, Praised be God, for I am now counted worthy to be one of the Heavenly Order. Ignatius. When Trajan the Emperor returned from the Parthian War, Clark 's first Volume of Lives, pag. 1, 2. and came to Antioch, having commanded gratulatory Sacrifices to be offered in every City, he required Ignatius, who was Pastor of the Church at Antioch, to be present at those Sacrifices: but he before Trajan's face did justly and sharply reprove their Idolatry, for which cause he was delivered by ten Soldiers to be carried to Rome. As he passed through Asia, so guarded, he confirmed the Congregations, through every City where he came, preaching the Word of God to them, and giving them wholesome Exhortations. When he came to Smyrna, he wrote an Epistle to the Church at Ephesus, and another to the Church of Magnesia on the River Meander, and another to the Church at Trallis. V. Mella Patrum collect. per F. Rous. pag. 13, 14. In his Epistle to the Ephesians.— You have heard of my being carried bound from Syria for the common Name and Hope. I hope through your prayers I shall so fight against the Beasts at Rome, that through Martyrdom, I shall become his Disciple, who offered himself a sacrifice for us unto God.— I do not command you, as if I were any thing; for though I am in bonds for the Name of Christ, I am not as yet perfect in Christ Jesus. Now I begin to be a Disciple.— Onesimus himself doth exceedingly commend your decent and meet order, and that you all live according to the Truth, and that there is no place for Hearest among you, and that you hear none farther than he preacheth Christ Jesus in truth. Pag. 15. — Oppose their anger with mildness, and their proud brags with humility, and their cursings with praying, and their errors with steadfastness in the Faith.— Let us be found in Christ Jesus unto everlaststing life. Without him nothing becomes you: in whom I carry about these bonds (spiritual pearls) in which I may stand advanced by the help of your prayer: of which I always desire to be partaker, that I may be numbered among the Ephesian Christians, who have always in the strength of Christ consented with the Apostles. See that you often meet together to give God thanks and to praise him; for when you have often met together in the same place, the power of Satan is weakened, and his mischief vanisheth away by the concord of your faith. The Tree is manifested by its fruit,— the work of profession doth not now appear, unless by the power of Faith we be found to persevere to the end. It is herrer to be a Mute, and a Christian, then to be Talkative, and no Christian. It is good to teach; but let him that teacheth, do what he teacheth. In his Letter to the M●gnesians. Pag. 16. — It becomes us not only to be called, but to be Christians.— As there be two sorts of moneys; one Gods, the other the Worlds; so each sort hath its peculiar stamp. Unbelievers have the stamp of the World; Believers in love have the stamp of God the Father through Jesus Christ: through whom, unless our Will be inclined to die after the example of his Passion, his Life is not in us.— There is one Christ, than whom, nothing is more excellent. Let all therefore agree as in one Temple.— Although I am in bonds, I am not to be compared with one of you yet at liberty. I know you are free from pride, and when I praise you I know you even blush.— In his Exhortation prefixed to his Epistle to the Church at Trallis, Clark, pag. 2. he persuades them not to refuse Martyrdom, lest thereby they should lose the hope that was laid up for them. In the Epistle itself. Rous, pag. 16. — I savour many things in God; but I keep myself within bounds, lest I perish by vain glory. Now I am mostly to fear; neither am I to mind those that would puff me up. They that praise me, scourage me. I do indeed love to suffer; but that I am worthy, I know not.— I beseech you (not I, Pag. 17. but the love of Christ Jesus) to make use only of Christian Food, and to abstain from Heresy, a strange Herb. Temporaries embrace Christ,— but they are not of the Father's planting: If they were, there would appear the Branches of the Cross, and their fruit would be incorruptible.— In his Epistle to the Romans.— I, Christ Jesus his bondman, hope I may salute you, if it be his will, that I may be judged worthy to reach the goal. I have begun well, if, (or O that I may) have grace to take my lot without let. I fear lest your love hurt me. I would not that you should please men, but God, even as you do.— Do you labour that I may be sacrificed unto God, seeing the Altar is prepared, that you in love making a Choir, may sing to the Father in Christ Jesus, that a Bishop of Syria hath been honoured thus to set in the West, being called from the East. It is good to fall from the World to God, that I may rise in him.— Beg only this for me, that I may be supplied with inward and outward strength, that I may not only say, but will, and not only be called, but be found a Christian. If I be found so, I shall be called so, even then when I shall not appear to be a Believer to the World. Pag. 18. Nothing visible is perpetual. The things that are seen are temporary: those, which are not seen, are eternal. Christianity is a work, not a work of persuasion, but of greatness, when it is hated by the World. I write to the Churches, and require of all, that I may voluntarily die for God, if that you forbid it not. I beseech you, bestow not upon me unseasonable love. Suffer me to be the food for the wild Beasts, by whom I shall enjoy God. I am God's Corn, when the wild Beasts have ground me to powder with their teeth, I shall be his White-bread. Yea rather cunningly entice the wild Beasts to be my Sepulchre, and to leave nothing of my body behind them, lest when I am dead I be found troublesome to any. Then shall I be a true Disciple of Christ indeed, when the World shall not see even my body. Pray unto God for me, that by these instruments I may become a sacrifice unto God. From Syria even till I came to Rome I fought with Beasts, as well by Sea as by Land, night and day being bound among the cruel Leopards (I mean my Military Guard) who, the more benefits they received at my hands, became so much the worse unto me; but I being exercised and now well acquainted with their injuries, am taught every day more and more to bear the Cross: yet hereby am I not justified. Would to God I might once enjoy the Beasts prepared for me, which I wish also to fall upon me with all their violence, whom also I will cunningly entice, without delay to devour me, and not to abstain from me, as they have from others, whom for fear they have left untouched, and if they be unwilling to it, I will even compel them to fall upon me. Pardon me. I know what is for my advantage. Quid mihi neile ●ix▪ ego novi. Mr. Clark renders it, I know well how much this will avail me. Now do I begin to be a Disciple, seeing I neither regard things visible, nor invisible, so I may gain Christ. Let Fire, the Cross, Skirmishing with wild Beasts, Cuttings, Butcherings or Renting in pieces, Breaking's of my Bones asunder, Manglings of my Members, Bruising of my whole Body, and the Torments of the Devil (all the Torments that man and the Devil can invent) fall upon me, Et Diaboli ●ormenta. so that I may enjoy Jesus, The Ends and Kingdoms of this World will not help me. It is better for me to die for Christ Jesus, then to reign over the Ends of the Earth. What will it profit a man to gain the whole World, and lose his own soul? I seek him, who died for us, and rose again. Pardon me, my Brethren, be not an hindrance to me, that I may not live; be not unwilling that I should die. Seeing I desire to be Gods, do not gratify the World. Suffer me to enjoy pure light: when I shall be there, I shall be a man of God. Permit me to emulate the sufferings of Christ, my God. Whosoever enjoys him, understands what I desire, and will bear with me, when he knows what constrains me. The Prince of this World would hold me and corrupt my soul and will for God. Pag. 19 Let none of you help him, but rather help me, that is, God. Do not name Christ Jesus, and love or covet the World. Let not envy dwell in you.— Living, but in love with dying, I write unto you. My love is crucified; and there is not in me a fire of love towards any thing of an earthly matter; but living water, and he, that speaks within me, saith unto me, Come unto the Father. I rejoice not in corruptible nourishment, nor in the pleasures of this life. I would have the bread of God, heavenly bread, the bread of Life, which is the flesh of Christ, the Son of God, who in these last times is made of the seed of David and Abraham, and for drink I would have his blood, who is love incorruptible, and life eternal. Be mindful in your prayers of the Church in Syria, which instead of me hath the Lord for their Pastor. Jesus Christ alone will take care for it, and your love to him. But I am ashamed to be called one of that number. Neither am I worthy, seeing I am the last of them, and an abortive: but through the mercy of God I have obtained, that I may be some one, if I can enjoy God. In his Letter to the Philadelphians.— Ye children of the Light, fly the dividing of Truth and wicked Doctrines. Follow, as sheep, your Pastor.— In your concord there is no place for the Wolves to get in. If any one preach Judaisme unto you, do not hear him. It is better to hear Christianity from one that is circumcised, than judaism from one that is uncircumcised. If both do not preach Christ Jesus, they are to me Funeral Pillars and Monuments of the dead, Pag. 20. upon whom Names only are inscribed.— Where division and anger is, God dwells not.— In his Letter to the Smyrnaeans.— Jesus Christ is truly dead, and truly risen. He hath not suffered only according to appearance, as some Infidels teach.— If these things be done by Christ only in opinion, I am bound only in opinion. But why should I deliver up myself unto Death, to the Fire, to the Sword, to Beasts, but that he that is near the Sword is near unto God, he that is present with the Beasts is present with God? I hear all only in the Name of Christ, that I may suffer with him, he strengthening me, who is made perfect man.— What doth it profit me, if any one praise me; and blaspheme my Lord, not confessing him to be clothed with flesh? Pag. 21. — Your prayer hath reached to the Church of Antioch, which is in Syria, whence I salute you all, being bound in God's honourable bonds, though unworthy, being the last of all there, yet made worthy by the will of God, not according to my Conscience, but of the mere grace of God, etc.— In one of his Epistles he saith, Clark, pag. 3. Truly I did see him (Christ) in flesh after his resurrection, and do believe that it is he, etc. He used to say, That there is nothing better than the peace of a good Conscience. That good and wicked men are like true and counterfeit money; the one seems to be good and is not, the other both seems and is good. That the Lion's teeth are but like a Mill, which though it bruiseth, yet wasteth not the good Wheat, only prepares and sits it to be made pure Bread. Let me (said he) be broken by them, so I may be made pure Manchet for Heaven. Other graces are but parts of a Christians armour, as the shield of Faith, etc. but Patience is the Panoply, or whole armour of the man of God. joan. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 52. The Lady joan, Queen of Navarre, who was poisoned at Paris a few days before the bloody Massacre on Aug. 24. 1572. in her sickness she said, I take all this as sent from the hand of God my most merciful Father; nor have I during this extremity, feared to die, much less murmured against God for inflicting the same upon me, knowing that whatsoever he doth, he doth the same so, as all in the end shall turn to my everlasting good.— I depend wholly upon God's providence, knowing that all things are wisely disposed of by him.— As for this life, I am in a good measure weaned from the love of it, in regard of the afflictions that have followed me from my youth hitherto; but especially because I cannot live without daily offending my good God, Pag. 53. with whom I desire to be with all my heart.— In regard of mine own particular, my life is not dear unto me, seeing so long as I live in this frail flesh, I am still prone and apt to sin against God: only my care is somewhat for my children, which God hath given me, because they shall be now deprived of me in their young years; yet I doubt not, but although it should please God to take me from them, that himself will be a Father to them, and a Protector over them, as he hath been to me in my greatest afflictions; and therefore I commit them wholly to his government and Fatherly care. Pag. 54. — She often uttered these words, O my God, in thy good time deliver me from this body of death, and from the miseries of this life, that I may no more offend thee, and that I may attain to that felicity, which thou in thy Word hast promised me. Pag. 55. — To a Minister a little before her death she said, I neither expect Salvation, Righteousness, nor Life from any else, then from my only Saviour Jesus Christ, being assured that his only merit abundantly sufficeth for the full satisfaction of all my sins, albeit they are innumerable. joris. john joris of Assahen, Fox, Vol. 3. cont. p. 37. in a Letter of his to his Parents and Friends, a little before his Martyrdom writ thus.— Most dear Father and Mother, Sister and Brother, I write here unto you comfortable news, viz. That in all my life, I never saw any day so pleasing to me, as this is, in which the Lord hath counted me worthy to be one of his Champions, and to suffer for his holy Name: for which I give him most humble and hearty thanks.— Rejoice with me, I pray you, that God hath now called me to so glorious and welcome Marriage Day. O how precious in the sight of the Lord our God is the death of his Martyrs! Dear Friends, two Priests and some of the Magistrates have sought to terrify me with many threats, thinking to turn me aside from my holy Profession; but the Lord of his great mercy hath given me grace to withstand them all. I plainly told them, I was not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ, but would be willing and ready to die in the defence thereof, following my Lord and Master Jesus Christ, through all afflictions, to be made Partaker with him at last of his eternal joys in his celestial Tabernacle. Wherefore if God shall call any of you forth to suffer aught for his Names sake, bear the same (I beseech you) with meekness and patience, not declining from the truth for fear or favour, to the right hand or to the left, But fear him rather, who is able to cast soul and body into hell. The time which God hath lent us to converse in this world, is but short; and therefore let us begin to abandon the love of this world, with all things therein, betimes, that so we may be ready to follow the call of God. Dear Father and Mother, I do take my last farewell of you, until we meet together again in the Kingdom of Heaven, where we shall partake of that joy that shall last for ever, all sorrows, tears, and griefs being wiped away. Be ye not therefore grieved, I pray you, but be patient; for the affliction which is befallen me, is most acceptable to me, for which also I bless and praise the Lord. jueson. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 386. Thomas jueson, being pressed to recant, said, I would not recant for all the goods in London: I do appeal to God's mercy, and will be none of your Church, nor submit myself to the same. And that I have said, I will say it again. And if there came an Angel from Heaven, to teach me any other Doctrine then that which I am in now, I would not believe him. juleddo, or julitta. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 305. A Servant to a good Gentlewoman telling Mr. Bradford, that her Mistress had been sorer afflicted with her own Father and Mother, than ever he was with his imprisonment. Mr. Bradford bid her tell her Mistress, That he had read that day a godly History, written by Basilius Magnus of juleddo, a virtuous Widow, She had great Lands, and many children, and nigh her dwelled a Cormorant, which for her godliness hated her, and out of very malice took away her lands, so that she was fain to go to Law. The Judge demanded of him, why he wrongfully withheld these Lands from this Woman. He answered, he might, because she was disobedient to the Kings proceedings; for she will in no wise worship his gods, nor offer sacrifice unto them. Woman (said the Judge thereupon) if this be true, thou art like not only to lose thy Land, but thy Life. Whereupon she said, And is there no remedy, but either to worship your false gods, or else to lose my Lands and life? then farewell Suit, farewell Lands, farewell Children, farewell Friends, yea and farewell Life too, and in respect of the true honour of the everliving God, farewell all. At the place of her Execution, she exhorted all women to be strong and constant; for (said she) ye were redeemed with as dear a price as men; Pag. 306. for although ye were made of the rib of the man, yet be you all of his flesh: so that also in the case and trial of your faith towards God, ye ought to be as strong. Mr. Ward calleth her julitta, Ward, pag. 141. and records her Speech thus: We women received not only flesh from men, but are bone of their bone, and therefore aught to be as strong in Christ's Cause. Mr. Fox out of Basil tells the Story thus, Vol. 1. pag. 123. That when the Judge passed Sentence against julitta, she said, Farewell riches, and welcome poverty; farewell life, and welcome death. All that I have if it were a thousand times more, would I rather lose, then speak one wicked and blasphemous word against God my Creator. I yield thee most hearty thanks, O my God, for this grace, that I can contemn and despise this frail and transitory world, esteeming Christian Profession above all treasures. Afterwards, when any Question was demanded, her Answer was, I am the Servant of Jesus Christ. At the Stake she said to the women beholding her, Stick not, O Sisters, to labour and travel after true piety and godliness. Cease to accuse the frailty of feminine Nature. What? are not we created of the same matter that men are? yea after God's Image and Similitude, are we made as lively as they. Not flesh only did God use in the Creation of the woman, in sign and token of her infirmity and weakness, but bone of bones is she, in token that she must be strong in the true and living God, all falsehoods forsaken, constant in faith, all infidelity renounced, patient in adversity, all worldly ease refused. Wax weary (my dear Sisters) of your lives, led in darkness, and be in love with my Christ, my God, my Redeemer, my Comforter, which is the true light of the world. Persuade yourselves, or rather the Spirit of the living God persuade you, that there is a world to come, wherein the Worshippers of Idols and Devils shall be tormented perpetually, and the Servants of the High God be crowned eternally. jusberg. The Mirror of the Martyrs. pag. 113. Brethren (said justus jusberg) you see that my end approacheth, which howsoever I fear, as a man burdened with the body of sin; yet am I resolved as a Christian, joyfully to endure it, being assured that all my sins are fastened to the Cross of Christ. juventius. Burro●gh's on Moses Self denial, pag. 132. chrysostom in an Oration on juventius and Maximus, two Martyrs, brings in this objection of the Persecutors against them; Do not you see others of your rank do thus? and them answering thus; for this very reason we will manfully stand and offer ourselves as a sacrifice for the breach that they have made. K. Kennedy. Alexander Kennedy, The Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 24. who passed not eighteen years of age, when he was presented before his bloody Butcherers, at first was faint, and gladly would have recanted; but while the place of repentance was denied him, the Spirit of God wrought in him, and with a cheerful countenance, and a joyful voice, upon his knees he said, O eternal God, how wonderful is that love and mercy that thou bearest unto mankind, and unto me the most Caitiff and miserable wretch above all others; for even now, when I would have denied thee, and thy Son, our Lord Jesus Christ my only Saviour, and so have cast myself into everlasting dammation, Thou by thy own hand hast pulled me from the very bottom of hell, and made me to feel that heavenly comfort, which takes from me that ungodly fear wherewith before I was oppressed. Now I defy death, do what you please, I praise my God, I am ready. Kerby. Mr. Wingfield telling him, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 568. the fire is hot, the terror is great, the pain extreme, life sweet; Better it were betime to stick to mercy, while there is hope of life, then rashly to begin, and then to s●rink; He said, Ah Mr. Wingfield, be at my burning, and you shall say there standeth a Christian Soldier in the fire; for I know that fire, water, sword, and all other things are in the hands of God, and he will suffer no more to be laid upon us than he will enable us to bear. When Sentence was passed against him, Pag. 569. he with most humble reverence holding up his hands, and bowing himself devoutly, said, Praised be Almighty God. Kilian. Ward, pag. 162. To such as asked Kilian, a Dutch Schoolmaster, if he loved not his Wife and Children? He answered, Yes, if all the world were gold, and were mine to dispose of, I would give it all to live with them, though it were but in Prison; yet is my soul and my Lord Christ dearer to me then all things whatsoever. Knight. Fox, Vol. 3, pag. 200. When Stephen Knight was at the Stake, he prayed,— O Lord Jesus Christ, for whose love I leave willingly this life, and desire rather the bitter death of thy Cross, with the loss of all earthly things, then to abide the blasphemy of thy most holy Name, or to obey men in breaking thy holy Commandment. Thou seest, O Lord, that where I might live in worldly wealth to worship a false god, and honour thine enemy, I choose rather the torment of the body, and the loss of this life, and have counted all things but vile, dust, and dung, that I might win thee, which death is dearer unto me, than thousands of gold and silver. Such love, O Lord, hast thou laid up in my breast, that I hunger for thee, as the Deer that is wounded desireth the soil. Send thy holy Comforter, O Lord, to aid, comfort, and strengthen this weak piece of earth, which is empty of all strength of itself. Thou remember'st, O Lord, that I am but dust, and able to do nothing that is good. Therefore, O Lord, as of thine accustomed goodness and love, thou hast bidden me to this banquet, and accounted me worthy to drink of thine own Cup amongst thine Elect; even so give me strength, O Lord, against this thine Element, which as to my sight it is most irksome and terrible, so to my mind it may at thy Commandment (as an obedient Servant) be sweet and pleasant, that through the strength of thy holy Spirit, I may pass through the rage of this fire into thy bosom, according to thy promise, and for this mortal receive an immortal, and for this corruption put on incorruption. Accept this burnt-sacrifice and offering, O Lord, not for the sacrifice, but for thy Dear Son's sake, my Saviour, for whose Testimony ● offer this free-will-offering with all my heart and with all my soul. O Heavenly Father, forgive me my sins, as I forgive all the world. O sweet Son of God, my Saviour, spread thy wings over me. O blessed and holy Ghost, through whose merciful inspiration, I am come hither, conduct me into everlasting life. Lord, into thy hands I commend my Spirit. Amen. Keyser. Leonard Keyser, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 114. as he was led to the place where he was to be burnt, said, O Lord Jesus, remain with me, sustain and help me, and give me force and power. When the wood was ready to be set on fire, he cried with a loud voice, O Jesus, I am thine, have mercy upon me, and save me. Knox. Mr. john Knox, The Ecclesiastical History of Scotland in Folio, pag. 74. wearied with removing from place to place, by reason of the Persecution that came upon him by the Bishop of St. Andrews, was determined to have left Scotland, and to have visited the Schools of Germany (he had then no pleasure in England, by reason that, although the Pope's Name was suppressed, yet his Laws and Corruptons' remained in full vigour) but was prevailed with by some Gentlemen, for their children's sake, whose Education he had undertaken, to go to St. Andrews, that he might have the benefit of the Castle, which was fortified against the Papists, since the death of the Cardinal in it. Thither he came An. 1547. where he was called to the Ministry after this manner. Mr. Rough having showed in a Sermon what power the Congregation, Pag. 75. how small soever, passing the number of two or three, had to elect any man in the time of need, as that was, in whom they espied the gifts of God, and how dangerous it was to refuse to hear the voice of such as desire to be instructed, he directed his words to Mr. Knox, saying, Brother, you shall not be offended, although that I speak unto you that which I have in charge even from all those here present, which is this. In the Name of God, and of his Son Jesus Christ, and in the name of these that presently call you by my mouth, I charge you that you refuse not this holy Vocation, but as ye tender the glory of God, the increase of Christ's Kingdom, the edification of your Brethren, and the comfort of me, whom ye understand well enough to be oppressed by the multitude of labours, that you take upon you the public office and charge of preaching, even as you look to avoid Gods heavy displeasure, and desire that he shall multiply his graces upon you. And in the end he said to those that were present, was not this your charge to me? and do ye not approve this Vocation? They answered it is, and we approve it. Besides this Vocation, that which necessitated Mr. Knox to enter in the public place, was his beating by his Pen Dean Annan (a rotten Papist) that had long troubled Mr. Rough in his Preaching, from all defences, that he was compelled to fly to his last refuge, the Authority of the Church, which (said the Dean) damned all Lutherans and Heretics, and therefore he would not dispute. Whereupon Mr. Knox in the open audience of the Parish-Church of St. Andrews told the Dean thus; As for your Roman Church, as it is now corrupted, and the Authority thereof, wherein stands the hope of your victory, I no more doubt but that it is the Synagogue of Satan, and the head thereof, called the Pope, to be that man of sin, of whom the Apostle speaks, than I doubt that Jesus Christ suffered by the procurement of the visible Church of jerusalem; yea, I offer myself by word or writing, to prove the Roman Church this day farther to degenerate from the purity, which was in the days of the Apostles, Pag. 76. than was the Church of the jews, from the Ordinance given by Moses, when they consented to the innocent death of Jesus Christ. The people hearing the offer, cried with one consent, We cannot all read your writings, but we can all hear your preachings; therefore we require you in the Name of God, that ye let us hear the Probation of what you have affirmed; for if it be true, we have been miserably deceived. The next Lord's Day he preached on Dan. 7. And another King shall rise after them, and he shall be unlike unto the first, and he shall subdue three Kings, and shall speak words against the most High, and shall consume the Saints of the most High, etc. In the beginning of his Sermon, he showed the great love of God towards his Church, whom he pleased to forewarn of dangers to come, so many years before they came to pass.— After he made a short Discourse of the four Empires, the Babylonian, Persian, Grecian, and Roman; in the destruction of the fourth rose up that last beast, which he affirmed to be the Roman Church; for to none other power, that ever hath been yet, do all the Notes that God showed to the Prophets belong, except to it alone, and to it they do properly appertain, as such as are not more than blind may clearly see.— Then he showed that the Spirit in the New Testament gives to this King other new names; as the man of sin, the Antichrist, the whore of Babylon, which he proved to belong to the Papists, and their head the Pope.— Pag. 78. Hereupon he was (with Mr. Rough) convented before the Sub Prior of St. Andrews, etc. and several Articles were read against them. The strangeness (said the Sub Prior) of these Articles, which are gathered forth of your Doctrine, have moved us to call for you to hear your Answers. Mr. Knox said, I for my part praise my God, that I see such an Auditory; but because it is long since, that I have heard, that ye are one that is not ignorant of the Truth, I may crave of you in the Name of God, yea and I appeal your conscience before that supreme Judge, that if ye think any Article there expressed, contrary to the Truth of God, that ye oppose yourself plainly unto it, and suffer not the people to be therewith deceived; but if in your conscience you know the Doctrine to be true, then will I crave your Patrociny thereto, that by your Authority the people may be moved the ●ather to believe the Truth. The Sub Prior answered, I come not here as a Judge, but only familiarly to talk, and therefore I will neither allow nor condemn, but if ye list, I will reason. Why may not the Church for good causes devise Ceremonies to decore the Sacraments, and other God's Service? K. Because the Church ought to do nothing but in faith, and ought not to go before, but is bound to follow the voice of the true Pastor. S. It is in faith that the Ceremonies are commanded, Pag. 79. and they have proper significations to help our faith, they have a godly signification; and therefore proceed from faith, and are done in Faith. K. It is not enough that man invent a Ceremony, and then give it a signification according to his pleasure; for so might the Ceremonies of the Gentiles, and of Mahomet be maintained: but if any thing proceed from faith, it must have the Word of God for its assurance; for faith comes by hearing, and hearing by the Word of God. Now if ye will prove that your Ceremonies proceed from faith, and do please God, you must prove that God hath commanded them, else they are sin; for whatsoever is not of faith, is sin. S. Will ye bind us so straight, that we may do nothing without the express Word of God? What if I ask drink, think ye that I sin? and yet I have not God's Word for me. K. I would ye should not jest in so grave a matter, neither would I that you should begin to hide the truth with Sophistry.— As to your drinking, I say, that if ye either eat or drink without assurance of God's Word, in so doing you displease God by sinning against him; for the creatures are sanctified by the Word and Prayer. The Word is this, all things are clean to the clean.— But the Question is not of meat or drink, wherein the Kingdom of God consisteth not, but of God's true Worshipping, without which we can have no society with God; and here it is doubted, if we may take the same liberty in using of Christ's Sacraments, that we may do in eating and drinking.— Moses saith, All that the Lord thy God commandeth thee to do, that do thou to the Lord thy God, add nothing to it, diminish nothing from it. By these Rules I think the Church of Christ will measure God's Religion, and not by that which seems good in their own eyes. Pag. 80. S. Pardon me, I spoke it, because I was dry, Friar follow the Argument. F. I will prove that those Ceremonies ye damn are ordained by God; for the Ceremonies of the Church are the gold, silver, and precious stones, which do abide the fire, and consume not away, etc. K. I praise God, through Christ, I find his Word true; Christ bids us not fear when we shall be called before men to give Confession of his truth; For it shall be given in that hour, what we shall speak. If I had sought the whole Scriptures, I could not have produced a place more potent to confound you.— I would learn of you what fire it is that your Ceremonies do abide? and in the mean give you this Argument from the same Text against you. That which can abide the fire, can abide the Word; but your Ceremonies cannot abide the Word, therefore they cannot abide the fire, then are they not gold, Pag. 81. silver, and precious stones. F. I deny your M●nor, viz. That our Ceremonies may not abide the trial of God's Word. K. I prove, That abides not the trial of God's Word, which Gods Word condemns; but God's Word condemns your Ceremonies, therefore they do not abide the trial thereof, but as a Thie● abides the trial of the Inquest, and thereby is condemned to be hanged, etc. The Minor is evident▪ for the plain and straight Commandment is, D●u●. 4. Not th●● thing that appears good in thine eyes shalt thou do to the Lord thy God, but what the Lord thy God hath commanded thee, that do thou, add nothing to it, diminish nothing from it. Now unless ye be able to prove that God hath commanded your Ceremonies, this Command will damn both you and them. The Friar would not answer directly, but ever fled to the Authority of the Church. Whereto Mr. Knox answered oftener than once, That the Spouse of Christ had neither Power nor Authority against the Word of God. Then said the Friar, you will leave us no Church. Indeed (said Mr. Knox) in David I read, Ps. 26.5. that there is a Church of Malignants, that Church ye may have without the Word, etc. but as for me I will be of none other Church, except of that which hath Jesus Christ to be Pastor, which hears his voice, and will not hear a stranger. Upon the appearance of one and twenty French Galleys in the sight of the Castle, Pag. 83. the Castle was demanded to be delivered, and the Governor refusing, it was besieged by Sea and Land, the Plague being within. Mr. Knox ever told them within, That their corrupt life, having fallen into all kind of licentiousness, puffed up with pride of their success, and relying on England for help in case of need, could not escape the punishment of God. When they triumphed of their Victory, he lamented, and said, Pag. 84. They saw not what he saw. When they bragged of the force and thickness of their Walls, he said, They should be but Eggshells. When they vaunted, England will rescue us, he said, Ye shall not see them, but ye shall be delivered into your enemy's hands, and shall be carried into a strange Country. The last of july the Castle was delivered upon Articles, That the lives of all in the Castle should be saved, and safely transported into France, etc. In France the principal, that looked for freedom, were put into several Prisons, and the rest were left in the Galleys, and miserably used, among which Mr. Knox was all the Winter. Pag. 92. When Mr. james Balfour (afterwards Sir james Balfour, and an Apostate) would ask Mr. Knox, if he thought that ever they should be delivered; his Answer ever was, That God would deliver them from that bondage to his glory, even in this life. When the Galleys returned to Scotland, within sight of St. Andrews, Mr. james willed Mr. Knox (who was then extremely sick, that few hoped his life) to look to the Land, and asked if he knew it? He answered, Yes, I know it well, for I see the Steeple of that place, where God in public opened my mouth to his glory, and I am fully persuaded, how weak soever I now appear, that I shall not depart this life, till that my tongue shall glorify his holy Name in the same place. This he spoke many years before he sat foot on Scottish ground. In answer to a Letter from those that were imprisoned in Mount Michael, Mr. Knox writes; That if without the blood of any shed or spilt by them for their deliverance, they might set themselves at liberty, they might safely do it. But to shed any man's blood for their freedom, thereto would he never consent. Adding farther, that he was assured that God would deliver them and the rest of that company, even in the eyes of the world, but not by such means they looked for, that the praise of their deliverance should redound to his glory only. He willed therefore every one to take the occasion that God offered to them, provided that they did nothing against God's command for deliverance.— Adding, Pag. 93. that in one instant God delivered the whole company into the hands of unfaithful men, but so would he not relieve them; but some would he deliver by one means, and at one time, and others must abide for a season upon his good pleasure. When Mr. Knox was delivered, he came into England, and was Preacher to Barwick, then to Newcastle, then to London, etc. But before he was delivered, whilst in the Galleys, he wrote a Treatise containing the Sum of his Doctrine, and the Confession of his Faith, and sent it to his Familiars in Scotland, with his Exhortation, that they should continue in the truth, which they had professed, notwithstanding any worldly adversity that might ensue thereof. Whilst he was in England, See his Life set before the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 2. he was in so great favour and esteem with King Edward the Sixth, that he was offered a Bishopric; but he not only refused and rejected it, but with a grave and severe Speech declared, That the proud title of Lordship, and that great state was not to be suffered to be in the Church of God, as having Quid commune cum Antichristo, i. e. somewhat common with Antichrist. King Edward being dead, the Persecution of Queen Mary made him leave England, with many other godly Ministers; and first he went to Frankford, where for a time he preached the Gospel to the English Congregation there. See this Admonition at the end of the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 43. There he wrote his Admonition to England, An. 1554. In his Admonition to the true Professors of the Gospel of Christ in England.— Looking for a suitable Scripture to handle for your consolation in these most dark and dolorous times, as I was turning my Book, I chanced to see a Note in the Margin written thus in Latin, Vid eat Anglia, Let England beware, the Note written was this, Seldom it is that God worketh any notable work to the comfort of his Church, but that trouble, fear, and labour cometh upon such as God hath used for his Servants, Pag. 44. and Workmen; and also tribulation most commonly followeth that Church, where Christ Jesus is most truly preached. This Note was made upon Matth. 14. which place declareth that after Christ had used the Apostles, as Ministers and Servants to feed so many thousand, etc. he sent them to Sea, etc. and there they met with a Storm, that was like to overthrow their poor Boat and them.— Remembering that I had handled the same Scripture in your presence, I thought nothing more expedient, then shortly to call to mind such things, as then, I trust, were touched.— Why Christ sent away from him the people, the Evangelist john declareth, saying, When jesus knew that they were come to take him, john 6. that they might make him King, he passed secretly (or all alone) to the mountain.— The people sought by Christ a carnal and worldly Liberty, regarding nothing his heavenly Doctrine, etc. viz. that such as would follow him, must suffer for his Names sake persecution, must be hated of all men, must deny themselves, must be sent forth, Pag. 45. as Sheep among Wolves: No part of this Doctrine pleased them; but their whole mind was upon their bellies, for sufficing whereof, they devised that they would appoint Christ their worldly King; for he had power to multiply bread at his pleasure. Which vain opinion perceived by Christ, he withdrew himself from their company, to avoid all such suspicion, and to let them understand, that no such Honours did agree with his Vocation, who came to serve, and not to be served.— Why the Disciples should suffer that great danger, Saint Mark plainly shows, Mark 6. saying, That their hearts were blinded, and therefore did neither remember, nor consider the miracle of the loaves, i. e. Albeit they touched the bread, etc. and gathered up twelve baskets full, etc. yet did not they rightly consider the infinite power of Christ Jesus by this wonderful miracle; and therefore of necessity it was, that in their own bodies they should suffer trouble for their better instruction. When I deeply consider how the flock of Christ was fed under King Edward the Sixth, and now behold the dispersion, etc. methinks I see the same causes to have moved God, not only to withdraw his presence frem the multitude, but also to have sent his well beloved Servants to the travels of the Seas, etc. What were the affections of the greatest multitude that followed the Gospel is easily judged by their lives. Who lived (in that rest) as that he had refused himself?— as that he had been crucified with Christ?— as that he had certainly looked for trouble to come upon him? yea who lived not in delicacy and joy, and seeking the world and pleasures thereof, caring for the flesh and carnal appetites, as though death and sin had clean been devoured? and what was this else then to make of Christ an earthly King? The Word, that we professed, daily cried in our ears, that our Kingdom, our Joy, our Rest and Felicity, neither was, is, nor should be upon the Earth, etc. but in Heaven, into which we must enter by many tribulations. But, alas! we sleeped in such security, that the sound of the Trumpet could of many never be perfectly understood, but always we persuaded ourselves of a certain tranquillity, Pag. 46. as though the troubles, whereof mention is made within the Scriptures of God, appertained not at all to this Age, etc. and therefore was our heavenly Father compelled to withdraw from us the presence of his Verity, to the end we may more earnestly thirst for the same, and with more obedience embrace and receive it, etc.— I mean not that such as have left Christ in body and heart shall embrace the Verity, but such as by the infirmity of the flesh, and weakness of faith dare not openly and boldly confess that, which their hearts know to be most true, and lament for the imperfection bypast and present; from such shall not the amiable presence of Christ for ever be withdrawn; but yet again shall the eyes of their sore troubled hearts behold the Light of Christ's Gospel, wherein they most delight. We the Ministers, who were Distributers of this Bread (the true Word of God) lacked not our offences, which also moved God to send us to the Sea. And because no man's offences are so manifest unto me as mine own, I will only censure myself.— (O that all such Ministers, as are put from their Charges, would seriously and sadly peruse and lay to heart his humble confession.) The portion of heavenly Bread which I received from Christ by his benediction multiplied in breaking, etc. but alas! Pag. 47. how little did I consider the dignity of that Office, and the power of God, that then multiplied the Bread, the people received of my hands? God I take to record in my Conscience, that I delivered the same Bread, that I received of Christ's hands; and that I mixed no poison with the same, i. e. I teached Christ's Gospel without any mixture of men's dreams, devices, or fantasies, but alas I did it not with such fervency, with such indifferency and diligence, as now I know it was my duty. Some complained in those days that the Preachers were indiscreet persons, yea Railers, etc.— but alas this day my Conscience accuseth me, that I spoke not so plainly, as my duty was to have done; for I ought to have said to the wicked man expressly by his name, Thou shalt die the death. I find jeremiah the Prophet to have done so to Pashur the high Priest, and to Zedekiah the King.— The blind love I did bear to this my wicked Carcase, was the chief cause I was not fervent and faithful enough in that behalf; for I had no will to provoke the hatred of all men against me.— As I was not so fervent in rebuking manifest iniquity, as I should, so was I not so indifferent a feeder as is required of Christ's Steward; for the love of friends and carnal affection of some men, with whom I was most familiar, alured me to make more residence in one place then in another, having more respect to the pleasure of a few, Pag. 48. than the necessity of many.— Moreover remaining in one place, I was not so diligent as mine office required; but sometime by counsel of carnal friends I spared the body, some time I spent in worldly business of particular friends, and sometime in taking recreation▪ etc. And albeit men may judge these to be light and small offences, yet I acknowledge that unless pardon should be granted unto me in Christ's blood, that every one of these three offences deserved damnation.— And beside these, I am assaulted, yea, infected and corrupted with seeking the favour, estimation, and praise of men.— O Lord be merciful to my great offence, and deal not with me according to my great iniquity; but according to the multitude of thy mercies remove from me the burden of my sin; for of purpose and mind to have avoided the vain displeasure of man, I spared little to offend thy Majesty. Think not that I thus accuse myself without cause, to appear more holy, or to accuse my Brethren; No, God is Judge to my Conscience, that I do it from an unfeigned and sore troubled heart.— This great tempest cometh from the great mercy of our heavenly Father, to provoke us to unfeigned repentance; for neither Preacher, nor Professor did rightly consider the time of our merciful visitation, but we spent our time, as though God's Word had rather been preached to satisfy our fantasies, then to reform our evil manners. Which thing if we earnestly repent, then shall Jesus Christ appear unto our comfort, be the storm never so great. Haste, O Lord, for thy Names sake. Observe next the vehemency of the fear, which the Disciples endured in that great danger, of longer continuance than any before; They were in the midst of the raging Sea, Pag. 49. and it was night, and Christ their Comforter absent from them, and cometh not to them neither in the first, second, nor third Watch. What fear think you were they in? Such as be in like danger in England do by this storm better understand, than my Pen can express.— What we read here to have chanced to Christ's Disciples, and their poor Boat, the same thing hath chanced, doth, and will chance to the true Church, travelling (like a Ship) in the Sea of this troublesome World, to the Haven of eternal felicity.— The wind, Pag. 50. that always hath blown against the Church of God, is the malice of the Devil: As the wind is invisible, and yet the poor Disciples feel that it troubleth and letteth their Ship; so the pestilent envy of the Devil worketh in Reprobates so subtly, that it cannot be espied by God's Elect, nor by his Messengers, till first they feel the blasts thereof to blow their Ship backward. As the vehement wind causeth the waves of the Sea to rage, and yet the dead water neither knoweth what it doth, nor can cease from being troubled, and troubling Christ's Disciples in their poor Ship; so by the envy and malice of the Devil are wicked and cruel, both Subjects and Princes (whose hearts are like the raging Sea) compelled to persecute the true Church of Christ, and yet so blinded, that they see not their manifest iniquity, nor can they cease to run to their own destruction.— The whole malice of the Devil hath always this end, Pag. 52. to vex and overthrow Christ's afflicted Church.— Albeit the Tyrants of the Earth have learned by long experience, Pag. 54. that they are never able to prevail against God's Truth, yet because they are bound Slaves to their Master the Devil, they cannot cease to persecute the Members of Christ, when the Devil bloweth his wind in the darkness of the night, i. e. when the Light of Christ's Gospel is taken away, and the Devil reigneth by Idolatry, Superstition, and Tyranny.— It is fearful to be heard that the Devil hath such power over any man, but yet the Word of God hath so instructed us, and therefore we must believe it. He is called the Prince and god of this world, because he reigneth and is honoured by Tyranny and Idolatry in it. He is called the Prince of darkness, Pag. 55. that hath power in the air. It is said, he worketh in the children of unbelief, etc.— And therefore wonder not that now the Devil rageth in his obedient Servants; for this is their hour and power granted to them, they cannot cease, nor assuage their furious fumes; for the Devil, their Sire, stirreth, moveth, and carrieth them at his will.— I do not attribute to him or them power at their pleasure, but only as God shall suffer. When therefore I hear what the ravenous Lions do, I pray, O Lord, those cruel Tyrants are loosed by thy hand, to punish our former ingratitude, whom, we trust, thou wilt not suffer to prevail for ever, but when thou hast corrected us a little, and hast declared to the world the tyranny that lurked in their boldened breasts, then wilt thou break their jawbones, and wilt shut them up in their Caves again, that the generation and posterity following may praise thy holy Name, before thy Congregation. Amen.— I know that God shall yet show mercy to his afflicted Church in England, and repress the pride of these present Tyrants, as he hath done those that were before us. Therefore, beloved Brethren in our Saviour Jesus Christ, hold up to God your hands, that are fainted through fear, and hear the voice of your God, who sweareth by himself, that he will not suffer his Church to be oppressed for ever, and that he will not despise our sobs to the end, if we will row and strive against this vehement wind: I mean, if that ye will not turn back headlong to Idolatry, then shall this storm be assuaged in despite of the Devil. Pag. 56. — Be not moved from the sure Foundation of your Faith; for albeit that Christ jesus be absent from you (as he was from his Disciples in that great storm) by his bodily presence, yet he is present by his mighty power and grace. He standeth upon the mountain in security and rest, i. e. his flesh and whole humanity is now in Heaven, and can suffer no such trouble, as once he did; yet he is full of pity and compassion, and doth consider all our travel, anguish, and labours; wherefore it is not to be doubted, but that he will suddenly appear to our great comfort. The tyranny of this world cannot keep back his coming, more than the blustering wind and raging Seas let Christ to come to his Disciples, looking for present death.— We gave you warning of these days long ago: for the reverence of Christ's blood let these words be noted; The same Truth, that spoke before of these dolorous days, forespoke also the everlasting joy prepared for such as should continue to the end. The trouble is come: O dear Brethren look for the comfort, and (after the example of the Apostle) abide in resisting this vehement storm a little space. The third watch is not yet ended. Remember that Christ came not to his Disciples till the fourth watch. Pag. 57 — Observe next that the Disciples at the presence of Christ were more afraid than they were before: That Christ useth no other instrument but his Word to pacify their hearts: That Peter in a fervency first left the Ship, and yet after feared: That Christ permitted neither Peter, nor the rest of his Disciples to perish in that fear, but gloriously delivered all, and pacified the tempest.— There were three causes why the Disciples knew not Christ, but judged him to be a Spirit: The darkness of the night, that letted their eyes to see him: The unaccustomed Vision that appeared; and it was above nature that a massy, weighty, and heavy body of a man (such as they understood their Master Christ to have) should be born up of, and walk upon the water of the raging Sea and not sink: And finally, the horror of the tempest, and great danger they were in persuaded them to look for none other, but certainly to be drowned.— What here happened to Christ himself, daily happeneth to the verity of his blessed Word, etc. The truth and sincere preaching of his glorious Gospel, sent by God for man's deliverance from sin, etc. is judged to be Heresy and deceivable Doctrine, sent by the Devil to man's destruction.— The chief note is this, Pag. 58. The more nigh deliverance, and salvation approacheth, the more strong and vehement is the temptation of the Church of God: and the more nigh that God's vengeance approacheth to the wicked, the more proud, cruel, and arrogant are they. Whereby it commonly comes to pass, that the Messengers of Life are judged to be the Authors of all mischief. Thus the Israelites cursed Moses, Exod. 5.6, etc. alleging that he and Aaron was the whole cause of their last extreme trouble. Pag. 59 — This I write to admonish you, that although you see tribulation so abound, that no hope be left, that yet you decline not from God. And that albeit sometimes ye be moved to hate the Messengers of Life, that therefore ye shall not judge that God will never show mercy after. No, dear Brethren, as he hath dealt with others before you, so will he deal with you.— One cause why God permitteth such bloodthirsty Tyrants to molest his Church, is this, Such is his justice, that he will not pour forth his extreme vengeance upon the wicked, until such time as their iniquity be so manifest, that their very flatterers cannot excuse it. Exod. 10. Pharaoh was not destroyed, till his own household Servants and Subjects abhorred and condemned his stubborn disobedience.— If Gardener, Tunstal, and Bonner had suffered death when first they deserved it, Papists would have alleged (as they did) that they were reformable, neither thirsted they for the blood of any man. And of Lady Mary, who hath not heard, that she was sober, merciful, and one that loved the Commonwealth of England? Had she and her pestilent Council been dead before these days, their iniquity and cruelty had not so manifestly appeared to the world. Pag. 62. — Thus (dear Brethren) must the Sons of the Devil declare their own impiety and ungodliness, that when God's vengeance (which shall not sleep) shall be poured forth upon them, all tongues shall confess and say, That God is righteous in all his judgements.— The means Christ used to remove the Disciples fear is only his Word, he said, Be of good comfort, it is I, be not afraid. The natural man (that cannot understand the power of God) would have desired some other present comfort in so great a danger, as either to have had the Heavens to have opened, and to have showed them such a light in that darkness, that Christ might have been fully known by his own face, or else, that the winds and raging waves of the Sea suddenly should have ceased, or some other miracle, that had been subject to all their senses, whereby they might have perfectly known that they were delivered from all danger. And truly equal it had been to Christ Jesus to have done any of these (or any work greater) as to have said, It is I, be not afraid: but he would hereby teach us the dignity and effectual power of his holy Word. — This I write (Beloved in the Lord) that ye knowing the Word of God, Pag. 63. not only to be that whereby were created Heaven and Earth, but also to be the Power of God to Salvation to all that believe, etc. may now in this hour of darkness and most raging tempest, thirst and pray, that ye may hear yet once again this amiable voice of your Saviour Christ, Pag. 64. Be of good comfort, it is I, be not afraid.— Exercise yourselves secretly in revolving that which sometimes you have heard openly proclaimed in your ears, and be every man now a faithful Preacher to his Brother; Luke 24. If your communication be of Christ, assuredly he will come before ye be aware. — What comfort was in the hearts of the Disciples, when they heard these words, It is I, your Master, your Master, most familiar, whose voice you know, whose work you have seen, who commanded you to enter into this journey, it is I, be not afraid, cannot be expressed, but by those that have experienced the comforts of the Spirit after great conflicts, Pag. 65. etc.— It is certain Christ's voice had wrought in Peter's heart, not only a forgetting and contempt of the great tempest, but such boldness and love, that he could fear no danger following, but assuredly did believe that nothing could resist his Master's Command, and therefore he saith, Command me to come, q. d. I desire no more than the assurance of thy command. If thou wilt command, I am determined to obey. The waters cannot prevail against me if thou speak the word: so that whatsoever is possible unto thee, by thy Will and Word may be possible unto me.— Pag. 68 — Such as bear reverence to Gods most holy Word, are drawn by the power and virtue of the same, to believe, and follow, and obey that, which God commandeth, be it never so hard, and contrary to their affections; and therefore are they wonderfully preserved, when God's vengeances are poured forth upon the disobedient. Pag. 70. — In Peter's being afraid, seeing a mighty wind, and when he began to sink, crying, Lord, save me: Three things are principally to be noted; From whence cometh the fear of God's Elect: Why they faint in adversity: What resteth with them in the time of their fear and down-sinking.— The cause of our fear, who would through the storms of the Sea go to Christ, is, that we more consider the dangers and lets that are in our journey, than we do the Almighty Power of him that hath commanded us to come to himself.— This I note for this purpose, that albeit this late most raging storm hath taken from you the presence of Christ for a time, so that you have doubted whether it was Christ which you saw before or not; and albeit that the vehemency of this contrary wind, that would drive you from Christ, hath so employed your ears, that almost you have forgotten what he was who commanded you to come to himself, when that he cried, Mat. 11. Rev. 18. Come unto me, etc. Pass from Babylon, O my People, etc. Yet despair not, such offences have chanced to Gods Elect before you. Pag. 71. If obstinately ye shall not continue, yet shall you find mercy and grace.— So long as Peter neither feared danger, nor mistrusted Christ's Word, so long the waves did serve his feet, as if they had been dry, solid, and sure ground, etc. to instruct us, That lively faith makes man bold, and is able to carry in through such perils, as be uncapable to nature. But when faith begins to faint, then beginneth man to sink down in every danger. Pag. 73. — Indeed with God's Elect in their greatest fear and danger, there resteth some small spark of faith, which by one means or other declareth itself; albeit the afflicted person in fear or danger doth not presently perceive the same.— Lord, save me, declares that Peter knew the power of Christ able to deliver him, and that he had some hope through Christ's goodness to obtain deliverance.— It is also to be noted, that in his great jeopardy Peter murmureth not against Christ, neither blame him, albeit at his Command he had left his Boat, he saith not, Why lettest thou me sink, seeing I have obeyed thy Command? Moreover, he asked help of Christ alone.— Immediately stretched forth his hand, etc. Note, That God is always nigh to those that call on him faithfully, etc. What was visibly done to Peter, is done to Christ's members invisibly in all ages. Pag. 74. — Open your ears (Dear Brethren) and let your hearts understand that our God is unchangeable, his gracious hand is not shortened this day.— If we know the danger we are in, and unfeignedly call for deliverance, the Lords hand is nigher than the sword of our enemies. Christ's rebuke of Peter teacheth us, That God doth not flatter, nor conceal the faults of his Elect, but maketh them manifest, that the offenders may repent, and that others may avoid the like offences.— In passing to Christ through the storms of this world, it is not only required that our faith be fervent in the beginning, but constant to the end, and not faint.— We have less excuse for doubting then Peter, for he might have alleged, that he was not advertised that any great storm should have risen between him and Christ, which we cannot justly allege; for since Christ hath appeared to us, he hath continually blown in our ears, Pag. 75. that persecution should follow the Word that we professed. Alas then, why doubt we through this storm to go to Christ? Support, O Lord, and let us sink no farther.— O blessed and happy are those that patiently abide the deliverance of the Lord. The raging Sea shall not levour them, albeit they have fainted, etc. The Majesty of Christ's presence shall put to silence this boisterous wind, the malice of the Devil, which so bloweth in the hearts of Princes, Prelates, and earthly men, etc.— — Peradventure some there are of Gods Elect beholding such as have sometimes boldly professed Christ's verity, now to be returned to their accustomed abominations, and themselves to be so overcome of fear, that against their knowledge and conscience they stoop to an Idol, ☜ and with their presence maintain the same fear, whether it be possible the Members of Christ's Body can be permitted so horribly to fall to the denial of their Head. The dolour and fear of such I grant to be most just; for O how fearful is it for the love of this transitory life in the presence of man to deny Christ, and his known and undoubted Verity? Yet such as be not obstinate contemners of God I should counsel, that they would rather appeal to Mercy, Pag. 76. then to pass against themselves the fearful Sentence of Condemnation, and to consider that God includeth all under unbelief, that he may have Mercy on all.— And that all Christ's Apostles fled from him, and denied him in their hearts, and yet were not rejected for ever.— Some may demand, How shall it be known in whom faith is not utterly quenched, and in whom it is, seeing all flee from Christ, and bow down to Idolatry? Hard it is, and in a manner impossible, that one man should be able to judge of another, that could not Elijah do of the Israelites in his days, but yet a man may of himself. ☜ — And wilt thou have a trial, whether the root of faith remaineth with thee or not? Feelest thou thy soul fainting in faith, as Peter felt his body sink down in the waters? Art thou as sore afraid, that thy soul shall drown in hell, if thou consentest or obeyest idolatry, as Peter was, that his body should drown in the waters? Pag. 77. Desirest thou as earnestly the deliverance of thy soul, as Peter did the deliverance of his body? Believest thou that Christ is able to deliver thy soul, and that he will do the same according to his promise? Dost thou call upon him without hypocrisy, now in the day of thy trouble? Dost thou thirst for his presence, and for the liberty of his Word again? Mournest thou for the great abominations that now overslow the Realm of England? If these promises remain in thy heart, than art not thou altogether destitute of faith, neither shalt thou descend to perdition for ever, but the Lord shall mercifully stretch forth his mighty hand, and deliver thee. How? it neither appertains to thee to demand, nor to me to define. — I think not that suddenly and by one means shall all the faithful in England be delivered from Idolatry: No, it may be that God so strengthens the hearts of some of those that have fainted before, that they will resist Idolatry to the death, and that were a glorious and triumphant deliverance: of others God may so touch the hearts, that they will choose to go as Pilgrims, from Realm to Realm, suffering hunger, cold, heat, thirst, weariness and poverty, than they will abide (having all abundance) in subjection of Idolatry: To some God may offer such occasions, that in despite of Idolaters they may remain in their own Land, and yet neither Bow the knee to Baal, nor lack the lively food of Gods most holy Word.— Seeing we are so like the Disciples, let us make such a complaint (as the following one) unto God. Pag. 78. G God, the heathen are entered into thine inheritance, they have defiled thy holy Temple, and have profaned thy blessed Ordinances, etc. ☞ Thy Prophets are persecuted, and none are permitted to speak thy Word freely, the poor Sheep of thy Pasture are commanded to drink the venomous waters of men's traditions, etc. Such is the tyranny of these most cruel Beasts, that they say plainly, they shall root us out at once, so that no remembrance shall remain of us on earth. O Lord▪ thou knowest we are but flesh, etc. We confess we are punished most justly, thy blessed Gospel was in our ears, like a Lover's Song, it pleased us for a time; but alas! our lives did nothing agree with holy Statutes.— But be thou mindful, O Lord, that thy enemies blaspheme thy holy Name, etc. Thy Gospel is called Heresy, and we are accused as Traitors, for professing the same, etc. Albeit our sins accuse and condemn us, yet do thou according to thy great Name.— Correct us, but not in thy hot displeasure, spare thy people, and permit not thine inheritance to be in rebuke for ever, etc. Gather us yet once again to the wholesome treasures of thy most Holy Word, that openly we may confess thy blessed Name within the Realm of England.— Amen. — Abide patiently the Lords deliverance, Pag. 79. avoiding and flying such offences as may separate and divide you from the blessed Fellowship of the Lord Jesus at his second coming. Watch and pray, resist the Devil, and row against this vehement Tempest, Isa. 26. and the Lord shall come shortly to your comfort, and you shall say, Behold, this is our God, we have waited for him, and he hath saved us.— Mr. Knox remained at Frankford till some more given to unprofitable Ceremonies, See the History of T●oubles at Frankford, pag. 37.38. And the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 93, 94. then to the sincerity of Religion, essayed by a most cruel, barbarous, and bloody practice to dispatch him out of the way. They accused him to the Magistrates of high Treason against the Emperor, and his Son Philip, and Mary Queen of England, for that in his Admonition to England, he called the Emperor no less an Enemy to Christ then N●ro, and Queen Mary more cruel than I●zabel. The Magistrates, perceiving their malice, and abhorring their bloody attempt, gave advertisement secretly to him to depart their City, because they could not save him, if he were required by the Emperor, or by the Queen of England in the Emperor's Name. The night before his departure he made a most comfortable Sermon of the Death and Resurrection of Christ, and of the unspeakable joys that were prepared for God's Elect, which in this life suffer persecution for the Testimony of his blessed Name. From Frankford he went to Geneva, and thence to Diep, and thence to Scotland. The Ecclesiastical History of Scotland pag. 98, 99 At his coming to Edinburg, the Lord made him instrumental for the comforting the troubled conscience of Mrs. Elizabeth Adamson, who under extreme torments of body said, A thousand years of this torment, and ten times more joined unto it, is not to be compared to a quarter of an hour that I suffered in my Spirit. I thank my God, through Jesus Christ, that hath delivered me from that fearful pain, and welcome be this, even so long as it pleaseth the Majesty of Heaven to exercise me therewith. At his coming into Scotland he began as well in private conference as preaching to show how dangerous a thing it was to communicate in any son with Idolatry. Whereupon the Question was debated, Whether in any wise it was lawful for: Christian to go to Mass, or to communicate with the abused Sacraments in the Papistical manner? I was urged, that Paul at the command of james, and of the Elders of jerusalem passed to the Temple and feigned himself to pay his Vow with others▪ Pag. 100 But this and other things were so fully answered b● Mr. Knox, that Mr. Maitland confessed, I see ver● perfectly that our shifts will serve nothing before God seeing that they stand us in so small stead before men. His Answer to the fact of Paul, etc. was, (1) The fact was most unlike going to Mass; for to pay Vows was sometimes God's command, as was never Idolatry; and their Mass from the Original was and remained odious Idolatry. (2) I greatly doubt (said he) whether either James' command, or Paul's obedience, proceeded of the holy Ghost, seeing he fell into the most desperate danger that ever he sustained before for obeying worldly-wise counsel. Mr. Knox was so successful in a short time through the blessing of God, Pag. 101. that the Earl of Glencarn, the Earl of Marschel, and Henry Drummond, were so contented with his Exhortation, that they willed him to write unto the Queen Regent somewhat that might move her to hear the Word of God. He obeyed their desire, and wrote that which was afterwards published, and is called, The Letter to the Queen Dowager, which was delivered to her own hands, by the Earl of Glencarn. The Queen having read it, delivered it to the Bishop of Gl●scow, saying in mockage, Please you my Lord to read a Pasquil, which words coming to the ears of Mr. Knox, occasioned him to make the Additions to his Letter. — In his Letter. See this Letter with the Additions at the end of the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 81. Mat. 5. john 14.16. Isa. 9 — The Christians Victory standeth not in resisting, but suffering: as our Sovereign Master pronounceth to his Disciples, That in patience they should possess their souls: and Isaiah painteth forth all other Battles to be with violence, tumult, and bloodshedding, but the Victory of God's people to be in quietness, silence, and hope; meaning that all others that obtain victory, do enforce themselves to resist their Adversaries to shed blood, and to murder: but so do not God's Elect, for they suffer all things at the command of him who hath appointed them to suffer, being most assuredly persuaded that then only they triumph, when all men judge them oppressed; for in the Cross of Christ always is included a secret and hid victory, Pag. 82. never well known till the Sufferers appear altogether to be (as it were) exterminate; for then only did the blood of Abel cry to God, when proud Cain judged all memory of his Brother to have been extinguished.— Sometimes God toucheth the hearts of those, who in man's judgement have power to destroy his people, with pity to save them, etc. for two causes specially, (1) To comfort his weak Warriors in their manifold temptations. And (2) To give a testimony of his favour to such great ones.— Pity and mercy showed to Christ's afflicted flock, as they never lacked reward temporal; so if they be continued, and be not changed into cruelty, are assured signs and seals of everlasting mercy to be received from God.— From those words of Christ, Pag. 83. Fulfil the measure of your Fathers, Mat. 23. that all the blood which hath been shed since the blood of Abel the just, till the blood of Zechariah, etc. It is evident, that the murderers of our time are guilty of all the blood that hath been shed from the beginning; and it is but equal and just it should be so; for whosoever sheddeth the blood of any one of Christ's members, for professing his Truth, consenteth to all the murder that hath been made from the beginning for that cause. As there is one Communion of all God's Elect, of which every member is participant of the righteousness of Christ; so is there a communion among the reprobates, by which every one of the Serpent's seed are guilty of all the iniquity which the whole body committeth, because they are altogether against Christ Jesus, and his eternal Verity; every one serving Satan, the Prince of this world, in their rank, age, degree, and estate. The Kings and Princes, that by power oppress the people of God, and will not suffer that they truly worship God, as he hath commanded, but will retain them in Egypt, are brethren and companions to Pharaoh: The Prelates and Priests, with their Fathers the old Pharisees, have taken away the key of Knowledge, and have shut up the Kingdom of Heaven before men, so that neither they themselves will enter, nor suffer others to enter in. Pag. 86. — As Satan by craft hath corrupted the most holy Ordinances of God's Precepts of the first Table, in the place of the spiritual honouring of God, introducing men's dreams, inventions, and fancies; so hath he, abusing the weakness of man, corrupted the Precepts of the second Table, touching the honour that is due to Parents, under whom are comprehended Princes and Teachers; for now the Devil hath so blinded the senses of many, that they cannot, or at least will not learn what appertaineth to God, and what to Caesar; but because the Spirit of God hath said, Honour the King; therefore whatsoever they command, be it right or wrong, must be obeyed. It is blasphemy to affirm, That God hath commanded any creature to be obeyed against himself, that for the command of any Prince, be he never so potent, men shall commit Idolatry, embrace a Religion which God hath not approved by his Word, or confirm by their silence wicked and blasphemous Laws made against the Honour of his Majesty; and men that do so are Traitors to their Princes, whom by flattery they confirm in their rebelling against God. Pag. 88 — God cannot lie, he cannot deny himself, he hath witnessed from the beginning, Deut. 4. & 12. that no Religion pleaseth him, except that which he by his own Word hath commanded and established: The Verity it self pronounceth this Sentence, Mat. 15. In vain do ye worship me, teaching for Doctrines the Precepts of men, and also all plantation, which my heavenly Father hath not planted, shall be rooted out. Before the coming of his wellbeloved Son in the flesh, he secretly punished all such as durst enterprise to alter or change his Ceremonies or Statutes, as in S●ul, Uzziah, Nadab, A●ihu is to be read, and will be now, after that he hath opened his counsel to the world by his only Son, whom he commandeth to be heard; and after that by holy Spirit, speaking in his Apostles, he hath established the Religion, in which he would have his true worshippers to abide unto the end, will he now (I say) admit men's inventions in the matter of Religion, which he reputed for damnable Idolatry? If men or Angels would affirm, that he will, or may do it, his own Verity shall convince them of a lie; Deut. 4. & 12. for this Sentence he pronounceth, Not that which seemeth good in thy eyes, shalt thou do to the L●rd thy God, but that, which the Lord thy God hath commanded thee, that do thou; add nothing unto it, diminish nothing from it, which, sealing up his New Testament, Rev. 2. he repeateth in these words, That which ye have, ho●d till I come, etc.— The Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 101. Whilst Mr. Knox was thus occupied in Scotland, Letters came to him from the English Church, assembled at Geneva (which was separated from the superstitious and contentious company that was at Frankford) commanding him in God's Name, as he that was their chosen Pastor, to repair unto them for their comfort. Great desires there were to stay him in Scotland, but he would not be persuaded, saying, Pag. 102. Once I must see that little Flock, which the wickedness of men hath compelled me to leave; adding, That if God blessed those small beginnings, and if that they continued in godliness, whensoever they pleased to command him, they should find him obedient. Immediately after his leaving Scotland, the Bishops summoned him, and for non-appearance, burned him in Effigy at the Cross in Edinburg, An. 1555. from the which unjust Sentence, Mr. Knox made his Appellation, and directed it to the Nobility and Commons of Scotland, Printed at Geneva, An. 1558. In his Appellation. See his Appellation at the end of the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 1. — To the Nobility and States of Scotland.— It is not only the love of this temporal life (Right Honourable) nor the fear of corporal death that moveth me to expose unto you the injuries done against me, and to crave of you redress; but it proceedeth partly from the reverence every man oweth to God's eternal Truth, and partly from a love which I bear to your Salvation. It hath pleased the Lord of his infinite mercy, not only to illuminate the eyes of my mind, Pag. 2. etc. but to make and appoint me a Witness, Minister, and Preacher of his Doctrine, the sum whereof I communicated to my Brethren in Scotland, because I knew myself to be a Steward, and must give an account, etc. I did therefore (as God's Minister) whilst with them (God is record and witness) truly and sincerely, according to my gift divide the word of Salvation, etc.— I affirmed (so taught by my Master Christ Jesus) That whosoever denieth him, yea ●r is ashamed of him before this wicked generation, him shall Christ deny, and of him be ashamed, etc. And therefore I feared not to affirm, that of necessity it is, that such as hope for life everlasting, avoid all Superstition, vain Religion, and Idolatry; Vain I call, whatsoever is done in God's Service or Honour, without the express command of his Word.— Nevertheless me as an Heretic, and this Doctrine as Heretical, have your false Bishops and ungodly Clergy condemned, pronouncing against me a Sentence of death, in testification whereof they have form a Picture, from which false and cruel Sentence, etc. I make it known to your Honours, that I appeal to a lawful and general Council, etc. most humbly requiring of your Honours to receive me calling unto you, as to the Powers of God, Pag. 3. ordained into your Protection against the rage of Tyrants, not to maintain me in any iniquity, error, or false opinion, but to let me have such equity, as God by his Word, ancient Laws and determinations of godly Councils, grant to men accused or infamed. Pag. 4. — It is lawful to God's Prophets and Preachers of Christ to appeal from the sentence and judgement of the visible Church, to the knowledge of the Civil Magistrate, who by God's Law is bound to hear their causes, and to defend them from Tyranny, jer. 26. as appears in Ieremiah's case, Pag. 5. etc. He was condemned by the Priests and Prophets in jerusalem, etc. who then only in earth were known to be the Visible Church, from which Sentence he appealed, i. e. sought help of the Princes. I am in your hands, etc. q. d. the Princes of judah and Rulers of the people, to whom it belongs indifferently to judge between party and party, to justify the Just man, and to condemn the Malefactor. You have heard a Sentence of death pronounced against me by the Priests, Pag. 6. etc. I stand in your presence, whom God hath made Princes, your Power is above their Tyranny, before you do I expose my cause, I cannot resist to suffer what you think just; but lest my lenity and patience should make you negligent in the defence of me in my just cause, etc. I dare not conceal. That if you murder me (which thing ye do, if ye defend me not) ye make yourselves and this whole City guilty of my blood: whereupon they freed him from the Sentence. jer. 38. — The same this Prophet did before Zedekiah. Pag. 7. — This will more plainly appear in the fact of Saint Paul. Acts 22.23, 24, & 25. — He appealed from all judgement of the Priests at jerusalem to the Emperor.— It seems that his Cause was greatly to be suspected, partly for that he refused the judgement of those, that had most knowledge (as all men supposed) of God's Will and Religion; and partly because he appealed to the Emperor, who then was at Rome, far absent from jerusalem, a man ignorant of God, and enemy to all virtue: But the Apostle considering the nature of his enemies, and what things they had intended against him, did not fear to appeal from them, Pag. 8. etc. grounding himself upon his innocency, he neither regarded the displeasure of Festus, nor the brunt of the ignorant multitude, but appealed to Caesar, etc.— What I think of mine own person God will reveal, when the secrets of all hearts shall be disclosed, etc. But touching the Doctrine and Cause, for which that adulterous and wicked generation of Antichrists Servants (who will be called Bishops among you) have condemned me: I fear not, neither do I shame to confess and avow before man and Angel to be the eternal truth of the eternal God; and in that case I doubt not to compare myself with any member, in whom the Truth hath been impugned, since the beginning.— Seeing that my battle is against the proud and cruel hypocrites of this Age, Pag. 9 as that battle of those most excellent instruments was against the false Prophets and Malignant Church of their ages. No man ought to think it strange that I compare myself with them, with whom I sustain a common cause. — But lest that some doubt remain, that I require more of you than you of conscience are bound to grant, Pag. 10. — I purpose briefly, but yet freely to speak what God by his Word doth assure me to be true. (1) That in conscience you are bound to punish Malefactors, and to defend Innocents' imploring your help. (2) That God requireth of you to provide that your Subjects be rightly instructed in his true Religion, and that the same be by you reform, whensoever abuses do creep in by the malice of Satan, and negligence of men. (3) That you are bound to remove from Honour, and to punish with Death (if the Crime so require) such as deceive the people, See pag. 11. to pag. 20. or defraud them of that food of their souls; I mean, God's lively Word.— After that M●ses had declared what was true Religion, Pag. 20, 21. viz. To honour God as he commanded, adding nothing to his Word, neither diminishing any thing from it; Deut. 12. and after also he had vehemently exhorted them to observe the same Law, he denounceth the punishment against the transgressors, If thy Brother, Deut. 23. & 27. Son, Daughter, Wife, or Neighbour, whom thou lovest as thine own life, solicit thee secret, saying, Let us go serve other gods, etc. let not thine eye spare him, etc. Observe here, (1) That such as sollicitate only to idolatry, aught to be punished to death, without favour or respect of person, etc. (2) That the punishment of such crimes, Pag. 22. as are Idolatry, Blasphemy, and others that touch the Majesty of God, doth not appertain to Kings only, but also to the whole body of the people, and every member thereof, according to his vocation, etc. God even straight commandeth, that a City declining to idolatry should fall by the edge of the Sword, Deut. 7. and that the whole spoil of the same should be burned, no portion of it reserved, that the Lord may turn from the fury of his wrath, Pag. 23. etc. hinting, that by the defection and idolatry of a few, God's wrath is kindled against the whole, which is never quenched, till such punishment be taken upon the Offenders, that whosoever served them in their idolatry be brought to destruction; because that it is execrable and accursed before God.— If any think that this is contrary to the practice of the Apostles, Pag. 24. who finding the Gentiles in idolatry, did call them to repentance, requiring no such punishment: I answer, That the Gentiles before the preaching of Christ, were never avowed by God to be his people, nor received into his household, neither were his Laws given unto them to be kept in Religion, nor Policy; and therefore no corporal punishment was inflicted on them, etc. But after they repented of their idolatries and embraced, and made one people with the believing jews, they were subject to the same Law, as the jews were, and were liable to the same punishment if they returned to idolatry again. Pag. 25. — In universal defections, and a general revolt, such as was in Israel after jeroboam, there is a divers consideration; for then, because the whole people were conspired against God, none could be found to execute the punishment God had appointed, till God raised up jehu, whom he appointed for that purpose. Pag. 32. — I know that your Bishops, etc. will cry, A damned Heretic ought not to be heard. But remember, my Lords, what I protested in the beginning, upon which ground I continually stand, I am no Heretic, no deceivable Teacher, but the Servant of Christ Jesus, a Preacher of his infallible Verity, innocent in all they can lay to my charge, etc. and therefore am unjustly condemned, from which cruel Sentence I have appealed, and do appeal (as before) in the mean time most humbly requiring your Honours to take me into your protection, to be Auditors of my just defences, granting unto me the same liberty, which Ahab, a wicked King, and Israel, at that time a blinded people, granted to Elijah in the like case, 1 Kings 18. viz. that your Bishops, and the whole rabble of your Clergy may be called before you, and before the people whom they have deceived; that I be not condemned by multitude, custom, authority, or law devised by man, but that God himself may be judge betwixt me and my adversaries. Let God, I say, speak by his Law, Prophets, Christ Jesus, Apostles, and so let him pronounce what Religion he approveth, and then be my enemies never so many, and appear they never so strong and learned, no more do I fear victory, than did Elijah, being but one man, against the multitude of Baal's Priests. And if they think to have advantage by their Councils and Doctors, this I farther offer, to admit the one and the other as witnesses in all matters debatable, three things (which justly cannot be denied) being granted, (1) That the most ancient Councils, ●ighest to the Primitive Church, in which the learned and godly Fathers examined all matters by God's Word, may be holden of most authority. (2) That no determination of Councils, or man, be admitted against the plain verity of God's Word, nor against the determination of those four chief Councils, etc. (3) That to no Doctor be given greater authority, than Augustine required to be given to his Writings, viz. If he plainly prove not his affirmation by God's infallible Word, that then his Sentence be rejected and imputed to the error of a man.— Pag. 34. — To the Commonalty of Scotland.— I am most assuredly persuaded, that whatsoever is used in the Papistical Church, is altogether repugnant to Christ's blessed Ordinance, and is nothing but mortal venom, of which whosoever drinketh, therewith he drinketh death and damnation, except by true conversion unto God he be purged from the same.— It will be said, That it is unreasonable, that ye should call your Religion in doubt, which hath been approved and established by so long continuance, and by the consent of so many men before you. But I shortly answer, That neither is the long continuance of time, neither the multitude of men a sufficient approbation, Pag. 35. which God will allow for our Religion: For as some of the Ancients witness, neither can long process of time justify an error, nor can the multitude of such as follow it, change the nature of the same; but if it was an error in the beginning, so it is in the end; and the longer that it be followed, and the more that do receive it, it is the more pestilent, and the more to be avoided. If Antiquity or Multitude of men could justify any Religion, than was the idolatry of the Gentiles, and now is the abomination of the Turks good Religion; for antiquity approved the one, and a multitude have received and do defend the other. But otherwise to answer; Godly men may wonder from what Fountain such a Sentence doth flow, that no man ought to try his Faith and Religion by God's Word, but he may safely believe and follow every thing, which Antiquity and Multitude have approved. The Spirit of God doth otherwise teach us, john 5. & 7. Acts 17. 1 john 4. john 3. Search the Scriptures, etc. The Bareans are commended for trying the Apostles Doctrine by God's plain Scriptures. Believe not every Spirit, but try the Spirits, etc. Whoso doth evil hateth the light; neither will he come to the light, lest that his works be manifested and rebuked.— Truth being of the nature of fine purified Gold, doth not fear the trial of the Furnace; but the stubble and chaff of men's inventions (such is their Religion) may not abide the flame of the fire. Pag. 36. — Seeing Religion is to man, as the stomach to the body, which, if it be corrupted, doth infect all the members, it is necessary that the same be examined, and if it be found replenished with pestilent humours (I mean with the fancies of men) then of necessity it is that those be purged, else shall your bodies and souls perish for ever. A corrupt Religion defileth the whole life of man, appear it never so holy. Neither would I that ye should esteem the reformation and care of Religion less to appertain to you, because you are no Kings, Rulers, judges, Nobles, nor in Authority.— To believe and receive the Gospel the Commonalty are no less bound, then be their Rulers and Princes.— As your bodies cannot escape corporal death, if with your Princes ye eat re drink deadly poison (although it be by ignorance or negligence) so shall ye not escape the everlasting, if with them ye pro●ess a corrupt Religion.— As the just liveth by his own faith, so doth the unfaithful perish by his own infidelity— If ye look for the life everlasting, you must try if ye stand in the faith; and if ye would be assured of a true and lively faith, you must needs have Christ truly preached unto you. 〈◊〉 37. — When the Tabernacle was built and set in order, God provided how it and the things pertaining to the same should be sustained, so that they should not fall in decay: and this provision (albeit Heaven and Earth obey his Empire) would he not take from the secret and hid treasures, which lie dispersed in the veins of the Earth, neither yet would he take it only from the rich and potent of the people, Exod. 30. but the rich should give no more for that use, than the poor, nor the poor less than the rich. Pag. 3●. — If this equality was commanded by God for the maintenance of that transitory Tabernacle, which was but a shadow of a better to come; is not the same required of us, who have the Verity, which is Christ Jesus? He being clad in our nature is Immanuel, i. e. God with us. And for the more assurance of his promise of being with us, etc. he hath erected among us the signs of his own presence with us, the true preaching of his Word, and right administration of the Sacraments, his spiritual Tabernacle, to the maintenance whereof is no less bound the Subject than the Prince, the poor than the rich.— As the one is obliged to believe in heart, and with mouth to confess the Lord jesus, so also is the other. Pag. 39 — The poorest that in the days of this cruel persecution believeth in Christ, and boldly doth confess him before this wicked generation, is no less acceptable before God, then is the King, that by his Sword and Power rooteth out Idolatry, and so advanceth Christ's Glory.— From Geneva, july 4. 1558. Afterwards Mr. Knox called back again into Scotland by some Lords, The Eccles. Hist. of Scotland, pag. 107, 108, 109. etc. but a stop being for a while put upon his return, he writ from Diep, Octob. 27. 1557. having left Geneva. In his Letter.— If any persuade you for fear of dangers that may follow, to faint in your former purpose, let him be judged of you both foolish and your mortal enemy: foolish, because he understood nothing of God's approved wisdom; and enemy unto you, because he laboured to separate you from God's favour, provoking his vengeance and grievous plagues against you; because he would that you should prefer your worldly rest to God's praise and glory, and the friendship of the wicked to the salvation of your Brethren. I am not ignorant that fearful troubles shall ensue your enterprise: But O joyful and comfortable are the troubles and adversities, which man sustaineth for accomplishment of Gods Will revealed by his Word! How terrible soever they appear to the judgement of the natural man, yet are they never able to devour, nor utterly to consume the Sufferers; for the invisible and invincible power of God sustaineth and preserveth, according to his promise, all such, as with simplicity do obey him.— Pag. 149. When the Bishop of Saint Andrews threatened Mr. Knox, that if he preached there (as he intended) he should be assaulted with a dozen of Culverings. Being demanded his judgement, whether his preaching should not be delayed, answered, God is my witness, that I never preached Christ Jesus in contempt of any man, neither mind I at any time to present myself to that place, having either respect to my own private commodity, or to the worldly hurt of any creature: But to delay to preach to morrow (unless the body be violently withholden) I cannot in conscience; for in this Town and Church God began first to call me to the dignity of a Preacher, from the which I was reft by the tyranny of France, and procurement of the Bishops, Pag. 147. what torment I sustained in the Galleys, etc. is now no time to recite. This only I cannot conceal, which more then one have heard me say, when absent from Scotland, That my assured hope was in open audience to preach at Saint Andrews, before I departed this life. And therefore, my Lords, seeing that God, above the expectation of many, hath brought my body to the same place, where first I was called to the office of a Preacher, and from the which I was most unjustly removed, I beseech your Honours not to stop me from presenting myself unto my Brethren: And as for the fear of danger, that may come to me, let no man be solicitous; for my life is in the custody of him, whose glory I seek; and therefore I cannot so fear their boast or tyranny, that I will cease from doing my duty, when of mercy he offereth the occasion. I desire not the hand of any man to defend me, only I crave audience, etc. Whereupon the Lords were fully content he should preach; and so he did, upon the ejection of the buyers and sellers forth of the Temple, applying the corruption that was then, to the corruption that is in Papistry, and Christ's fact to the duty of those to whom God gives power and zeal to remove all Monuments of idolatry. Pag. 206.207. — When the Lords and those that favoured Reformation were driven from Edinburg to Sterling (which was the time of their greatest trouble) Mr. Knox preached on Psal. 80.5.6, 7, 8. In the Sermon.— God in wisdom sometimes suffers his chosen Flock to mockage, and dangers, yea apparent destruction; that they may feel the vehemency of God's indignation; that they may know how little strength is in themselves; that they may leave a testimony to the generations following, Pag. 208. as well of the malice of the Devil against God's people, as of the marvellous Work of God in preserving his little Flock by far other means, than man can espy.— It is a great and sore temptation, when God turns away his face from our Prayers, etc. This temptation no flesh can overcome or abide, unless the mighty Spirit of God interpose; as appears in Saul, when God would not hear him. The difference between the Elect and Reprobate in this temptation is this; The Elect, sustained by the secret power of God's Spirit, still call upon God, albeit he appear to contemn their Prayers, as jacob did, etc. But the Reprobate, being denied their requests, do cease to pray, and contemn God, and it may be seek to the Devil for what they cannot obtain by God.— Such is our tender delicacy and self-love of our own flesh, that those things, which we lightly pass over in others, we can greatly complain of, if they touch ourselves. Pag. 209. — When the sins of men are rebuked in general, seldom is it that man descendeth within himself, accusing and condemning in himself that, which most displeaseth God; but rather he doubteth that to be a cause, which before God is no cause indeed; as the Israelites supposed the cause of their overthrow was, because they had lifted the Sword against their Brethren of Benjamin, and yet the express command that was given them, did deliver them from all crime in that cause.— The true cause was their going to execute judgement against the wicked without repentance for their own former offences and defection from God; and their trusting in their own strength, they were a great multitude, and the other far inferior to them. Pag. 210. — When we were a few, etc. we called upon God, and took him for our Protector, Defence, and Refuge; among us we had no bragging of multitude, nor of our strength, nor of our policy; we did only sob to God to have respect to the equity of our Cause, and to the cruel pursuit of the tyrannical Enemy. But since that our Number hath been multiplied, and great Ones joined with us, nothing hath been heard, but, This Lord will bring these many hundred Spears; this man hath the credit to persuade the Country; If this Ear be ours, no man in such bounds will trouble us. Thus we made flesh our Arm.— It resteth that we turn to the Eternal our God (who beateth down to the death, that he may raise up again, to leave the remembrance of his wondrous deliverance, to the praise of his own Name) which if we do unfeignedly, I no more doubt, but that this our dolour, confusion, and fear, shall be turned into joy, honour, and boldness, then that God gave victory to the Israelites over the Benjamites, after that twice with ignominy they were repulsed. Yea, whatsoever shall become of us and our mortal carcases, I doubt not but that this Cause (in despite of Satan) shall prevail; for it is the eternal Truth of the eternal God. It may be that God shall plague some; Pag. 211. for that they delight not in the Truth, albeit for worldly respects they seem to favour it: yea God may take some of his dearest Children away, before that their eyes see greater troubles; but neither shall the one, nor the other so hinder this Action, but in the end it shall triumph. After the taking of Kinghorn, Pag. 215. at which time the Queen Regent blasphemously said, Where now is john Knox his God? My God is now stronger than he even in Fife. Mr. Knox preached a comfortable Sermon, john 6. on the danger wherein the Disciples of Christ, when they were in the midst of the Sea, and Jesus upon the Mountain, exhorting them not to faint, but to row against the contrary blasts, till that Jesus Christ should come; for (said he) I am assuredly persuaded, that God will deliver us from this extreme trouble, as that this is the Gospel of Jesus Christ, which I preach unto you this day. The fourth watch is not yet come, abide a little, the Boat shall be saved, and Peter, which hath left the Boat, shall not drown. Pag. 218. In his Letter to Sir William Sicily, Secretary of State in England.— As from God you have received Life, Wisdom, and Honours, etc. so ought you wholly to apply the same to the advancement of his glory, Pag. 219. etc. which alas! in times past you have not done: For to the suppressing of Christ's true Evangel, to the erecting of Idolatry, and to the shedding of the blood of Gods most dear Children, have you by silence consented and subscribed this your most horrible defection from the known Truth and once professed, etc. He hath not dealt with you, as with others, etc. but you guilty in the same offences hath he fostered (as it were) in his own bosom, during the time of that most miserable thraldom under Queen Mary; and now hath set you at such liberty, as the fury of God's enemies cannot hurt you, except that willingly against his Honour, you take pleasure to conspire with them.— God requires of you earnest repentance for your former defection, and an heart mindful of his merciful providence, and a will ready to advance his glory, that evidently it may appear, that in vain you have not received these graces of God. To performance whereof, of necessity it is, that carnal wisdom and worldly policy (to both which you are too much inclined) give place to God's naked Truth. Very love compels me to say, That except the Spirit of God purge your heart from that Venom, which your eyes have seen destructive to others, that you shall not long escape the reward of Dissemblers.— Now you are in that estate and credit, in the which you shall either comfort the sorrowful and afflicted for righteousness sake, or else you shall molest and oppugn the Spirit of God speaking in his Messengers. The Comforters of the afflicted for godliness have promise of comfort in their greatest necessities; but the Troublers of God's Servants (how contemned soever they appear before the world) are threatened to have their Names in execration to the Posterities following.— Except that in the Cause of Christ's Evangel you be found simple, sincere, fervent, and unfeigned, you shall taste of the same cup, which Politic Heads have drunk in before.— I hear that some of that poor Flock, Pag. 220. of late assembled in Geneva, are so extremely handled, that those who most rudely have shed the blood of Gods most dear Children, find this day among you greater favours, than they do. Alas! This appeareth much to repugn to Christian Charity: for whatsoever hath been mine offence, this I fear not to affirm in their Cause; That if any that have suffered Exile in those most dolorous days of Persecution, deserve praise and commendation for peace, concord, sober and quiet living, it is they.— From Diep, April 10. 1559. In his Letter to Queen Elizabeth. Pag. 226. — Consider deeply how for fear of your life you did decline from God, and bow to Idolatry, going to Mass under your Sister Mary her persecution of God's Saints. Let it not appear a small offence in your eyes, that you have declined from Christ Jesus in the day of your Battle: neither would I that you should esteem that mercy to be vulgar and common, which you have received, viz. that God hath covered your Offence, hath preserved your Person, when you were most unthankful, and hath Exalted you, etc.— Commonly it is seen, that such as refuse the counsel of the Faithful (appear it never so sharp) are compelled to follow the deceit of Flatterers to their own perdition.— Edinburg, july 28. A. 1559. Pag. 310. When Mass was permitted to the Queen for a time, Mr. Knox the next Sabbath after the first Mass, showed what terrible plagues God had taken upon Realms and Nations for Idolatry, and added, That one Mass was more fearful to him, ☞ then if Ten thousand armed Enemies were Landed in any part of the Realm, of purpose to suppress the whole Religion; for (said he) in our God there is strength to resist and confound multitudes, if we unfeignedly depend upon him, whereof heretofore we have had experience; but when we join hands with Idolatry, it is no doubt but both Gods amiable presence and comfortable defence will leave us, and what shall then become of us? Alas! I fear that experience will teach us to the grief of many. When God began to make his words good, He did in the audience of many, Dec. 1565. ask God mercy that he was not more vehement and upright in suppressing that Idol at the beginning; For (said he) albeit I spoke that, which offended some (which this day they see and feel to be true) yet did I not that, which might have been done; for God had not only given me knowledge and a tongue to make known the impiety of that Idol, but he had given me credit with many, who would have put in execution God's Judgements, if I would only have consented thereto: but so careful was I of that common tranquillity, and so loath was I to offend some, that in secret conference with zealous men I traveled rather to mitigate, yea too slacken that fervency God had kindled in them, then to animate or encourage them to put their hands to the Lords Work: wherein I acknowledge myself to have done most wickedly, and from the bottom of my heart do ask of my God pardon, that I did not what in me lay to have suppressed that Idol in the beginning. When the Queen accused him for stirring up her Subjects against her Mother & herself, and that he was the cause of much sedition & great slaughter in England, and that all he did was by Necromancy: Madam (said Mr. Knox) may it please your Majesty patiently to hear my simple answers: Pag. 311. and first, If to teach the Word of God in sincerity, if to rebuke Idolatry, and to will a people to worship God according to his Word, be to raise Subjects against their Princes, then cannot I be excused; but if the true knowledge of God and his right worshipping be the chief cause, which must move men to obey their just Princess from their heart (as it is most certain they are) wherein can I be reprehended? I think, and am surely persuaded that your Majesty hath had, and now hath as unfeigned obedience of such as profess Christ Jesus within this Realm, as ever your Father or Progenitors had of those that were called Bishops. Pag. 312. — And now shortly to answer the other two Accusations, I heartily praise my God, through Jesus Christ, that Satan, that enemy of mankind, and the wicked of the world, have no other crimes to lay to my charge, than such as the world itself knoweth to be most false and vain. If indeed in any of the places, where I was in England, during the time of my being there, there was either Battle, Sedition, or Mutiny, I shall confess myself a shedder of blood; but God so blessed my weak labours in Barwick (wherein then commonly used to be slaughter, by reason of quarrels that used to arise among Soldiers) that there was great quietness all the time that I remained there. And whereas they slander me of Magic, Necromancy, etc. all the Congregations that ever heard me, know what I spoke against such acts, and those that use such impiety: but seeing my Master was accused thus, even that he was possessed with Belzebub, I must patiently bear their false accusations. But yet (said the Queen) you have taught the people to receive another Religion, than their Princes can allow; and how can that Doctrine be of God, seeing God commandeth Subjects to be obedient to their Princes? Madam (said he) as right Religion took neither original, nor antiquity from worldly Princes, but from the eternal God alone; so are not Subjects bound to frame their Religion according to the appetite of their Princes. Pag. 313. — Daniel and his fellows were Subjects to Nabuchadnezzar and unto Darius, and yet they would not be of their Religion. The three Children said, We make it known to thee, O King, that we will not worship thy gods. And Daniel prayed publicly to his God against the express command of the King.— Pag. 314. You are not the Church (said the Queen) that I will nourish: I will defend the Church of Rome; for I think it is the true Church of God. Your will Madam (said he) is no reason, neither doth your thought make that Roman Harlot to be the immaculate Spouse of Jesus Christ. And wonder not (Madam) that I call Rome an Harlot; for that Church is altogether polluted with all kind of spiritual fornication, etc. Yea I offer myself further to prove, that the Church of the jews, who crucified Christ Jesus, when they manifestly denied the Son of God, was not so far degenerated from the Ordinances and Statutes, which God gave by Moses and Aaron to his people, as the Church of Rome is declined from the purity of Religion, which the Apostles taught and planted.— You interpret the Scriptures (said she) in one manner, and they in another; whom shall I believe? who shall be judge? Believe (said he) God that speaketh plainly in his Word; and further than the Word teacheth you, ye shall believe neither the one, nor the other. The Word of God is plain in itself; and if there appear any obscurity in one place, the Holy Ghost, who is never contrarious to himself, explains the same more clearly in other places. When he was accused as one that had irreverently spoken of the Queen, Pag. 334. and that traveled to bring her into hatred and contempt of the people, and that he had exceeded the bounds of his Text. Madam (said he) if your ears had heard the whole matter that I treated of, if there be in you any spark of the Spirit of God, yea of honesty and wisdom, you would not justly be offended with any thing I spoke.— My Text was this, And now O Kings understand, be learned ye judges of the earth. After (Madam) I had declared the dignity of Kings and Rulers, the obedience due to them, I demanded this Question, But oh alas! what account shall the most part of Princes make before the supreme Judge, whose Throne and Authority so shamefully they abuse? The complaint of Solomon is this day most true, That Violence and Oppression do occupy the Throne of God on earth; for whilst that Murderers, Bloodthirsty men, Oppressors, etc. dare present themselves before Kings and Princes, and the poor Saints of God are banished and exiled, what shall we say, but that the Devil hath taken possession in the Throne of God, which ought to be ●earful to all wicked doers, and a refuge to the innocent and oppressed: And how can it be otherwise? For Princes will not understand, Pag. 335. etc. God's Law they despise, his Statutes and holy Ordinances they will not understand; for in fiddling and singing they are more exercised, then in reading or hearing Gods most blessed Word. etc. And of dancing (Madam) I said, That albeit in Scripture I find no praise of it, and in profane Writers it is termed the gesture rather of those that are mad, then of sober men. Yet do I not utterly condemn it, provided that two vices be avoided. (1) That the principal Vocation of those that use that exercise, be not neglected, for the pleasure of dancing. (2) That they dance not, as the Philistines their Fathers, for the pleasure that they take in the displeasure of God's people; for if they do so, they shall receive the reward of dancers, and that will be to drink in Hell, unless they speedily repent. So shall God turn their mirth into sudden sorrow; for God will not always afflict his people, nor wink at the tyranny of Tyrants. Many that stood by witnessed, That Mr. Kn●x had recited the very words that publicly he spoke. The Queen looked about upon some of the Reporters, and said, Your words are sharp enough, as you have spoken them, but yet they were told me in another manner.— If you hear any thing of myself, that misliketh you, come to myself and tell me, and I shall hear you. Madam (said he) I am called to a public Function within the Church of God, and appointed by God to rebuke the sins of all. I am not appointed to come to every man in particular to show him his offence; for that labour were infinite. If your Majesty pleaseth to frequent the public Sermons, than I doubt not but you shall fully understand, both what I like and mislike, as well in your Majesty as in all others. Or if your Majesty will assign me a certain day and hour when it shall please you to hear the Form and Substance of Doctrine, which is proposed in public to the Churches of this Realm, I will most gladly wait upon your Majesty's pleasure, time, and place; but to come and wait upon your Chamber door, or elsewhere, and then to have no farther liberty, but to whisper my mind in your Majesty's ear, Pag. 336. or to tell you what others think or speak of you, neither will my conscience, nor the Vocation whereto God hath called me, suffer it. Mr. Knox departed with a reasonable merry countenance, whereat some Papists offended, said, He is not afraid; which heard by him, he answered, Why should the pleasant face of a Lady afray me? I have looked in the faces of many angry men, and yet have not been afraid above measure. When the Courtiers picked quarrels against the Preachers for reprehending avarice, Pag. 348. oppression, excess, riotous cheer, banqueting, immoderate dancing, and whoredom, that thereof ensues, which then began to abound at Court, alleging, That all their preaching was turned into railing. Mr. Knox told them; It cometh to our ears, that we are called Railers, whereof albeit we wonder, yet we are not ashamed, seeing that the most worthy Servants of God, that before us have traveled in this Vocation, have so been styled; but unto you do I say, that the same God, who from the beginning hath punished the contempt of his Word, and hath poured forth his vengeance on such proud mockers, shall not spare you; yea, he shall not spare you before the eyes of this wicked generation, for the pleasure whereof ye despise all wholesome admonition. Have you not seen greater than any of you sitting where ye sit (Earl Huntly) pick his nails, and pull down his Bonnet over his eyes, when Idolatry, Witchcraft, Murder, Oppression, etc. were rebuked? was not this his common talk? When these Knaves have railed their fill, then will they hold their peace. Have ye not heard it affirmed to his own face, that God should revenge that his blasphemy, even in the eyes of such as were witness to his iniquity? By your hands hath God executed the judgement threatened. But what amendment can be espied in you? Idolatry was never in greater quiet, virtue and virtuous men never in more contempt, vice was never more bold, nor punishment less feared. And yet who guides the Queen and Court? Pag. 349. who but Protestants? O horrible slanderers of God, and of his holy Evangel! Better it were unto you plainly to renounce Christ Jesus, then thus to expose his blessed Evangel to mockage. If God punisheth not you that this same age shall see your punishment, the Spirit of righteous judgement guides me not. Pag. 352. When the Queen sent for Mr. Knox, and would have him to persuade the people, especially the Gentlemen of the W●st, not to put hand to punish any for using themselves in their Religion as pleased them: He willed her Majesty to punish Malefactors according to the Laws, and he durst promise quietness upon the part of them that professed the Lord Jesus within Scotland; but if her Majesty thought to delude the Laws, he said, He feared some would let the P●●ists understand, that without punishment they should not be suffered so manifestly to offend God's Majesty. Pag. 354. — I shall cause (said the Queen) to summon all offenders, and ye shall know that I shall minister justice. I am assured then (said he) that ye shall please God, and enjoy rest and tranquillity within your Realm, which to your Majesty is more profitable, than all the Pope's power can be. In his Letter to the Earl of Murray. Pag. 357. — Seeing I perceive myself frustrate of my expectation, which was, that you should ever have preferred God to your own affection, and the advancement of his truth to your own commodity, I commit you to your wit, and to the conducting of those which can better please you.— In a Sermon concerning the Queen's Marriage, Pag. 359. he said, Whensoever the Nobility of Scotland, who profess the Lord Jesus, consent that an Infidel (and all Papists be Infidels) shall be Head to our Sovereign, ye do, so far as in you lies, banish Christ Jesus from this Realm; yea, bring God's vengeance on the Country, a plague upon yourselves, and perchance you shall do small comfort to your Sovereign. When he was upon that account brought before the Queen; Pag. 360. Madam (said he) when it shall please God to deliver you from that bondage of darkness and error, wherein ye have been nourished for lack of true Doctrine, your Majesty will find the liberty of my tongue nothing offensive. Out of the Pulpit I think few have occasion to be offended at me; but there I am not Master of myself, but must obey him, who commands me to speak plain, and to flatter no flesh upon the face of the earth. But what have you to do (said she) with my Marriage? I am sent (said he) to preach the Evangel of jesus Christ to such as please to hear. It hath two parts, Repentance and Faith. Now, Madam, in preaching of Repentance, of necessity it is that the sins of men be noted, that they may know wherein they offend: but so it is, that the most part of your Nobility are so addicted to your affections, that neither God's Word, nor yet their Commonwealth are rightly regarded; and therefore it becometh me to speak that they may know their duty. (And so he repeated to herself what he had said in public) Whereupon the Queen wept; but when she had given place to her inordinate passions, Mr. Knox said, Madam, in God's presence I speak, I never delighted in the weeping of any of God's Creatures, etc. much less can I rejoice in your Majesty's weeping; but seeing I have given you no just occasion to be offended, but have spoken the truth, as my Vocation craves of me, I must sustain your Majesty's tears, rather than I dare hurt my conscience, or betray the Commonwealth by silence. Pag. 362. About that time he p●ayed thus.— Deliver us O Lord from the bondage of Idolatry. Preserve and keep us from the tyranny of Strangers. Continue us in peace and concord among ourselves, if thy good pleasure be, O Lord, for a season. Being asked, Why he prayed for quietness for a season, and not absolutely? His answer was, That he durst not pray, but in faith, and faith in God's Word assured him, That constant quietness would not continue in that Realm, wherein Idolatry had been suppressed, and then was permitted to be erected again. Pag. 366. The Master of Maxwell telling him, That he would not find that men will bear with him in times to come, as they had done in times past; If (said he) God stand my Friend, as I am assured he of his mercy will, so long as I depend upon his promise, and prefer his glory to my life and worldly profit, I little regard how men behave themselves towards me, etc.— The Earl of Murray, Pag. 367. and the Secretary sent for Mr. Knox, and lamented that he had so highly offended the Queen by writing Letters, desiring the Brethren from all parts to convene at Edinburg, that there was no hope for him, unless he would confess his offence, and put himself in her Majesties will. I praise God through Jesus Christ (said he) I have learned not to fear the things that the Godless multitude fear. I have the testimony of a good conscience, that I have given no offence to the Queen; for I have done nothing but my duty, and so my hope is, that my God will give me patience to bear what will ensue. When he was called before the Queen and her Council, Pag. 368. the Secretary Lethington told him, the Queen was informed, That he traveled to raise a tumult of her Subjects against her, and for certification thereof, produced one of his Letters, which he owned. Then said the Secretary, Mr. Knox, Are not you sorry from your heart, that such a Letter hath passed your Pen, etc. Before I repent (said he) I must be taught my offence. Offence (said Lethington) If there were no more but the Vocation of the Queen's Liege's, Pag. 369. the offence cannot be denied. Remember yourself, my Lord, (said Knox) there is a difference betwixt a lawful and an unlawful Vocation. If I have been guilty in this, I have oft offended since I came last into Scotland; for what Vocation of Brethren hath ever been since, to which my Pen hath not served? and before this no man laid it to my charge as a crime. Then was then (said Lethington) and now is now, we have no need of such Vocation, as sometimes we have had. The time that hath been (said Knox) is now before my eyes; for I see the poor flock in no less danger, than it hath been at any time before; except that the Devil hath gotten a Vizard upon his face, before he came in with his own face, discovered by open tyranny, seeking the destruction of all that refused Idolatry, and then I think you will confess, the Brethren lawfully assembled themselves for defence of their lives; and now the Devil comes under the Cloak of Justice, to do that which God would not suffer him to do by strength, by crafty deceit, making the Prince party, etc. After a long conference between the Queen and Mr. Knox, the Secretary told him, He might return to his house for that night. I thank God and the Queen's Majesty (said he) and Madam, I pray God to purge your heart from Papistry, and to preserve you from the counsel of flatterer's; for how pleasant soever they appear to your ear and corrupt affections for the time, experience hath taught us, in what perplexity they have brought famous Princes. After he was gone, the Nobility in the presence of the Queen absolved Mr. Knox. Pag. 380. In his Prayer for the Queen.— O Lord, if thy good pleasure be, purge the heart of the Queen: Majesty from the venom of Idolatry, and deliver her from the thraldom and bondage of Satan, into the which she hath been brought up, and yet remains, for the lack of true Doctrine; and let her see by the illumination of thy Spirit, that there is no means to please thee, but by Jesus Christ thy only Son, and that Jesus Christ cannot be found but in thy holy Word; nor yet received, but as it prescribes, which is, to renounce our own wisdom, and preconceived opinion, and worship thee as it commands; that in so doing she may avoid the eternal damnation which is ordained for all obstinate impenitents; and that this poor Realm may also escape that plague and vengeance which inevitably followeth Idolatry, maintained against the manifest Word, and the light thereof. Secretary Lethington was offended at two things therein. (1) Because he prayed for the Queen conditionally, If it be thy good pleasure, etc. Where have ye an example of such a Prayer? Mr. Knox answered, Wheresoever the examples are, I am sure of the Rule, which is this; If we shall ask any thing according to his Will, he shall grant us.— I have learned to pray in faith; now faith (you know) depends upon the Word of God; and so it is, that the Word of God teacheth me, that Prayer profiteth the Sons and Daughters of God's Election.— Besides, Pag. 381. did not the Apostles pray as they commanded others to pray? Now Peter commanded Simon Magus to pray conditionally, If it be p●ssible, etc. (2) Where find ye that the Scriptures call any the Bondslaves of Satan (said the Secretary) or that the Prophets of God spoke of Kings and Princes so irreverently? The Scripture saith (said Mr. Knox) that by nature we are all the children of wrath, Pag. 382. and our Master Christ affirms, That such as do sin, are servants to sin, etc. Behold, I send thee (saith Christ to Paul) to the Gentiles, to turn them from the power of Satan unto God.— Kings and Queens are not excepted, but all unfaithful are pronounced to stand in one rank, and to be in bondage to one Tyrant the Devil.— Elisha was a Subject in the Kingdom of Israel, and yet how little reverence did he give to the King? he feared not to say to King jehoram, What have I to do with thee? Pag. 383. etc. As the Lord of Hosts liveth, in whose sight I stand, if it were not that I regard the presence of Jehoshaphat, the King of Judah, I would not have looked toward thee, etc.— Pag. 390. Lethington telling him, That we are not bound to follow extraordinary examples, unless we have the like command, etc. I grant (said Mr. Knox) if the example repugn the Law; as if a covetous man should borrow silver, raiment, etc. from his neighbour, and withhold the same, alleging the example of the Israelites in Egypt, etc. But where the example agrees with the Law, etc. it stands to us in place of a Commandment; for as God in his Nature is constant and immutable, so cannot he condemn in the ages subsequent, that which he hath approved in his Servants before us.— Pag. 391. Lethington telling him, That prosperity doth not always prove, that God approves the facts of men. Yes (said he) when the facts of men agree with the Law of God, and are rewarded according to his own promise expressed in his Law, the prosperity that succeeds them is a most infallible assurance, that God hath approved them.— Pag. 416. Upon the nineteenth of August An. 1565. a little while after the Queen was married to the Lord Darley, who to please the Protestants, came to Church, Mr Knox preached upon Isa. 26.13, 14, 15, 16, etc. wherein he said, That God sets in Government (for the offences and ingratitude of the people) Boys and Women, and that God justly punished Ahab and his posterity, because lie would not take order with that harlot jezabel; for which Sermon he was called in question, and in answering said more than he had preached; for he added, That as the King had (to please the Queen) gone to Mass, and dishonoured the Lord God, so should God in his Justice make her an instrument of his ruin; and so it fell out in a very short time. But the Queen being incensed at these words, to please her he was forbid to preach for a time. See his Life before the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 3. See the Sermon itself at the end of the said History, p. 88 This Sermon he took care to have it printed, to make known to the world what ground there was to deal so with him, as he tells us. In his Epistle to the Reader.— I dare not deny (lest that in so doing I should be injurious to the Giver) but that God hath revealed to me secrets, unknown to the world, and also that he hath made my tongue a Trumpet, to forewarn Realms and Nations, yea, certain great revelations of mutations and changes, when no such things were feared, nor yet was appearing: A portion whereof cannot the world deny (be it never so blind) to be fulfilled; and the rest alas! I fear, shall follow with greater haste, and in more full perfection than my sorrowful heart desireth. Pag. 89. Notwithstanding these revelations and assurances, I did ever abstain to commit any thing to writing, contented only to have obeyed the charge of him, who commanded me to cry. If any than will ask to what purpose this only Sermon is set forth, and greater matters omitted, I answer, To let such, as Satan hath not altogether blinded, see, upon how small occasions great offence is now conceived. For this Sermon (from my Bed) I was called before the Council, and after long reasoning, I was by some forbidden to preach in Edinburg, so long as the King and Queen were in Town.— The Sermon he writ for the Press the last day of August 1565. Pag. 122 when the Castle of Edinburg was shooting against the Exiled for Christ's sake; and therefore he concluded thus; Lord into thy hands I commend my Spirit, for the terrible roaring of Guns, and the noise of Armour do so pierce my heart, that my soul thirsteth to depart. Be merciful to thy flock, O Lord, and at thy good pleasure put an end to my misery. See his Life before the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 3. The next Sabbath, after the Earl of Murray was slain, a Note was sent to Mr. Knox, among the Papers, wherein were written the names of those that desired the Prayers of the Church, with these words, Take up the man, whom ye accounted another god. At the end of his Sermon he bemoaned the loss that the Church and State of Scotland received by the death of that man, and said, That as God in his mercy giveth good and wise Rulers, so he taketh them away in his wrath; and then added, There is one in this Company, that maketh the subject of his mirth this horrible murder, whereat all good men have cause to be sorry: I tell him, he shall die where there shall be none to lament him. The young Gentleman that writ the Note, hearing this Comination, went home and said to his Sister, that john Knox was raving to speak of he knew not whom. His Sister replied with tears in her eyes, telling him, That none of john Knox's threatenings fell to the ground without effect: and so it fell out in this particular; for this Mr. Thomas Metellan shortly after went beyond Sea to travel, and died in Italy, having no known man to assist him, much less to lament him. Pag. 4. He told his People, it was his desire to finish and close his preaching with preaching upon the History of Christ's Passion. In his last Sermon to his People at Edinburg, (which was preached at the Election of Mr. james Lawson to succeed him, to whom he had writ thus; Accelera mi frater, alioqui sero venies; Make haste, Brother, otherwise you will come too late; meaning, That if he made any stay, he should find him dead and gone. He called God to witness, that he had walked in a good conscience among them, not seeking to please men, nor serving his own or other men's affections, but in all sincerity and truth preached the Gospel of Christ most gravely and pithily, exhorting them to stand fast in the faith which they had received. In his sickness he said unto the Earl of Morton, Pag. 5. who came to visit him; My Lord, God hath given you wisdom, honour, high birth, riches, many good and great friends, and is now to prefer you to the Government of the Realm. In his Name I charge you, that you will use these Blessings better in time to come, than you have done in times past: In all your actions seek first the glory of God, the furtherance of his Gospel, the maintenance of his Church and Ministry; next be careful of the King, and the welfare of the Realm. If you shall do this, God will be with you, and honour you: if otherwise you do it not, he will deprive you of all these benefits, and your end shall be shame and ignominy. These Speeches the Earl about nine years after, at the time of his Execution, called to mind, saying, That he had found them true, and Mr. Knox therein a true Prophet. A day or two before his death, he sent for Mr. Lindsay, Mr. Lawson, and the Elders and Deacons of the Church, and said unto them, The time is approaching, for which I have long thirsted, wherein I shall be released from all my cares, and be with my Saviour Christ for ever; and now God is my Witness, whom I have served with my Spirit in the Gospel of his Son, that I have taught nothing but the true and sincere Word of God, the true and solid Doctrine of the Gospel; and that the end I proposed in all my Doctrine was, to instruct the ignorant, to confirm the weak, to comfort the consciences of those who were humbled under the sense of their sins, and born down with the threatenings of God's judgements. Such as were proud and rebellious; I am not ignorant, have blamed, and do yet blame my too great rigour and severity; but God knoweth, that in my heart I never hated the persons of those, against whom I thundered God's judgements, I did only hate their sins, and laboured according to my power to gain them to Christ. That I did forbear none of whatsoever condition, I did it out of the fear of my God, who hath placed me in the Ministry, and I know will bring me to an account. Now Brethren, for yourselves, I have no more to say, but to warn you to take heed to the Flock, Pag. 6. over which God hath placed you overseers, which he hath redeemed with the blood of his only begotten Son. And now Mr. Lawson, Fight a good fight, do the work of the Lord with courage, and with a willing mind, and God from above bless you, and the Church whereof you have charge: against it (so long as it continueth in the Doctrine of the Truth) the gates of Hell shall not prevail. This spoken, and the Elders and Deacons dismissed, he called▪ the two Preachers to him, and said, There is one thing that grieveth me exceedingly; You have sometimes seen the courage and constancy of the Laird of Grange, in the Cause of God, and that most unhappy man hath cast himself away. I pray you two to take the pains to go to him, and say from me, That unless he forsake that wicked course, wherein he is entered, neither shall the rock, in which he confideth, defend him; nor the carnal wisdom of that man, whom he counteth half a god (this was young Lethington) yield him help, but shamefully he shall be pulled out of that nest, and his carcase hang before the Sun (and so it fell out; for the next year, the Castle which he did keep against the King's Authority, was taken, and he hanged before the Sun) the Soul of that man is dear unto me; and if it be possible, I would fain have him saved. They went, but could not prevail; yet at his death, he did express serious repentance for his sins. The next day he was much in Prayer, crying, Come Lord Jesus, Sweet Jesus, into thy hands I commend my Spirit. Being asked by those about him, if his pains were great, he answered, That he did not esteem that a pain, which should be unto him the end of all troubles, and beginning of eternal joys. Oftentimes, after some deep Meditations, he burst forth in these words, O serve the Lord in fear and death shall not be troublesome unto you: Pag. 7. blessed is the death of those that have part in the death of Christ. In the Evening, having slept some hours together, but with great unquietness; for he was heard to send forth many sighs and groans. Being asked, after he awaked, How he did find himself, and what it was that made him to mourn so heartily in his sleep? He answered, In my life time I have oft been assaulted with Satan, & many times he hath cast in my teeth my sins, to bring me to despair; yet God gave me strength to overcome all his temptations: and now that subtle Serpent, who never ceaseth to tempt, hath taken another course, and seeks to persuade me, that all my labours in the Ministry, and the fidelity that I have shown in that Service, hath merited Heaven and immortality: but blessed be God, that brought to my mind these Scriptures, What hast thou, that thou hast not received? and not I, but the grace of God in me. With which he is gone away ashamed, and shall no more return. And now I am sure my Battle is at an end; and that without pain of body, or trouble of spirit, I shall shortly change this mortal and miserable life, with that happy and immortal, which never shall have end. After one had prayed for him, he was asked whether he heard the Prayer? he answered, Would to God that ye had heard it with such an ear and heart as I have done: adding, Lord Jesus receive my spirit. With which words, without any motion of hands or feet, as one falling asleep, rather than dying, he ended his life. When he was buried, the Earl of Morton being near the Grave, said by way of Epitaph, Here lies the body of him, who in his life time never feared the face of man. L. Lalaeus. Ward, pag. 161, 162. Simon Lalaeus to Silvester his Executioner said, Never saw I a man in all my life, whose coming was more welcome to me than thine. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 142. Silvester, seeing the great faith and constancy of this blessed Martyr, was converted, and with all his Family removed to the Church at Geneva. Lambert. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 396. The first Article against him was, Whether he was suspect or infamed of heresy? Unto your first Demand (said he) I answer, Pag. 398. That I am not certain what all persons at all seasons have deemed or suspected of me; peradventure some better, some worse. The opinion of the people was never one, but thought diversely of all the famous Prophets, and of the Apostles, yea and of Christ himself: some saying that he was a very good man; others said nay, and called him a Seducer, etc. Seeing therefore that all men did not say well by Christ, the Author of Verity and Truth, yea Truth itself, etc. what should I need to regard, if at some time some person for a little cause should suspect of me amiss, and evil report of me? etc. Woe be unto you, when all men speak well of you; for so did their Fathers to the false Prophets.— In his Answer to their second Demand.— Our Prelates have sent out commandments, that if any person shall adventure to keep any of Luther's Books, they shall be excommunicated, etc. But this is no novelty; for so did their forefathers the Prelates in Christ's time, etc. When Christ went about preaching, the Scribes and Pharisees, who were Prelates then, gave a general command, That whosoever confessed him to be Christ, should be put out of the Synagogue, etc. The Apostles were in like manner served. In the Old Testament they procured of one, that was a temporal Ruler at that season, to have the Prophecy of jeremy (for he of all other is most vehement against the dissimulation of Priests) to be burned. Pag. 399. — If they had the Spirit of Christ, which they claim and pretend to, they would follow the counsel of the Apostles, 1 Thes. 5. To prove all things, and to retain that only which is good, refraining from all that hath semblance of evil; and to try the spirits of them that should speak, 1 john 4. whether they were of God, or no.— The Priests (saith chrysostom on Matthew) that were Pharisees in Christ's time, made a●● Ordinance, That whosoever should acknowledge I●s●● to be Christ, should be excommunicate. If the Pharisees or Priests, that now do occupy their rooms, should make a like Ordinance, because they would not have Christ's Doctrine professed for hindering their lucre, should we leave off to seek after the knowledge of Christ's Doctrine? No verily.— When it was objected against Hierom, that he retained by him the Works of Eusebius and Origen, he bringeth to prove, That it was lawful for him that passage of the Apostle, Prove all things, etc.— These things prove, that I and others may safely (no good Law inhibiting, but Constitutions Pharisaical) read the Works of Luther, etc. Pag. 401. In his Answer to their fifth Demand.— It is evident from Christ's words, When you have done all things commanded, say yet you be unprofitable Servants, etc. That he would not have us esteem our merits, when we have done what is commanded by God, but reckon ourselves to be servants unprofitable to God, forasmuch as he hath no need of our well doing for his own advancement, etc. and if we ought not to attend our merits in doing the Commandment of God, much less in observing our own Inventions, or Traditions of men, unto which there is no benefit in all Scripture, which Paul calleth the Word of Truth and Faith, promised. Pag. 402. In his Answer to the sixth Demand.— That they will not suffer Marriage to be solemnised at all times of the year; I think it standeth not with Christ's Rule, but rather is against the same.— It ought also freely to be administered, and without money.— In the Primitive Church (as ancient Doctors deem, and the Scripture in mine opinion recordeth the same) there were no more Officers in the Churches of God than Bishops and Deacons. Hierome in his Com. on the Epistles of Paul saith, That those whom we call Priests were none other than Bishops, and the Bishops none other then Priests, etc. Neither were they chosen, as they be now adays, etc. But they were chosen not only of the Bishop, but with the consent of the people, among whom they should have their Living, as showeth Cyprian, and the people ought to have power (as he saith) to choose Priests, etc. But alas! such Elections are now banished, and new Fashions brought in. In his Answer to the thirteenth Demand. Pag. 404, 405. — I say that there is a Purgatory in this world, the Fire of Tribulation, through which all Christians shall pass, 2 Tim. 2. as testifies Paul, whose testimony is full, notable, and true, albeit that few do know it, and fewer will believe it, That all that will live godly in Christ jesus shall suffer persecution. In this Purgatory do I now reckon myself to stand; God send me well to persevere unto his honour. 1 Pet. 3. Of this speaketh St. Peter,— For a season ye are sundry ways afflicted and tormented, that the trial of your Faith, etc. though it be tried with fire, might be found unto laud, glory, and honour, at the appearing of jesus Christ, etc. other Purgatory know I none.— In his Answer to the seventeenth Demand. Pag. 409. — Forsomuch as no positive law of man, made without foundation of Scripture, may bind any person, so that in breaking of such he shall therefore sin deadly, and of this sort made by man is the Fast of Lent, and other days ordained in your laws without authority of Scripture, etc.— In his Answer to the one and twentieth Demand. Pag. 410. — Men may be wrongfully suspected of heresy, as the Bishops and Priests, with their Orator Tertullus suspected Paul, Acts 24. etc. And their Predecessors spoke of the Prophets, yea, and of Christ himself, calling him a Seducer and Preacher of heresy. Men being thus suspected, aught in no wise therefore to cease preaching, as is evident in the instance of Peter and john, Acts 4.5, 6. etc. which is written without doubt for our instruction, so that thereby you may see when men be wrongfully suspected or infamed of heresy, Pag. 411. and so prohibited by Bishops to preach the Word of God, that they ought for no man's commandment to leave or stop, etc.— In his Answer to the two and twentieth Demand.— Priests have two names in Scripture, Pres●yteri & Sacerdo●es. They are most usually called Presbyteri, who are set to be Prelates in the Church, to guide the same by his blessed Word. And Priests thus called Presbyteri in the Primitive Church (what time were but few Traditions and Ordinances to let us from the straight institution made by Christ and his Apostles) were the very same and none other but Bishops. Titus 1. — As many as are in this wise Priests, aught to preach freely the Word of God in all places and times convenient, etc. Others be called Priests by this word Sacerdotes, Pag. 512. ●ev. 1. 1 Pet. 2. and thus be all Christians, etc. These ought not all to preach openly in general Assemblies, etc. yet privately are they bound for instruction of their Servants, Children, Kinsfolk, etc. to speak that should be for the destruction of vice, ●phes. 6. and upholding and increase of virtue, etc.— Notwithstanding this I say, both by supportation of God's Law, and also of Laws written in the Decrees, that in time of great necessity Lay people may preach, etc.— P●g. 413. In his Answer to the four and twentieth Demand.— Excommunication bindeth before God, if it be lawfully denounced, if the persons be guilty, and if it be done with the consent of others gathered with the Bishop in Christ's Name for the behoof of Christ's Church; for so used St. Paul in excommunicating the incestuous Corinthian, 1 Cor. 5. Mat. 18. and Christ requireth, etc. So that excommunication ought to be done (as methinketh) by the Congregation assembled together with their Pastor, whose advice they ought principally to esteem and follow, if it be virtuous and godly. In his Answer to the thirtieth Demand. Pag. 417. — Where you speak of Prelate's Deputies, I think such be little behoveful to Christ's flock. It were right and necessary, that as the Prelates themselves will have the Revenues, etc. they should themselves labour and teach diligently the Word of God, and not shift the labour from one to another, till (pity it is) all be left undone. Such doth Saint john call thiefs and murderers, etc.— God would have every man get his living by the sweat of his own face, i. e. by his labour, according to his estate and calling.— In his Answer to the five and thirtieth Demand. Pag. 418. — That one singular person may judge more rightly, than a great multitude assembled in a Council, appeareth by God's Law, and by the Law of man. john 11. Acts 5. Caiaphas is one instance; A whole Council did submit to his Sentence. Gamaliel is another. Agreeable to this we find in the Decrees, Dist. 31. the whole Council of Nice commending the Sentence of Paphnutius, and upon this, that Paphnutius did resist and prevail against the whole Council; the Gloss notes, that one singular person may gainsay an universal generality, having a reasonable cause on his side. Panormitane also gives his suffrage. I would (saith he) rather believe one Lay person, bringing in for him authority of Scripture, then universal Council, that ordaineth a thing without Scripture. Pag. 422. In his Answer to the five and fortieth Demand.— Concerning opinions or conclusions I can tell you of none other than I have showed: The sum whereof I think concluded in these two Scripture Propositions, Acts 4. (1) Christ is the Head cornerstone of our faith, whereupon it should be grounded, neither is there salvation in any other, etc. (2) Men do worship God in vain, Isa. 29. teaching doctrines and precept or laws humane. Thus I certify you of all the opinions and conclusions which I intent or have intended to sustain, and not to decline from, neither for fear, nor yet for love of man or men.— These Answers of Mr. Lambert the five and forty Articles against him were directed and delivered to Dr. Warham Arch Bishop of Canterbury, about the year 1532. From the danger he was in at that time he was delivered by the death of Dr. Warham; Fuller's Eccles H●st. Cent. 16. l. 5. pog. 229. but falling into fresh Troubles through the indiscretion of Dr. Tailor and Dr. Barnes, to make the quicker work (following the precedent of St. Paul, appealing to Caesar) he appeals to the King: who having lately taken upon him the Title of the Supreme Head of the Church of England, would show that Head had a Tongue could speak in matters of Divinity. In Whitehall the place and day is appointed, where an Act-Royal was kept, the King himself being Opponent, and Lambert the Answerer. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 424. When the King commanded him to declare his mind, etc. He gave God thanks, which had so inclined the heart of the King, that he himself would not disdain to hear, and understand the controversies of Religion; for that it happeneth oftentimes, through the cruelty of the Bishops, that many good and innocent men in many places are privily murdered and put to death without the King's knowledge. But now forasmuch as that High and Eternal King of Kings, in whose hands are the hearts of all Princes, hath stirred up the King's mind, that he himself will be present to understand the Causes of his Subjects. I do not doubt, but that God will bring some great thing to pass through him, to the setting forth of the glory of his Name. When the King was worsted and wearied, Arch Bishop Cranmer supplied his place, arguing though civilly, shrewdly against the truth; and (saith Dr. Fuller) his own private judgement: See his Eccles. Hist Cent. 16. l. 5. pag. 229. which was worse (saith the same Author) then keeping the clothes of those who killed Stephen, seeing this Arch Bishop did actually cast stones at this Martyr in the Arguments he urged against him. See his Worthies of England pag. 319. Yet after his whole body was reduced to ashes, his heart was found entire and untouched; an argument of his cordial integrity to the Truth, though fear too much prevailed, and too often on him. After the Dispute was ended, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 426. the King said unto him, What sayest thou now? Art thou yet satisfied? Wilt thou live or die? what sayest thou? Thou hast yet free choice. Mr. L●mbert answered, I commend my soul unto the hands of God, but my body I wholly yield and submit to your clemency. The King notwithstanding commanded the Lord Cromwell to re●d the Sentence of Condemnation against him. And it is very observable, that through the pestiferous and crafty counsel of Gardiner, Satan (who oftentimes raiseth up one Brother to destroy another) brought about the death of this Martyr by such, viz. Tailor, Barnes, Cranmer, and Cromwell, who afterwards suffered the like for the Gospel's sake. Pag. 427. After his legs were consumed and burned to the stumps, he lifting up such hands as he had, and his fingers ends flaming with fire, cried unto the people in these words, None but Christ, none but Christ. See None but Christ. Mr. Clement Cotton in his Epistle to the Reader, before his None but Christ notes, that these words were uttered by Mr. Lambert, as the triumphant voice of Faith, after that he had through the power of Christ put to flight the fear of Hell, Sin, and Death, etc. as by doubling of them may appear: and that by way of imitation (not tying any to syllables) they well beseem the thoughts and speeches also of every Christian, upon sure and safe grounds, as in their daily, so even in their last conflicts to be taken up and used. Latimer. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 457. After Mr. Hugh Latimer was converted, and was become famous for preaching the Word, Dr. Redman wrote to him to dissuade him: to which Letter he returned the following Answer; Reverend Mr. Redman, It is enough for me, that Christ's Seep hear no man's voice but Christ's; and as for you you have no voice of Christ against me, whereas for my part I have an heart ready to hearken to any voice of Christ, that you can bring me. Thus fare you well, and trouble me no more from talking with the Lord my God. Pag. 458. When he was cited to appear before Dr. Warham, Arch Bishop of Canterbury, etc. and kept in London from his charge at West Kingston in Wiltshire, he wrote to the Arch Bishop, expostulating the case with him thus.— If Peter thought it just, that by reason of his Office he should not cease to teach and admonish the people, whilst he should be in this Tabernacle, and that he should be so much the more instant therein, the nearer he drew to death. It cannot but seem unjust that those, that will not preach themselves, should hinder those that are willing, unless they be throughout conformable to their wills.— Whatsoever I may suffer for the Truth cannot trouble me; for God liveth, and he hath taken the care of me.— O that we were as diligent in, & as much devoted to what God requires, as our own inventions.— Hitherto I stand immovable for God's commands, and so seek not my own gain or glory, but Christ's, and so shall stand whilst I breath. Pag. 459. — Who doth not see a manifest abuse of many things? and seeing, grieve not because thereof? and grieving, doth not labour the removal thereof? and when shall it be removed, whilst the use is preached up, and the abuse concealed? the truth is the abuse cannot but so long reign.— Go forth and teach all things (saith Christ) What all things? All things (saith he) which I commanded you; he doth not say all things, that shall seem unto yourselves fit to be preached. Go to therefore I beseech you by the immortal God, let us all and every one intent with all our soul to preach what God requireth, lest we become Adulterators and Hucksters of preaching, rather than true Preachers; especially seeing men are most dull towards the things of God, and most ready for their own things, needing no spurs at all, being deceived by an unjust estimation of things, and an innate superstition, received from forefathers, which can scarce be healed by any preaching, though frequent, earnest, and sincere. Hence I dare not subscribe to the rude Propositions; because I dare not be a means of the continuing of popular superstition, lest I be the Author of my own damnation thereby.— It is not I assure you any pride that hinders me from that Subscription, which your Lordship hath so often to my very great grief required of me. It cannot but be wicked not to obey the Fathers of the Church; but yet they must see what and wherein they command, seeing it is said in a certain place, We ought to obey God rather then man.— The rude Propositions (as he calls them) to which he was required to subscribe, may be seen in Mr. Fox in the same Page. Pag. 462. In a Sermon of his at Stamford, Octob. 9 1550. he hath the following words concerning the crafty and deceitful handling of those Bishops in his Examinations, and what subtle devices they used to entrap him. I was once (saith he) in Examination before five or six Bishops, where I had much turmoiling. Every Week thrice I came to Examination, and many snares and traps were laid to get something. Now God knoweth I was ignorant of the Law, but that God gave me answer and wisdom what I should speak. It was God indeed; for else I had never escaped them. At last the Chamber wherein I was wont to be examined was somewhat altered; whereas there was wont to be a fire in the Chimney, now there was none but Arras was hanged over the Chimney. A subtle Question being propounded to me; I pray you Mr. Latimer (said one) speak out, I am very thick of hearing, and here be many that sit afar off. I marvelled at this, that I was bid speak out, and began to suspect somewhat, and gave an ear to the Chimney, and there I heard a Pen moving, they having appointed one there to write all my Answers. God was my good Lord, and gave me answer, I could never else have scaped it. After he was made Bishop of W●rcester, he was accused before the King, the Story whereof he gives us in a Sermon he preached afterwards, before King Edward. In the King's days that is dead (saith he) many of us were called together before him to say our minds in certain matters. In the end one kneeling down, accuseth me for preaching seditious Doctrine. A heavy salutation. The King turned to me and said; What say you to that Sir? Then I kneeled down, and turned me first to my Accuser, and said, Sir, What form of preaching would you appoint me in preaching before a King? Would you have me preach nothing as concerning a King in the King's Sermon? Pag. 461. — Then turning to the King, I said, I never thought myself worthy, nor did I ever sue to be a Preacher before your Grace, but I was called to it, etc. And if your Grace allow me for a Preacher, I would desire your Grace to give me leave to discharge my Conscience, and to frame my Doctrine according to my Audience.— And I thank Almighty God (which hath always been my remedy) that my sayings were well accepted of the King, etc. It is even as the Scripture saith, The Lord directeth the King's heart. Certain of my Friends came to me with tears in their eyes, and told me they looked I should have been in the Tower the same night. Upon the coming in of the six Articles, he did of his own free accord resign his Bishopric, and so was silent till King Edward's days. At what time he first put off his Rocket in his Chamber among his Friends, Suddenly he gave a skip in the floor for joy, feeling his shoulders so light, and being discharged (as he said) of such an heavy burden. In King Edward's days he was a diligent Preacher, Pag. 462. and an hard Student at his study about two of the Clock in the Morning, Winter and Summer, though his body had been sore bruised by the fall of a Tree, and he above sixty seven years of age) and by the same Spirit he did so evidently foreshow and prophesy of all those plagues, which afterwards ensued, that if England ever had a Prophet, he was one. As touching himself, he ever affirmed, That the preaching of the Gospel would cost him his li●e, to the which he no less cheerfully prepared himself, then certainly was persuaded that Winch●ster was kept in the Tower for that purpose, as the event did too truly prove the same. Fuller 's Ecclesiastiastical History, Cent. 16. l. 7. pag. 405. It may be queried, Seeing that Latimer was outed of his Bishopric in the days of King Henry the Eighth, on the account of the sixth Article, why was he not restored to the same under King Edward the Sixth, especial seeing Heath his Successor was legally deprived, and the place actually void; whereas on the contrary, Hugh Latimer continued Hugh Latimer, without any addition of preferment? A late Ecclesiastical Historian answers, It was not for want of any favour from the King, etc. nor because his downright Sermons disobliged the Courtiers, who generally delight in soft Preaching, as in soft Clothing; nor out of sullenness, because he would not be bedded again with that wife, which (though unwillingly) had in his absence embraced another, etc. But we impute it either to his conscience (ofttimes sharpest in the bluntest men) because he would not be built on the ruins of another, especially knowing Heath one of a meek and moderate nature; or to his age, who Barzillai like was superannuated for earthly honour, etc. Or because he found himself not fit for Government, better for Preaching, then Ordering Ecclesiastical Affairs: Or lastly, because he prophetically foresaw, that the ingratitude of the English Nation would shorten their happiness, and King Edward's life; and he was loath to come into a place, only to go out thereof. Sure I am it was a loud lie, which Parsons tells, That Latimer was kept bare. He kept himself bare, living not in the want but neglect, yea contempt of all worldly wealth; though he was the Corban or Treasury, into which restored-ill-gotten-goods were cast to be bestowed on the poor, according to his discretion. At the coming of Queen Mary (by the means no doubt of Winchester) a Pursuivant was sent down to cite him to appear at London, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 462. of which john Carls gave him notice six hours before; yet he would not escape, but prepared himself for his journey before the said Messenger came to his house, at which the Pursuivant wondered: thereupon he said unto him; My Friend, you be a welcome Messenger to me. And be it known unto you, and to all the world, that I go as willingly to London at this present, being called by my Prince to render an account of my Doctrine, as ever I was at any place in the world. I doubt not, but that God, as he hath made me worthy to preach his Word before two excellent Princes, so will he enable me to witness the same unto the third, either to her comfort or discomfort eternally, etc. As he came up to London through Smithfield, without the Pursuivant (for he having delivered his Letters, departed, affirming, that he had command not to tarry for him; whereby it is evident they would have had him fled out of the Realm) he said merrily, That Smithfield had long groaned for him. In the Tower being kept without fire in the frosty weather, he bade the Lieutenant's man tell his Master, That if he did not look better to him, perhaps he would deceive him. The Lieutenant charging him with these words; His Answer was, I did indeed say so; for you look, I think, that I should burn; but except you let me have some fire, I am like to deceive your expectation, for I am like here to starve for cold. From the Tower he was transported to Oxford with Archbishop Cranmer, and Bishop Ridley to dispute with the learned Men of both Universities about the Presence, Substance, and Sacrifice of the Sacrament. Pag. 49. When he was brought before the Commissioners, and appointed to dispute, he alleged age, sickness, disuse and lack of Books, saying, That he was almost as meet to dispute, as to be a Captain of Calais; but he would (he said) declare his mind either by writing or word, and would stand to all that they could lay upon his back, complaining, That he was permitted to have neither Pen nor Ink, nor any Book, but only the New Testament, then in his hand, which (he said) he had read over seven times deliberately, and yet could not find the Mass in it, neither the Marrowbones, nor the sinews of the same. Pag. 80, 81. When he was brought to dispute, in the Close of his Protestation, which he delivered to Dr. Weston in writing, saying, Let me here protest my Faith, for I am not able to dispute, and afterwards do your pleasure with me. He hath these words; O Sir, you may chance to live till you come to this age and weakness, that I am of. I have spoken in my time before two Kings, more than once, two, or three hours together, without interruption, but now I could not be suffered to declare my mind before you, no not by the space of a Quarter of an hour, without snatching, revile, checks, rebukes, and taunts.— I pray God give you grace ever well to use your gifts, and ever to remember, That he that dwelleth on High, looketh on the low things on the earth, and that there is no counsel against the Lord; and also that this World hath been, and yet is a tottering World: and that though we must obey Princes, yet in the Lord; for who so doth obey them against the Lord, they be most pernicious to them, and the greatest adversaries that they have; for they so procure God's vengeance on them, if God be only the Ruler of things.— I would as fain obey my Sovereign, as any in this Realm; but in these things I can never do it with an upright conscience. God be merciful to us. Amen. Then (said West●n) you refuse to dispute, will you here then subscribe. No, good Master (said Mr. Latimer) I pray be good to an old man, you may, if it please God, be once as old as I am; you may come to this age, and to this debility. Dr. Cartwright telling him, Pag. 84. That he was of his opinion, but he was sorry for it, and desired he might repent also. Will you give me leave (said Mr. Latimer) to tell what hath caused Mr. Doctor here to recant? It is Poena Legis, the Pain of the Law hath brought you back, and converted you, and many more, the which letteth many to confess God. And this is a great Argument. There are few here that can dissolve it. Smith telling him, Pag. 85. He was not of Chrysostome's and St. Austine's Faith: I am (said he) of their Faith, when they say well, and bring Scripture for them; and farther, Austin requireth not to be believed. Weston telling him, He could not have found his Doctrine forty years agone: The more cause (said he) have we to thank God, that hath now sent the light into the World. Weston pressing him to recant: You shall have no hope (said he) in me to turn. I pray for the Queen daily even from the bottom of my heart, that she may turn from this Religion. Pag. 92. When he was excommunicated by Weston, he said, I thank God most heartily, that he hath prolonged my life to this end, that I may in this case glorify God by that kind of death. When he was brought forth from the Bailiffs to see a Mass, with a general Procession, and understood so much, he run as fast as his old bones would carry him to a Shop, and would not look towards it. Pag. 463. After the Sentence was passed upon him, he was committed again to Prison in Oxford, where in Prayer he oftentimes continued so long kneeling, that he was not able to rise without help; and among other things these were three principal matters he prayed for. (1) That as God had appointed him to be a Preacher of his Word, so he would give him grace to stand to his Doctrine to death, that he might give his heart's blood for the same. (2) That God of his mercy would restore his Gospel to England once again; and these words Once again, once again he did so inculcate and beat into the ears of the Lord God, as though he had seen God before him, and spoke to him face to face. (3) That God would preserve the Lady Elizabeth, and make her a comfort to this comfortless Realm of England. Neither were these things desired of him in vain, but the Lord most graciously granted every one of these requests. (1) The Lord assisted him to be constant to the last. At the Stake he lifted up his eyes towards Heaven, with an amiable and comfortable countenance, saying, God is faithful, which doth not suffer us to be tempted above our strength. Afterward he shed his blood in the Ca●se of Christ. The blood ran out of his heart in great abundance, his body being opened by the force of the fire. (2) The Gospel was restored again unto England. (3) When the enemies triumphed, God's Word was banished, no place left for God's Servants to cover their heads, God hav●ng wonderfully preserved the Lady Elizabeth, set her on the Throne, and thereby the captivity of sorrowful Christians was released. In his Letter to Mr. Morice.— I thank you that now of late you would vouchsafe to write unto me, so poor a wretch, to my great comfort among all these my troubles. Pag. 465. — Seeing there is no pain that can break my charity and patience, cause me to dishonour God, to displease God, to be displeased with God, nor to joy in God, bring me from surety of Salvation, separate me from Christ, or Christ from me, I care the less for it.— In his Letter in answer to Dr. Sherwood. Pag. 468. — God gives us both what he knows best for us; to me patience becoming a Christian in the midst of my sufferings, and to you as sound a judgement, as you have now a fervent zeal.— I said that all Popes, Bishops, Vicars, Rectors, not entering by the door, but ascending some other way, are Thiefs and Robbers, etc. Hence you gather, that I said, all Popes, Bishops, Vicars, Rectors, simply are so. O my Brother, is this a good collection?— Is there not a vast difference between these two assertions, All not entering in by the door are Thiefs, And all simply are Thiefs. Whence I pray you could it seem to you to say, Simply all are Thiefs, when I said only, All not entering in by the door are Thiefs? Unless perhaps all appear to you to ascend some other way, and not to enter by the door? If you think so, if you be wise, do not say that you do so think, you know how dangerous it will be for you to say so.— You say that Christ did only in secret, and not in public, task the Pharisees; but I am but a man, not a searcher of hearts, etc. But did not Christ by name accuse them, even before the multitude, saying, Woe unto you, Scriles and Pharisees, Hypocrites? It is true, I am but a man, that see not the spot lying hid in another's heart, but only the life exposed to the view of all, and so knowing them by their fruits, whom Christ would have so known. I do condemn that course of life, whoever take it up, which I find often condemned in the holy Scriptures, and in the holy Interpreters thereof. Am not I then undeservedly found fault with by you?— What I spoke rightly concerning the Church, you wickedly calumniate as if I had made all equal with Peter as to the use of the Keys, when there was not a word mentioned concerning the power of the Keys, etc.— But I only admonished my hearers, that the Church of Christ was built upon a Rock, and not upon the Sands; lest they trust in a dead faith, and not show forth their faith by their works.— Pag. 470. In his Letter to Sir Edward Bainton.— To recompense your goodness towards me, I shall not cease to pray my Lord God, who is able, and also doth indeed reward all them that favour the favourers of his Truth for his sake; for the truth is a common thing, pertaining to every man, for the which every man shall answer another day: and I desire favour neither of your Worship, nor of any man else, but in truth, and for the truth, I take God to witness, Pag. 47. which knoweth all.— I marvel not a little how the Bishop of London having so broad, wide, and large Diocese, committed unto his Cure, and so peopled as it is, can have leisure for preaching and teaching the Word, in season, out of season, privately, publicly, to his own flock, convincing, exhorting, admonishing, etc. to trouble me, or to trouble himself with me, etc.— I do not think Judges now adays so deeply confirmed in grace, or so impeccable, but that it may behoove and become Preachers to admonish them to do well, to examine whether the accusers do not pervert the words of the accused; and this I did upon occasion of the Apostles saying, Ye are not under the Law, but under Grace. What a saying is this (said I) if it be not rightly understood. The words sound as if he would encourage Christians to break Law, seeing they be not under the Law: and what if Paul's adversaries would have so taken them, and accused him of the same to my Lord of London. If he would have heard Paul declare his own mind, he would have escaped; but if he would have rigorously followed, utcunque allegata & probata, and have given sentence after the relation of the Accusers, good St. Paul must have born a faggot at Paul's Cross, the Bishop of London being his Judge. — But my Lord will say, Peradventure that men will not take the Preachers words otherwise then they mean therein. Rom. 3. — As though St. Paul's words were not otherwise taken. Pag. 472. Because he said, That our unrighteousness commendeth the righteousness of God, he was reported to mean, That we should do evil that good may come thereof, though he meant nothing so, etc. Now my Lord will not think (I dare say) that St. Paul was too blame, that he spoke no more warily, or more plainly to avoid the offence of the people, but rather the people for that they took no better heed to his meaning; yea, he will pity the people who had been so long nuzzled in the Doctrine of the Pharisees, and wallowed so long in darkness of man's Traditions and Superstitions, that they were unapt to receive the bright Light of the Truth, and wholesome Doctrine of God, uttered by St. Paul; nor do I think that my Lord will require more circumspection in me, than was in St. Paul, when he did not escape slanderous reports of them, that be of corrupt judgements, who reported him to say whatsoever he appeared to them to say, or whatsoever seemed to them to follow of his saying: So they report us to say (saith Paul) so they speak evil of us, whose damnation is just. And I think the damnation of all such, that evil report Preachers now adays is just also: yea, Christ himself was misreported and falsely accused, both as to his words, and also as concerning the meaning of his words. He said, Destroy you, they made it, I can destroy; He said, This Temple, they added, Made with hands, to bring it to a contrary sense.— He did mean of the Temple of his Body, and they did wrest it to Solomon's Temple.— There be three sorts of persons, which can make no credible information. (1) Adversaries. (2) Ignorant ones, and without judgement. (3) Whisperers, which will spew out in hudder mudder more than they dare avow openly. The first will not, the second cannot, the third dare not: Therefore the relation of such is not credible, and cannot occasion any indifferent Judge to make process against any man.— It is a great commendation to be evil spoken of them, that be naught themselves, and to be commended of such is many times no little reproach. God send us all grace to wish well one to another, and to speak well one of another. Meseems it were more comely for my Lord (if it were comely for me to say so) to be a Preacher himself, having so great a Cure, as he hath, then to be a Disquieter of Preachers, and to preach nothing at all himself. — I am sure St. Paul, the true Minister of God, and faithful Dispenser of God's Mysteries, and right Exemplar of all true and very Bishops, saith, Though some preach Christ of envy, Phil. 1. thinking to obscure me, and bring my authority into contempt, some of good will thinking to comfort me, notwithstanding so that Christ be preached, I joy and will joy: So much he regarded more the Glory of Christ, and Promotion of Christ's Doctrine to the edification of Souls, than the Maintenance of his own Authority, Reputation and Dignity, considering that what Authority he had, it was to Edification, and not to Destruction. Now I think it were no reproach to my Lord, but rather very commendable, to joy with Paul, and be glad that Christ be preached qis vis modo, yea, though it were for envy, in disdain, despite, and contempt of his Lordship. — The University of Cambridge hath Authority to admit twelve early, of which I am one, and the King's Highness did decree, That all admitted of Universities should preach throughout his Realm, as long as they preached well.— To inhibit a Preacher admitted of the King, is to disobey the King.— We low Subjects are bound to obey Powers, and their Ordinances, and are not the highest Subjects also, who ought to give us an ensample of such obedience? As for my preaching itself, I trust in God my Lord of London cannot justly blame and reprove it, if it be taken as I spoke it, or else it is not my preaching, but his that falsely reporteth it; Pag. 473. as Martial saith to one that depraved his Book: Quem recitas meus est, O Fidentine, libellus; Sed male dum recitas, incipit esse tuus. In English thus; Mine is the Book thou readest Fidentine; But thou not reading right dost make it thine. Now I hear that my Lord of London is informed, and hath informed the King, that I go about to defend Bilney and his cause against his Ordinaries and judges, whereas I had nothing to do with Bilney, except his Judges did him wrong; for I did nothing else but admonish all Judges indifferently to do right.— It might have become a Preacher to say as I said, though Bilney had never been born. I have known Bilney a great while, I think much better than ever did my Lord of London, and to tell you the truth, I have known hitherto few such, so prompt and ready to do every man good after his power, both friends and foes, etc. In sum, a very simple good Soul, nothing meet for this wretched world, whose blind fashion and miserable state (yet far from Christ's Doctrine) he could as evil bear, and would sorrow, lament, and bewail it, as much as any man that ever I knew.— I cannot but wonder, if a man living so mercifully, so charitably, so patiently, so continently, so studiously and virtuously, and killing his old Adam, i. e. mortifying his evil effections, and blind motions of his heart so diligently, should die an evil death. Let him that standeth beware that he fall not.— I am ignorant in things, that I trust hereafter to know, as I do now know things, in which I have been ignorant heretofore.— It were too long to tell you, what blindness I have been in, and how long it was ere I could forsake such folly, it was so incorporate in me; but by continual prayer, continual study of Scripture, and oft communicating with men of more right judgement, God hath delivered me, etc. yea men think that my Lord himself hath in times past thought, Pag. 474. that by God's Law a man might marry his Brother's Wife, who now both dares think and speak the contrary: and yet this his boldness might have chanced in Pope julius his days, to stand him either in a Fire or a Faggot. Which thing pondered of my Lord, might somewhat stir him up to charitable equity towards such who labour to do good, as their power serveth, with knowledge, and do hurt to no man with their ignorance; for there is no greater distance then between God's Law, and not God's Law, nor is it so, or so, because any man thinketh it so, or so; but because it is so, or so indeed, therefore we must think it so, or so, when God shall give us knowledge thereof; for if it be indeed either so, or not so, it is so, or not so, though all the world have thought so these thousand years, etc.— The matter is weighty (as you say) and ought to be substantially looked upon, even as weighty as my life is worth; but how to look substantially upon it, otherwise know not I, then to pray my Lord God night and day, that as he hath emboldened me to preach his Truth, so he will strengthen me to suffer for it, to the edification of them, who have by his working taken fruit thereby, and so I desire you and all others that favour me for his sake likewise to pray; for it is not I (without his mighty helping hand) that can abide that brunt; but I have trust that God will help me in time of need, which if I had not, the Ocean I think should have divided my Lord of London and me by this day; for it is a rare thing for a Preacher to have favour at his hand, who is no Preacher himself, and yet aught to be. I pray God both he and I may discharge ourselves, he in his great Cure, and I in my little One to God's pleasure and safety of our souls. Amen. Pag. 475. In his Reply to Sir Edward Baynton's Answer.— Truly I were not well advised if I would not either be glad of your instruction, or yet refuse my own reformation; but yet it is good for a man to look before he leap.— First, you mislike that I say I am sure I preach the Truth, saying in reproof of the same, God knoweth certain Truth. Indeed none knoweth certain Truth but God, and those which be taught of God, as faith Paul; for God revealeth it to them: and saith Christ, They shall be all taught of God.— As to my arrogancy, either I am certain or uncertain that it is Truth that I preach. If it be Truth, why may I not say so, to encourage my Hearers to receive the same more fervently, and pursue it more studiously? If I be uncertain, why dare I be so bold to preach it? If your Friends in whom you trust so greatly be Preachers, after Sermon I pray you ask them whether they be sure that they taught you the Truth or no. If they say they be sure, you know what followeth: if they say they be not sure, when shall you be sure that have such doubtful Teachers?— Our knowledge here (you say) is but dark as through a Glass. What then? Therefore it is not certain and sure. I deny your Argument by your leave: yea, if it be by Faith it is most sure, for the certainty of Faith is the surest certainty, as Duns and other School-Doctors say. There is a great difference between certain knowledge and clear knowledge; for that may be of things a●sent, that appear not, this requireth the presence of the object or thing known.— It is true there are too many that have a zeal for God, but not according to knowledge: there are also who have knowledge without zeal, holding the truth in unrighteousness: and there are, that have lost the spiritual knowledge of God's Word, which they had before, because they have not ensued it, nor promoted the same, but rather with their mother wits have impugned the wisdom of the father, and hindered the knowledge thereof, which therefore hath been taken away from them. To him hath not, that also which he hath, i. e. seems to have, shall be taken away. To abuse that, which a man hath, or not to use it well, is as not to have it.— It behoveth every Preacher to have so deep and profound knowledge, that he may call this or that Truth, which this or that he taketh in hand to preach for Truth; and yet he may be ignorant in many things, both this or that, as Apollo was, but such things, whether this, or that, he will not attempt to preach for the Truth. Pag. 476. — There be many things in Scripture in which I cannot discern certainly verum & falsum, no not with all the exercise I have in Scripture, nor yet with the help of all Interpreters I have, to content myself and others in all scrupulosity, that may arise; but in such I am wont to wade no farther in the stream, then that I may either go over, or else return back again, having ever respect, nor to the ostentation of my little wit, but to the edification of them that hear me, as far forth as I can, neither passing mine own, nor yet their capacity.— It is but foolish humility willingly to continue always an infant still in Christ;— for though Paul would not have us to think arrogantly of ourselves, and above that, which it becometh us to think of ourselves, yet he biddeth us so to think of ourselves, as God hath distributed to every one the measure of faith. He that may not with meekness think in himself what God hath done in him, and of himself as God hath done for him, how shall he, or when shall he give due thanks to God for his gifts?— Every opinion or manner of teaching, which causeth dissension in a Christian Congregation is not of God, by the Doctrine of St. john; but not every thing, whereupon followeth dissension, causeth dissension.— An occasion is sometime taken, and not given. The Galatians, having for Preachers and Teachers the false Apostles, by whose teaching they were degenerate from the sweet liberty of the Gospel into the sour bonds of Ceremonies, thought themselves peradventure a Christian Congregation, when Paul writ his Epistle unto them, so that the false Apostles might have objected to Paul, that his Apostleship was not of God; forasmuch as there was dissension in a Christian Congregation by occasion thereof, while some would renew their opinions by occasion of the Epistle, others would opine as they were wont to do, and follow their great Lords and Masters, the false Apostles, who were not Heathen, but high Prelates of the Professors of Christ— I would also learn of your Friends, whether St. Hieromes Writings were of God, which caused dissension in a Christian Congregation? What were they that called him falsarium and corrupter of Scripture, and for envy would have bitten him with their teeth? Unchristen or Christian? What had Unchristen to do with Christian Doctrine? They were worshipful Fathers of a Christian Congregation, men of much more hotter stomaches then right judgement, of a greater authority then good charity. Pag. 477. But Hierom would not cease to do good (as he saith himself) for the evil speaking of them that were naught, giving in that an ensample to us of the same. And I pray you what mean your Friends by a Christian Congregation? all those (trow ye) that have been Christened? But many of those be in worse condition, and shall have greater damnation, then many Unchristned; for it is not enough to a Christian Congregation that is of God, to have been Christened, but it is to be considered what we promise when we be Christened, to renounce Satan, his works, his pomps; which thing if we busy not ourselves to do, let us not crack, that we profess Christ's Name in a Christian Congregation in one Baptism: Matt. 17. And whereas they add, In one Lord, I read, Not every one that saith Lord, Lord, etc. And why call ye me Lord, Lord, and do not that I bid you? And whereas they add, In one Faith, St. james saith, Show me thy Faith by thy Works. And the Scripture saith, He that believeth God, attendeth to his commands. And the Devils believe to their little comfort. I pray God save you and your Friends from that Believing Congregation. Hieron. Tom. 5. in jeremiam, c. 26. — St. Hier●m exhorts true Preachers to suffer death for the same, when evil Priests and false Teachers and the people, that be by them deceived, are angry with them for preaching the truth, though they be Christened as well as others. I fear St. Hierom might appear to some Christian Congregation (as they will be called) to write seditiously, to divide the unity of a great honest number confessing Christ in one Baptism, one Lord, one Faith.— Hierom calleth the Priest's Masters, and very proverly: Servants teach not their own Doctrine, but the Doctrine of their Master Christ to his glory: Masters teach not Christ's Doctrine, but their own to their own glory.— Your Friends have learned of St. john, That every one that confesseth jesus Christ in flesh is of God, and I have learned of St. Paul, That there have been, not among Heathens, but among the Christened, who confess Christ with their mouth, and deny him with their acts.— I leave it to your Friends to show, Utrum qui factis negant Christum & vita sint ex Deo necne per solam oris confessionem; for they knew well enough from the same St. john, He that is of God sinneth not, and heareth the Word of God. Many shall hear, I never knew you, who shall not only be Christened, but also Prophecy, and do many mighty works in the Name of Christ— False Prophets are called naughty Servants; Servants, because they confess Christ in the flesh; and naughty, because they deny him in their deeds, not giving meat in due season, and exercising Mastership over the Flock. Pag. 478 — In the people there is required a judgement to discern when Gods Ordinances are ministered, and when men's own, lest we take Chalk for Cheese, which all edge our teeth, and hinder digestion; for it is commonly said, The blind eateth many a fly, as they did, which were persuaded of the High Priests to ask Barrabas and crucify Christ: and ye know that to follow the blind guides is to come into the pit with the same.— Better it were to have a deformity in preaching, so that some would preach the truth of God, and that which is to be preached without cauponation and adulteration of the Word, then to have such an uniformity, that the silly people should thereby be occasioned to continue still in their lamentable ignorance, corrupt judgement, superstition and idolatry, etc.— I see well, whosoever will be happy, and busy with vae votis, shall shortly after come coram no●is.— I shall have need of great patience to bear the false reports of the malignant Church. Pag. 479. — I wonder how men can go quietly to bed, who have great Cures and many, and yet peradventure are in none of them all.— I must suffer of necessity, and so enter: so perilous a thing it is to live godly in Christ jesus even in a Christian Congregation. God make us all Christians after the right fashion. Amen. In his Letter to King Henry the Eighth.— Saint Austin saith, That he, who for fear of any Power hid●th the Truth, provoketh the wrath of God to come upon him; for he feareth men more than God. Saint chrysostom saith, That he is not only a Traitor to the Truth, who openly for Truth teacheth a Lie, but he also, who doth not freely pronounce and show the Truth that he knoweth.— These passages made me sore afraid, and troubled in conscience, and at last drew me to this straight, that either I must show forth such things as I have read and learned in the Scripture, or else be of that sort, that provoke the wrath of God upon them and be Traitors to the Truth: the which thing rather than it should happen, I had rather suffer extreme punishment. For what other thing is it to be a Traitor to the Truth, then to be a Traitor and a judas unto Christ, who is the very Truth, and cause of all Truth? who saith, That whosoever deny him here before men, he will deny him before his Father in Heaven: the which denying aught more to be feared and dreaded, than the loss of all temporal goods, honour, promotion, fame, prison, slander, hurts, banishments, and all manner of torments and cruelties, yea and death itself, be it never so shameful and painful. But alas! how little do men fear the terrible judgement of Almighty God? and especially they, who boast themselves to be Guides unto others, and challenge to themselves the knowledge of holy Scriptures, yet will neither show the Truth themselves (as they be bound) nor suffer them that would. So that what Christ said to the Pharisees may be said to them, Woe be to you, Matt. 23. etc. who shut up the Kingdom of Heaven before men, Pag. 480. and neither will you enter in yourselves, nor suffer them that would, to enter in.— Now they have made it Treason to have the Scripture in English. Here I beseech your Grace to hear patiently a word or two. Though as concerning your Regal Power you are to me and all your Subjects in God's stead, etc. yet as concerning that you be a mortal man, in danger of sin, having in you the corrupt nature of Adam, in the which all be conceived and born, and so have no less need of the merits of Christ's Passion for your salvation, than I or other of your Subjects have, etc. I was bold to write this rude, homely, and simple Letter to your Grace.— First I exhort you to make the life and process of Christ and his Apostles in preaching, and the words of Christ to his Disciples, when he sent them forth to preach his Gospel. Christ was born and lived very poor, though he might by his Divine Power have had all the Treasures of this World when & where he would. But this he did to show us that his Followers should not regard and set by the Riches and Treasures of this World, if they happen to them, they should not set their hearts upon them. Matt. 5. It is not against the poverty in spirit, which Christ praiseth, to be rich, to be in dignity and honour, so that the heart be not set upon them. They be enemies to this poverty in spirit, though they have never so little, that have greedy desires to the Goods of this World, only because they would live after their own pleasure and lusts.— I will not that your Grace should take away the Goods due to the Church, but take away all evil persons from the Goods, and set better in their stead. I name nor appoint no person or persons, but remit your Grace to the Rule of our Saviour Christ, Matt. 7. By their fruits ye shall know them.— The words that Christ spoke to his Disciples, when he sent them to preach his Gospel, Matt. 15. are, that here they shall be hated and despised of all men worldly, and brought before Kings and Rulers, and that all evil should be said of them for their preaching sake; but he exhorteth them to take patiently such persecution by his own example, saying, It becomes not the Servant to ●e above the Master, etc. Read also the fourteeths Chapter, and there your Grace shall see that he promised to the true Preachers no worldly promotion or dignity, but persecution, and that they should be betrayed even by their own Brethren and Children. In john also he saith, john 16. In the world you shall have oppression, and the w●rld shall hate you, but in me you shall have peace: And elsewhere, Matt. 10. Lo I send you as Sheep among Wolves. The true Preachers go like Sheep, harmless, and be persecuted, Pag. 481. and yet they revenge not their wrong, but remit all to God: So far is it off that they will persecute any other but with the Word of God only, which is their weapon. This is the most evident token, that Christ would that his Gospel and the Preachers of it should be known by, that it should be despised among worldly wise men, and be reputed foolishness by them, and deceivable Doctrine, and the true Preachers should be persecuted and driven from Town to Town, and at last lose both Goods and Life; and yet they that persecuted them should think they did well and a great pleasure to God.— Where the Word of God is truly preached, there is persecution as well of the Hearers, as of the Teachers. He that will live godly in Christ jesus must suffer persecution. It is not only given you to believe in the Lord, but to suffer persecution for his sake. Where is quietness and rest in worldly pleasure, there is not the Truth; for the world loveth all that are of the world, and hateth all things that are contrary to it. St. Paul calleth the Gospel, The Word of the Cross.— May it please your Grace to return to the golden Rule of your Saviour, By their fruits you shall know them. Where you see persecution, there is the Gospel, and there is the Truth, and they that do persecute be without the Truth. They whose works be naught, john 3. dare not come to the Light, but go about to hinder it, letting as much as they may, that the holy Scriptures should not be read in our Mother Tongue, saying, That it would cause Heresy and Insurrections, and so persuade, or fain would persuade your Grace to keep it back. But here mark their shameless boldness, which be not ashamed to gather Grapes of Thorns, etc. and to call Light Darkness, etc. and to say, That that, which teacheth all Obedience, should cause Dissension and Strife.— Therefore good King, seeing the right David, our Saviour Christ hath sent his Servants, his true Preachers and his Word to comfort our weak and sick souls, let not worldly wise men make your Grace believe that they will cause Insurrections and Heresies, and such Mischiefs as they imagine of their own mad brains, lest that he be avenged upon you and upon your Realm, as was David upon the Ammonites, and as he hath ever been avenged upon them, which have obstinately withstood and gainsaid his Word. But peradventure they will say experience shows, How that such men as call themselves Followers of the Gospel, regard not your Grace's Command, neither set by your Proclamation, as appears by those that were punished in London for keeping such Books, as your Grace had prohibited by Proclamation; and so like as they regarded not this, so they will not regard other your Laws, Statutes, and Ordinances. But this is but a crafty persuasion.— The very cause of your last Proclamation, and the chief Councillors (as men say, ☜ and of likelihood it should be) were they, whose evil living and cloaked hypocrisy those Books uttered and disclosed.— And so it might be that these men did not take this Proclamation as yours, but as theirs set forth in your Name, as they have done many times more, Pag. 482. etc.— There is no man, I hear say, that can lay any word or deed to their charge, that should sound to the breaking of your Grace's Laws, this only excepted, If it be yours, and not theirs.— There be some that for fear of losing of their worldly honour, will not leave off their opinion, which rashly, and that to please men withal, by whom they had great promotion, they took upon to descend by writing, etc. Let these men remember St. Paul and David. Take heed of their worldly wisdom, which is foolishness before God, that you may do what God commandeth, and not what seems good in your own sight without the Word, that your Grace may be found acceptable in his sight, and one of the Members of his Church, and according to the Office he hath called your Grace unto, you may be found a faithful Minister of his Gifts, and not a Defender of his Faith; for he will not have it defended by man, or by man's power, but by his Word only, by the which he hath evermore defended it, and that by a way far above man's power or reason, etc. Wherefore Gracious King, remember yourself, have pity upon your soul, and think that the day is even at hand, when you shall give an account of your Office, and of the Blood that hath been shed with your Sword. In the which day, that your Grace may stand steadfastly and not be ashamed, but be clear and ready in your reckoning, and to have (as they say) your quietus est sealed with the blood of our Saviour Christ, which only serveth at that day, is my daily Prayer. Decemb. 1. A. 1530. ☞ Observe in this Letter (saith Mr. Fox) the duty of a right Pastor to Truth; that Kings are many times abused by Flatterers and wicked Councillors, the subtle practices of Prelates in abusing the Name and Authority of Kings to set forth their own malignant proceedings, and the great boldness and divine stoutness of this Servant of Christ, who as yet being no Bishop, so plainly and freely, without fear of death, adventuring his Life to discharge his Conscience, durst so boldly, to so mighty a Prince, in such a dangerous case, against the King's Law and Proclamation, Pag. 483. set out in such a terrible time, take upon him to write, and to admonish that, which no Councillor durst once speak to him, in defence of Christ's Gospel: and yet though his wholesome counsel did not prevail, God so wrought with his Servant in doing his duty, that no danger, no nor displeasure rose to him thereby. It was not long after that the King made him Bishop of Worcester. Pag. 486. Touching the memorable acts and doings of this worthy man, I cannot neglect the taking notice of one (for therein he spoke notably, though he said not a word) viz. his bold enterprise in sending to King Henry a Present. It was a custom that every year upon jan. 1. every Bishop should send the King a New-years-gift. Mr. Latimer, being then Bishop of Worcester, presented a New Testament for his New-years-gift, with a Napkin having this Posy about it. Fornicat●res & Adulteros judicabit Dominus, i. e. Whoremongers and Adulterers God will jundge. In his Letter to Mrs. Wi●kinson out of Bocardo in Oxford.— If the gift of a pot of cold water shall not be in oblivion with God, how can God forget your manifold and bountiful gifts, when he shall say to you, I was in Prison and you visited me. God grant us all to do and suffer, while we be here, as may be to his will and pleasure, Amen. Yours in Bocardo, H. L. In his Letter to Dr. Ridley, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 433. — You say except the Lord assist me with his gracious aid, in the time of his Service, I shall (I know) play but the part of a whitelivered Knight. john 15. Truth it is, for, Without me (saith Christ) ye can do nothing, much less suffer death of our Adversaries, through the Bloody Law prepared against us: But it followeth, If you abide in me, and my Word abide in you, ask what you will, and it shall be done for you. What can be more comfortable? Pag. 434. — Better a few things well pondered, then to trouble the memory with too much. You shall prevail more with praying, then with studying, though mixture be best; for so one shall alleviate the tediousness of the other. I intent not to contend much with them in words, after a reasonable account of my Faith given; for it shall be but in vain. They will say, as their Fatherr said, when they have no more to say, We have a Law, and by our Law he ought to die. Be ye steadfast and unmoveable, Stand fast. If ye abide, if ye abide, etc. But we shall be called obstinate, sturdy, ignorant, heady, and what not? So that a man hath need of much patience, that hath to do with such men.— Diotrephes now of late did ever harp upon Unity, ☞ Unity. Yea Sir (said I) but in Verity, not in Popery. Better is a diversity, than an unity in Popery.— The Marrowbones of the Mass are altogether detestable, and therefore by no means to be born withal: so that of necessity the mending of it is to abolish it for ever. Pag. 435. — What fellowship hath Christ with Antichrist?— Come forth from among them and separate yourselves from them, saith the Lord. It is one thing to be the Church indeed, and another thing to counterfeit the Church. Pag. 439. — I thank you, that you have vouchsafed to minister so plentiful Armour unto me, being otherwise altogether unarmed, saving that he cannot be left destitute of help, who rightly trusteth in the help of God. I only learn to die in reading of the New Testament, and am still praying to my God to help me in time of need. Pag. 441. — My Prayer shall you not lack, trusting that you do the like for me; for indeed there is the help, etc.— There is no remedy (now they have the Master bowl in their hand and rule the roast) but patience. Better it is to suffer what cruelty they will put upon us, then to incur Gods high indignation. Wherefore be of good cheer in the Lord, duly considering what he requireth of you, and what he doth promise you. Our common enemy shall do no more than God will permit him. God is faithful who will not suffer us to be tempted above our strength, etc. Be at a point what you will stand to: stick unto that, and let them both say and do what they list. They can but kill the body, which is of itself mortal: neither shall they do that when they list, but when God will suffer them, when the hour appointed is come.— Let them not deceive you with their sophistical sophisms and fallacies: you know that false things may have more appearance of truth, than things that be most true. Remember Paul's watchword, Col. 2. Let no man deceive you with likeliness of speech.— Fear of death doth most persuade a great number: be well aware of that argument.— The flesh is weak, but the willingness of the spirit shall refresh the weakness of the flesh. The number of the Criers under the Altar must needs be fulfilled. If we be segregated thereunto, Happy are we. That is the greatest promotion, that God giveth in this world to be such Philippians, to whom it is given, not only to believe, but to suffer, etc. But who is able to do these things? Surely all our ability, all our sufficiency is of God. He requireth and promiseth. Let us declare our obedience to his will, when it shall be requisite, in the time of trouble, yea, in the midst of the fire. When that Number is fulfilled, which I ween shall be shortly, then have at the Papists, when they shall say, Peace, all things are safe, etc. Christ shall come gloriously, to the terror of all Papists; but to the great consolation of all that will here suffer for him. Comfort yourselves one another with these words.— Pray for me, pray for me, I say; pray for me, I say; for I am sometime so fearful, that I would creep into a Mousehole: sometime again God doth visit me with his comfort. So he cometh and goeth, to teach me to feel and know mine infirmity, to the intent to give thanks to him that is worthy, lest I should rob him of his due, as many do, yea almost all the world. Farewell. Fare you well once again, and be thou steadfast and unmoveable in the Lord. Paul loved Timothy marvellous well, notwithstaing he saith unto him, 2 Tim. 1. Be thou partaker of the affliction of the Gospel, and again, Harden thyself to suffer afflictions. Be faithful unto death, Rev. 2. and I will give thee a Crown of Life, saith the Lord. Mr. Fox records one Letter more of this holy man's, which he wrote when he was Bishop of Worcester to a justice of Peace, who could not at first bear his being told by this Servant of God his fault in oppressing and wronging a poor man, but sent him word in great displeasure, that he would not take it at his hands, etc. but afterward proved a good man: in which Letter his close is very observable. Consider with yourself (saith Mr. Latimer) what it is to oppress and defraud your Brother, Pag. 485. and what followeth thereof. It is truly said, The sin is not forgiven, except the thing be restored again, that is taken away. No restitution, no salvation: which is as well to be understood of things gotten by fraud, Pag. 486. guile, and deceit, as of things gotten by open theft and rollery. I will do the best I can, and wrestle with the Devil omnibus v●ri●us, to deliver you and your Brother out of his possession. I will leave no one stone unmoved to have you both saved. There is neither Arch Bishop, nor Bishop, nor any learned man in either University, or elsewhere, that I am acquainted with, that shall not write to you, and by their learning confute you. There is no godly man of Law in this Realm, that I am acquainted with, but they shall write to you, and confute you by Law. There is neither L●rd nor Lady, nor any Noble person in this Realm, that I am acquainted with, but they shall write unto you, and godlily threaten you with their Authority. I will do all this, yea, I will kneel upon both my knees before the King's Majesty and all his honourable Council, with most humble Petition for your Reformation, rather than the Devil shall possess you still to your final damnation: so that I do not despair, but verily trust one way or other to pluck both you and your crabbed Brother (as crabbed as you say he is) out of the Devils claws, maugre the Devil's heart.— In the month of October, An. 1555. Mr. Latimer and Dr. Ridley were brought forth together to their final Examination and Execution. At his last appearance, Pag. 499. being pressed to recant, he said,— I must use here the counsel of Cyprian, who when he was ascited before certain Bishops, that gave him leave to take deliberation and counsel, to try and examine his opinion, he answered them thus. In sticking to, and persevering in the truth, no counsel nor deliberation must be taken; and being asked, which was most like to be the Church of Christ, whether the persecuted, or the persecutor? Christ (said he) hath foreshowed, That he that doth follow him must take up his Cross. How think you then my Lords, Is it like that the See of Rome, which hath been a continual persecutor, is rather the Church, or that small flock, which hath always been persecuted even to death. Mr. Latimer being told, That his and St. Cyprian's case was not one: Yes verily (said he) my cause is as good as St. Cyprian's; for his was persecution for the Word of God, and so is mine. As he was going to Execution, Pag. 502. Dr. Ridley spying him behind him, said; O be ye there? Yes (said Mr. Latimer) have after as fast as I can follow. When he could not be suffered to answer Dr. Smith's Sermon at their Execution, Pag. 503. on that in the Corinthians: If I give my body to be burned, and have not charity, etc. he said; Well, there is nothing hid, but it shall be opened. When a Faggot was brought kindled with fire, and laid at Dr. Ridley's feet, Mr. Latimer said, Be of good comfort Mr. Ridley, and play the man; We shall this day light such a Candle by God's Grace, in England, as I trust will never be put out. He received the flame, as it were embracing it, and crying out vehemently, O Father of Heaven receive my soul. Laverock. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 701. Hugh Laverock, an old lame man, after he was chained to the Stake, cast away his Crutch; and comforting john Apprice a blind man, his Fellow-Martyr, said unto him, Be of good comfort, my Brother, for my Lord of London is our good Physician, he will heal us both shortly; thee of thy blindess, and me of my lameness. Lavoy. Fox, Vol. 2. p. 129, 130. Mr. Aymond de Lavoy, a French Minister, having intelligence that some were sent to apprehend him; and being willed by his Friends to fly, and shift for himself, he said, That he had rather never to have been born, then so to do. It is the office of a good Shepherd, not to fly in time of peril, but rather to abide the danger, lest the Flock be scattered; or else, least in so doing, he should leave some scruple in their minds, Thus to think, That he had fed them with dreams and fables, contrary to the Word of God. Wherefore beseeching them to move him no more therein, he told them; That he feared not to yield up both body and soul in the quarrel of that Truth which he had taught, saying with St. Paul, I am ready not only to be bound for the testimony of Christ in the City of Bourdeaux, but to die also. When his Hearers flew upon the Sumner to deliver their Preacher out of his hands, he desired them not to stop his Martyrdom, seeing it was the Will of God that he should suffer for him, he would not (said he) resist. Whilst he was in Prison, he bewailed exceedingly his former life, though there was no man that could charge him outwardly with any crime. One of the Precedents coming to him, and shaking him by his beard, bid him tell what fellows he had of his Religion. None (said he) but such as know and do the Will of God my Father, whether they be Nobles, Merchants, Husbandmen, or of whatsoever degree they be. In his torments in Prison he comforted himself thus; This body once must die, but the Spirit shall live. The Kingdom of God abideth for ever. In the time of his tormenting, being but of a weak body, he swooned: afterward coming to himself again, he said; O Lord, Lord, why hast thou forsaken me? The Precedent answering, Nay wicked Lutheran, thou hast forsaken God; Alas! (said he) why do ye thus torment me? O Lord, I beseech thee, forgive them, they know not what they do. All their tortures could not force him to confess one man's name; but he said unto them, I thought to have found more mercy with men; Wherefore I pray God I may find mercy with him. To the Friars that came to confess him after his condemnation, he said; Depart, I will confess my sins to the Lord. Do ye not see how I am troubled enough with men? will ye yet trouble me more? others have had my body, will ye also take from me my soul? away from me. At last he took a certain Carmelite, bidding the rest to depart, whom after much talk he did convert to the Truth. Such trust have I (said he to the Judge) in my God, that the same day when I shall die, I shall enter into Paradise. Pag. 131. The Church (said he) is a Greek word, signifying as much as Congregation or Assembly. And so I say, Whensoever the Faithful do congregate together to the honour of God, and amplifying of Christian Religion, the Holy Ghost is verily with them. By this it should follow (said the Judge) that there be many Churches. It is no absurd thing (said he) to say there be many Churches or Congregations among the Christians; Gal. 1. and so speaketh St. Paul, To all the Churches which are in Galatia. When the Judges left him, looking on him as a damned Creature, he said with St. Paul, Who shall separate me from the love of God, shall the sword, hunger, or nakedness; No, nothing shall pluck me from him. As he was carried to the place of Execution, he sang Psal. 114. and preaching still as he went, one of the Soldiers bidding the Carter therefore to drive apace, john 8. he said unto him, He that is of God heareth the Word of God. Many being offended, that passing by an image of the Virgin Mary, he would not pray unto her; lifted up his voice to God, praying, That he would not suffer him at any time to invocate any other but him alone. At his Execution he said, O Lord, Make haste to help me, tarry not, do not despise the work of thy hands: and you my Brethren, that be Students, I exhort you to learn the Gospel; for the Word of God abideth for ever. Labour to know the Will of God, and fear not them that kill the body, but have no power upon your souls. My flesh repugneth marvellously against the Spirit, but shortly I shall cast it away. I beseech you pray for me. O Lord my God, into thy hands I commend my soul. Laurence. I find three of this name recorded in the Book of Martyrs. First, Fox. Vol. 1. pag. 92. Laurence the Deacon, when Xistus his Pastor was martyred under the Emperor Valerianus, was grieved that the Son should be secluded from the Father, that he should not suffer with him. Seeing him led alone as a Sheep to the slaughter, he cried out to him: O Dear Father, whither goest thou without the company of thy dear Son? whither hastenest thou, O Reverend Pastor, without thy Deacon? never wast thou wont to offer sacrifice without thy Minister? What crime is there in me, that offendeth thy fatherhood? Deniest thou unto him the fellowship of thy blood, to whom thou hast committed the distribution of the Lords blood?— He having after three day's respite promised the merciless Tyrant to declare where the Church's treasure lay, Pag. 93. caused a good company of poor Christians to be congregated, and when the day of his answer was come, and he was strictly charged to stand to his promise; he stretching out his arms over the poor, said; These are the precious treasure of the Church, these are the treasure indeed, in whom the faith of Christ reigneth, in whom jesus Christ hath his mansion-place: What more precious jewels can Christ have, than those in whom he hath promised to dwell. It is written, I was hungry, and ye gave me to eat; I was thirsty, and ye gave me to drink; I was harbourless, and ye lodged me. Look what ye have done to the least of these, the same have ye done to me.— No tongue is able to express the Tyrant's fury and madness hereupon. Kindle the fire of wood (saith he) make no spare. Hath this Villain deluded the Emperor? Away with him; away with him, whip him, buffet him, brain him, Jesteth the Traitor with the Emperor? roast him, boil him, toss him, turn him on pain of our high Displeasure, do every one his office O ye Tormentors. When he was on the fiery Gridiron, which was as a soft Bed of Down to him, he spoke thus unto the Tyrant; This side is now roasted enough, Turn up O Tyrant great, Essay whether roasted or raw Thou think the better meat. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 200. Secondly, john Laurence, who was burnt at Colchester, March 29. An. 1555. He being not able to go, being lamed with Irons in Prison, was born to the fire in a Chair, and whilst he sat in the fire, the young children came about the fire, and cried as well as they could, Lord strengthen thy Servant, and keep thy promise; Lord strengthen thy Servant, and keep thy promise. Thirdly, Henry Laurence, who was burnt at Canterbury, about the later end of August, the same year. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 393. He being required to put his hand to his Answers, wrote, Ye are all of Antichrist, and him ye fol; probably he would have written, And him ye follow, had not he been hindered. Lawson. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 916. Elizabeth Lawson, continuing almost three years in Prison, in which time her own Son, and many others were burnt, said often; Good Lord, what is the cause that I may not yet come to thee with thy children? Well, good Lord, thy blessed Will be done, and not mine. This good old Woman, about the age of sixty, before she went to Prison, had the Falling-sickness; but she told a friend of hers, That after she was apprehended, she never had it more. leaf. Bonner pressing john Leaf, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 306. an Apprentice of London, to recant, he said, No; but I will die in that Doctrine that Mr. Rogers, Hooper, Card-maker, etc. died for.— My Lord, you call mine Opinion Heresy, it is the true Light of the Word of God, and I profess I will never forsake my well-grounded Opinion, whilst I have breath in my body. When two Bills were sent to him in the Counter in Breadstreet, the one containing a Recantation, the other his Confessions, to see which of them he would sign; when that which contained his Confessions was read (for he could neither read nor write) in stead of a Pen he took a Pin, and so pricking his hand, sprinkled the blood upon the said Bill, willing the Reader thereof to show the Bishop, that he had sealed the same Bill with his blood already. Lewes. Mrs. joice Lewes was converted by Mr. john Glover, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 838. who after she was in some trouble, willed her in any case not to meddle with that matter in respect of vainglory, or to get herself a Name, showing to her the great danger she was like to cast herself into, if she should meddle in God's matter otherwise then Christ doth teach. When the Bishop reasoned with her, she told him; I find not these things in God's Word, which you urge and magnify as things most needful for men's Salvation. If these things were in the same Word of God commanded, I would with all my heart receive, esteem, and believe them. The Bishop answering, If thou wilt believe no more than is in the Scriptures, concerning matters of Religion, thou art in a damnable case; she was amazed, and being moved by the Spirit of God, told him, That his words were ungodly and wicked. Pag. 839. When news was brought of the coming down of the Writ, de comburendo, etc. she sent for several Christians to consult with them how she might behave herself, that her death might be more glorious to the Name of God, comfortable to his people, and most uncomfortable to the enemies of God. As for death (said she) I do not greatly pass, when I behold the amiable Countenance of Christ, my Dear Saviour, the ugly face of death doth not greatly trouble me. Two Priests sending her word, that they were come to hear her Confession; she sent them word again, That she had made her Confession to Christ her Saviour, at whose hands she was sure to have forgiveness of her sins. As concerning the Cause, for the which she should die, she had no cause to confess that, but rather to give unto God most humble praise, that he did make her worthy to suffer death for his Word. And as concerning that Absolution, That they were able to give unto her, by Authority from the Pope, she did defy the same, even from the bottom of her heart. About three of the Clock in the morning, before her Execution, Satan questioned with her, How she could tell that she was chosen to eternal life, and that Christ died for her! I grant that he died, but that he died for thee, How canst thou tell? But Satan was soon put to flight, and she comforted in Christ, by arguing her Election, and Christ dying for her in particular from her Vocation, and the holy Spirit working in her heart love and desire towards God to please him, and to be justified by him through Christ, etc. When the Sheriff about eight of the Clock that morning came into her Chamber, and told her bluntly, That she had but one hour to live, she was somewhat abashed; but being told by a friend, that she had great cause to praise God, that he will so speedily take her out of this world, etc. She said, Mr. Sheriff, your message is welcome to me, and I thank my God, that he will make me worthy to adventure my life in his quarrel. In her Prayer, as she was going to the Stake, she desired God most instantly to abolish the idolatrous Mass, and to deliver this Realm from Popery. To which most of the People said Amen, yea the Sheriff himself. Lucius. He said to Urbicius a corrupt Judge, Ward, pag. 139. threatening death; I thank you with all my heart, that free me and release me from wicked Governors, and send me to my good and loving Father. Luther. How devoted Dr. Martin Luther was to the Pope, See his Epistle to the Reader, before the first Tome of his Works, printed at Jena, An. 1612. when he first appeared, and what brought him upon the Stage, he himself tells us. — Above all things, I desire the pious Reader, and that for the sake of our Lord himself, Christ jesus, not only to read these things with judgement, but with much pity, knowing I was a Monk, and a most mad Papist, when I undertook this Cause, so drunk with, yea drowned in Popish Doctrines, that I was most ready to kill, and to co-work with the Murderers of all those who withdrew their obedience from the Pope in the least. So great a Saul was I, as there be yet many more. I was not so cold in defending the Papacy, as was Eccius himself, and such as he, etc. So that thou wilt find in my first writings very many and great things humbly conceded to the Pope, which now I account highest blasphemy, and do abominate.— At first I was alone, and most unfit and unable to handle so great matters; I call God to witness, that his Providence, not my own will and purpose, engaged me so far. When in the year 1517. Indulgences were sold most shamefully, I was then a Preacher, and a young Doctor of Divinity (as I was called) and began to dissuade the people from harkening to the Sellers of Indulgences, and therein I thought surely I had the Pope for my Patron, and upon that confidence was very valiant, seeing he doth in the Decrees condemn the immodesty of the Gatherers of money, so he calleth the Preachers of Indulgences. Thereupon I writ two Letters, one to the Arch Bishop of Moguntz, who had one half of the money for the Indulgences (I knew not then that the other half did belong to the Pope) the other to the Bishop of Branderburg; beseeching them to restrain the impudence and blasphemy of the Gatherers of the money. But the poor Monk was contemned. Being contemned I published a short Disputation, and a Sermon, concerning Indulgences, and afterwards my Resolutions, and that for the Pope's honour, not that Indulgences might be condemned, but that good works of charity might be preferred before them. This was accounted troubling of Heaven, and setting the world on fire. I am accused unto the Pope, and am cited to appear at Rome, and against single me rise up the whole Papacy. These things were done in the year 1518. whilst Maximilian the Emperor held a Council at Ausburg, in which Cardinal Cajetane was the Pope's Legate. Him Prince Frederick, Duke of Saxony prevailed with, that I should not be compelled to go to Rome, but have my business heard and composed by himself. Being called before him, poor I came on foot to Ausburg, upon the cost of and with Letters of Credence from Prince Frederick to the Senate, and some other good men, who dissuaded me (after I was come) from going to the Cardinal till I had Caesar's safe conduct. When the Cardinal's Orator was told by me so much, he was angry. What (said he) do you think that Prince Frederick will take up Arms for you? I answered, That I would by no means. Where then (said he) will you abide? I answered Under Heaven. But (said he) if you had the Pope and Cardinals in your power, what would you do? I would (said I) give them all reverence and honour. — At my meeting with the Cardinal I made the following Protestation. See the first Tome of his Works, fol. 164. I Martin Luther an Augustine Friar protest, that I do reverence and follow the Church of Rome in all my sayings and doings, present, past, and to come; and if any thing hath been or shall be said by me to the contrary, or otherwise, I count it, and will that it be counted and taken as though it never had been spoken. Having before this writ to Pope Leo the Tenth thus, Fol. 66. — I offer myself prostrate under the feet of your Holiness, with all that I am and have, Save me, kill me, call me, recall me, reprove me, condemn me, even as you please. I will acknowledge your voice, the Voice of Christ residing and speaking in you.— — Here see men in my case, how hard it is to rise out of errors generally received, and by long custom becomes as it were natural. How true the Proverb is, It is hard to leave customs, and custom is another nature: and how truly Austin saith; Custom if it be not resisted will become necessity. I who had then seven years read and taught the Scriptures most diligently, privately and publicly, and had some taste of the knowledge of Christ, viz. That we were justified and saved not by works, but by faith in Christ, and now defended publicly (he means in his Dispute with Eccius at Lipsia in the year 1519.) that the Pope is not by Divine Right Head of the Church; yet I did not see what naturally followeth thence, viz. That the Pope is therefore of necessity from the Devil, for what is not of God is necessarily of the Devil. I was (I say) so corrupted by example and the title of holy Church and Custom, that I granted to the Pope an humane right, which yet if it be not underpropt with Divine Authority, is a lie and devilish; for we must obey Parents and Magistrates, not because they command, but because it is the Will of God. Hence I can better bear those that do even pertinaciously cleave unto Popery, especially if they have not read the Scriptures, seeing I that so many years most diligently read them, did notwithstanding stick thereunto so firmly.— In the year 1519. the Pope sent Prince Frederick a golden Rose by Charles Miltitius, who persuaded me earnestly to be reconciled to the Pope, and to study the things of peace. I promised that I would most willingly do whatsoever truth and my conscience would allow, and assured him that I was most desirous of and studious for peace; and seeing I was drawn and necessitated to do what I did, what I did was not my fault.— Charles is accounted unwise, and the course he took imprudent; but in my judgement, if the Bishop of Moguntz and the Pope, before he had condemned me unheard, had taken the same course, the business had never come to this.— These things I relate good Reader, That if thou wilt read my little Works, thou mayest remember I am one of them, who (as Austin reports of himself) profit by Writing and Teaching; not one of those, who from nothing on a sudden become Chieftains. Farewell in the Lord, and pray for the increase of the Word against Satan, who is always mighty and malicious, but now most furious and raging, knowing his time is but short, and that the Kingdom of his Pope is shaken. The Lord God confirm what he hath wrought in us, and perfect the Work he hath begun in us, to his own glory. Amen. March 3. An. 1545. Mr. Clark tells us, Clark 's first Volume of Lives, pag. 230. That when they threatened to burn his Books, he writ thus to Spalatinus. — As for myself, I contemn Rome's favour and fury. Let them censure and burn all my Books, I will do the like by theirs, and will put an end to all my humble observance of them, which doth but incense them more and more. In his Epistle to Melancthon from Auslurg, See his Works, Tom: 1. fol. 163. when he appeared before Cajetan.— Here is nothing new or wonderful, but that the City is filled my Name, and every one desires to see such a Boutefeau. Play the man as you do in rightly teaching the youth. I am willing for them and you to he sacrificed, if it please the Lord. I had rather die, and (which is most grievous to me) for ever want your most sweet company, then recant, and be an occasion to the most foolish and bitter enemies of all learning of destroying good learning. Italy is fallen into Egyptian darkness, so ignorant are all of Christ and the things of Christ, and yet we have these for our Masters and Teachers of faith and manners: So filled up is the anger of God against us.— Farewell my Philip, and by holy Prayer avert the Lords anger.— When Cajetan wrote to Prince Frederick, either to send Luther to Rome, or to banish him out of his Dominions, See his Works, Tom. 1. fol. 176. he wrote unto the Prince as followeth.— I refuse not banishment, as seeing snares laid for me every where by my Adversaries, neither can I easily live any where in safety. But what should I a miserable and humble Monk hope for? yea what danger should I not fear? when they threaten your Excellency, so great a Prince, so great an Elector, so devout a favourer of the Christian Religion, I know not what misery, if you do not either send me to Rome, or banish me. Wherefore lest any evil should happen unto you for my sake (which I am most unwilling of, behold I leave your Country, being resolved to go where my merciful God pleaseth, and to commit the event to his Will.— — I still rejoice in the love of God, and give him thanks that Christ the Son of God hath counted me worthy to suffer in so holy a Cause.— Novemb. 19 1518. In his Letter to Pope Leo the Tenth, April 6. 1520. Oper. Tom. 1. fol. 385. — I have indeed sharply inveighed against all wicked Doctrines, and been biting to my Adversaries for their impiety, of which I am so far from repenting, that I am resolved in contempt of man's judgement to persevere in that heat of zeal, after the example of Christ, who in his zeal calls his Adversaries a Brood of Vipers, blind, hypocrites, the children of Satan: and of Paul, who calls the Sorcerer the child of the Devil, full of all subtlety and wickedness; and others, dog's, etc. If his Hearers were tender and soft, they would account him biting and immodest. Who more biting than the Prophets? the wicked mad company of flatterers have made the ears of this age so delicate, that as soon as we perceive our own ways not approved, we cry out we are bitten; and when we cannot repel the Truth on any other account, we avoid it under the pretence of railing, impudence, etc. But what is Salt good for, if it be not sharp? what a Sword if it will not cut? Cursed is the man that doth the work of the Lord negligently.— I contend with none but only about the word of Truth. In all other things I will yield to any, but cannot and will not desert and deny the Word. Neither you, nor any body else can deny, but the Court of Rome is more corrupt than any Babylon or S●dom.— I have therefore detested and could not endure that the people of Christ should be deluded under your Name and the Church of Rome, and so have resisted and shall resist them while I breath.— The Roman Court is desperate, the anger of God is come upon it to the full, it hates Councils, fears to be reform, etc. and makes good her mother's character, We would have healed Babylon, but she is not healed, let us forsake her. — Hence I have been troubled good Le●, that you were made Pope in these days, who wast worthy of better. She doth not deserve you, and such as you but Satan himself, who doth indeed reign in that Babylon more than you yourself. O would to God, that laying aside that which your deadliest enemies boastingly call your glory, you would be content with being a private Priest, and live upon your own inheritance.— What do you my Leo at Rome, but let the most wicked and accursed wretches use your Name and Authority to destroy men's estates and souls, to increase wickedness, to oppress faith and truth with the whole Church of God. O most unhappy Leo, you sit in a most dangerous seat. I tell you the truth, because I wish you well. If Bernhard did sympathise with his Eugenius ruling Rome in a more hopeful condition, though then very corrupt, what may not we complain, to whom in the space of three hundred years there is such an accession of corruption and perdition? It incomparably exceeds the wickedness of the Turks. — Behold my Father Leo, upon what account I have so inveighed against that pestilent See. I am so far from speaking against your Person, that I hope I should do you the greatest courtesy, Fol. 386. if I should stoutly and fiercely destroy that your Prison, yea your Hell.— But this I never intended, but was forced to do so by my Adversaries.— When I was before Cardinal Cajetan, he might have made peace with a word, for I promised silence, and to put an end to my Gause, if he would command my Adversaries to do the same: but he justified my Adversaries, and required me to recant, which he had not in his instructions. Not Luther but Cajetan is to be blamed; for what followed afterwards, seeing he would not suffer me to be silent, when I most earnestly desired it.— Upon the occasion of Eccius challenging me to dispute with him, many Romish corruptions were brought to light.— Now the name of the Court of Rome doth stink in the world, and the Papal Authority languisheth, their famous ignorance is misliked, of which there would have been no mention, if Eccius had not interrupted the Treaty between me and Charles Miltitius.— Being yet persuaded to hearken to peace, &c, I come, holy Father, and humbly beg, that you would (if it may be) put to your helping hand, by bridling those Parasites, the great Enemies of Peace, whilst they pretend to be for peace. None may presume, that I will recant. I cannot bear the imposition of any Laws for the interpreting of the Word of God, which ought not to be bound, etc. These two things excepted, there is nothing that I cannot, yea will not do or suffer for peace. I hate contentions. I will provoke none; no more will I be provoked. If I be provoked, I will not be without a tongue for my Master Christ— Take heed, my Father, of harkening to those Sirens, who make you more than a mere man, even an half God, so that you may command any thing.— These are your Enemies, and seek your soul to destroy.— How unlike is Christ unto his Successors, who yet would be his Vicars? and I fear many are so too properly. A Vicar is of one absent. If the Pope be Precedent, Christ being absent, what is he other than Christ's Vicar? But what then is that Church, but a multitude without Christ? and what is such a Vicar, but Antichrist and an Idol? How much better do the Apostles, who call themselves the Servants of Christ present, not the Vicars of Christ absent?— In his Appeal, See his Works, Vol. 2. fol. 258. Nou. 17. 1520.— Seeing Leo the Tent doth persevere hardened in his tyranny, and hath by his Bull condemned unheard, and unconvicted, and moreover as an Infidel and an Apostate doth fly and find fault with Councils, and most wickedly prefer his Tyranny before their Power, and most impudently doth require me to deny the Faith of Christ, etc. and to omit nothing that may show him to be Antichrist, doth subject the Scripture to himself, and with incredible blasphemy trample thereupon, I Martin Luther do make it known to all, that I stick to my former Appeal from him to the next Council, etc.— See his Works, Tom. 2. fol. 259. In a Letter of his to Herman Tulichins before his Treatise de Captivitate Babylonica Ecclesiae.— Whether I will or no, I am made more learned daily, so many and so great Masters contending with me. I have writ more than two years ago concerning Indulgences, but so, that I am now wonderfully sorry for the publishing of that Book; for I was then very superstitiously devoted to the Roman Tyranny, and therefore would not have Indulgences, which I saw so generally approved, altogether rejected.— Now O that I could persuade all Booksellers and others that read my Books, to burn those concerning Indulgences, and instead thereof receive this position, Indulgences are the wickednesses of the Flatterers of Rome.— Whereas then I denied the Pope's primacy to be of Divine Right, I yielded it to be of Humane Right,— but now I know and am certain, that the Papacy is the Kingdom of Babylon and the power of Nimrod, that mighty Hunter, and therefore instead of what I have written of that subject take this position, Papacy is the mighty hunting of the Roman Bishop.— Fol. 316, 317. — When the Cardinals burned Luther's Books, he burned the Pope's Decrees, and his Bull lately sent out against him, and gives us the following account why he did so. I Martin Luther, called Dr. of Divinity, do notify to all that by my will, counsel, and help, the Books of the Pope of Rome were burnt, etc. and that (1) Because we have ancient examples for the burning of wicked and corrupt Books, Acts 19 (2) I am a Baptised Christian, and a Doctor of holy Scripture, and a daily Preacher, and therefore it belongs to me, my Condition, my Oath, my Office to abolish, at least to hinder perverse, false, seducing, and wicked Doctrines. And yet (3) I had not gone about this work, unless I had upon experience found the Pope and Pontificians Corrupters and Seducers, not only to err and seduce, but after many admonitions by me given so hardened and bewitched, that they will not only not suffer themselves to be taught, but condemn and burn the Evangelical Doctrine to confirm their Antichristian & Diabolical abominations.— (5) Because by their burning of my Books Truth is endangered, etc. I have also, being moved, as I hope, by the holy Ghost, for the confirming and preserving the Christian Verity and the common people, have caused their Books to be burnt, having looked for their hopeless amendment. Let none therefore be moved by the sublime Titles of the Books, the Canon Law, The Decreetals, etc. but first see what is taught therein, and then judge whether they be burnt justly or unjustly.— When Luther threw the Pope's Bull into the fire, Fol. 320. Decemb. 10. 1520. Because (said he) thou hast troubled the holy One of the Lord, eternal fire shall trouble thee. The same day in his Prelection on the Psalter he admonished his Hearers to take heed of Popish Institutions. That this burning was but a small business: it should be that the Pope, that is, the Papal See should be burned. Unless (said he with a grave countenance) ye do with all your hearts depart from the Popish Kingdom, your souls cannot be saved; so divers is the Kingdom of the Pope from the Kingdom of Christ and the life of a Christian, that it would be safer to live in a Wilderness, and see no man, then to live in that Antichristian Kingdom. Let every one therefore, that hath any care of his own soul, take heed lest he deny Christ by assenting to Popery. Whoever will now be a Minister, he must perish either in this World, or that which is to come. If he dare not contradict the working of error, in the World to come; if he doth contradict, in this World his life will be hazarded. For my part, I had rather run any danger here, then expose my Conscience to give such an account for Silence as God will require. ☞ Therefore having heartily dissented from the Roman madness, I do now abominate that Babylonian Plague. And these things I will declare to my Brethren, as long as I live. If I cannot withstand so great a destruction of Souls, yet many of our own may be kept from running headlong to Hell. Let others do what they please. It is high time to repent. Fol. 321. In his Letter to Prince Frederick Duke of Saxony before his postils.— The Apostle requires that a Bishop should not only be mighty in Doctrine, but able to convince gainsayers. Not that I account myself a Bishop, seeing the Riches and Mitre, by which a Bishop is now known, are wanting, but because whosoever fulfils the Office of preaching, dischargeth the Office of Bishop, who ought to be a two-handed Ehud, and kill Eglon: and I do set myself to the work of peace, being through the grace of God a bold Contemner of my Adversaries, though in the midst of Swords, Bulls, Trumpets, and Papistical Alarms, that cannot terrify me. And indeed what cannot I do in him, who comforts me?— Fol. 379. In his Letter to justus jonas.— I fear lest whilst we fight valiantly for grace and good works, we do in the mean time deprive ourselves of grace and good works. Truly having beheld these terrible days of anger, I desire nothing more, then that my head were a fountain of water, that I may weep for that late devastation of souls, which the Kingdom of Sin, and Perdition wrought. The Roman Monster sits in the midst of the Church, and boasts of his Deity, the Pontificials flatter him, the Sophisters obey him, and the Hypocrites will do any thing for him. In the mean time Hell enlargeth her bosom, and openeth her mouth beyond measure, and Satan sports in the ruining of Souls.— Pray to God for me, that I may be delivered from wicked and unbelieving men in this Babylon, and that my mouth may be opened to the praise of the glory of the grace of the Gospel of his Son.— Be of good courage, and fear not this Baal-phogor, seeing he is scarce Baalzebub, a Fly, if yet we believe, seeing Jesus Christ is God blessed for ever.— From the place of my Exile, June 8. 1521. When he had safe conduct from the Emperor Charles the Fifth to come to and return from Worms, Fol. 412 dated March 6. 1521. he took his Journey thither; and though his Friends informed him in a Town near Worms, that his Books were before his coming condemned in public Proclamations, and therefore that it was dangerous for him to go, notwithstanding the Emparours promise, yet having heard all they could say, he told them, As for me, since I am sent for, I am resolved and certainly determined to enter the City in the name of our Lord Christ jesus, yea although I knew that there were so many Devils to resist me, as there are Tiles to cover all the Houses in the whole World, etc. At his first appearance before the Emperor, two things were demanded of him, Whether those Books there present were his, and whether he would recant their Contents or edhere thereunto? He granted the former; but as to the later, Forasmuch (said he) as the question concerneth Faith, and the salvation of Souls, and because it concerns the Word of God, than which nothing is of greater account, as well in Heaven, as on Earth, and which all aught duly to rererence, it will be rash and dangerous to pronounce any thing, before I be well advised, seeing through unadvisedness I may speak less than the business requires and more than truth, both which call to mind that of Christ, Whosoever shall deny me before men, him will I deny before my Father in Heaven. I therefore humbly beseech the Imperial Majesty to grant me time to deliberate, so that I may satisfy the Question without any prejudice to the Word of God, and peril of my own soul. Whereupon a days time was granted him. It is observable, that as he was going to appear, and whilst he was in that Assembly of Princes, Luther was exhorted by some present to be courageous and to play the man, and not to fear that only can kill the body, etc. and also, when thou art before Kings, think not what thou shalt speak; for it shall be given to you in that hour. Fol. 413. When he appeared the next time, he answered thus, Most Serene Emperor, and your most Illustrious Princes, and most merciful Lords, I appear before you here at the hour prescribed unto me yesterday, in obedience to your Command, humbly beseeching for God's mercy, that your renowned Majesty, and your most Illustrious Honours would be pleased benignly to hear this Cause, which is (I hope) the Cause of Righteousness and Truth.— As for myself I can affirm nothing but this, That I have taught and writ hitherto in singleness of heart, what I thought tended only to God's glory, and the sincere instruction of Christ's faithful Ones.— As for the second Question, I beseech your most Excellent Majesty, and your Honours to observe, that all my Books are not of one sort. There be some in which I have so Sincerely and Evangelically handled the Religion that consists in Faith and Observance, that my very Enemies are forced to be harmless, profitable, and worthy to be read of Christians.— If I should revoke these, what shall I do? Even I alone of all men, repugning the unanimous confession of all, shall condemn that Truth, which both Friends and Foes confess. Another sort of my Books inveigheth against the Papacy, and the Doctrine of the Papists, as those, who by their Doctrines and most wicked Examples have corrupted the whole state of Christianity in soul and body; for none can deny, nor hide it, seeing the experience and sad complaints of all are witnesses, that the Consciences of the Faithful are most miserably ensnared, vexed, and tortured by the Pope's Laws, and the Doctrines of men, and that the substance, especially of this famous Germany hath been, and is yet most tyrannically and by unworthy means devoured: When as they themselves by their Laws provide (as in Dist. 9 & 25. q. 1. & 2.) that the Pope's Laws and Doctrines, that are contrary to the Scripture and the Sentiments of the Fathers, should be reprobated for erroneous. If therefore I should revoke these, I shall strengthen Tyranny, and open not only Windows, but Doors and wide Gates to so great wickedness, which is like to extend farther and with greater licentiousnesses, than ever it durst heretofore; and by the testimony of this my retractation, their most licentious Kingdom of Wickedness, and lest subject to punishment, most intolerable to the miserable common people, will yet be more confirmed and established, especially if this be bruited, that I have done this by the Authority of your most Excellent Majesty, and the whole R●man Empire. Good Lord! What a Cloak shall I be to their Wickedness and Tyranny? The third sort is of such, as I have writ against some particular persons, such who have laboured all that ever they could to maintain the Romish Tyranny, and to demolish the Religion which I have taught. I confess I have been more bitter against these, than became my Religion and Profession. Neither do I make myself a Saint, nor do I dispute concerning my Life, but concerning the Doctrine of Christ. It is notwithstanding unsafe for me to revoke these; for this Recantation will occasion Tyranny and Wickedness to reign again more ragingly over God's people, than ever Yet, seeing I am a man, and not God, I can no otherwise defend my Books, than jesus Christ himself, my Lord, defended his Doctrine, who being examined about his Doctrine before Annas, and cufft by a Servant, said, If I have spoken evil, bear witness of the evil. If the Lord himself, who knew he could not err, did not refuse to have testimony given against his Doctrine, even by a most vile Servant; how much more than should I, that am but vile corruption, and can of myself do nothing but err, desire and expect the testimony of any against my Doctrine? Therefore I beseech, for God's mercy, your most Excellent Majesty, and your most Illustrious Honours, or any other of high or low degree, to give in his testimony, to convict my Errors, to confute me by the Scriptures of the Prophets or Evangelists and Apostles, and I will be most ready, when taught, to recant any Error, yea will be the first that shall cast mine own Books into the fire. I suppose hereby it is manifest, that I have well weighed the perils and dangers, as also the divisions and dissensions, which have risen through the World by occasion of my Doctrine, of which I was yesterday gravely and sharply admonished: As for me, the face of things is very pleasant, when I see discords and dissensions stirred up upon the account of the Word; for such is the course, the lot, and event of the Gospel; for Christ saith, I came not to send Peace, but a Sword; I came to set a man at variance with his Father.— The Emperor's Prolocutor telling him, Fol. 414. That he had not answered to the purpose, neither ought he to call in question, what hath been in time passed defined and condemned in Councils, and therefore a plain and direct answer, whether he would recant or no, was demanded of him? Seeing therefore (said Luther) your most Excellent Majesty, etc. require a plain answer, I will give one, and that without horns or teeth; Unless I shall be convinced by Scripture testimonies, or evident reason; (for I believe neither Pope, nor Councils only, seeing it is evident, that they have often erred, and contradicted themselves) I am so overcome by the Scriptures which I have alleged, and my Conscience is so captived to the Words of the Lord, that I may not, neither will I recant at all; and that because it is neither safe nor honest to act against Conscience. Here I stand. I have nothing else to say. God be merciful to me. The Princes consulted together upon this Answer given by Luther; and when they had examined it, the Prolocutor endeavoured to refel it, telling him, That it nothing availeth to renew disputation concerning things condemned by the Church and Councils, through so many Ages, unless it should be necessary to give a reason to every one of every thing that is concluded; but if this should be permitted to every one that gain ayeth the determination of the Church and Councils, to be convinced by the Scriptures, we shall have nothing certain and established in Christianity: And therefore the Emperor required of him a plain and direct Answer, either negative or affirmative, to this Question; Art thou resolved to defend all thy Works as Orthodoxy Or wilt thou recant any thing in them? Then Dr. Martin besought the Emperor, that he might not be compelled to recant against his Conscience, captived to and hindered by the holy Scriptures, without manifest Arguments to the contrary. The Answer (said he) that is required, is a plain and direct Answer. I have no other, than what I have already given. Unless my Adversaries can deliver my Conscience from captivity to those (they call) Errors by sufficient Arguments, I cannot get out of the Net, in which I am entangled. All things, which Councils have determined, are not therefore true; yea Councils have erred, and determined often things contrary to themselves: and therefore the Prolocutors Argument falleth. I can show that Councils have erred, and therefore I may not revoke what is plainly and diligently expressed in Scripture. Hereupon the Emperor resolved to pursue Martin Luther and his Adherents by Excommunication, and other means, that may be devised to extinguish his Doctrine, yet would not violate his Faith, but intended to give order for his safe return thither whence he was called, and certified the Prince's Electors, Dukes, and the other Estates assembled so much in a Letter to them. Before Luther had any Answer from the Emperor, Fol. 415. several of all ranks visited him, and conferred with him; among the rest the ArchBishop of Triers sent for him, and Dr. Vaeus in the presence of many Nobles protested that Luther was not called to dispute, but only the Princes had procured licence from the Emperor benignly and brotherly to exhort him, etc. To whom he gave this Answer; Most gracious and illustious Princes and Lords, I give you most humble thanks for your clemency and singular good will, from whence proceedeth this admonition. I do indeed acknowledge myself altogether unworthy to be admonished by so Mighty Princes. I have not reprehended all Councils, but only that of Constance, and that because that Council hath condemned the Word of God, as appears in that this Article of john Hus, That the Church of Christ is the Company of the Elect, is condemned by it.— I am ready to lose blood and life for you, so I be not compelled to revoke the manifest Word of God; in defence whereof, we ought rather to obey God, then man. Here I cannot avoid scandal. There be two manners of offences, at Manners and at Faith.— Now it is not in my power to make Christ not to be a Rock of Offence.— I am ready to obey Magistrates, how wickedly soever they live, so that I be not enforced to deny the Word of God. Hereupon Dr. Vaeus admonished Luther to submit his Writings to the Emperors and the Prince's judgement. He answered humbly and modestly, That he was so far from fearing their Examination, that he was content to suffer his Writings to be discussed most accurately of the meanest, so that it were done by the Authority of the Word of God and of the holy Scripture. The Word of God (said he) makes so clearly for me, that I may not yield, unless I be untaught, and taught better by the Word of the Lord. St. Austin writeth thus; I give this honour only unto the Canonical Books to believe them to be altogether true; as for other holy and learned Doctors I only so far believe them, as they write the truth. St. Paul bids us, Prove all things and hold fast that which is good. 1 Thes. 5. Gal. 1. He saith also, Though an Angel from Heaven should preach any other Doctrine, etc. Wherefore I humbly beseech you not to urge my Conscience, bound in Scripture bonds, to deny the so clear Word of God. In all other cases I will be most obedient to you. The Marquis of Branderburg ask him, Whether he was not resolved not to yield, unless he were convinced by the holy Scripture: Yes (said he) most noble Lord, or else by clear and evident reasons. Fol. 416. Afterwards Pentinger and Dr. Vaeus endeavoured to persuade Luther to let the Emperor and Empire to pass judgement upon his Writings simply and absolutely: He answered, That he was ready to do and suffer any thing, so that they would build on the Authority of the holy Scripture: Otherwise he could not consent; for God by the Prophet saith, Trust ye not in Princes, nor in the children, etc. Cursed is he that trusteth in man. When notwithstanding this answer they urged him more vehemently, he told them, Nothing is less to be permitted to man's judgement, than the Word of God. Then they prayed him to submit his Writings to the judgement of the next Council. He agreed thereunto, provided, That they pass judgement concerning them out of the Scriptures, and prove the contrary by testimonies thence. Afterwards the Arch Bishop of Triers treated privately with him to persuade him; Luther told him, It was not s●fe for him to submit so momentous a business to them, who after they had called him under safe conduct, attempting him with new commands, had condemned his Opinion, and approved the Pope's Bull. Afterwards the Arch Bishop desired Luther to show what remedies there were in this case; He answered, None better than Gamalie●'s, who said, Act● ● If this counsel or work proceed of men, it shall come to n●ught; but if it be of God, ye cannot destroy it. Caesar and the States may write to the Pope, that they are certain, If this his purpose 〈◊〉 of God, it will of i●s own accord come to n●ught within three, yea within two years. The Arch Bishop ask him, What if the same Articles, which the ●ouncil of Constance condemned, be collected out of your Writings to be submitted to a Councils: I may not (said he) and I will not hold my peace concerning such; because I am certain the Word of God is condemned by their Decrees, therefore I will rather lose life and head, then abandon the manifest Word of the Lord. When Luther was commanded by the Emperor to return within one and twenty days under safe conduct: He said, It is as pleaseth the Lord. Blessed be the Name of the Lord. I humbly give most hearty thanks to the Emperor, and all the Princes, etc. for so benign and favourable audience, and for safe conduct to come and return. I desire nothing of you, but a reformation by the holy Scripture; and that I do most earnestly desire. Otherwise I am ready to suffer all things, life and death, shame and reproach, for the Emperor and Empire, reserving nothing for myself, but only the free Word of God to be confessed and testified by me. See his Works, Tom 2. fol. 477. In his Letter to his Father.— Know, dear Father, that your Son is come to this, to be most certainly persuaded, that nothing is before, nothing more holy, more religious than God's command. But you will say, Didst thou ever doubt hereof? Truly I did not only doubt hereof, but I was altogether ignorant that it was so; and if you will suffer me, I am ready to demonstrate that this ignorance was common to you with me.— If you had known that God's Command is to be preferred before all things, Fol. 478 you would by your Paternal Authority have taken away my Monk's Coal; and if I had known it, I should not have entered into the Monastery without your leave, and against your consent.— But God hath caused all to work for good.— He would have me to experience the wisdom of the Universities, and the holiness of the Monasteries; that is, that they should be known to me by many sins and impieties, lest occasion should be given to wicked men to triumph over their future Adversary, that I condemned what I knew not. I therefore lived a Monk, though without crime, not without fault.— Will you now come and free me, my Father? The Lord hath come before you and freed me.— My Conscience is freed, which is the richest liberty. I am now a Monk and no Monk, a new Creature, not of the Pope, but of Christ The Pope doth indeed create Puppets, that is, Idols like himself, in which Number I was once a poor seduced One, but now freed by grace.— Your authority over me doth indeed remain entire. But he that hath freed me, hath greater authority over me.— Novemb. 21. 1521. In his Epistle to Prince Frederick. Fol. 515. — The perils and dangers which seem to hang over your Person, Dominions, and Subjects, and especially myself, condemned by Edicts and Bulls, by the Popes and Emperor's Authority upon my return are not unobserved; Certainly no less than a violent death is to be expected by me every hour. But what shall I do? God calls and urges me to return.— To this I am not induced by pride and contempt of the Emperor, or of your Excellency, or of any Magistrate; for although sometimes we must not do what is commanded by man, as when any thing is commanded contrary or repugnant to the Word of God, yet the Power and Authority is never to be contemned, but always to be highly honoured.— But I am assured, that the beginning of my Preaching at Wittenberg came not from myself, but from God. Neither can any kind of persecution and death teach me otherwise; yea I think I prophesy rightly, That no terrors nor cruelty shall be able to put out this Light.— Besides, Fol. 516. whilst I was absent from Wittenberg, Satan hath entered in among my flock, etc. and I have resolved rather to regard the great necessity of that Church, than the offending or pleasing your Excellency; yea, than the hatred and fury of the whole world. Certainly this is my flock, committed to me by the Lord; These are my children in Christ. Shall I doubt whether I should c●me to or stay from them, for whom I ought to lose my life, and choose death, which I shall (God helping me) willingly and cheerfully.— I do also very much fear lest some great and horrible insurrection be in Germany, to punish Germany ' s? contempt of, and ingratitude for the Blessings of God. We see with how great liking, applause, and concurrency the Gospel is received by very many; but many receive this Blessing carnally, they plainly see the truth, but do not walk in the truth as they ought.— The Ecclesiastical Tyranny is weakened and broken, and that was all I aimed at in my Writings. Now I see God will proceed farther, and will sometime do the same that he did to jerusalem, when he overturned altogether both the Ecclesiastical and Political Government for persecuting the Gospel, and other outrages. I have lately begun to learn, that not only the Ecclesiastical, Spiritual, but the Political and Civil Authority ought to yield unto the Gospel, etc. Seeing therefore that God requires by Ezekiel, that we be as a Wall unto the people, I have thought it necessary to do all we can and aught by mutual counsels, studies, instructions, admonitions, exhortations, for the averting, or at least for the deferring ●f the anger and judgement of God. — This I dare affirm, and wish that your Excellency were assured thereof, that it is far otherwise concluded in Heaven, then in the Convention at Norinberg; and in short time we shall see, that they, who n●w dream that they have quite devoured and e●ten up the Gospel, have not so much as far fashion sake said Gr●ce (as the English expression is) for these untouched dainties. Mr. Cla●k saith he concludes, That he returned to Wittenberg under stronger Protection than the Elector could give him; for (saith he) God alone can order and promote the Truth without any man's helping hand; therefore in this Cause, he that most strongly trusts to God's assistance, he most surely defends himself and others. See his Relation of Luther 's Life, p. 237. — The Gospel begins to be ●ppressed, and therefore herein I ought not to regard any mortal. I beseech therefore your, Excellency to take in good part my coming home without your command, yea privity. You are the Lord of my body, and little fortunes, but Christ of the souls, to wh●m he hath sent me, etc.— I hope, being confident that my Lord Christ is stronger than our enemies, that he will defend me from their rage; if he will not, his good will be done: this I can confidently promise, that no peril shall come to your Excellency for my sake.— An. 1522. In his Letter to Sebastian Schlick, a Bohemian Nobleman. Fol. 517. — The loathsome death of the Papacy is at hand, and its unavoidable ruin approacheth; and (as Daniel saith) She comes to an end, and none shall help her.— In a short time I shall by my writings (Christ favouring of me) free the Bohemians from their reproach, and cause that the name of Popery shall be odious and abominable throughout the world, and that to be a Papist, and to be anathematised shall be all one.— july 15. 1522. In his Answer to King Henry the Eighth's Book against him. Fol. 518. — Let not King Henry impute my sharpness against him to me, but to himself.— If seeing that mere corruption and a wretched worm dare knowingly belie the Majesty of my Heavenly King, it cannot but be lawful for me for my King's sake, to bespatter the King of England with his own dirt, and to trample under foot his Crown, filled with blasphemy against Christ. Fol. 520. — The Lord cleared up his Will by degrees unto me, till by the hand of the mighty jacob, it came to this, that by evident and pure Scriptures I was convinced, that the Pope, Cardinals, Bishops, Priests, Monks, Masses, and that whole Kingdom with their Doctrines and Ministries, are mere lies, idols, and the very abomination standing in the holy place, yea and the Scarlet Whore sitting upon the Beast, drunk with the blood of Christ's Witnesses, and making the Kings of the Earth drunk with the cup of her fornications and abominations.— This Truth being discerned, I was forced to retract some of my Writings, and still do so, being sorry at the very heart I ever writ one syllable in favour of the Pope and his Kingdom.— Yea, I spoke too modestly in my Treatise concerning the Babylonish Captivity of the Church in calling Papacy the Pope's mighty hunting; for that from the example of Nimrod may be said of all profane civil Powers, to whom notwithstanding God would have us to be subject to honour them, and pray for them. I now say most truly, That Papacy is the most pestilent abomination of Prince Satan.— Fol. 531. — Against the sayings of Fathers, Men, Angels, Devils, I set not ancient Custom, not multitude, but the Word of one Eternal God. Here I stand, sit, abide, glory, triumph over the Papists, Thomists, Henry 's, Sophisters, and all the gates of Hell. The Word of God is above all. God is on my side, what should I care if a thousand Austin's, a thousand Cyprians, a thousand Churches of Henry be against me. God cannot err nor deceive, but Austin and Cyprian, as all the Elect may err, Clarks first Volume of Lives, pag. 240. yea have erred.— Let the Henry's, the Bishops, the Turk, and the Devil himself do what they can, we are the children of the Kingdom, worshipping and waiting for that Saviour, whom they and such as they spit upon and crucify.— If any be offended at my sharpness against the King, Fol. 534. let him take this Answer.— It is no great matter if I contemn and bite an earthly King, whenas he feared not at all in his Writings to blaspheme the King of Heaven. Clarks first Volume of Lives, pag. 241. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 80. — In the year 152●. a Diet was held at Norinberg in the absence of the Emperor, wherein the Edict of Worms was made null: of this the Pope's Legate complained to the Princes, saying, That Luther was not punished according to the Emperor's Edict. The Prince's Answer was, That the Court of Rome neglected Reformation: that Germany was so far enlightened with the Sermons and Writings of Luther, that if they should go about to put the Edict in execution, great tumults would arise, and the people would be ready to think, that they went about to oppress the Truth, and to put out the light of the Gospel, that so they might the better defend those manifest vices which could be no longer concealed. In the year 1525. Clark, ● pag. 239. Luther married Katherine a Boren, who had formerly been a Nun; The change of his Condition troubled him, because of the unseasonableness of the time, it being then, when Germany weltered in the blood of the Clowns, and Saxony mourned for the death of their Prince, insomuch that Melancthon was fain to labour to comfort him all he could. In his Letter to Melancthon, who was much troubled at the rage of the Papists, and Caesar's threats to subvert the Gospel.— In private conflicts I am weak and you are strong, but in public conflicts you are found weak, and I stronger, because I am assured that our Cause is just and true. If we fall, Christ the Lord and Ruler of the world falleth with us; and suppose he fall, I had rather fall with Christ then stand with Caesar. I extremely dislike your excessive cares, with which (you say) you are almost consumed. That these reign in your heart, it is not from the greatness of the danger, but the greatness of your incredulity. Pag. 240. If the Cause be bad, let us revoke it and fall back; if it be good, why do we make God a liar?— Be of good comfort, I have overcome the world. If Christ be the Conqueror of the world, why should we fear as if it would overcome us? A man would fetch such Sentences as these upon his knees from Rome or Jerusalem. Be not afraid, ●e courageous and cheerful, solicitous for nothing, the Lord is at hand to help us. When the Diet was met at Ausburg in the year 1530. the Elector of Saxony sent to Luther to know, Whether the Cause of Religion should be referred to the judgement of the Emperor? He answered, This honour is to be given to the Word of God only to be judge of sacred Controversies. Pag. 244, 245. In his Preface before the Smalcaldian Articles.— In many Bishoprics divers Parishes are destitute of spiritual food, etc. I fear for this Christ will call a Council of Angels to destroy Germany, as he destroyed Sodom and Gomorrah.— Our sins weigh us down, and suffer not God to be gracious to us; because instead of repenting, we defend our abominations. O Lord Jesus Christ, do thou summon and hold a Council, and redeem thy Servants by the glorious coming. The Popes and Popelings are past cure; therefore help us poor and distressed men, who groan unto thee, and seek thee with our hearts, etc. Pag. 246. When the Papists charged him for an Apostate; he yielded himself to be one, but a blessed and holy one, who had not kept his promise made to the Devil; I am (said he) no otherwise a Revolter then a Magician, renouncing his Covenant made with the Devil, and betaking himself to Christ. When he fell sick of the Stone, he made his Will, in which he bequeathed his Detestation of Popery to his Friends, and to the Pastors of the Church, having made before this Verse; Pestis eram vivus, moriens ●ro mortua Papa: In English thus; I living stopped Rome's breath, And dead will be Rome's death. In this last Prayer Feb. 18. 1546. Pag. 249. — I pray God to preserve the Doctrine of his Gospel among us; for the P●pe and the Council of Tren● have grievous things in hand.— O heavenly Father, my gracious God, and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, thou God of all consolation, I give thee hearty thanks that thou hast revealed to met thy Son Jesus Christ, thou O Christ have I taught, thee have I trusted, thee have I loved, into thy hands I commend my Spirit, Ward, pag. 152. whom I believe, whom I profess, whom I glorify, whom the Pope and the reut of the wicked persecute and dishonour. I beseech thee Lord Jesus Christ receive my soul. O my heavenly Father, though I be taken out of this life, and must lay down this frail body, yet I certainly know that I shall live with thee eternally, and that I cannot be taken out of thy hands.— Lord into thy hands I commend my Spirit, Thou O God of Truth hast redeemed me. In this last Will.— O Lord God, I thank thee that thou wouldst have me live a poor and indigent person upon earth. Pag. 250. I have neither house, nor lands, nor possessions, nor money to leave. Thou Lord hast given me Wife and children. Them Lord I give back unto thee. Nourish, instruct, and keep them (O thou the Father of Orphans, and Judge of the Widow) as thou hast done to me, so do to them. When he saw his Daughter Magdalen ready to die, he read to her Isa. 26.19. Thy dead men shall live together, with my dead body shall they arise, etc. Adding, My Daughter, Enter thou into thy Chamber in peace, I shall ere long ●e with thee; for God will not permit me to see the punishment which hangs over the head of Germany. Pag. 251. When the Elector gave him a new Gown, he said, I am made too much of; for if here we receive a full recompense for our labours, we shall hope for none in another life. I say flatly, That God shall not put me off with these low things. In the Cause of God (said he) I am content to undergo the hatred and violence of all the world. Pag. 252. When his head was out of order (as it used to be towards his later end) he would usually say, Strike Lord, strike mercifully, I am prepared; because by thy Word I am forgiven mine iniquities, and have fed upon thy body and blood. He used to say that three things would destroy Christian Religion; Forgetfulness of the Blessings received by the Gospel: security, which reigns every where: and worldly wisdom, which will seek to bring all things into Order, and to support the public Peace by wicked counsels Pag. 256. Erasmus said of him, God hath given to this later age a sharp Physician, and that because of the greatness of its diseases. Acts and Mon. Vol. 2. pag. 88 Mr. Fox saith of him, That Luther a poor Friar should be able to stand against the Pope, was a great miracle: that he should prevail against the Pope was a greater: and after all, to die in peace, having so many enemies, was the greatest of all. See M. Clark in the life of Myconius, pag. 313. When Myconius fell into a Consumption 1541. and wrote to Luther, That he was sick unto life, and not unto death. Luther wrote back, I pray Christ our Lord, our salvation and health, etc. that I may not live to see thee, and some others of our Colleagues to die and go to Heaven, and leave me here among the Devils alone. I pray God I may first lay down this dry, exhausted, and unprofitable Tabernacle. Farewell, and God forbid that I should hear of thy death, while I live. The Lord prolong thy life for me. This I desire; this I will, and let my will be done, (Amen) for this will hath the glory of God, not my pleasure, nor advantage for its end. By and by hopeless Myconius recovered and lived six years longer even till after Luther's death. Hence justus jonas speaking of him, saith, That man could have of God what he pleased. He would by no means endure that any should be called after his Name; Pag. 254. for (said he) the Doctrine which I teach is none of mine; neither did Idie for any man; neither would Paul, 1 Cor. 3.4. etc. endure such terms: Besides we are all Christians, and profess the Doctrine of Christ: And lastly, because the Papists use to do so, call themselves Pontificians, whom we nought not to imitate. M. Mallot. Often have we hazarded our lives (said john Mallot a Soldier) for the Emperor Charles the Fifth, Ward, pag. 153. and shall we now shrink to die for the King of Kings? Let us follow our Captain. Man. Thomas Man having broken Prison after his recantation, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 29. said, If I be taken again of the piled knave Priests, I wist well I shall go the holy Angel, and then be an Angel in Heaven. Accordingly the Sheriff of London, when he had brought him into Smithfield to be burnt, put him into Gods Angel. He thanked God that he had been instrumental to convert seven hundred persons. Marbeck. Fuller 's England's Wo●●●es in B●●kshire. pag. 91. john Marbeck was a skilful Organist in the Choir of Windsor, a man of admirable industry and ingenuity. His English Concordance (the first that ever was in English) Bishop Gardiner himself could not but commend as a piece of singular industry. King Henry the Eighth hearing thereof, said, That he was better employed, than those Priests that accused him. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 547. Being pressed to discover Heretics, and being told he could not do God and the King greater service: If I knew (said he) who were Heretics indeed, it were somewhat; But if I should accuse him to be an Heretic that is none, What a worm would that be in my conscience, so long as I live. Yea it were a great deal better for me to be out of this life, then to live in such torment. He being called a Dolt who would not discover them, who should be sent for, and would utter then all they can of him. Whatsoever (said he) they shall say of me, let them do it in the Name of God, I will say no more of them, nor of any man else, than I know. Pag. 548. Being further pressed to write down what he knew of such, he thus prayed unto God; O most merciful Father of Heaven, thou that knowest the secret doings of all men, have mercy upon thy poor Prisoner that is destitute of all help and comfort. Assist me, O Lord, with thy special grace, that to save this frail and vile body, which shall turn to corruption in its time, I have no power to say or to write any thing, that may be to the casting away of my Christian Brother; but rather, O Lord, let this vile flesh suffer at thy will and pleasure. Grant this, O most merciful Father, for thy dear Son Jesus Christ's sake. Then he rose up, and began to search his Conscience, what he might write, and at last writ thus: Whereas your Lordship will have me to write of such things, as I know not of my Fellows at home, May it please your Lordship to understand, that I cannot call to remembrance any manner of thing, whereby I may justly accuse any one of them, unless the reading of the New Testament, which is common to all men, be an offence. More than this I know not. The Bishop of Winchester ask him, What helpers he had in setting forth his Concordance? None, my Lord (said he.) None? (said the bishop) how can that be? It is not possible that thou shouldst do it without help. Truly my Lord (said he) I did it without the help of any man, save God alone. Nay (said the Bishop) I do not discommend thy diligence; but what shouldst thou meddle with the thing, which pertaineth not to thee? And then speaking to one of his Chaplains, said, This Fellow hath taken upon him to set out the Concordance in English; which Book, when it was set out in Latin, was not done without the help and diligence of a dozen learned men at least, and yet he will bear me in hand, that he hath done it alone. The Bishop of Salisbury ask him, Pag. 550. How he could invent such a Book, or know what a Concordance meant without an Instructor? I will tell your Lordship (said he) what Instructor I had to begin it. When Thomas Matthews Bible came first out in Print, being not able to buy one, I borrowed one, and intended to have writ it out, and was gone as far as I●shua, which when Mr. Turner understood, he told me it would be a more profitable work to set out a Concordance in English. A Concordance (said I) what is that? He told me it was a Book to find out any word in the whole Bible by the letter, and that there was such an one in Latin already, and that it required not so much learning as diligence. This is all the instruction that ever I had before or after of any man. Being asked, How he could with this instruction bring it to this order and form, as it is? He answered, I borrowed 〈◊〉 Latin Concordance, and began to practise my wit▪ and at last with great labour and diligence brought it into this order.— But I marvel greatly, why I should be so much examined about this Book. Have I committed any offence in doing it or no? If I have, I am loath any other should be molested or punished for my fault. Therefore to clear all men in this matter, this is my request, That ye will try me in the rest of the Book that is undone. You see I have only done with letter L. Now take what word you will of M. and so in every letter following, and give me the words in a piece of Paper, and let me be any where alone with Pen, Ink, and Paper, the Latin Concordance, and the English Bible, and if I bring you not those words written in the same order and form, as the rest be, than it was not I did it, but some other. This is honestly spoken (said the Bishop of Ely) and then shalt thou bring many out of suspicion. Accordingly he writ in a day's time in the same order and form, as he had done the rest, all the words they gave him, which contained three sheets of Paper and more. Pag. 5●●. Being threatened if he did not discover what he knew, his fingers should be made to tell: If you do tear (said he) the whole body in pieces, I trust in God you shall never make me accuse any man wrongfully. If thou art stubborn (said Dr. Oking) thou wilt die for it. Die for it? (said Marbeck) wherefore should I die? You told me the last day before the Bishops, that as soon as I had made an end of that piece of the Concordance they took me, I should be delivered, and shall I now die? This is a sudden mutation. You seemed then to be my Friend, but I know the cause, you have read the Ballad I made of Moses Chair, and that hath set you against me; but whensoever ye shall put me to death, I doubt not but I shall die Gods true man, and the Kings. This worthy Confessor was of so sweet and amiable nature, Fuller, etc. pag. 91. That all good men did love, and few bad men did hate him: yet was he condemned in the year 1544. to be burnt at Windsor, which his Pardon prevented, of which divers causes were assigned, (1) That Bishop Gardner bore him a special affection for his skill in the Mystery of Music. (2) That such, who condemned him, procured his Pardon out of remorse of conscience, because of the slender evidence against him. (3) That it was done out of design to reserve him for a discovery of the rest of his Party, and if so their plot failed them; for being as true as Steel (whereof his Fetters were made, which he wore in Prison for a good time, he could not be frighted, or flattered to make any detection. Marcus. v. Arethusius. Part. 1. Marcus of Arethuse being hung up in a Basket, Ward, pag. 142. anointed with honey, and so exposed to the stinging of Wasps and Bees, said to his Persecutors, that stood and beheld him, How am I advanced, despising you that are below on Earth. Marlorate. Mr. Augustine Marlorate, Fox, Vol. 3▪ cont. pag. 25. Minister of Rouen, when in the Civil Wars of France that City was taken by storm, was taken also, and brought before Mon●orency, the Constable of France, who said unto him, Thou art he, who hast seduced the people. If I have seduced them (said he) it is God that hath done it rather than I; for I have preached nothing to them, but his divine Truth. You are a seditious person (said the Constable) and the cause of the ruin of this City. As for that imputation (said he) I refer myself to all that have heard me preach, be they Papists, or Protestants, whether I ever meddled with matters of the Politic State, or no.— The Constable told him (swearing a great Oath) we shall see within a few days, whether thy God can deliver thee out of my hands, or no. Clark 's first Vol. of Lives, pag. 577. It is observable how speedily Gods Judgements found out his Persecutors. The Captain that apprehended him was slain within three weeks, by one of the basest Sou●diers in all his Company. The Constable's Son was shortly after slain in the Battle of Dreux. Two of his judges also died very strangely soon after, viz. The Precedent of the Parliament by a Flux of Blood, which could be by no means staunched: The other being a Councillor, voiding his Urine by his Fundament, with such an intolerable stink, that none could come near him. Villeben that switched him with a Wand as he was carried on the Hurdle to Execution, a while after escaped death by the loss of his hand, wherewith he had so basely smitten this Servant of the Lord. Marsake. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 141. Sir L●wis Marsake was so glad of the Sentence of Condemnation, that he went out praising God and singing of Psalms. To a Soldier that would have hindered him from stepping aside to call upon God; What (said he) will you not let us pray in that little time which we have? When Halters were put about the necks of his two Fellow-sufferers, he seeing himself to be spared because of his Order and Degree, called to the Lieutenant for one of those precious Chains about his neck in honour of his Lord. Why I pray you (said he) do you deny me the badge of so excellent an Order? The Mirror of Martyrs, pag 315. Is not my Cause the same with theirs? Marsh. Mr. George Marsh, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 224. Minister in Lancashire, writes thus concerning his Troubles.— My Friends and Relations advised me to flee.— If I were taken, (said they) and would not recant (as they thought I would not, and God strengthening and assisting me never shall) it would not only put them to great sorrow, and losses, and shame, but also myself, after troubles and painful imprisonment, unto shameful death.— To their counsel my weak flesh would gladly have consented, but my spirit did not fully agree, thinking and saying thus unto myself, That if I so fled away, it would be thought and reported, that I did not only flee my Country▪ and nearest and dearest Friends, but from Christ holy Word, of late years within my heart, or at least with my life professed, and with my mou●h taught. I knew not what to do, but ceased not by earnest prayer to ask and seek counsel of God, a●● of other my Friends, whose godly judgement and knowledge I much trusted to. Still I was undetermined what to do, but told a Friend, that had prayed with me for direction, I doubted not but God (according as our prayer and trust was) would give me such wisdom and counsel, as should be most to his honour and glory, the profit of my Neighbours and Brethren, and mine own eternal salvation by Christ in Heaven.— At length one came to me with Letters from a faithful Friend (which I never read, nor looked on) who said thus, My Friend's advice was, that I should in no wise flee, but abide and boldly confess the Faith of Jesus Christ. At which words I was so confirmed and established in my Conscience, that from thenceforth I consulted no more, whether it were better to flee, or to tarry; but was at a point with myself, that I would not flee, but go to Mr. Barton, who did seek me, and patiently bear what cross it should please God to lay upon me. Whereupow my mind and conscience, being much troubled before, was now merry and in quiet state.— Thereupon I went to Mr. Barton. He showed me a Letter from the Earl of Derby, wherein he was commanded to send me to Lathum. Thither I went. The Earl asked me whether I was one that sowed dissension among the people? I denied it, and desired to know mine Accusers; but that could not be granted. He asked me, whether I was a Priest? I said, Pag. 225. No, but a Minister, etc. I was asked, whether I had ministered with a good Conscience? I answered, I had ministered one year with a good Conscience, I thanked God, and if the Laws of the Realm would have suffered me, I would have ministered still; and if the Laws at any time hereafter would suffer me to minister after that sort, I would minister again.— The Vicar of Prescot having communed with me a good while concerning the Sacrament of the Altar, told my Lord and his Council, that the answer which I had made before, and then made, was sufficient for a Beginner, and one that did not profess a perfect Knowledge in that matter: and thereupon I had more favour. Hereupon I was much more troubled in my spirit then before, because I had not with more boldness confessed Christ, but in such sort, as mine Adversaries thereby thought they should prevail against me. Hitherto I went about as much as lay in me, to rid myself out of their hands, if by any means, without open denying of Christ and his Word, that could be done. This considered I cried more earnestly to God to strengthen me with his holy Spirit, with boldness to confess him, and to deliver me from their enticing words, and that I might not be spoiled through their Philosophy, and deceitful vanity after the traditions of men, and ordinances of the world, and not after Christ Pag. 226. — The Vicar of Prescot and Parson of Grapnal much exhorted me to leave mine Opinions, saying, I was much deceived, understanding the Scriptures amiss, and much counselled me to follow the Catholic Church of Christ, and to do as others did. I answered, My faith in Christ conceived by his holy Word I neither might nor would deny, alter, or change for any living creature whatso●v●r ●e were.— Afterwards Mr. Sherburn and Mr. M●●r persuaded me to leave mine Opinions because of the adversity of the Maintainers of them, and the prosperity of the Favourers of the Religion now used. I answered, That I believed and leaned only to the Scriptures, not judging things by prosperity or adversity. They advised me not to let shame hinder me from renouncing mine Opinions. I answered, That what I did, I did not for the avoiding of any worldly shame, saying, My soul and life were dearer to me, than the avoiding of any worldly shame: neither yet did I it for any vain praise of the world, but in the reverend fear of the lord— Mr. Sherburn told me that it was great pity I should cast myself away, etc. I answered, That my Life, Mother, Children, Brethren, Sisters, and Friends, with other Delights of this life, were as dear and sweet to me, as unto any other man, and that I should be as loath to lose them, as another would, if I might hold them with a good conscience, and without the ignominy of Christ But seeing I could not do that, my trust was that God would strengthen me with his holy Spirit to lose them all for his sake; for I take myself (said I) for a Sheep appointed to be slain, patiently to suffer what cross soever it shall please my merciful Father to lay upon me. Pag. 227. — After this Mr. Moor told me, I was unlearned, and erred from the Catholic Faith, stubborn, and stood altogether in mine own conceit. I answered, For my learning, I acknowledge myself to know nothing, but Jesus Christ, even him that was crucified, and that my Faith was grounded on God's holy Word only, and such as (I doubted not) pleased God, and as I would stand in to the last, God assisting me, and that I did not say, or do any thing of stubbornness, self-wilfulness, vainglory, or any other worldly purpose, but with good conscience, and in the fear of God. Desiring him to speak to my Lord and his Council, that I might find some mercy at their hands; but he giving me but short answer, than I said, I commit my Cause to God, who hath numbered the hairs of my head, and appointed the days of my life, saying, I am sure God, who is a Righteous judge, would make inquisition for my blood, according as he hath promised.— I desire the Reader of this Relation to pray for me, and all them that be in bonds, that God would assist us with his holy Spirit, that we may with boldness confess his holy Name, Pag. 228. and that Christ may be magnified in our bodies, that we may stand full and perfect in all the will of God.— Whilst I was at Lancaster, some of good will towards me, but without knowledge, that came to talk with me, gave me the same counsel, that Peter gave Christ, as he went up to jerusalem; Master, favour thyself, etc. But I answered with Christ's sharp answer to Peter again, Get thee behind me Satan, and perceiving that they were an hindrance to me, and that they savoured not the things which are of God, but the things that are of men; I made them plain answer, that I neither could nor would follow their counsel, but that by God's grace I would both live and die with a pure Conscience, and according as hitherto I had believed and professed; for we ought in no wise (said he) to flatter and bear with them, though they love us never so well, which go about to pluck us away from the obedience which we owe unto God, and to his Word, but after Christ's example, sharply to rebuke them for their counsel.— God so strengthened me with his Spirit of boldness, according to my humble request and prayer before (everlasting thanks be given to him therefore) that I was nothing afraid to speak to any that came to me, no not even to Judges, before whom I was thrice arraigned at the Bar, among the Thiefs, with irons on my feet, and put up my hand as others did; but yet with boldness I spoke unto them, so long as they would suffer me.— They threatened and rebuked me, for my preaching to the people out of Prison, and for my praying and reading so loud, that the people in the streets might hear.— When the Bishop of Chester came to Lancaster, he was informed of me, and desired to send for me, and examine me; but he said he would have nothing to do with Heretics so hastily. So hasty in judging and calling me Heretics are our Bishops in their Lordly Dignities, before they hear, etc. contrary to the Word of God, which saith, Condemn no man before thou hast tried out the truth of the matter, and when thou hast made inquisition, then reform righteously. Give no Sentence before thou hast heard the Cause, but first let men tell out their tale; and he that giveth Sentence in a matter before he hear it, is a fool, and worthy to be confounded.— It is no new thing for the Bishops to persecute the Truth and the Prophets of the Lord for their constancy in preaching of the true Faith; Pag. 229. Faith; for so did their Pharisaical Forefathers. Pashur was the Head Bishop of the Temple, the Ringleader of false Prophets, the chief Heretick-taker, that is as much as to say, the Outthruster of true Godliness. He imprisoned the Prophet jeremy, etc. The ungracious Bishop I●son was such another, Machab. 2.4.— Such were also the execrable and blind Bishops Annas and Caiaphas, who never spoke the Truth of God themselves, unless it were against their wills, unwittingly to their own destruction.— At Chester several times came to me, and with all probability of words and Philosophy, or worldly wisdom, and deceitful vanity, after the traditions of men, and the beggarly Ordinances and Laws of the world, but not after Christ, went about to persuade me to submit myself to the Church of Rome, and to acknowledge the Pope to be Head thereof, and to interpret the Scriptures no otherwise then that Church did. I answered, That I do acknowledge and believe one Holy Catholic Church, without which there is no Salvation; and that this Church is but one, because it ever hath, doth, and shall confess one Only God, and him only worship; and one Only Messiah, and him only trust for Salvation: which Church is ruled and led by one Spirit, one Word, and one Faith, etc. and is built only upon the foundation of the Prophets and Apostles, Jesus Christ himself being the Head-corner-stone, and not upon the Romish Laws, the Bishop of Rome being the supreme Head, etc. and that this Church is a little poor silly flock, dispersed and scattered abroad, as sheep without a shepherd, in the midst of wolves; or as a company of Orphans and fatherless children, led and ruled by the only Laws, Counsels, and Word of Christ, who is the supreme Head thereof, assisting, succouring, and defending her from all assaults, errors, troubles, and persecutions, wherewith she is ever compassed about. — I was thrust at with all violence of craft and subtlety, but yet the Lord upheld me. Everlasting thanks be to that merciful and faithful Lord, who suffereth us not to be tempted above our might, but in the midst of our troubles strengtheneth us with his holy Spirit of comfort and patience, giveth us a mouth and wisdom how and what to speak, where against all his Adversaries are not able to resist.— At another appearance before the Bishop, Pag. 230. etc. the Chancellor charged him, That he had preached most heretically and blasphemously in many Parishes within the Bishop's Diocese against the Pope's Authority, the Catholic Church of Rome, etc. He answered, That he neither heretically nor blasphemously preached or spoke against any of the said Articles, but simply and truly as occasion served, and (as it were thereunto forced in Conscience) maintained the Truth touching those Articles, as (said he) all you now present did acknowledge the same in King Edward's days. After the Bishop of Chester had read half-ways the Sentence of Condemnation, Pag. 231. he asked him whether he would not have the Queen's mercy in time? He answered, He did gladly desire the same, and did love her Grace as faithfully as any of them, but yet he durst not deny his Saviour Christ, and so lose his mercy everlasting, and win everlasting death. Being again called upon by the people to recant and save his life, he said, I would as fain live as any of you, if in so doing I should not deny my Master Christ, and again he should deny me before his Father in Heaven. When the Bishop had read out the Sentence, he said, Now I will no more pray for thee then I will pray for a Dog. Mr. Marsh answered, That notwithstanding he would pray for his Lordship. When he was in the Dungeon, and none suffered to come near him, some of the Citizens would at a hole upon the wall of the City, that went into the Dungeon, ask him how he did? He would answer them most cheerfully, that he did well, and thanked God most highly, that he would vouchsafe of his mercy to appoint him to be a witness of his Truth, and to suffer for the same, wherein he did most rejoice, beseeching him that he would give him grace not to faint under the Cross, but patiently bear the same to his glory, and comfort of his Church. When he came to the place of Execution, one showing him a Writing under the great Seal, and telling him, It was a Pardon for him if he would recant; he said, That he would gladly receive the same; but forasmuch as it tended to pluck him from God, he would not receive it upon that condition. After that he began to speak to the people, showing the cause of his death, and would have exhorted them to stick unto Christ. Whereupon one of the Sheriffs said, We must have no Sermoning now. When the Beholders supposed no less but that he had been dead, having been so long in the fire, he spread abroad his Arms, saying, Father of Heaven have mercy upon me. Upon this many of the people said, Pag. 232. That he was a Martyr, and died marvellous patiently and godly, which thing caused Dr. Cotes the Bishop shortly after to preach in the Cathedral, that he was an Heretic, burnt like an Heretic, and was a firebrand in hell. But shortly after the judgement of God took hold of the Bishop; it was a report in all men's mouths that he died burnt by an harlot. In his Letter to the Reader, touching his Examinations.— Though Satan be suffered to sift us, as wheat, for a time, yet faileth not our faith, through Christ's aid, but that we are at all times able and ready to confirm the Faith of our weak Brethren, and always ready to give an answer to every man that asketh us a reason of the hope that is in us, and that with meekness and reverence, having a good conscience; and whenas they backbite us as evil doers, they may be ashamed, forasmuch as they have falsely accused our good conversation in Christ I thought myself well settled with my loving Wife and Children, and also well quieted in the peaceable possession of that pleasant Euphrates; but the Lord, who worketh all for the best to them that love him, would not there leave me, but took my dear and beloved Wife from me, whose death was a painful cross to my flesh. I thought also myself well placed under most loving and gentle Mr. Laurence Saunders in the Cure of Langton. But the Lord of his great mercy would not suffer me long there to continue, (although for the small time I was in his Vineyard I was not an idle workman) but he hath provided me to taste of a far other Cup; for by violence hath he yet once again driven me out of that glorious Babylon, that I should not taste too much of her wanton pleasures, but with his most dearly beloved Disciples to have my inward rejoicing in the Cross of his Son jesus Christ, the glory of whose Church I see it well, ☞ standeth not in the harmonious sound of Bells and Organs, nor yet in the glistering of Mitres and Copes, nor in the shining of gilt Images and Lights, but in continual Labours and Afflictions for his Names sake. God at this present here in England hath his Fan in his hand, and after his great Harvest, whereinto these years past he hath sent his Labourers, is now sifting the Corn from the Chaff, and purging his Floor, and ready to gather the Wheat into his Garner, and burn up the Chaff with unquenchable fire. Take heed and beware of the leaven of the Scribes and pharisees.— Try all things, and choose that which is good. Believe not every Spirit, but prove the Spirits, whether they be of God or not.— The true Touchstone is the Word of God.— In his Letter to the faithful Professors of Langton.— Grace be unto you, and peace be multiplied in the Knowledge of Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. I thought it my duty to write unto you, my Beloved in the Lord, to stir up your minds, and to call to your remembrance the words that have been spoken to you before, and to exhort you (as that good man, Acts 11. and full of the Holy Ghost, Barnabas did the Antiochians) that with purpose of heart ye continually cleave unto the Lord, and that ye stand fast, and be not moved away from the Hope of the Gospel; whereof God be thanked, ye have had plenteous preaching by Mr. Sanders, and other Ministers of Christ, who now when persecution doth arise, because of the Word, do not fall away, and forsake the Truth, being ashamed of the Gospel, whereof they have been Preachers, but are willing and ready for your sakes, to forsake not only the chief and principal delights of this life, viz. their native Country, Friends, Livings, etc. but also to fulfil their Ministry to the utmost, viz. with their painful imprisonments, and bloodsheddings, if need shall require, to confirm and seal Christ's Gospel, whereof they have been Ministers. Acts ●●. They are ready, not only to be cast into prison, but also to be killed for the Name of the Lord Jesus. Whether those, being that good salt of the earth, i. e. true Ministers of God's Word, by whose Doctrine, being received by Faith, men are made savoury unto God, and which themselves lose not their saltness; now when they be proved with the boisterous storms of persecution, or others, being that unsavoury salt, which hath lost it saltness, i. e. those ungodly Ministers, who do fall from the Word of God to the dreams and traditions of Antichrist; whether of these (I say) be more to be credited and believed, let all men judge. jam. 2. Wherefore my dearly Beloved, Receive the Word of God with meekness, that is grafted in you, which is able to save your souls, and see that ye be not forgetful hearers, deceiving yourselves with Sophistry, but doers of the Word; Mat. 7. whom Christ doth liken to a Wise man, which buildeth his house upon a rock, etc. That when Satan with all his Legions of Devils, with all their subtle suggestions, and the world with all the mighty Princes thereof, with their crafty counsels, do furiously rage against us, we faint not, but abide constant in the Truth, being grounded upon a most sure Rock, which is Christ, and the Doctrine of the Gospel, Mat. 16. against which the gates of Hell, i. e. the power of Satan cannot prevail. And be ye followers of Christ and his Apostles, and receive the Word in much affliction, as the godly Thessalonians did. 1 Thes. 2. They only are the true followers of Christ and his Apostles, that receive the Word: And they only receive the Word, who both believe it, and also frame their lives after it, and be ready to suffer all manner of adversity for the Name of the Lord, 2 Tim. 3. as Christ and all the Apostles did, and as all that will live godly in Christ jesus must do; Acts 14. for there is none other way into the Kingdom of Heaven, but through much tribulation. And if we suffer any thing for the Kingdom of Heaven's sake, Mat. 5. and for Righteousness sake, Mat. 7. we have the Prophets, Christ, Mark 8. the Apostles, and Martyrs for an example to comfort us; for they did all enter into the Kingdom of Heaven at the straight gate and narrow way, which few do find: and unless we will be content to deny ourselves, and take up the Cross of Christ, and his Saints, it is an evident argument that we shall never reign with him. But if we can find in our hearts patiently to suffer persecutions and tribulations, it is a sure token of the righteous Judgement of God, that we are accounted worthy of the Kingdom of Heaven, for which we also suffer. It is verily (saith the Apostle) a righteous thing with God to recompense tribulations to them that trouble us, 2 Thes. 1. and rest to us that be troubled.— These things we ought to have before our eyes always, that in the time of persecution (whereof all that will be the children of God shall be partakers, and some of us are already) we may stand steadfast in the Lord, and endure even to the end, that we may be saved; for unless we, like good Warriors of jesus Christ, will endeavour ourselves to please him, who hath chosen us to be soldiers, and fight the good Fight of Faith to the end, we shall not obtain that crown of Righteousness, 1 Tim. 2. which the Lord, that is a right our judge, shall give all them that love his Coming. Let us therefore ground ourselves on the sure Rock Christ; for other foundation can no man lay, 1 Cor. 3. besides that which is laid already, which is jesus Christ. If any bu●ld on this foundation gold, silver, etc. By fire the Apostle doth mean persecution, the portion of those that do preach and profess the Word of Christ, which is called the Word of the Cross. By gold, etc. he understands them, that in the midst of persecution abide steadfast in the Word. By hay and stubble, such as in time of persecution do fall away from the Truth. When Christ doth purge his floor with the wind of adversity, these are scattered as light chaff, which shall be burnt with unquenchable fire. If they which do believe, do in time of persecution stand steadfastly in the Truth, the Builder (I mean the Preacher of the Word) shall receive a reward, and the Work shall be preserved and saved; but if so be that they go back and swerve when persecution ariseth, the Builder suffereth loss, i. e. shall lose his labour and cost; but let he shall be saved, if he being tried in the fire of persecution, doth abide fast in the Faith. Wherefore my Beloved, 1 Pet. 2. give diligent heed, that ye, as li●ing stones be ●uilt upon the sure Rock, Pag. 234. etc.— Let ●s be sure, that unless we keep Christ and his holy Word dwelling by Faith in the House and Temple of our hearts, the same thing that Christ threateneth to the jews, Mat. 14. shall happen unto us, viz. The unclean spirit of ignorance, superstition, idolatry, and unbelief, the Mother and Head of all Vices, which by the grace of God was cast out of us, bringing with him seven other spirits worse than himself, shall to our utter ruin return again to us, and so shall we be in worse case than ever we were before; for if ●e, after we have escaped from the filthiness of the world, through the Knowledge of the Lord and Saviour jesus Christ, be yet entangled therein and overcome, then is the lat●r end worse than the beginning, and it had been letter for us not to have known the way of righteousness, 〈◊〉 after we have known it to turn from the holy Commandment given unto us; for it is then happened unto us, according to the true Proverb, The Dog is turned to his vomit, and the Son that was washed to wallowing in the mire. Hebr. 6. — It is not possible (saith the Apostle) that they, which were once enlightened, etc. if they fall away, should be renewed again by repentance, etc. St. Paul's meaning in this place is, That they that believe unfeignedly God's Word, do abide steadfast in the known Truth. If any therefore fall away from Christ and his Word, it is a plain token, that they were but dissembling Hypocrites, for all their fair faces outwardly, and never believed truly etc. 1 john 2. They went out from us, Hebr. 10. because they were not of us, etc. If we sin willingly after we have received the knowledge of the Truth, there remaineth no more sacrifice for sin, but a certain fearful looking for of judgement, etc. Wherefore let us, on whom the ends of the world are come, take diligent heed unto ourselves, that now in these last and perilous times (in which the Devil is come down and hath great wrath, because he knoweth his time is but short, and whereof the Prophets, Christ, and the Apostles have given us such warning) we withhold not the Truth in unrighteousness, believing, doing or speaking any thing against our knowledge and conscience, john 8. or without faith, etc. If ye believe me ye shall die in your sins.— Dear Friends, we trust to see better of you, and things which accompany salvation, and that ye being the good ground, watered with the moistness of God's Word plentifully preached among you, will with a good heart hear the Word of God and keep it, bringing forth fruit with patience; and that you will be none of those forgetful and hypocritical hearers, who, although they hear the Word, suffer the Devil to catch away what was sown in their hearts, either having no root in themselves endure but a season, and as soon as persecution ariseth because of the Word, by and by they are offended, or with the cares of this world, and deceitfulness of riches choke the Word, and so are unfruitful. Read the Parable of the Sour, and note especially, That the most part of the hearers of God's Word are but Hypocrites, hearing the Word without any fruit or profit, yea to their greater condemnation; for only the fourth part of the seed doth bring forth fruit. Therefore let not us that be Ministers, or Professors and Followers of God's Word be discouraged, though that very few do give credit and follow the Doctrine of the Gospel, and be saved.— We trust that ye will not, Pag. 235. like the Gadarenes, for fear to lose your worldly substance or other delights of this life, banish away Christ and his Gospel from among you.— If ye do, your own blood will be upon your own heads. And as ye have had more plentiful preaching of the Gospel, than others, so ye shall be sure to be sorer plagued, and the Kingdom of God shall be taken from you, and given to another Nation, that will bring forth the fruits thereof. Wherefore my dearly beloved in Christ, take good heed unto yourselves, and ponder well in your minds, how fearful and horrible a thing it is to fall into the hands of the Living God, and see that ye receive not the Word in vain, but declare your faith by your good works: among which the chiefest are to be obedient to the Magistrates (sith they are the Ordinance of God, whether they be good or evil) unless they command idolatry and ungodliness, i. e. things contrary to true Religion; for than we ought to say with Peter, Acts 5. We ought more to they God then man. But in any wise we must beware of Tumult, Insurrection, Rebellion, or Resistance. The weapon of a Christian in this matter ought to be the Sword of the Spirit, which is God's Word, and Prayer, coupled with humility and due submission, and with readiness of heart, rather to die then to do any ungodliness.— (2) We must obey our Parents, and be careful for our Houses, that they be fed not only with bodily food, but much rather with spiritual food, the Word of God. (3) Whatsoever ye would that men should do unto you, Matth. 7. do ye likewise unto them; for this is the Law and the Prophets. (4) Pray for all Estates. (5) After these works, we must learn to know the Cross: and (6) What affection and mind we must bear towards our enemies, whatsoever they be to suffer all evils patiently, to pray for them that persecute us. And thus doing we shall obtain a certainty of our vocation, that we be the elect Children of God. And thus I commend you, Brethren, unto God and to the Word of his grace, which is able to ●uild farther &c, beseeching you to help Mr. Saunders and me your late Pastors, and all them that be in bonds, for the Gospel's sake, with your Prayers to God for us, that we may be delivered from unreasonable men, etc. and that this our imprisonment may be to the glory and profit of our Christian Brethren in this world, and that Christ may be magnified in our bodies, whether it be by death or life. Amen. The grace of our Lord be with you all.— The unprofitable Servant of jesus Christ, and now also his Prisoner. G. M. june 28. 1555. Postscript. Save yourselves from this untoward generation. Pray, pray, pray. Never more need. In his Letter to his Friends at Manchester.— These are earnestly to exhort you and beseech you in Christ, as ye have received the Lord jesus, even so to walk, rooted in him, and not to be afraid of any terror of your adversaries, be they never so many and mighty, and you on the other side never so few and weak; for the battle is the Lords.— As I was with Moses, so will I be with thee, saith God, and will never leave thee, nor forsake thee. Be strong and bold, neither fear nor dread; for the Lord thy God is with thee, whithersoever thou goest. Now if God be ●n our side, who can be against us? In this our spiritual warfare is no man overcome, unless he traitorously leave and forsake his Captain, or cowardly cast away his Weapons, or willingly yield himself unto his Enemies, or fearfully turn his back and fly. Be strong therefore in the Lord and in the power of his might, and put on all the armour of God, that ye may be able to stand steadfast against all the assaults of Satan.— If we submit ourselves to God, and his holy Word, no man shall be able to hurt us; God will deliver us from all troubles, yea from death also, till such time as we covet and desire to die, as he did Paul, Acts 18. Phil. 1. etc. Let us therefore run with patience unto the battle that is set before us, and look unto jesus the Captain and Finisher of our Faith, and after his example, for the rewards sake, that is set out unto us, patiently to bear the Cross, and despise the shame. All that will live godly in Christ jesus must suffer persecution. Christ was no sooner Baptised, and declared to the world to be the Son of God, but Satan was by and by ready to tempt him: which thing we must look for also; yea the more we shall increase our faith and virtuous living, the more strongly will Satan assault us, whom we must learn after the example of Christ, to fight against and overcome with the Holy and Sacred Scriptures, etc. and let the fasting of Christ, when he was tempted in the Wilderness, be an example unto us of our sober living, not for the space of forty days (as the Papists do fond fancy of their own brains) but us long as we are in the Wilderness of this wretched life, assaulted of Satan, who like a roaring Lion, etc. It is the nature and property of the Devil always to hurt and do mischief, if God do not forbid. Indeed if God will not permit him, he cannot so much as enter into a filthy Hog, etc. Let us, knowing Satan's deceits and rancour, walk the more warily, and take unto us the shield of faith, etc. Let us fast and pray continually, etc. To fasting and prayer must be joined mercy to the poor and needy, etc. Let us go boldly to the seat of grace, where we shall be sure to find grace and mercy to help in time of need.— Wherefore, my dear Brethren, be ye fervent in the Law of God, and jeopard ye your lives, if need shall require, for the testament of the Fathers, and so shall ye receive great honour, and an everlasting name. Remember Abraham, was not he found faithful in temptation, and it was reckoned unto him for righteousness? joseph in time of his trouble kept the Commandment, and was made a Lord of Egypt. Phineas was so fervent for the honour of God, that he obtained the Covenant of an everlasting Priesthood. joshua for the fulfilling of the Word of God was made the Captain of Israel. Caleb bare record before the Congregation, and received an Inheritance. David also in his merciful kindness obtained the Throne of an everlasting Kingdom. Elias being zealous and fervent in the Law, was taken up into Heaven. The three Children remained steadfast in the Faith, and were delivered out of the fire, and Daniel from the mouth of the Lions. Thus whoever put their trust in the Lord were not overcome. Fear not ye then the words of ungodly men; for their glory is but dung and worms; to day they are set up, and to morrow they are gone; they are turned into earth, and their memorial cometh to nought. Wherefore let us take good hearts unto us, and quit ourselves like men in the Law, etc. Let us not faint, because of affliction, wherewith God trieth all them that are sealed to everlasting life, etc. Seeing we are in the narrow and straight way, that leadeth unto the m●st joyful and pleasant City of everlasting life, let us not stagger, or turn back, being afraid of the perilous way, but follow our Captain Christ therein, and be afraid, no not of death itself. Consider also the course of this world, how many for their Master's sake, or a little promotions sake will adventure their lives, as commonly in Wars, and yet is their reward but light and transitory, and ours is unspeakably great and everlasting. They suffer pains to be made Lords on Earth for a short season; how much more ought we to endure, it may be much less pains, to be made Kings in Heaven for evermore?— Seeing, Brethren, it hath pleased God to set me, and that worthy Minister of Christ, john Bradford, your Countryman, in the forefront of this Battle, where (for the time) is most danger, I beseech you all in the bowels of Christ to help us, and all our fellow Soldiers standing in like perilous place, with your Prayers to God for us, that we may quit ourselves like men in the Lord, and give some exmple of boldness and constancy, mingled with patience in the fear of God, that ye and others of our Brethren, through our example, may be encouraged and strengthened to follow us, that ye also may leave example to your weak Brethren in the world to follow you. Amen.— Brethren, the time is short, 1. C●r. 7. it remaineth that ye use this world, as though ye used it not; for the fashion of this world passeth away. 1 john 2. Coll. 3. See that ye love not the world, nor the things that be in the world; but set your affections on heavenly things, etc. Be meek and long-suffering; serve and edify one another with the gift that God hath given you: beware of strange Doctrine, etc.— August 30, 1555. Pag. 238. In his Letter to jenkin Crampton, etc.— These be earnestly to exhort you, yea and to beseech you in the tender mercy of Christ, that with purpose of heart ye cleave unto the Lord, and that ye worship him in spirit, in the Gospel of his Son; for God will not be worshipped after the commandments and traditions of men, nor yet by any other means appointed, prescribed and taught us, but by his holy Word: and though all men almost defile themselves with the wicked traditions of men, and ordinances after the world, and not after Christ, yet do ye after the ensample of Daniel, and his three Companions, etc. Be at a point with yourselves, that ye will not be defiled with the unclean meats of the Heathen, I mean, the filthiness of Idolatry, and the very Heathenish Ceremonies of the Papists, but as the true Worshippers, serve ye God in spirit and verity, according to the sacred Scriptures. Above all things I wish you continually and reverently to search and read the Scriptures, and with the wholesome admonitions of the same to teach, exhort, comfort, and edify one another, now in this time of the great famishment of souls, for want of the food of God's Word. And doubt not but that the merciful Lord (who hath promised to be with us, even to the world's end, and when two or three are gathered together in his Name he will be in the midst of them) will assist you and teach you the right meaning of the sacred Scriptures, will keep you from all errors, and lead you into all truth, as he hath promised. And though you think yourselves unable to teach, yet at the command of Christ, now in time of famine, seeing the hungry people in the wilderness far from any Towns, if they be sent away fasting, are sure to faint and perish by the way, employ those five loaves and two fishes that ye have, upon that hungry multitude, although you think it nothing among so many. And he that increased the five loaves and two fishes to feed five thousand men, etc. shall also augment his gifts in you, not only to the edifying of others, but to an exceeding great increase of your own knowledge in God and his holy Word: And fear not your Adversaries; for either according to his accustomed manner, God shall blind their eyes, that they shall not spy you, or get you favour in their sight, or else graciously deliver you out of their hands by one means or other. Comfort yourselves in all your adversities, and stay yourselves in him, who hath promised not to leave you, as fatherless and motherless children, without any comfort, but that he will come unto you, like a most gentle and merciful lord— In another Letter.— The same grace and peace do I wish unto you, which St. Paul wisheth to them, to whom he writ, etc. Grace is taken for the free mercy and favour of God, whereby he saveth us freely without any of our deservings or works of the Law. Peace is taken for the tranquillity of conscience, being persuaded that through the only merits of Christ's death and bloodshedding, there is an atonement and peace made between God and us, so that God will no more impute our sins unto us, Pag. 239. nor condemn us.— Be not ashamed of the testimony of our Lord Jesus, nor of us his Prisoners, but suffer ye adversity with the Gospel; for which word we suffer, as evil doers, unto bonds; but the Word of God is not bound with us. Therefore we suffer all things for the Elects sake, that they also may obtain the Salvation which is in Christ Jesus with eternal glory. Wherefore stand ye fast in the Faith, and be not moved from the hope of the Gospel: so shall ye make us with joy to suffer for your sakes, and as the Apostle saith, To fulfil that which is behind of the Passions of Christ in our flesh, for his Body's sake, which is the Congregation. St. Paul doth not here mean, that there wanteth any thing in the Passion of Christ, which may be supplied by man; but the words are to be understood of the Elect, in whom Christ is and shall be persecuted to the world's end. The Passion of Christ then, i. e. of this Ch●rch, his mystical Body, shall not be perfect till all, whom God hath appointed, have suffered for his sake.— On our parts nothing can be greater consolation and inward joy to us in our Adversity, then to hear of your Faith and Love, and that ye have a good remembrance of us always, praying for us as we do for you. Now are we alive, if ye stand steadfast in the Lord. Good Shepherds do always count the welfare and prosperous estate of Christ's Flock to be their own. While it goeth well with the Congregation, it goeth well with them also, in whatever affliction they be: but when they see the Church in peril, then be they weary of their own lives, and can have no rest nor joy. Who is weak, and I am not weak? who is offended, and I do not burn? But this affection is not in them that seek their own lucre and glory.— God is wont for the most part to warn his Elect what trouble shall happen to them for his sake, not to frighten them thereby, but rather to prepare their minds against the boisterous storms of Persecution.— In his Letter to Robert Langley.— I thank you for visitting me a Prisoner for Christ, and unacquainted with to your cost, and for your promise, that if I did want any thing necessary to this life, you with some others would help me, and rejoice greatly in the Lord, who stirs up the hearts of others to be careful for me in this my great necessity. I thank God as yet I do want nothing, and intent to be as little chargeable to others as I can; yet if I want, Pag. 240. I will be bold with you and others to send for your help, desiring you in the mean while to pray for me and all others in the bonds of Christ, that God would perform the thing which he hath begun in us, that we may confess Jesus Christ with boldness, and fight the good Fight of Faith, In another Letter.— These be to certify you, that I greatly rejoice in the Lord, for that my sweet Saviour Christ doth stir up the minds, not only of my familiar friends in times past, but of sundry heretofore to me unknown to help me, sending me not only necessaries for this life, but comfortable Letters, encouraging me and exhorting me to continue grounded and established in the Faith, etc. I call daily upon God, in whom is all my trust, and without whom I can do nothing, that he would perfect what he hath begun, being assured he will so do; forasmuch as he hath given me, not only to believe, ●ut to suffer for his sake. The Lord strengthen me with his Holy Spirit, that I may be one of the number of those Blessed, which enduring to the end shall be saved.— My trust in the Lord is, that this my business shall happen to the furtherance of the Gospel.— God will to your consolation gloriously deliver by one means or other his Oppressed. Only tarry ye the Lord's leisure, and wait still for the Lord. He tarrieth not, that will come; look for him therefore, and faint not, and he will never fail you. Martial. Ward, pag. 152. I was from eternity (said Christopher Marshal of Antwerp) a sheep destined to the slaughter, and now I go the Shambles. Gold must be tried in the fire. Massey. Fuller 's England's Worthies in Huntshire. pag. 5. I must needs here mention an Infant without a Christian Name, and not capable of speaking, because its death still speaks aloud. This Infant was the child of Perotine Massey, the Wife of a Minister of God's Word, for fear fled out of the Island of Guernsey. She with her Mother and Sister were burnt for absence from Church. The Babe properly was never born, but by the force of the flame burst out of his Mother's Belly alive; and yet by the command of the Bailiff (supreme Officer in the then absence of the Governor) cast again into the fire, and therein consumed to ashes. It seems this bloody Bailiff was minded like the cruel Tyrant, commanding, Canis pessimi ne catulum esse relinquendum, though this indeed was no dog, but a Lamb, and that of the first minute, and therefore too young by the Levitical Law to be sacrificed. Here was a spectacle without precedent, a cruelty built three generations high, that Grandmother, Mother, and Grandchild, should all suffer in the same flame. Maximinus. Ward, pag. 140. We are ready (said Maximinus and jubentius) to lay off the last garment, the flesh. Melancthon. Clarks first Volume of Lives, pag. 562. I tremble to think (said Philip Melancthon) with what blind devotion I went to Images, whilst I was a Papist. When Luther began to oppose the Pope, he was sent for by Prince Frederick Duke of Saxony to Wittenberg to teach the Greek Tongue, and yet then he was but two and twenty years old An. 1518. When he was first converted, Pag. 571. he thought it impossible for his Hearers to withstand the evidence of the Truth, in the Ministry of the Gospel; but after he had been a Preacher a while, he complained, That old Adam was too hard for young Melancthon. In the year 1519. he went with Luther to Lipswich, Pag. 563, 564. where he disputed with Eccius. In this Disputation Eccius brought a very subtle Argument, which he being not able suddenly to answer, said, I will answer you to morrow. Eccius replying, That is little for your credit, if you cannot answer it presently. Sir (said he) I seek dot mine own glory in this business, but the Truth. To morrow God willing you shall hear further. In the year 1521. when the Divines of Paris had condemned Luther's Doctrine and Books, See Luther's Works, Tom. 2. fol. 427. he wrote an Apology for him against their furious Decree. In his Epistle to the Reader.— See Christian Reader, what Monsters in Divinity Europe hath bred. The last year the Sophisters of Colen and Lorain condemned the Gospel by some naked Propositions, confirmed neither by Scripture nor reason. M●dder than they are they, whoever they be, who have at Paris condemned Luther. Pag. 428. — There is no cause to wonder that they are no more favourable to Luther. Alas! they were not more favourable to their own great Gerson, when the Schools at Paris were more wholesome.— It concerns us to consider, what is decreed, not who have decreed it. The Apostle will not have us give place, no not to Angels, corrupting the Gospel.— Farewell to the Name of our Masters, farewell to the Name of Parisians, unless in their own Schools. In the Christian Commonwealth nothing prevails but the Voice of Christ, which whosoever hears not is not Christ's.— They say that Luther ought rather to be overcome by fire, then by reason.— They accuse Luther of Heresy, not because he dissents from Universities, Fathers, Councils; not because he dissents from the Scripture, and the Opinions of Universities, Fathers, Councils, they call the first Principles of Faith.— But it will be said Luther doth descent from the Scripture, because he dissents from the Expositions of Scripture, which from Fathers, Councils, and Schools, have hitherto been received. This is (as I perceive) the Hinge of the Controversy. Here I ask this Question of our Masters, Whether the Scriptures be so delivered, that their meaning cannot certainly be collected without the Exposition of Councils, Fathers, and Schools? If you deny that the meaning of the Scripture cannot certainly be concluded without their glosses, I cannot see why the Scriptures were delivered, or why the Apostles invite us to the study of the Scriptures?— If you grant it, certainly the Scripture ought to be preferred, not only before the Schools and Fathers, but before Councils determining otherwise. May not then Luther oppose unto Councils, Fathers, Schools, the certain sense and meaning of Scripture? But we will not yield so much, that Luther opposeth the Fathers and Councils.— 〈◊〉 pag. 564 565▪ When the Wars for Religion broke out in Germany, he foresaw in a Dream the Captivity of the E●ect●r of Saxony, and the Landgrave of Hess fifteen days before they were taken. When the Plague broke out in Wittinberg, and the University was removed, he said, He feared not that Plague, but a far worse Plague, which threatened the ruin of the Commonwealth. In the year 1534. in his Letter to Camerarius he gives this reason why he refused King Henry's offers if he would come into England.— Perhaps (saith he) many things are reported amongst you concerning England, that it lieth open now for the Religion of the purer Doctrine; but I have intelligence from a good hand, that the King hath no great care of the Affairs of the Church, only this Good comes of his rejecting the Pope's Authority, that for the present no cruelty is used towards those that are desirous of better Doctrine. When he went to Hagenaw to meet the Protestant Divines there, foreseeing, that he should fall into a mortal disease, he made his Will, and left it with Cruciger, saying, Viximus in Synodis, & jam moriemur in illis. In English thus; Employed in Synods, living, oft was I, Now in a Synod I am like to die. He was often threatened with Banishment out of Germany, Pag. 569. of which he writes thus; I have through God's mercy been here these forty years, and yet I could never say, or be sure, that I should remain here one week to an end. Seven days before he died, Pag. 566. many persons worthy of credit, betwixt nine and ten of the Clock at night saw in the Clouds over the Tower of Wittenqerg five rods bound together, after which two vanishing, the other three appeared severed in divers places, the branches of the rods turning towards the North, the handles towards the South. When this Prodigy was told Melancthon, he said, Herein God's Fatherly Punishments are not swords, but rods, which Parents use to correct their children withal: and I fear a dearth. Pag. 567. When the Pastors of the Church visitted him in his sickness, he said unto them, By the goodness of God I have no domestical grief to disquiet me, etc. but public matters affect me, especially the troubles of the Church in this evil and sophistical age. But through God's goodness our Doctrine is sufficiently explained and confirmed. Pag. 568. When he heard by Letters of the persecution of some godly men in France, he said, That his bodily disease was not comparable to the grief of his mind for his godly Friends, and for the miseries of the Church.— Yet my hopes are very great, for the Doctrine of our Church is explained. If God be for us, Pag. 570. who can be against us? I desire (said he) to depart for two causes. (1) That I may have the much desired sight of Jesus Christ, and the Church Triumphant. (2) That I may be delivered from the cruel and implacable discords of Divines. Meyere. For Martyr. V●l. 3. come. p. 50. Mr. Giles Meyere of Flanders, after he was converted, he sought all means how to employ his Talon. He was not only careful to preach to his Charge, but he went from h●use to house, comforting and exhorting every one, as occasion served, out of the Word of God, labouring above all with them to beware of the abominable superstitions of the Papacy. When he was imprisoned 1567. in a deep dark hole, he bore his affliction patiently, but so praised God for esteeming him worthy to suffer for his sake, and so comforted them that came to visit him, that they could not leave him without tears. In the midst of the Faggots (though he was gagged) he was heard distinctly and plainly to say, Father into thy hands I commend my Spirit. Mill. Mr. Walter Mill being brought before the Bishops of Scotland to answer to Articles against him, Fox. Vol. 2. pag. 625. and placed in a Pulpit before them, he prayed so long, that one of the Bishop's Priests called out to him saying, Sir Walter Mill arise, and answer to the Articles, for you hold my Lord here overlong. When he had ended his Prayer, he answered, We ought to obey God rather than men. I serve one more mighty, even the Omnipotent Lord. And whereas you call me Sir Walter, call me Walter, and not Sir Walter, I have been overlong one of the Pope's Knights. Being threatened with the Sentence of Death, if he would not recant, he said, I know I must die once; and therefore as Christ said to judas, What thou dost do it quickly: so say I to you. Ye shall know that I will not 〈◊〉 the Truth; for I am corn, I am no chaff; I 〈◊〉 not 〈◊〉 blown away with the wind, nor burst with the slail, I will abide both. Being bid to pass to the Stake, Pag. 626. he said, Nay, but if thou wilt put me up with thy hand, thou shalt see me pass up gladly; for by the Law of God I am forbidden to lay han● upon myself. Being put, he ascended gladly, saying, I will go up unto the altar of God. After he had prayed, he spoke thus to the people; Dear Friends, the cause why I suffer this day is not for any crime laid to my Charge (albeit I be a miserable sinner before God) but only for the defence of the Faith of jesus Christ, set forth in the Old and New Testament to us; for which (as the faithful Martyrs have offered themselves gladly before, being assured (after the death of their bodies) of eternal felicity. So this day I praise God that he hath called me of his mercy among the rest of his Servants to seal up his Truth with my life, which as I have received it of him, so willingly I offer it to his glory. Therefore as you will escape the eternal death, be no more seduced with the lies of Priests, Bishops, etc. and the rest of the Sect of Antichrist, but depend only on jesus Christ, and his mercy, that ye may be delivered from condemnation. Being in the fire, he said, Lord have mercy upon me, pray people while there is time. He was burnt An. 1558. and by his death gave the very dead blow to Popery; See the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, Praef. pag. penult. for by his death the people of all Ranks and Conditions were so moved, that they made open Profession of the Truth, without any more dallying, and upon this occasion a Covenant was presently entered in to defend one another against the Tyranny of the Bishops. So that he was the last that died for Religion at that time in that Kingdom. His Epitaph. Non nostra impietas, aut actae crimina vitae Armarunt hostes in mea fata truces: Sola fides Christi sacris signata libellis, Quae vitae causa est, est mihi causa necis. In English thus; Not any sin committed here by me Against me armed my bloody enemy: The Scripture Faith, of life the only cause, Did cause my death, and that against all Laws. Monerius. Claudius' Monorius, being cavilled at by the Friars for eating a Breakfast before his Execution, said, This I do that the flesh may answer the readiness of the Spirit. Moral. Let us not, See the Mirror of Martyrs, pag. 563. my Brethren, (said john Moral, an outlandish Martyr) fear the Prisons; seeing they are Christ's Schools and Colleges, wherein God's children learn their Father's Lessons: There we find him true in his Promises: There he manifests himself incomparably to his Children. Our Prisons are Schools of Defence, where we learn how to ward off all the blows, that the world, flesh, or Devil would foil us with; all which we learn of our Captain Christ. Here we are quit of the vain allurements of the world: Here we are freed of the fear of meeting idols in the streets: Here we may without check call upon God, ☜ and sing Psalms unto him. Therefore let us not refuse to hear Sermons for fear of going to Prison. N. Newman. john Newman in his written Answer to Suffragen Thornton. — It may please you to understand that good Ministers all the time of King Edward's reign taught us diligently, persuading us by the Allegations of God's Word, that there was no Transubstantiation, nor corporal Presence in the Sacrament: their Doctrine was not believed of us suddenly, but by their continual preaching, and also by our continual Prayer unto God, that we might never be deceived, but if it were true, that he would incline our hearts unto it; and if it were not true, that we might never believe it. We weighed, That they labourel with God's Word, etc.— Wherefore until such time as our consciences are otherwise taught and instructed by God's Word, we cannot with safeguard of our consciences take it, as many suppose at this time. And we trust in God, that the Queen's Highness, and her most Honourable Council, will not in a matter of Faith use compulsion or violence; because Faith is the gift of God, and cometh not of man, or of man's Laws, nor at such time as men require it, but at such time as God giveth it. Pag. 392. Being asked whether he would stand to what he had said; I must need stand to it (said he) till I be persuaded by a further truth. It being replied; Nay, you will not be persuaded, but stand to your own Opinion: Nay (said he) I stand not to mine own Opinion, God I take to witness, but only to the Scriptures of G●d; and I take God to witness, that I do nothing of presumption, but that that I do is only my Conscience; and if there be a further truth than I see, except it appear a truth to me, I cannot receive it as a truth. And seeing Faith is the gift of God, and cometh not of man; for it is not you that can give me Faith, nor no man else; therefore I trust ye will bear the more with me, seeing it must be wrought by God; and when it shall please God to open a further truth to me, I shall receive it with all my heart. Hab. 2. Heb. 10. In his Confession of his Faith.— The Lord is the Protector of my life. The just shall live by Faith; and if he withdraw himself, my soul shall have no pleasure in him. Pag. 393. — Thus have I declared my Faith briefly, which were no Faith, if I were in doubt of it. This Faith I desire God to increase in me. Praise God for his gifts. Nicaise. Fox, Vol. 3. cont. pag. 33. Nicaise a Say-maker in Tournay for refusing to live according to the Customs of the Romish Church, and to observe the traditions invented by her, etc. being condemned, and having heard the sentence, as he rose up, he said, Now praised be God. As he was led to execution, seeing a great multitude of people, he lifted up his voice, and said, O ye men of Tournay, open your eyes, awake ye that sleep, and stand up from the dead, and Christ shall give ye light. As he joyfully ascended up the Scaffold, he said, Lord, they have hated me without a cause. As he was fastening to the Stake, he said, Eternal Father, have pity and compassion upon me, according as thou hast promised to all, that ask the same of thee in thy son's Name. Noyes. When john Noyes was asked by his Brother in Law if he did fear death, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 851. when the Bishop gave judgement against him, he answered, He thanked God he feared death no more at that time than himself, or any other did being at liberty. Being bound to the Stake, he said, Fear not them that can kill the body, but fear him that can kill both body and soul, and cast it into everlasting fire. When he saw his Sister weeping and making moan for him, he bade her, Weep not for him, but weep for her sins. When a Faggot was set against him he took it, and kissed it, and said, Blessed be the time that ever I was born to come to this. He said also, Good people bear witness that I do believe to be saved by the merits and passion of Jesus Christ, and not by my own deeds. When the fire was kindled and burned about him, he said, Lord have mercy upon me, Christ have mercy upon me, Son of David have mercy upon me. In his Letter to his Wife out of Prison.— You desired me to send you some tokens to remember me. I therefore send you these Scriptures even for a remembrance. St. Peter saith, Dear beloved, be not troubled with this heat, that is now come among you to try you, as though some strange thing had happened unto you, but rejoice in as much as ye are partakers of Christ's sufferings, that when his glory appeareth, ye may be merry and glad. If ye be railed on for the Name of Christ, happy are ye; for the Spirit of glory and the Spirit of God restest on you.— See that none of you suffer as a Murderer, etc. but if any suffer as a Christian, let him not be ashamed, but glorify God in this behalf; for the time is come that judgement must begin at the House of God: If it first begin at us, what shall the end of them be, that believe not the Gospel of God? Wherefore let them that suffer according to the will of God, commit their souls to him in well doing. St. Paul saith, 2 Tim. 3. All that will live godly in Christ jesus must suffer persecution. St. john saith, See that ye love not the world, nor the things of the world: If any man love the world, the love of the Father is not in him; for all that is in the world, as the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life is not of the Father, but is of the world, which vanisheth away and the lust thereof, but he that fulfilleth the will of God abideth for ever. 2 Cor. 1. — St. Paul saith, What fellowship hath righteousness with unrighteousness? what company hath light with darkness? or what part hath the Believer with the Infidel? etc. Wherefore come out from among them, and separate yourselves now (saith the Lord) and touch no unclean thing, so will I receive you, and I will be a Father unto you, and ye shall be my Sons and Daughters, saith the Lord Almighty.— So farewell Wife and Children, and leave worldly care, and see that ye be diligent to pray. Take no thought (saith Christ) saying what ye shall eat, Matth. 6. or what ye shall drink, or wherewith shall we be clothed? (after all these things do the Geneiles seek) for your heavenly Father knoweth that you have need of all these things; but seek ye first the Kingdom of God and the righteousness thereof, and all these things shall be ministered to you.— O. O●colampadius. He fell sick in the year 1531. and of his age 49. about the same time that Zuinglius was unhappily slain. See his Life in Melch. ●dam. pag. 55.56. His grief for his death much increased his sickness. He foretold his own death: was very desirous to enjoy the heavenly Light. Sending for the Ministers of the Gospel to him, he spoke to them thus; O my Brethren, you see what is done: The Lord is come, he is, he is now calling me away.— What shall I say unto you, the Servants of the Lord, whom the love of God your Master, the same study and doctrine have most intimately united, now that I am to take my leave of you? Salvation, hopes of Heaven, Truth, Light for our feet is procured by Christ for us: It becomes us to cast away all sadness, all fear of life and death, etc. My Brethren, this only remains, That we who have for some time walked in the ways of Christ, continue constant and faithful followers of him therein, persevering in purity of doctrine and holiness of life. Other things Jesus Christ the Lord, who is able and willing to look after his own concernments, will take care of. He will defend his own Church. Go to then, O my Brethren, so let your light shine forth, that God the Father may be glorified in us, and the Name of Christ be made illustrious and conspicuous by the light of your life. Continue to love one another unfeignedly. Led your whole life as in the sight, as under the eye of God. In vain do we press to holiness, if our words be without deeds: there is need of the Light of life, and the heavenly Spirit, if we will confound Satan, and convert this world unto Christ the Lord. O my Brethren, What a cloud is there arising? what a storm a coming? what a defection is at hand? But it becomes you to stand fast. The Lord, who is careful of his own affairs, will be present with you.— For myself, I pass not the horrible aspersion of corrupting the Truth, that is c●st upon me. I am just now going before the Tribunal of Christ, and that (through grace) with a clear conscience. There it will appear, that I have not seduced the Church.— The night before he died, when a very dear Friend returned to him, Oecolampadius asked him, What news he had brought? His Friend answering, None. I will tell you some then (said Oeculampadius) I shall presently be with my Lord Christ. Ward, pag. 152. A while after being asked, Whether the light offended him? He putting his hand to his heart, said, Here is abundance of light. Here is light enough. Ogner, or Ogvier. Ward, pag. 153▪ 154. Robert Ognier's Son said to his Father and Mother at the Stake with him, Behold millions of Angels about us, and the Heavens opened to receive us. To a Friar that railed; Thy cursings are blessings. To a Nobleman that offered him life and promotion; Do you think me such a fool, that I should change eternal things for temporary? And to the people; We suffer as Christians, not as Thiefs or Murderers. Fox, Vol. 3. con●. pag. 2. When the Prov●st of Lile had seized on Robert Ogvier, his Wife, and his two Sons, Baudicon, and Martin, as they were conveyed along through the streets of the City, Baudicon with a loud voice said, O Lord, assist us by thy grace, not only to be Prisoners for thy Name, but to confess thy holy Truth in all purity before men, so far as to seal the same with our bloods for the edification of thy poor Church. When they were brought before the Magistrates, they said unto Robert Ogvier, etc. It is told us that you never come to Mass, yea and also dissuade others from coming thereto, and that you maintain Conventicles in your Houses. He answered, Whereas you lay to my charge that I go not to Mass, I refuse so to do indeed, because the death and precious blood of the Son of God, and his sacrifice is utterly abolished there, and trodden under foot; for Christ by one sacrifice hath perfected for ever them that are sanctified. Hebr. 10.14. Matt. ●5. 9. — The Mass is the mere invention of men, and you know what Christ saith, In vain do they worship me, teaching for Doctrines the Commandments of men.— As for the second Accusation, I cannot nor will deny, but there have met together in my House honest people fearing God, for the advancement of God's glory, and the good of many, and not to wrong any. I knew indeed the Emperor had forbid it: but what then? I knew also that Christ in his Gospel hath commanded it; Matt. ●8. 20. Where two or three are gathered together in my Name, there (saith he) am I in the midst of them. Thus you see I could not well obey the Emperor, but I must disobey Christ In this case than I choose rather to obey my God, then man. When one of the Magistrates demanded what they did, when they met together? Baudicon the eldest Son of Robert Ogvier answered, If it please you my Masters to give me leave, I will open the business at large to you. Leave being granted, he lifting up his eyes to Heaven, began thus; When we meet together in the Name of our Lord Jesus Christ, to hear the Word of God, we first of all prostrate upon our knees before God, and in the humility of our spirits, do make a confession of our sins before his Divine Majesty: Then we pray, that the Word of God may be rightly divided, and purely preached: we also pray for our Sovereign Lord the Emperor, and for all his honourable Councillors, that the Commonwealth may be peaceably governed to the glory of God; yea we forget not you, whom we acknowledge our Superiors, entreating our good God for you, and for this whole City, that you may maintain it in tranquillity. Thus I have summarily related what we do. Think you now, whether we have offended highly in this matter of our assembling. When Robert and Baudicon were condemned, they praised God for the Sentence; and when they were returned to Prison, after Sentence was past, they rejoiced that the Lord did them that honour to enrol them in the number of his Martyrs. Robert being told by a seducing Friar, That i● he would give ear to him, he would warrant him he should do well: Poor man (said he) how darest thou attribute that unto thyself, which belongs to the eternal God, and so rob him of his honour; For it seems by thy speech, Pag. 3. that if I will hearken to thee, thou wilt become my Saviour. No, no, I have one only Saviour Jesus Christ, who by and by will deliver me from this present evil world. I have one Doctor, Matt. 17.5. whom the heavenly Father hath commanded me to hear; and I purpose to hearken to none other. Another Friar exhorting him to have pity of his soul which Christ had redeemed: Thou willest me (said the good old man) to pity mine own soul. Dost not thou see what pity I have on it, when fo● th● Name of Christ I willingly abandon this body of mine ●n the fire, hoping to day to be with him in Paradise. I have put all my confidence in God, and my hope wholly is fixed on the merits of Christ's Death and Passion: he will direct me the right way unto his Kingdom. I believe whatsoever the holy Prophets and Apostles have written, and in that Faith will I live and die. Baudicon said, Let my Father alone and trouble him not thus, he is an old man, and hath an infirm body, hinder him not I pray you from receiving the Crown of Martyrdom. One telling Baudicon, That he would sell all he was worth to buy Faggots to burn him, and that he found too much favour; He answered, The Lord show you more mercy. Some of the Friars having fastened a Crucifix betwixt the old man's hands, when Baudicon espied it, he said, Alas! Father, what do you now? will you play the Idolater even at the last hour? and then pulling the Idol out of his hands, threw it away, saying, What cause hath the people to be offended with us, for not receiving of a Jesus Christ of wood? We bear upon our hearts the Cross of Christ, the Son of the everliving God, feeling his Word written therein in letters of Gold. Baudicon beginning to sing on the Scaffold the Sixteenth Psalm, a Friar cried out, Do ye hear my Masters, what wicked errors these Heretics sing to beguile the people withal: whereupon Baudicon replied, Thou simple Idiot, callest thou the Psalms of David the Prophet, Errors? But no marvel; for thus you are wont to blaspheme against the Spirit of God. Then turning his eye to his Father, who was about to be chained to the Stake, he said, Be of good courage, Father, the worst will be passed by and by. The old man complaining of the blow, which the Executioner gave him on the foot, as he was fastening to the Post, a Friar said, Ah these Heretics they would be counted Martyrs forsooth, but if they be but touched a little, they cry out as if they were killed: Whereupon Baudicon said, Think you then that we fear the Tormentors? No such matter; for had we feared the same, we had never exposed our bodies to this so shameful and painful a kind of death. Then he often reiterated those short breathe, O God, Father everlasting, accept the sacrifice of our bodies, for thy wellbeloved Son Jesus Christ his sake. With his eyes fixed on Heaven, he said to his Father, Behold for I see Heavens open, and millions of Angels ready pressed to receive us, rejoicing to see us thus witnessing the Truth in the view of the world. Father, let us be glad and rejoice; for the joys of Heaven are set open to us. When the fire was kindled he often repeated this in his Father's ear, Faint not, Father, nor be afraid; yet a very little while, and we shall enter into the Heavenly Mansions. The last words they were heard to pronounce, were, jesus Christ, thou Son of God, into thy hands we commend our spirits. Pag. 4. jane the Wife of Robert, whilst in Prison, (separated from her Son Martin) was drawn away by a Monk and prevailed with to let go her first faith; and having promised to draw her Son Martin from his errors, he was suffered to come to her: which when he understood, O Mother (said he) what have you done? Have you denied him, who hath redeemed you? Alas! What evil hath he done you, that you should requite him with this so great an injury and dishonour? Now I am plunged into that woe, which I have most feared. Ah good God that I should live to see this. This pierceth me to the very heart. His Mother hearing this, and seeing his tears, she with tears cried out, O Father of mercies, be merciful to me miserable sinner, and cover my transgression under the righteousness of thy blessed Son. Lord, enable me with strength from above to stand to my first Confession, and make me to abide steadfast therein, even to my last breath. When they that had seduced her came to her again, with detestation she said, Avoid Satan, get thee behind me: from henceforth thou hast neither part nor portion in me. I will by the help of God stand to my first Confession; and if I may not sign it with ink, I will seal it with my blood. When jane and Martin heard the Sentence past, returning to Prison they said, Now blessed be our God, who causeth us thus to triumph over our Enemies. This is the wished hour. Our gladsome day is come. Let us not then (said Martin) forget to be thankful for the honour he doth us in conforming us to the image of his Son. Let us remember those that have traced this death before us; for this is the high way to the Kingdom of Heaven. Let us then, good Mother, go on boldly out of the Camp with the Son of God, bearing his reproach with all his holy Martyrs; for so we shall find passage into the glorious Kingdom of the everliving God. Some of the Company not brooking these words, said, We see now thou Heretic, that thou art wholly possessed body and soul with a Devil, as was thy Father and Brother, who are both in Hell. Martin replied, Sirs, as for your rail and cursings our God will this day turn them into blessings in the sight of all his holy Angels. A certain Temporizer endeavouring to stagger Martin by the consideration of the multitude that believed not as he did; his Mother said, Sir, Christ Jesus our Lord saith, Matt. 7.12. That it is the wide gate and broad way that leadeth to destruction, and therefore many go in thereat: but the gate is narrow that leadeth to life, and few there be that find it. Do ye then doubt whether we be in the straight way, or no, when ye behold our sufferings? Would you have a better sign than this to know whether we are in the right way? Compare our Doctrine with that of your Priests and Monks. We for our part are determined to have but one Christ, and him crucified: We only embrace the Scriptures of the Old and New Testament. Are we deceived in believing that which the holy Prophets and Apostles have taught? Martin being asked, Whether he thought himself wiser than so many learned Doctors? answered, I pray you Sir doth not Christ our Lord tell us, That his Father hath hid the secrets of his Kingdom from the wise and prudent, Matt. 11. ●● job 5.13. and revealed them to Babes? And doth not the Lord oftentimes catch the wise in their own craftiness? Then came into the Prison to Martin two men of great Authority, and persuading him to recant, promised him great matters, etc. Martin gave them this answer, Sirs, you present before me many temporal commodities: but alas! do you think me so simple, as to forsake an eternal Kingdom, for enjoying a short transitory life? No Sirs, it is too late to speak to me now of worldly commodities: Speak of those spiritual ones, which God hath prepared for me to day in his Kingdom. I purpose not to hearken after any other. Only let me crave one hours' respite to myself, to give myself to Prayer. Afterwards Martin declared the effect of this combat to certain Brethren in Prison, saying, Let us lift up our heads, Brethren, the brunt is over; this I hope is their last assault. Forget not I pray you the holy Doctrine of the Gospel, nor those good Lessons, which you have learned from our Brother Guy (probably he meant Mr. Guy de Brez, of whom before in letter B.) Manifest it now to all, that you have received them not only into your ears, but also into your hearts. Follow me. We lead you the way. Fear not, God will never leave you, nor forsake you. jane having ascended the Scaffold, cried out to Martin, Come up, come up my Son. As Martin was speaking to the people, she said, Speak out, Martin, that it may appear to all, that we die not Heretics. She being bound to the Stake, said, We are Christians, and that which we now suffer, is not for murder, or theft, but because we will believe no more than the Word of God teacheth us. Both rejoiced, that they were counted worthy to suffer for the same. When the fire was kindled, with lifting up their hands to Heaven in an holy accord, they said, Lord jesus into thy hands we commend our spirits. Oldcastle. Sir john Oldcastle, Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 727. Lord Cobham, was of great birth, and in great favour with King Henry the Fifth, so as Arch Bishop Arundel durst not meddle with him, till he knew the King's mind. The King when he heard the Priest's Accusations, promised to deal with him himself, which accordingly he did in private, admonishing him to submit himself to his Mother, the holy Church, and as an obedient Child to acknowledge himself cupable. The Christian Knight thus answered the King. Most worthy Prince. I am always prompt and ready to obey, forasmuch as I know you a Christian King, and the appointed Minister of God, bearing the sword to the punishment of evil doers, and for safeguard of them that be virtuous. Unto you (next my Eternal God) owe I my whole obedience, and submit thereunto (as I have done ever) all that I have, either of Fortunes or Nature, ready at all times to fulfil whatsoever ye shall in the Lord command me. But as touching the Pope and his Spirituality, I owe them neither suit nor service; forasmuch as I know him by the Scripture to be the great Antichrist, the son of perdition, the open Adversary of God, and the abomination standing in the holy Place. When he was by a wi●e cited to appear before the Arch Bishop, etc. he told the Messenger (though he affirmed to him that it was the King's pleasure that he should obey that citation of the Sumner) that he would in no case consent to those most devilish practices of the Priests. Upon his non-appearance, the Arch Bishop judged him contumacious, and afterwards excommunicated him, Pag. 728. etc. This constant Servant of the Lord perceiving himself compassed on every side with deadly dangers, he wrote a Christian Confession of his Faith, and signed and sealed it with his own hand, which was a brief Exposition of the Common Sum of the Church's Faith, called the Apostles Creed. In the close thereof.— I believe the Universal Law of God to be most true and perfect, and they which do not follow it in their faith and works (at one time or another) can never be saved: whereas he that seeketh it in faith, accepteth it, learneth it, delighteth therein, and performeth it in love, shall taste for it the felicity of everlasting innocency. This is my faith also, that God will ask no more of a Christian Believer in this life, but only to obey the Precepts of that most blessed Law. If any Prelates of the Church require more, or any other kind of obedience, he contemneth Christ, exalting himself above God, and so becomes an open Antichrist. All the Premises I believe particularly, and generally all that God hath left in his holy Scripture, that I should believe. This Confession he delivered to the King, desiring him that it might be examined by the most godly, wife, & learned men of his Realm, and if it be found in all points agreeable to the Verity, that he might be holden for a true Christian; if it be proved otherwise, let it be condemned, provided that he be taught a better Belief by the Word of God. But the King would not receive it, but commanded it to be delivered to his Judges. Being threatened by Arch Bishop Arundel, Pag. 729. that he should be proclaimed an Heretic: He said, Do as ye shall think best, for I am at a point, I shall stand to my Bill to the death. The Arch Bishop telling him, Pag. 730. That all Christians should follow the Determinations of holy Church: he said, That he would gladly believe and observe whatsoever the holy Church of Christ's institution had determined, or whatsoever God had willed him either to believe or do; but that the Pope of Rome with his Cardinals, Arch Bishops, Bishops, etc. had lawful power to determine such matters as stood not throughly with his Word, he would not affirm. When the Arch Bishop sent him their Determination concerning the Sacrament of the Altar, etc. he saw that God had given them over for their unbeliefs sake, into most deep errors and blindness of mind, and that their uttermost malice was purposed against him, however he should answer, and therefore he put his life into the hands of God, desiring his only Spirit to assist him in his next Answer. At his second Appearance the Arch Bishop offering to absolve him from the Curse that was against him; He with a cheerful countenance said, God hath said by his holy Prophet, Maledicam benedictionibus vestris, i. e. I shall curse where you do bless: and further said, I will not desire your Absolution; for I never trespassed against you. And with that he kneeled down on the pavement, holding up his hands towards Heaven, Pag. 731. and said, I shrieve me here unto thee, my Eternal Living God, that in my frail youth I offended thee, O Lord, most grievously in pride, wrath, and gluttony, in covetousness and in lechery. Many men have I hurt in mine anger, etc. Good Lord I ask thee mercy. And therewith weepingly stood up again, and said with a mighty voice; Lo, good people, lo, for the breaking of God's Law, and his great Commandments, they never yet cursed me; but for their own Laws and Traditions most cruelly do they handle both me and other men; and therefore both they and their Laws by the promise of God shall utterly be destroyed. Being asked if he believed not in the determinations of the Church? No forsooth (said Ire) for it is no God. Pag. 732. Being taxed to be one of Wickliff's Scholars: As for the virtuous man Wickliff (said he) I speak it before God and man, that before I knew that despised Doctrine of his, I never abstained from sin; but since I learned therein to fear my Lord God, it hath otherwise I trust been with me. So much grace I could never find in all your glorious instructions. He said further, Your Fathers the old Pharisees ascribed Christ's miracles to Belzebub, and his Doctrine to the Devil, and you as their natural children have still the self same judgement concerning his faithful Followers. They that rebuke your vicious living must needs be Heretics, and that must your Doctors prove, when you have no Scripture to do it.— Since the venom of judas was shed into the Church, ye never followed Christ, nor stood in the perfection of Gods Law. Being asked what he meant by that venom? He answered, Your Possessions and Lordships; for than cried an Angel in the air (as your own Church's mention) Woe, woe, woe, this Day is venom shed into the Church of God.— Rome is the very nest of Antichrist, and out of that nest come all his Disciples, of whom Prelates, Priests and Monks are the Body, these piled Friars are the Tail, which cover his most filthy part.— This is not only my saying, but the Prophet Isaiah, who saith, He that preacheth lies is the tail behind.— Then said he unto them all, Mat. 23. Christ saith in his Gospel, Woe unto you Scribes and Pharisees, Hypocrites, for ye close up the Kingdom of Heaven before men, neither enter ye in yourselves, nor suffer any other that would enter into it, but ye stop up the ways thereunto by your own Traditions.— The Arch Bishop telling him, That none should preach in his Diocese, yea in his jurisdiction, that make division or dissension among the poor Commons: Pag. 733. He answered, Both Christ and his Apostles were accused of sedition-making; yet were they most peaceable men. But Daniel and Christ prophesied, That such a troublesome time should come, as hath not been yet since the world's beginning: and this prophecy is partly fulfilled in your days, etc. Christ saith also, If these days of yours were not shortened, scarcely should any flesh be saved; therefore look for it justly, for God will shorten your days. Being asked what he said of the Pope? He said, As I said before, so say I again, That he and you together make up whole Antichrist.— Pag. 735. After the Arch Bishop had read the Bill of his Condemnation, the Lord Cobham said with a cheerful countenance; Though you judge my Body, which is a wretched thing, yet am I certain and sure, ye can do no harm to my soul, no more than could Satan to the soul of job. He that created that will of his infinite mercy and promise save it; I have therein no manner of doubt. And therewith he turned himself to the people, and said with a loud voice, Good people, for Gods love be well aware of these men, for they will else beguile you, and lead you blindfold into Hell with themselves; for Christ saith plainly unto you, If one blind man lead another, they are like both to fall into a ditch. After this he fell down upon his knees, and before them all prayed thus for his enemies, Lord God Eternal, I beseech thee of thy great mercy sake forgive my pursuers, if it be thy blessed Will. Pag. 775. Here it is observable, That Arch Bishop Arundel that passed Sentence of Death against Lord Cobham, did feel the stroke of Death, and had the Sentence of God executed upon him, before the Death of this famous Martyr. The Arch Bishop died Feb. 20. 1414. and this condemned Lord survived his Condemner three or four years. Oom. Wonter Oom writes thus from his Prison at Antwerp. Fox, Vol. 3. cont. p. 28. — Wellbeloved Brother and Sister, whom I love dearly for the Truth's sake, and for your faith in Christ Jesus. These are to certify you that I enjoy the comfort of a good conscience, etc. Whosoever will forsake this present evil world, and become followers of their Captain Christ, must make account to meet with many persecutions; for Christ hath told us aforehand, Mat. 10.12. john 16.3. 2 Tim. 3.12. Phil. 1.24. Mat. 5.11, 12. 1 Pet. 2.21. Heb. 12.2. 2 Cor. 8.9. Rom. 5.2. Heb. 12. that we should be hated, persecuted, and banished out of the world for his Names sake; and this they will do, because they have neither known the Father n●r me. But be not afraid, for I have overcome the world. St. Paul also witnesseth the same thing, saying, All that will live godly in Christ jesus, must suffer persecution, and to you ie it given to suffer, etc. And doth not our Lord jesus say, Blessed are you when men persecute you, and speak all manner of evil falsely, etc. Now whereto serveth all this, but to bring us into a conformity with our Lord and Master Jesus Christ? for Christ hath suffered for us, leaving us an example, that we should follow his steps. He endured the Cross, and despised the shame, etc. and became poor to make us rich. By him also are we brought by faith into that state of grace wherein we stand, rejoicing in the hope of the glory of God, knowing that tribulation worketh patience, etc. Wherefore be not afraid of the fiery trial that is now sent among us to prove us; for what father, loving his child, doth not correct it? Even so doth the Lord correct those whom he loves; for if we should be without correction, whereof all true Christians are partakers, than were we bastards and not sons. Prov. 3.11, 12. And therefore Solomon saith, Despise not the chastning of the Lord, etc. Fear not then to follow the footsteps of Christ; for he is the Head, and we are the Members. Acts 14.22. We must after his example through many tribulations enter into Heaven. Let us say with St. Paul, Phil. 1.21. Rom. 7.24. Christ is unto me in life and death advantage; and, O wretched creatures that we are, who shall deliver us from this body of death.— It is a good thing to hope, and quietly to wait for the salvation of the Lord: Pag. 29. and to bear the yoke in ones youth, etc.— The salvation of the righteous is of the Lord; Lam. 3.26. Psal. 37.39. 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7, 8. He is their strength in the time of trouble. Wherefore giving all diligence, let us add to faith virtue, and to virtue knowledge, and to knowledge temperance, and to temperance patience, and to patience godliness, etc. Out of my Role, Dec. 11. 1562. Origen. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 70. See his life in Clarks Marrow of Eccles. Hist. pag. 32. When he was but seventeen years old, his Father being carried to Prison, he had such a fervent mind to suffer Martyrdom with him, that he would have thrust himself into the Persecutors hands, had it not been for his Mother, who in the night time privily stole away his clothes, and his very shirt also: whereupon more for shame to be seen naked, then for fear to die, he was constrained to remain at home; yet when he could do no more, he wrote to his Father in Prison thus; See O Father, that you do not change your resolution for my sake. Whites little Bo●k for Children, p. 47. His fame was so great, that the Emperor Severus sent for him to come to Rome, and commanded the Provost of Egypt to furnish him with all things necessary for his journey. Pag. 48. The Provost was very careful to provide a Ship, and divers Garments, etc. But Origen would receive no part thereof, no not so much as hose or shoes, but went in a single Garment of Cloth, and bare foot went to Rome: and when at his arrival there were brought to him a Mule and a Chariot, to use which he liked best, he answered, That he was much less than his Master Christ, who road but one day in all his life, and that was on a silly she Ass; and therefore he would not ride, except he were sick or decrepit, as his legs might not serve him to go. When he was brought into the presence of the Emperor, Pag. 49. and his Mother, they saluted him, and rejoiced much to see him. Being demanded what he professed? he answered, Verity. The Emperor ask him what he meant thereby? It is the Word (said he) of the Living God, Pag. 50. which is infallible. The Emperor asked which is the Living God, and why he so called him? Origen answered, That he did put that distinction for a difference from them whom men (being long drowned in error) did call their gods, whom they confess to have been mortal ones, and to have died; but the God whom he preached was ever living, and never died, and is the Life of all things that be, Pag. 51. like as he was the Creator of them.— The Emperor telling him, that he much marvelled why men of such great and wonderful knowledge should honour for God a Man, that was crucified, being but of a poor estate and condition: O noble Emperor (said Origen) consider what honour the wise Athenians at this present do to the name and image of Codrus, their last King; for that when they had war with their enemies, who had answer made by the Oracle of Apollo, That if they slew not the King of Athens, they should have the Victory; Pag. 52. Codrus hearing thereof, preferring the safeguard of his people before his own life, took to him garments of a Slave, and bearing upon his shoulder a burden of sticks, he went to his enemy's Camp, and there quarrelling of purpose with some of them, and in the press hurting one with his knife, he was by him that was hurt struck through the body, and slain; which being known to the enemies, they being confused, raised their Camp, and departed; and for this cause the Athenians have ever since had the name of Codrus in reverence worthily, and not without cause. Now then consider most Excellent Prince, Pag. 53. how much more worthily, with what greater reason and bounden duty ought we and all men to honour Christ, being the Son of God, and God, who not only to preserve mankind from danger of the Devil, his ancient enemy, but also to deliver man out of his dark and stinking dungeon of error, being sent by God the Father from the highest Heavens, willingly took on him the servile garment of a mortal body; and hiding his Majesty, lived under the visage of poverty. And finally, not of his enemies immediately, but much more against reason, of his own chosen people the jews, unto whom he had extended benefits innumerable, and after his temporal Nativity, were his natural people and subjects, he quarrelling with them, by declaring to them their abuses, and pricking them with condign rebukes, at the last he was not slain with so easy a death as Codrus was, Pag. 54. but in most cruel fashion was scourged, until no place in his body was without wounds, and then had long and sharp thorns set and pressed upon his head, and after long torments and despites, he was constrained to bear an heavy Cross, whereon afterwards both his hands and feet were nailed with long great nails of iron, and the Cross with his naked and bloody body, being lift up on high, was let fall with violence into a Mortais, that his joints were loosened; and notwithstanding all this torment and ingratitude, Pag. 55. he never grudged, but lifting up his eyes to heaven, he prayed with a loud voice, saying, Father forgive them, for they know not what they do. This was the Charity most incomparable of the Son of God employed for the redemption of mankind, who by the transgression of Adam, the first man that was created, was taken prisoner by the Devil, i. e. kept in the bondage of sin and error, from actual visage of God's Majesty, until he were on this wise redeemed, as it was ordained at the beginning.— But what maketh you bold to affirm (said the Emperor) that Jesus, Pag. 56. which in this wise was crucified, was the Son of God? Sir (said Origen) sufficient testimony, which of all creatures reasonable ought to be believed, and for most certain proof to be allowed. What testimony is that said the Emperor? Truly (said Origen) it is in divers things, First, the promise of God, by whom this world was made; also by his holy Scriptures, speaking by the mouths of his Prophets, as well Hebrews as Greeks, and others whom ye call Vates and Sibylla's; also by the Nativity of Jesus of a pure Virgin, without carnal company of a man, the most clean and pure form of his living without sin, his Doctrine divine and celestial, his miracles most wonderful and innumerable, all grounded on charity only, without ostentation, his undoubted and perfect Resurrection the third day after he was put to death, his glorious Ascension up into Heaven in the presence and sight of five hundred persons, which were virtuous and of credence; also the gift of the Holy Ghost in speaking all manner of Languages, and interpreting the Scriptures, not only by himself, but afterwards by his Apostles and Disciples, and given to others by imposition of their hands. Pag. 58. And all these ordinarily followed, according to the said Promises and Prophecies. In the reign of Decius for the Doctrine of Christ he underwent bands and torments in his body, Clark, pag. 36. racking with bars of irons, Dungeons, besides terrible threats of death and burning, etc. At length hearing that some Christians were carried to an Idol-Temple to force them to sacrifice, he out of his zeal ran thither to encourage and dissuade them from it? When his Adversaries saw him, they let go the other, and laid hold upon him, putting him to his choice, whether he would offer Incense to the Idol, or have his body defiled with a foul and ugly Blackmoor. He chose to offer Incense. Then did they presently put Incense into his trembling hands, and whilst he demurred upon it, they took his hands, and caused him to throw it into the fire, and thereupon presently cried out, Origen hath sacrificed, Origen hath sacrificed. After this fact he was excommunicated by the Church; and being filled with shame and sorrow he left Alexandria, and came to jerusalem, where he was even constrained by importunity to preach to them. He took his Bible, opened it, and the first place he cast his eye upon was this Scripture, Unto the wicked saith God, Psal. 50.16. Why dost thou preach my Laws, and take my Covenant into thy mouth When he had read these words, he sat down, and burst out into abundance of tears, the whole Congregation weeping with him also, so that he was not able to say any more unto them. After this he wandered up and down in great grief and torment of Conscience, and wrote the following Lamentation: In the bitterness and grief of mind I go about to speak unto them, who shall hereafter read this confused writing. Pag. 37. But how can I speak, when my tongue is tied up, and my lips dare not once move or wag? My tongue doth not his office, my throat is dried up, and all my senses and instruments are polluted with iniquity.— O ye Saints and blessed of God, with waterish eyes, and wet cheeks soaked in dolour and pain, I beseech you to fall down before the Seat of Almighty God, for me miserable sinner, who by reason of my sins dare not crave aught at the hands of God. Woe is me, because of the sorrow of my heart.— Woe is me my Mother, that ever thou broughtest me forth:— A righteous man to be conversant in unrighteousness: an heir of the Kingdom of God to be now an inheritor of the Kingdom of Satan: a Minister to be found wallowing in impiety: a man beautified with honour and dignity, to be in the end blemished with shame and ignominy:— a lofty Turret, yet suddenly thrown to the ground: a fruitful Tree, yet quickly withered: a burning light, yet forthwith darkened: a running fountain, yet by and by dried up. Woe is me that ever I was decked with gifts and graces, and now seen pitifully deprived of all. But who will minister moisture to my head? and who will give streams of tears unto my eyes, that I may bewail myself in this my sorrowful plight? Alas! O my Ministry, how shall I lament thee? O all ye my Friends, tender my Case, and pity my Person, that am so dangerously wounded. Pity me, O ye my Friends, for that I have now trodden under foot the Seal and Cognisance of my Profession, and joined in league with the Devil. Pity me, O ye my Friends, for that I am rejected, and cast away from before the face of God. Pag. 38. — There is no sorrow comparable to my sorrow; there is no affliction that exceeds my affliction, no bitterness that passeth my bitterness, no lamentation more lamentable than mine; neither is there any sin greater than mine, and there is no salve for me. Where is that good Shepherd of souls? where is he, that went down from jerusalem to jericho, which salved and cured him that was wounded by Thiefs? Seek me out, O Lord, that am fallen from the higher jerusalem; which have broken the vow I made in Baptism, etc. Alas! that ever I was Doctor, and now occupy not the room of a Disciple. Thou knowest, O Lord, that I sell against my will: whereas I went about to enlighten others, I darkened myself: when I endeavoured to bring others from death to life, I brought myself from life to death: when I minded to present others before God, I presented myself before the Devil: when I desired to be found a Friend and Favourer of Godliness, I was found a Foe and a Furtherer of Iniquity: when I set myself against the Assemblies of the wicked, and reproved their doings, there found I shame, and the most pestilent wound of the Devil. Some promised me to be baptised; but after that I passed from them, the Devil the same night transformed himself into an Angel of Light, and said unto me, When thou art up in the morning, go on, and persuade them and bring them to God: but the Devil going before me prepared the way, etc. and I (O unhappy creature) skipping out of my Bed at the dawning of the day, could not finish my wont Devotion, neither accomplish my usual Prayers, desiring that all men might be saved; and come to the knowledge of the Truth) whilst in the mean time I wrapped myself in the snares of the Devil. I got me to those wicked men, I required of them to perform the covenant made the night before, I silly soul knowing not their subtlety, and we came to the Baptism. O blinded heart, how didst thou not remember? O foolish mind, how didst thou not bethink thyself? O witless brain, how didst thou not understand? Pag. 39 But it was the Devil that lulle● thee asleep, and in the end slew thy unhappy and wretched soul?— O thou Devil, what hast thou done unto me? how hast thou wounded me? I bewailed sometimes the fall of Samson, but now have I fallen worse myself: I bewailed formerly the fall of Solomon, but now have I fallen worse myself.— Samson had his hair cut off, but the Crown of Glory is fallen off my head: Samson lost the carnal eyes of his body, but my spirititual eyes are put out: it was the wiliness of a woman that brought confusion upon him, but it was my tongue brought me into this sinful condition.— Alas! my Church liveth, yet I am a Widower: my Sons be alive, yet I am barren: every creature rejoiceth, and I alone am desolate and sorrowful, etc. Bewail me, O ye blessed people of God, who am banished from God.— Bewail me, who am shut out of the Wedding-chamber of Christ— Bewail me, who am abhorred of the Angels, and severed from the Saints. Pag. 40. — Who knoweth whether the Lord will have mercy on me, and whether he will pity my fall? whether he will be moved with my desolation? whether he will have respect to my humiliation, and incline his tender compassions towards me? I will prostrate myself before the threshold and porch of his Church, that I may entreat all people both small and great, saying unto them, trample and tread me under foot, who am the unsavoury salt; tread upon me, who have no taste, nor favour of God; tread upon me, who am fit for nothing. Now let the Elders mourn, for that the Staff, whereon they leaned, is fallen. Now let the young men mourn, for that their Schoolmaster is fallen. Now let the Virgins mourn, for that the Advancer of Virginity is defiled. Now let the Ministers mourn, for that their Patron and Defender is shamefully fallen. Woe is me, that I fell so lewdly: woe is me, that I fell most dangerously, and cannot rise again. Assist me, O holy Spirit, and give me grace to repent. Let the fountains of tears be opened, and gush out into streams, to see if peradventure I may have grace throughly to repent, and to wipe out of the Book of my Conscience the Accusations Printed therein against me. But thou, O Lord, think not upon my polluted lips, neither weigh thou the tongue, that hath uttered lewd things; but accept of my repentance, etc. and have mercy upon me, and raise me up out of the mire of corruption; for the puddle thereof hath even choked me up. Woe is me, that was sometimes a Pearl glistering in the golden Garland of Glory, but now am thrown into the dust, and trodden in the mire of contempt. Woe is me, that the Salt of God now lieth on the Dunghill, etc. Now I will address myself and turn my talk unto God; Why hast thou lift me up, and cast me down?— I had not committed this impiety, unless thou hadst withdrawn thine hand from me.— But why, O Lord, hast thou shut my mouth by thy holy Prophet David? Have I been the first that sinned? Pag. 41. or am I the first that fell? Why hast thou forsaken me, being desolate, and banished me from among thy Saints, and astonished me, when I should preach thy Laws?— David himself, who hath shut up my mouth, sinned too bad in thy sight; yet upon his repentance, thou receivedst him to mercy. Peter, that was a Pillar, after his fall, wiped it away with salt tears, not continuing long in the puddle of his infidelity.— Now I humbly beseech thee, O Lord, call me back; for that I tread a most perilous and destructive way. Grant me that good Guide and Instructor, the Holy Ghost, that I become not an habitation of Devils: but that I may tread under foot the Devil, that trod upon me, and overcoming his sleights, may be again restored to the joys of thy salvation.— Now all ye, which behold my wound, tremble for fear, and take heed that ye slumber not, nor fall into the like crime: but rather let us assemble together, and rend our hearts, etc. I mourn and am sorry at the heart-root, O ye my Friends, that ever I so fell, etc. Let the Angels lament over me, because of this my dangerous fall. Let the Assemblies of Saints lament over me, for that I am severed from their blessed societies. Let the holy Church lament over me, for that I am woefully declined. Let all the people lament over me, for that I have my death's wound.— Bewail me, that am in like case with the reprobate Jews; for this, which was said unto them by the Prophet, Why dost thou preach my Laws, etc. now soundeth alike in mine ears. What shall I do, that am thus beset with manifest mischiefs? Alas! O death, why dost thou linger? Herein thou dost spite, and bear me malice. O Satan, what mischief hast thou wrought unto me? How hast thou pierced my breast with thy poisonous dart? Thinkest thou, that my ruin will avail any thing at all? Thinkest thou to procure to thyself any ease or rest, whilst that I am grievously tormented, who is able to signify unto thee, whether my sins be wiped and done away? whether I shall not again be coupled with, and made a Companion to the Saints? O Lord, I fall down before thy Mercy-seat, have mercy upon me, who mourn thus out of measure, because I have greatly offended.— Rid my soul, O Lord, from the roaring Lion. The Assembly of the Saints doth make intercession for me, who am an unprofitable Servant. Show mercy, O Lord, to thy wand'ring Sheep, who is subject to the rending teeth of the ravenous Wolf: save me, O Lord, out of his mouth, etc. Let my sackcloth be rend asunder, and gird me with joy and gladness. Let me be received again into the joy of my God. Let me be thought worthy of his Kingdom, through the earnest Petitions of the Church, which sorroweth over me, and humbleth herself to Jesus Christ in my behalf: to whom with the Father, and the Holy Ghost be all glory and honour for ever and ever. Amen. Ormes. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 852. Cicely Ormes of Norwich was taken, for that she said to two Martyrs at the Stake, That she would pledge them of the same Cup. The Chancellor of Norwich offered her, That if she would go to the Church, and keep her tongue, she should be at liberty, and believe as she would: She told him, She would not consent to his wicked desire therein, do with her what he would; for if she should (she said) God would surely plague her. Then the Chancellor told her, He had showed more favour to her, than ever he did to any, and that he was loath to condemn her, etc. But she answered him, Pag. 853. That if he did, he should not be so desirous of her sinful flesh, as she would (by God's grace) be content to give it in so good a quarrel. Before she was taken this time, she had recanted, but never was quiet in Conscience, till she had forsaken all Popery. Between the time she had recanted, and now was taken, she had provided a Letter for the Chancellor, to let him know that she repented her recantation from the bottom of her heart, and would never do the like again while she lived: but before the Letter was delivered, she was taken. When she came to the Stake, she kneeled down and prayed, and then said, Good people, I believe in God the Gather, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost, three Persons and one God. This do I not, nor will I recant; but I recant utterly from the bottom of my heart the doings of the Pope of Rome, and all his Popish Priests and Shavelings. I utterly refuse, and never will have to do with them again by God's grace. And good people, I would ye should not think of me, that I believe to be saved, in that I offer myself here unto the death for the Lords Cause, but I believe to be saved by Christ's Death and Passion: and this my death is, and shall be a witness of my faith unto you all here present. Good people, as many of you as believe as I believe, pray for me. Laying her hand on the Stake, she said, Welcome the Cross of Christ. She was burnt at the same Stake, that that Simon Miller and Elizabeth Cooper was burned at, to whom she had said, That she would pledge them, etc. After she had wiped her hand, blacked with the Stake, she touched the Stake again with her hand, and kissed it, and said, Welcome the sweet Cross of Christ. After the Tormentors had kindled the sire about her, she said, My soul doth magnify the Lord, and my spirit rejoiceth in God my Saviour. Oswald. john Oswald denied to answer any thing, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 706. until his Accusers should be brought face to face before him: Nevertheless (said he) the Fire and Faggots cannot make me afraid; but as the good Preachers, which were in King Edward's days, have suffered and gone before, so am I ready to suffer and come after, and would be glad thereof. P. Palmer. Mr. julius' Palmer was wont to say, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 734. None were to be accounted valiant, but such as could despise injuries. Pag. 735. When he was a Papist he told Mr. Bullingham, than a Papist also, As touching our Religion, even our Consciences bear witness, that we taste not such an inward sweetness in the profession thereof, as we understand the Gospelers to taste in their Religion; yea, to say the truth, we maintain we wot not what, rather of will, then of knowledge. But what then? rather than I will yield to them I will beg my bread. His Conversion was occasioned by the constancy of the Martyrs at their death, he having oft said in King Edward's days, That none of them all would stand to death for their Religion. When he returned from the burning of Bishop Ridley and Bishop Latimer, he cried out, Oh raging Cruelty, Oh Tyranny tragical, and more than barbarous! From that time he studiously sought to understand the Truth for which they suffered. Pag. 736. When he resolved upon leaving his Fellowship in magdalen's College in Oxford, he was demanded of a special Friend, Whither he would go or how he would live? He made this answer, Domini est terra, & plenitudo ejus; The earth is the Lords, and the fullness thereof. Let the Lord work, I will commit myself to God, and the wide world. After his leaving his Fellowship being at Oxford, he was persuaded to hear Friar john, that succeeded Peter Martyr, in the Divinity Lecture; and hearing him blaspheme the Truth, departed; and being found in his Chamber weeping, and asked why he slipped away so on a sudden? O said he, if I had not openly departed, I should have openly stopped my ears; for the Friar's blasphemous talk in depraving the Verity, made my heart worse to smart, then if mine ears had been cut off from my head. Afterwards Supping in the company of the said Friar, and other great Papists, and having refused to kiss his hand, or to pledge him, and being asked why he was so unwise and uncivil in his carriage? He answered, Oleum eorum non demulcet, sed frangit caput meum, The oil of these men doth not supple, but breaketh my head. Another time a little before his death reasoning stiffly for the Truth, Mr. Barwick then Fellow of Trinity College told him, Well, Palmer, now thou art stout and hardy in thy Opinion; but if thou wert once brought to the Stake, I believe thou wouldst tell me another tale. I advise thee beware of the fire, it is a shrewd matter to burn. Truly, said Palmer, I have been in danger of burning once or twice, and hitherto (I thank God) I have escaped. But I judge verily it will be my end at last, welcome be it by the grace of God. Indeed it is an hard matter for them to burn, that have the mind and soul linked to the body, as a thief's foot is tied in a pair of Fetters; but if a man be once able, through the help of God's Spirit, to separate and divide the soul from the body, for him it is no more mastery to burn, then for me to eat this piece of bread. After he had not only resigned up his Fellowship, Pag. 737. but left his School at Reading for Conscience sake, he went to his Mother at Esham, hoping to get from her some Legacies left him by his Father. Her first words to him were, Thou shalt have Christ's curse and mine whithersoever thou goest. Oh Mother (said he) your own curse you may give me, which God knoweth I never deserved, but Gods curse you cannot give me, for he hath already blessed me.— Whereas you have cursed me, I again pray God to bless you, and prosper you all your life long. Pag. 739. At his Trial at Newberry Dr. jeffery told him he would make him recant, and wring peccavi out of his lying lips, ere he had done with him. But I know (said Palmer) that although of myself I be able to do nothing, yet if you and all mine enemies, both bodily and ghostly, should do your worst, you shall not be able to bring that to pass, neither shall ye prevail against God's mighty Spirit, by whom we understand the truth, and speak it so boldly. Ah (said jeffery) are you full of the Spirit? are you inspired with the Holy Ghost? Sir (said Palmer) no man can believe but by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost: therefore if I were not a Spirtual man, and inspired with God's holy Spirit, I were not a true Christian. He that hath not the Spirit of Christ is none of his. I perceive (said jeffery) you lack no words. Christ hath promised (said Palmer) not only to give us store, necessary, but with them such force of matter, as the Gates of Hell shall not be able to confound, or prevail against it. Christ (replied jeffery) made such a promise to his Apostles; I trow you will not compare with them. Palmer answered, with the holy Apostles I may not compare, yet this promise I am certain pertaineth to all such as are appointed to defend God's Truth against his enemies, in the time of their persecution for the same. Then (said jeffery) it pertaineth not to thee. Yes (said Palmer) I am right well assured that through his grace it appertaineth at this present to me, as it shall appear if I may dispute with you before this Audience. Thou art but a beardless Boy (replied jeffery) and darest thou presume to offer disputation, or to encounter with a Doctor. Remember Doctor (said Palmer) the wind blows where is listeth, etc. Out of the mouth of Infants, etc. Thou hast hid these things from the wise, etc. God is not tied to 〈◊〉, wit, learning, place, nor person; and though your wit and learning be greater than mine, yet your belief in the Truth, Pag. 740. and zeal to defend the time is no greater than mine.— The Catholic Church I believe, yet not for her own sake, but be-because she is holy, that is to say, a Church that grounds her belief upon the Word of her Spouse Christ. After Dinner Sir Richard Alridges sent for Mr. Palmer to his Lodging, and by offers tempted him to recant; Mr. Palmer told him, that as he had in two places already recounced his livelihood for Christ's sake, so he would with God's grace be ready to surrender and yield up his life also for the same, when God should send time. When the Knight perceived he would by no means relent, Well Palmer said he, than I perceive one of us twain must be damned, for we be of two Faiths, and certain I am there is but one Faith that leadeth to Life and Salvation. O Sir (said Palmer I hope we both shall be saved. How may that be said the Knight? Right well Sir (said Palmer) for as it hath pleased our merciful Saviour, Pag. 741. according to the Gospel's parable to call me at the third hour of the day, even in my flowers, at the age of four and twenty years, even so I trust he will call you at the eleventh hour of this your old age, and give you everlasting life for your portion. Mr. Winchcome persuading him to take pity on the pleasant flowers of lusty youth before it be too late. Sir (said Palmer, I long for those springing flowers that shall never fade away. Brethren (said Palmer) to his fellow Prisoners an hour before his Execution) be of good cheer in the Lord and faint not. Remember the words of our Saviour Christ, Matth. 5.10, 11, 12. We shall not end our lives in the fire, but change them for a better life: yea for Coles we shall receive Pearls. For God's holy Spirit certifieth our spirit, that he hath even now prepared for us a sweet Supper in Heaven for his sake which suffered first for us. As he arose from Prayer at the Stake, two Popish Friars came behind him, and exhorted him yet to recant and save his soul. Mr. Palmer answered, Away, away, tempt me no longer; away I say from me all ye that work iniquity, for the Lord hath heard the voice of my tears. When he was bound to the Post, he said, Good people pray for us, that we may persevere to the end, and for Christ's sake beware of Popish Teachers, for they deceive you. When the fire was kindled and took hold of his body, and the bodies of john Gwin and Thomas A●kine, they lifted up their hands to Heaven, and quietly and cheerfully, as though they had felt no smart, cried, Lord jesus strengthen us, Lord jesus assist us, Lord jesus receive our souls. After their three heads by force of the raging and devouring flames of the fire were fallen together in a cluster, so that they were all judged already to have given up the ghost, suddenly Mr. Palmer as a man awaked out of sleep, Pag. 742. moved his tongue and jaws, jullus & Palma● slorebit. and was heard to pronounce this word, jesus. Epitaphium in Palmerum. Palmerus flammas Christi pro dogmate p●ssus, Impositum pondus, ceu bona Palma, t●lit. Non retrocessit, sed contra erdentior ivit, Illaesam retinens fortis in igne fidem. Propterea in Coelum nunc Palmifer iste receptus Iustiti● Palmam not pereuntis habot. Paulinus. When he had his City, Shaw 's Tombstone, pag. 33. Gold, Silver, and all taken away, he said, Lord, let not the loss of these things trouble me; for thou art all, and more than all these to me. Pareus. David Pareus, See his Life in Clark 's first Volume of Lives, pag. 917. having foreseen the great miseries, that would come upon the Palatinate, when the Spaniards came in with their Army, by Prodigies and Dreams, he was persuaded to retire himself. At his departure he cried out, O Heidelberg, Heidelberg! But it is better to fall into the hands of God, then of men, whose tender mercies are cruelty. Paschalis. It is a small matter (said Lewis Paschalis) to die once for Christ: Ward, pag. 160. if it might be, I could wish I might die a thousand deaths for him. Patingham. Patrick Patingham being much pressed by Bonner to recant, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 350. He protested that the Church, which the Bishop believed, was no Catholic Church, but was the Church of Satan, and therefore he would never turn to it, etc. Peloquine. The Inquisitors telling Dyonisius Peloquine his life was in his own hands; Ward, pag. 161. Then (said he) it were in an ill keeping. Christ's School hath taught me to save it by losing it, and not by the gain of a few days or years, to lose eternity. Person. Mr. Anthony Person being come to the place of Execution, Fox. Vol. 2. pag. 554. with a cheerful countenance embraced the Post in his arms, and kissing it, said, Now welcome mine own sweet Wife; for this day shalt thou and I be married together in the love and peace of God. Pag. 555. Pulling the straw unto him, he laid a good deal thereof upon the top of his head, saying, This is God's Hat, now am I dressed like a true Soldier of Christ, by whose merits only I trust this day to enter into his joy. Peter. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 45. The Apostle Peter was crucified, his head being down, and his feet upward, he himself so requiring; because he was (he said) unworthy to be crucified after the same manner & form, as the Lord was, etc. Seeing his Wife going to her Martyrdom, (belike as he was yet hanging upon the Cross) he was greatly joyous and glad thereof, and cried out unto her with a loud voice, Remember the Lord jesus. None but Christ, Ward, pag. 138. Nothing but Christ. Phileas. Fox, Vol. 1. pag 103. Phileas, Bishop of the Thumitans, whilst he was in bonds, before he received the Sentence of Death, wrote to the Congregation, over which he was Bishop, exhorting them to persist in the Truth of Christ professed, notwithstanding the Torments inflicted upon the Martyrs in his days, which he thus describes; Some beat them with Cudgels, some with Rods, some with Whips, some with Thongs, and some with Cords.— Some of them, having their hands bound behind their backs, were lifted up upon Timber-logs, and with certain Instruments their members and joints were stretched forth, whereupon their whole bodies hanging were subject to the will of the Tormentors, who were commanded to afflict them with all manner of torments, not on their sides only, but bellies, thighs, and legs. They scratched them with the talens and claws of wild Beasts. Some were seen to hang by one hand upon the Engine, whereby they might feel the more grievous pulling out of the rest of their joints and members.— Some were stretched out (after they were beaten) upon a new kind of Rack. Others were cast down upon the Pavement, where they were oppressed so thick, and so grievously with torments, that it is not almost to be thought what afflictions they suffered. Some died of their torments, not a little shaming and confounding their enemies by their singular patience.— Others were condemned, and willingly and cheerfully were martyred. Philpot. Mr. john Philpot, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 537. Son of Sir Peter Philpot of Huntshire, being threatened to be removed from the King's Bench to Lullards Tower, said, You have power to transfer my Body from place to place at your pleasure, but you have no power over my soul.— God hath appointed a day shortly to come, in the which he will judge us with righteousness, howsoever you judge of us now. When Story threatened him with a worse Prison, he said, God forgive you, and give you more merciful hearts, and show you more mercy in the time of need. Do quickly that you have in hand. Bonner telling him, Pag. 543. He marvelled they were so merry in Prison, singing and rejoicing in their naughtiness; Methinks (said he) you do not well herein, you should rather lament and be sorry. My Lord (said Mr. Phi●pot) the mirth that we make is but in singing certain Psalms, as we are commanded by St. Paul, willing us to be merry in the Lord, singing together in Hymns and Psalms.— We are my Lord in a dark comfortless place, and therefore it behoveth us to be merry, lest as Solomon saith, Sorrowfulness eat up our heart; St. Paul saith, If any man be of upright mind, let him sing; and we therefore to testify we are of an upright mind to God (though we be in misery) do sing. After this conference with Bonner, I was (saith Mr. Philpot) carried to my Lord's Coal-house again, where I with my six Fellows do rouz together in the straw as cheerfully (we thank God) as others do in their Beds of Down. When he was brought before Bonner (and the Bishop of Bath, etc.) a second time, before he answered any questions, he fell down upon his knees before them, and prayed thus; Almighty God, thou art the Giver of all wisdom and understanding, I beseech thee of thine infinite goodness and mercy in Jesus Christ to give me (most vile sinner in thy sight) the Spirit of wisdom to speak and answer in thy Cause, that it may be to the contentation of the Hearers, before whom I stand, and also to my better understanding, if I be deceived in any thing. Bonner telling the Bishop of Wercester, that he did not well to exhort him to make any Prayer; for in this point (said he) they are much like to certain arrant Heretics, of whom Pliny maketh mention, that did daily sing Antelucanos Hymnos, praise unto God before the dawning of the day: Mr. Philpot replied, My Lord, God make me and all you here present such Heretics as those were that sang those Morning Hymns, for they were right Christians, with whom the Tyrants of the world were offended for their well doing. Pag. 544. Afterwards he made this Protestation; I protest here before God, and his Eternal Son Jesus Christ my Saviour, and the Holy Ghost, and his Angels, and you here present, that be Judges of that I speak, that I do not stand in any Opinion of wilfulness, or singularity, but only upon my conscience certainly informed by God's Word, from the which I dare not go for fear of damnation. The Bishop of Worcester telling him he was of ●●ch arrogancy, Pag. 545. singularity, and vainglory, that he would not see what was clearly proved. Ha my Lords (said Mr. Philpot) is it now time, think you, for me to follow singularity or vainglory, since it is now upon danger of my life and death, not only presently, but also before God to come? I know if I die in the true Faith, I shall die everlastingly, or if I do not, as you would have me, you will kill me and many thousands more; yet had I rather perish at your hands, then to perish eternally. And at this time I have lost all my commodities of this world, and now lie in a Coal-house, where a man would not lay a Dog, with the which I am well contented. The Bishop of Gloucester ask him, Pag. 546. What do you think yourself better learned then so many notable learned men as be here? Mr. Philpot answered, Elias alone had the Truth, when there were four hundred Priests against him. The Bishop telling him Elias was deceived, for he thought there had been none good but himself, and there were seven thousand besides him. Mr. Philpot answered, Yea, but he was not deceived in Doctrine as the other four hundred were. He told the Bishop of London at his third appearance before him, Pag. 547. My Lord, in that you say you will ●it on me in judgement to morrow, I am glad thereof, I look for none other but death at your hands, and I am as ready to yield my life in Christ's Cause, as you be to require it. Dr. Story telling him, Pag. 551. What? you purpose to be a stinking Martyr, and to sit in judgement with Christ at the last Day, to judge the twelve Triles of Israel? Yea Sir (said Mr. Philpot) I doubt not thereof, having the promise of Christ, If I die for righteousness sake, which you have begun to persecute in me. Pag. 558. The Chancellor of Lichfield advising him not to cast himself away wilfully; He answered, My conscience beareth me record, that I seek to please God, and that the love and fear of God causeth me to do as I do; and I were of all other creatures most miserable, if for mine own will only I do lose all the commodities I might have in this life, and afterward be cast to damnation; but I am sure it is not my will, whereon I stand, but Gods Will, which will not suffer me to be cast away I am sure. Pag. 560. Mr. Philpot being sent for by Bonn●r that he might go with him to Mass, the Keepers as they were going along asked him, Will you go to Mass; Mr. Philpot answered, My stomach this morning is too raw to digest such raw meats of flesh, blood, and bone. When he was put into the stocks, he said, God be praised that he hath thought me worthy to suffer any thing for his Names sake. Better it is to sit in the stocks of this world, then to sit in the stocks of a damnable conscience. Pag. 562. As he was conveyed out of the Coal-house into a close Tower, joining to Paul's Church, through many straits, There (said he) I called to remembrance, that straight is the way to Heaven. Pag. 565. Harpsfield accusing him for being like himself in Oxford, when in Disputation he would not give over; He said, Mr. Harpsfield, you know in the Schools of Oxford, when we were young men, we did strive much upon vainglory and contention, more than for the Truth; and if I was then in the time of my ignorance earnest in my own cause, I ought now to be earnest in my Master Christ's Cause, and his Truth. I know now that nothing done upon vainglory and singularity can please God, have it never so goodly a show. Morgan telling him he should be burned for his Heresy, Pag. 572. and afterwards go to Hell fire; He said, I tell thee thou Hypocrite, that I pass not this for thy Fire and Faggots, neither do I (I thank God my Lord) stand in fear of the same: my faith in Christ shall overcome them; but the Hell fire which thou threatnest me is thy portion, and is prepared for thee, unless thou speedily repent, and for such Hypocrites as thou art. When Bonner would not grant him candle light, Pag. 573. he said, Seeing I shall not have my request, the Lord shall be my light, I would my Burning Day were to morrow, for this delay is every day to die, and yet not to be dead. Dr. Chedsey telling him, he was not like to die yet; He answered, I am the more sorry thereof, but the Will of the Lord be done of me to his glory. Amen. Bonner telling him, That he made other Prisoners rejoice and sing with him, he said, Yea my Lord, we shall sing, when you and such as you are shall cry Vae, vae, woe, woe, except you repent. The Bishop of Worcester bidding him to follow his Fathers before him, Pag. 574. he said, It is forbidden us of God by the Prophet Ezekiel to follow our Fathers, or to walk in their commandments. The Bishop replying, It is written also in another Place, Ask of your Fathers: Mr. Philpot rejoined, We ought indeed to ask our Fathers that have more experience and knowledge than we of God's Will, but no more to allow them then we perceive they agree with the Scriptures. Pray for grace, said the Bishop. Prayer (said Philpot) is the comfortablest exercise I feel in my trouble, and my conscience is quiet, and I have peace of mind, which cannot be the fruits of Heresy. Pag. 578. My Lords (said Philpot to the Bishops) you must bear with me since I speak in Christ's Cause; and because his glory is defaced, and his people cruelly and wrongfully slain by you, because they will not consent to the dishonour of God; if I told you not your fault, it would be required at my hands at the Day of Judgement. Therefore know ye Hypocrites indeed, That it is the Spirit of God that telleth you your sin, not I, I pass not, I thank God, of all your cruelty, God forgive it you, and give you grace to repent. When he was condemned for an Heretic, He said, I thank God I am an Heretic out of your cursed Church, but I am no Heretic before God. The Chief Keeper greeting him thus, Ah! hast not thou done well to bring thyself hither? he said, Well, I must be content, for it is God's appointment. The Keeper promising him all favour, if he would recant; Nay (said Mr. Philpot) I will never recant, whilst I have my life, that which I have spoken; for it is most certain truth, and in witness hereof I will seal it with my blood. A Messenger coming to him from the Sheriff, bade him make ready, for the next day he should be burned at a Stake with fire. Pag. 593. Mr. Philpot returned this Answer, I am ready, God grant me strength and a joyful Resurrection. And so he went into his Chamber, and poured out his Spirit unto the Lord God, giving him most hearty thanks that he of his mercy had made him worthy to suffer for his Truth. His Servant taking his leave of him said, Ah Master farewell; Mr. Bradford said unto him, Serve God and he will help thee. Entering into Smithfield, the way was foul, and two Officers took him up to bear him to the Stake; whereupon he said merrily, What? will ye make me a Pope? I am content to go to my journey's end on foot. Coming into Smithfield, he kneeled down, saying, I will pay my vows in thee O Smithfield. Kissing the Stake, he said, Shall I disdain to suffer at this Stake, seeing my Redeemer did not refuse to suffer a most vile death upon the Cross for me? In his Letter to the Christian Congregation. Pag. 594. — It is a lamentable thing to behold at this present in England the faithless departing both of men and women from the true knowledge and use of Christ's sincere Religion, which so plentifully they have been taught and do know, their own conscience bearing witness to the verity thereof. If that earth be cursed of God, which eftsoons receiving moisture and pleasant dews from Heaven, doth not bring forth fruit accordingly; how much more grievous judgement shall such persons receive which prove Apostates?— It is n●t only given us to believe, but also to confess and declare what we believe in our outward Conversation. The belief of the heart justifieth, and to acknowledge with the mouth makes a man safe, Rom. 10, It is all one before God, not to believe at all, and not to show forth the lively works of our belief.— Whosoever in time of trial is ashamed of me (saith Christ) and of my words, of him the Son of man will be ashamed before his Father.— Pag. 595. The Prophet Aggeus 2. telleth us, The Lord shaketh the earth, that those might abide for ever which be not overcome.— Let no man deceive you with vain words, saying, That you may keep your faith to yourselves, and dissemble with Antichrist, etc. This is the wisdom of the flesh, but the wisdom of the flesh is death and enmity of God, as our Saviour for example aptly did declare in Peter, who exhorteth Christ not to go to jerusalem, but counselled him to look better to himself.— We cannot serve two Masters, we may not halt on both sides, and think to please God.— Our bodies are the temple of the Holy Ghost, and whosoever doth profane the temple of God, him will God destroy. 2 Cor. 3.— God judgeth all strange religion, which is not according to his Institution, for whoredom and adultery.— We must glorify God as well in body as in soul: moreorer, we can do no greater injury to the true Church of Christ, then to seem to have forsaken her by cleaving to her Adversaries. Woe be to him by whom any such offence cometh, it were better for him to have a millstone tied about his neck, etc. Such be Judasses', Pag. 596. Traitors to the Truth, etc.— St. John in the Apocalypse telleth us plainly, That none of those who are written in the Book of Life do receive the mark of the beast, i. e, papistical Synagogue, either in their foreheads or hands, i. e. apparently or obediently. See the commands for separation, Phil. 2. 2 Cor. 6. Rev. 18. 2 Thes. 3.— Many will say for their vain excuse, God is merciful, etc. Truth it is, The mercy of God is above all his works, but cursed is he that sinneth upon hope of forgiveness.— Others say, But we ought to obey the Magistrates, although they be wicked; true, but God must have his due, as well as Caesar his.— If they command any thing contrary to God's Word, we ought not to obey their commandments, although we should suffer death therefore, Acts 4. Dan. ●.— Some run to this, If I be elected to Salvation, I shall be saved, whatsoever I do: such verily may reckon themselves to be none of Gods elect Children, that will do evil that good may-ensue, Rom. 3. God having chosen us that we should be holy, etc. Eph. 1.— The Lord open our eyes that we may see how dangerous it is to decline from the knowledge of Truth contrary to their conscience.— In his Letter to john Carls. Pag. 597. — I am in this world in Hell, but shall be shortly lifted up to Heaven, where I shall look continually for your coming; and though I tell you that I am in Hell in the judgement of the world, yet assuredly I feel in the same the consolation of Heaven, I praise God, and this loathsome and horrible Prison is as pleasant to me, as the walk in the Garden of the King's Bench.— If God doth mitigate the ugliness of mine imprisonment, what will he do in the rage of the fire, whereunto I am appointed? And this hath happened unto me, that I might be hereafter an ensample of comfort, if the like happen unto you, or any other of my dear Brethren with you, etc.— Be joyful under the Cross, and praise the Lord continually; for this is the whole burnt-sacrifice which the Lord delighteth in. In another Letter to Careless. Pag. 598. — Behold the goodness of God towards me, I am careless, being fast closed in a pair of Stocks, which pinch me for very straitness, and will you be careful? Be as your name pretendeth, Cast all your care on God, set the Lord before your eyes always, for he is on your right side, that you should not be moved.— Praise God and be joyful, that it hath pleased him to make u● worthy to suffer somewhat for his Names sake. The Devil must rage for ten days.— Written in a Coal-house of darkness, out of a pair of painful Stocks, by thine own in Christ, john Philpot. In his Letter to certain godly women, forsaking their own Country for the Gospel.— I read in the Evangelists of certain godly women that ministered unto Christ, following him in the days of his Passion, and never forsook him, but brought oil to anoint him being dead, until he had showed himself unto them after his Resurrection, and bid them tell his dispersed Disciples, that he was risen, and they should see him in Galilee: To whom I may justly compare you (my loving Sisters in Christ) who of late have seen him suffer in his members, and have ministered to their necessity, anointing them with the comfortable oil of your assistance, Pag. 599. even unto death; and now seeing ye have seen Christ live in the ashes of them, he willed you to go away, and to declare to our dispersed Brethren and Sisters that he is risen, and liveth in his elect Members in England, and by death doth overcome infidelity, and that they shall see him in Galilee, which is by forsaking this world, etc.— Let your faith shine in a strange Country, as it hath done in your own, that your Father which is in Heaven may be glorified by you to the end.— Commend me to the whole Congregation of Christ, willing them not to leave their Country without witness of the Gospel, after that we all be slain, which already be stalled up and appointed to the slaughter; and in the mean season to pray earnestly for our constancy, that Christ may be glorified in us and in them both by life and death.— In his Letter to his Sister.— Fear not whatsoever is threatened of the wicked world, prepare your back, and see it be ready to carry Christ's Cross; and if you see any untowardness in you (as the flesh is continually repugnant to the Will of God) ask with faithful Prayer, that the good Spirit of God may lead your sinful flesh whither it would not.— My dissolution I look for daily, Pag. 600. but the Lord knoweth how unworthy I am of so high an honour, as to die for the Testimony of his Truth: Pray that God would vouchsafe to make me worthy, as he hath for long imprisonment, for the which his Name be praised for ever.— In his Letter to certain godly Brethren.— It is an easy thing to begin to do well, but to continue out in well doing is the only property of the Children of God, and such as assuredly shall be saved; Blessed are they that persevere to the end.— God in Rev. 3. doth signify to the Church, That there shall come a time of temptation upon the whole world, to try the dwellers on earth, from the danger of which temptation all such shall be delivered as observe his Word, which Word there is called the Word of patience, to give us to understand, that we must be ready to suffer all kind of injuries and slanders for the profession thereof.— Oh how glorious be the Crosses ●f Christ, which bring the Bearers of them unto so blessed ●n end? Shall we not be glad to be partakers of such shame as may bring us to so high a dignity? Pag. 601. — It is commanded us by the Gospel, not to fear them that can kill the body, but to fear God who can cast both soul and body into Hell fire: so much are we bound to observe this Commandment, as any other which God hath given us.— Now it will appear what we love best, for to that we love we will stick.— What loseth he, which in this life receiveth an hundred for one, with assurance of eternal life? O happy exchange! Even now he is of the City and Household of the Saints with God, he possesseth the peace of God, which passeth understanding, and is made a fellow of the innumerable company of Heaven, and a perpetual friend of all those that have died in the Lord, from the beginning of the world. Is not this more than an hundred fold?— Stand and be no cowards in the Cause of your Salvation; for his Spirit that is in us, is stronger than he, which in the world doth now rage against us.— I beseech you with St. Paul to give your bodies pure and holy sacrifices unto God.— God tempteth us now as he did our Father Abraham, commanding him to sacrifice his Isaac, which signifieth mirth, joy, etc. He by obedience preserved his Isaac alive. God commands us to sacrifice our Isaac, our joy, which if we be ready to do as A●raham was, our joy shall not perish, but live and be increased, the Ram shall be sacrificed in the stead thereof, only the concupiscence of the flesh entangled with the cares of this stinging world shall be mortified. Pag. 602. — To, withstand the present temptations set before your eyes, how our Saviour Christ overcame them in the desert, and follow his example, if the Devil tempt you, to take a worldly wise way, that you may have your fair Houses, Lands, and Goods to live on still; say, Man liveth not only by bread, etc. If the Devil tempt you to forsake the Faith, & to be conformable to the learned men of the world, say, It is written a man shall not tempt his Lord God. If the Devil offer you large promises of honour, dignity, etc. so that ye will worship Idols; say, Go behind me Satan, it is written, a man must worship his Lord God, and serve him only. If your Mother, Brother, Sister, Wife, Child, Kinsman or Friend do seek of you to do otherwise then the Word of God hath taught you, say with Christ, That they are your Mothers, Brothers, Sisters, Wives, Children and Kinsmen which do the will of God the Father.— In his Letter to Mr. Harrington.— Glorious is the course of the Martyrs of Christ at this day; never had the Elect of God a better time for their glory then this is.— — A man that is bid to a glorious Feast, wisheth his Friend to go with him, and to be partaker thereof. God doth call me, most unworthy, among others, to drink of the Bride-Cup of his Son, etc.— I wish you be as I am, except these horrible bands, but yet most comfortable to the Spirit. Praised be the Lord for the affliction which we suffer, and he gives us strength to continue to the end.— Though my Lord's Coal-house be but very black▪ yet it is more to be desired of the Faithful, than the Queen's Palace.— In his Letter to the Lady V●ne.— The Spirit confirm, strengthen, and establish you in the true Knowledge of the Gospel, that your faithf●ll heart may attain and taste with all the Saints, what is the height, the depth, the length, and the breadth of the sweet Cross of Christ Pag. 603. Amen.— Ah! great be the plagues that hang over England, yea, though the Gospel should be restored again. Happy shall that person be whom the Lord shall take out of this world not to see them. Ah the great perjury which ●en have run into so wilfully by receiving Antichrist again and his wicked Laws! Oh that the Lord would turn his just judgements upon the Authors of the truce-breaking between God and us, etc.— The world wondereth how we can be merry in such extreme misery; but our God is omnipotent, which turneth misery into felicity: Believe me (Dear Sister) there is no such joy in the world, as the people of Christ have under the Cross, I speak by experience; therefore believe me, and fear nothing that the world can do unto you; for when they imprison our bodies, they set our souls at liberty with God; when they cast us down, they lift us up; yea, when they kill us, then do they bring us to everlasting life. What greater glory can there be, then to be at conformity with Christ, which afflictions do work in us! God open our eyes to see more and more the glory of God in the Cross of Jesus Christ, and make us worthy partakers of the same. Let us rejoice in nothing with St. Paul, But in the Cross of jesus Christ, by whom the world is crucified unto us, and we unto the world.— Death why should I fear thee? since thou canst not hurt me, but rid me from misery to eternal glory. J. P. Dead to the world, and living to Christ— Pag. 604. In another Letter to the same Lady. I have felt under the Cross (thanks be given to God therefore) more true joy and consolation then ever I did by any benefit that God hath given me in my life before. For the more the world doth hate us, the ●igher God is unto us, and there is no perfect joy but in God. Pag. 605. In a fourth Letter to the same Lady.— Satan hath brought me out of the King's Bench into the Bishop of London's Coal-house, a dark and an ugly Prison as any is about London (but my dark body of sin hath wel● deserved the same, and the Lord hath now brought me into outward darkness, that I might the more be enlightened by him, who is most present with his Children in the midst of darkness) where I cannot be suffered to have any candlelight, neither ink nor Paper, but by stealth.— Pray (Dear Lady) that my Faith faint not, which at present (I thank God) is more lively with me, than it hath been in times past. I taste and feel the faithfulness of God in his promise, who hath promised to be with his in their trouble, and to deliver them. I thank the Lord I am not alone, but have six other faithful Companions, who in our darkness do cheerfully sing Hymns and Praises unto God for his great goodness. We are so joyful, that I wish you part of my joy. Let not my straight imprisonment any thing molest you; for it hath added and daily doth unto my joy, but rather be glad and thankful unto God with me.— Cheerful and holy Spirits under the Cross be acceptable Sacrifices in the sight of God.— In another Letter to the same Lady. Pag. 606. — This is the day that the Lord hath made, let us be glad and rejoice in the same; this is the way though it be narrow, which is full of the peace of God, and leadeth to eternal bliss. O how my heart leapeth for joy, that I am so near the apprehension thereof! God forgive me mine unthankfulness and unworthiness of so great glory.— I have so much joy of the reward that is prepared for me most wretched sinner, that though I be in place of darkness and mourning, yet I cannot lament, but both night and day am so joyful, as though I were under no cross at all, yea in all the days of my life I was never so merry, the Name of the Lord be praised therefore for ever and ever, and he pardon mine unthankfulness.— Pray instantly that this joy be never taken from us, for it passeth all the delights of this world, it surmounteth all understanding.— I trust my Marriage-garment is ready.— In his Letter to a Friend in Prison that writ to him concerning Infant-baptisme.— The same night I received your Letter, as I was musing on it I sell asleep, and in the midst of my sweet rest I saw a great beautiful City all of the colour of Azure, and White, and foursquare, in a marvellous beautiful composition in the midst of the Sky. The sight hereof so inwardly comforted me, that I am not able to express the consolation I had; yea, the remembrance thereof causeth as yet my heart to leap for joy; and as Charity is no Churl, but would others to be partakers of his delight, so methought I called to others, and when we together had beheld the same, by and by to my great grief it vanished. This Dream I take to be of the working of God's Spirit. Pag. 607. I interpret the City the Church, and the appearance of it in the Sky, the heavenly state thereof, and that according to the Primitive Church, which is now in Heaven, men ought to measure and judge of the Church of Christ, and on earth the marvellous Quadrature of the same, the universal agreement in the same, that all here in the Church Militant ought to consent to the Primitive Church throughout the four parts of the world, the wonderful joy I conceived, the unspeakable joy which they have that be at Unity with Christ's Primitive Church, and my calling others to the fruition of this Vision, my moving you and others to behold the Primitive Church in all your Opinions concerning Faith, and to conform yourself in all points to the same, which is the Pillar of Truth. Pag. 610. — Let the bitter Passion of Christ, which he suffered for your sake; and the horrible torments which the godly Martyrs of Christ have endured before us, and also the inestimable reward of your life to come, which is hidden yet a little while from you with Christ, strengthen, comfort, and encourage you to the end of that glorious race which you are in. Amen. Pikes. William Pikes some while before he was last taken, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 879. he was in his Garden reading the Bible; and about twelve a clock of the day, his face being towards the South, there fell down four drops of fresh blood upon his Book, he not knowing from whence it came. Calling his Wife to him, he said, What meaneth this? will the Lord have four Sacrifices? I see well enough the Lord will have blood. His will be done and give me grace to abide the trial. Wife, let us pray, the day draweth nigh. Afterward he daily looked to be apprehended, till the time came indeed. Being at the point of death in Newgate, so that no man looked he should live six hours, he declared to them that stood by, that he had been twice in persecution before, and that now he desired the Lord, if it were his will, that he might glorify his Name at the Stake. Place. Monsieur Pierre de la Place Precedent of the Court of Requests in France, Fox, Vol. 3. cont. pag. 62. when out of that entire love which his Wife bore him, fell down at the feet of one of those bloody Instruments of that barbarous Massacre, 1572. to entreat some favour for her Husband. He rebuked her, and told her, That it is not the arm of flesh we must stoop unto, but unto God only. Perceiving in his Son's Hat a White Cross, which through infirmity he had placed there, thinking thereby to save himself, he sharply chid him, and commanded him to pluck that mark of sedition thence, telling him, We must now submit to bear the true Cross of Christ. Pothnius. Ward, pag. 139. Pothnius, Bishop of Lions, to the Precedent ask him in the midst of his torments, What that Christ was, answered, If thou wert worthy, thou shouldst know. Polycarp. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 55. This famous Bishop of Smyrna, St. John's Disciple, having been in Prayer three days before his apprehension, in a Vision by night he saw the Bed set on fire under his head, and suddenly to be consumed. When he awoke he gave this exposition of the Vision to them that were present, That in the fire he should lose his life for Christ's Cause. When the Pursuers were brought to the Inn where he was, he might have escaped, but would not, saying, The will of God be done. As he was going to the place of Judgement, there came a voice from Heaven (heard by several of his Church) saying, Be of good cheer Polycarpus, and play the man. When the Proconsul bid him say, Destroy these naughty men, he looked up to Heaven, saying, Thou, thou it is, that wilt destroy these wicked naughty men. The Proconsul bidding him defy Christ and he should be discharged, he answered, Fourscore and six years have I been his Servant, yet in all his time hath he not so much as once hurt me; How then may I speak evil of my King and Sovereign Lord, which hath thus preserved me? The Proconsul still urging him to swear by Caesar's prosperity, he replied, If thou requirest this, pretending that thou knowest not what I am, Know then that I am a Christian; Pag. 56. and if thou desire to know the Doctrine of Christianity, appoint a day, and thou shalt hear.— I have thought it my duty thus to say unto you, forsomuch as we are commanded to give unto the Governors and Powers ordained of God, the hounour meet and due to them, and not hurtful unto us.— The Proconsul telling him he had wild Beasts to whom he would throw him, unless he took a better way: Polycarp said, Let them come, we have determined with ourselves, that we will not by repentance turn us from the better way to the worse, but convenient it is, that a man turn from things that be evil unto that which is good and just. I will tame thee with fire (replied the Proconsul) if thou set not by the wild Beasts, nor yet repent. Then said Polycarp, you threaten me with fire, which shall burn for the space of an hour, and shall be within a little while after put out and extinguished; but thou knowest not the fire of the judgement to come, and of everlasting punishment which is reserved for the wicked and ungodly. But why make you all these delays? Give me what death soever you list. When they would have tied him to the Stake with iron hoops, he said, Let me alone as I am; For he that hath given me strength to come to the fire, shall also give power that without this provision I shall abide, and not stir in the midst of the fire. When his hands were bound behind him, he prayed thus, O Father of thy well-beloved and blessed Son jesus Christ, by whom we have attained the knowledge of thee, the God of Angels and Powers, and of every creature, and of all just men, which live before thee. I give thee thanks that thou hast vouchsafed to grant me this day that I may have my part among the Number of the Martyrs, to drink of the Cup of Christ, unto the resurrection of eternal Life both of body and soul, through the operation of thy holy Spirit, among whom I shall this day be received into thy sight for an acceptable sacrifice; and as thou hast prepared and revealed the same before this time, so thou hast accomplished the same, O thou most true God, which canst not lie. Wherefore for all these things I praise thee, I bless thee, I glorify thee by our everlasting Bishop jesus Christ, to whom be glory evermore. Amen. As soon as the fire was kindled, some of his Church then present saw this marvellour thing; The fire being like unto a Vault or Roof of an House, and after the manner of a Shipman's Sail filled with wind, compassed about the Martyr, as with a certain Wall, and he in the middle of the same, not as Flesh that burned, but as Gold and Silver when it is tried in the fire: They smelled also a savour so sweet, as if Myrrh, or some other precious Balm had given a scent. When they saw that his body could not be consumed by fire, one thrust him through with a Sword; which being done, so great a quantity of blood ran out of his body, that the fire was quenched therewith. S●e Mr. Cl●rks first 〈◊〉 of 〈◊〉, p 5. etc. Polycarp going with St. john to a Bath at Ephesus, and espying Cerinthus the Heretic in it, said, Eugiamus ocius, etc. Let us depart speedily, for fear lest the Bath wherein the Lords adversary is do fall upon us. He so detested Heretics, then when Martion (of his former acquaintance) met him at Rome, and wondering that he took no notice of him, said unto him, Dost thou not know me Polyc●rp? Yea (said he) I know thee well, Thou art the eldest Son to the Devil. His manner was to stop his ears, if at any time he heard the wicked speeches of Heretieks, and to ●●un those very places, where such speeches had been uttered. He suffered Martyrdom in the seventh year of ●●rus, Anno Christi 170. and of his age 86. Praetorius. Arias Praetorius the day before his death, Melchior. Adam. in vita ejus, pag. 466. dreamed he saw a Coffin carried, and ask whose it was, he heard this answer, That Christ was to be laid in his Sepulchre, and that he should speedily follow him. When he awaked, he concluded his own death was not far off. Whereupon he cried out, He that followeth Christ, walks well, not in darkness. Jesus, be thou merciful to me a miserable sinner, and draw me after thyself. Prest. Prest's Wife being asked by the Bishop of Exeter, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 889. Whether she had not an Husband? She answered, That she had an Husband and Children, and had them not: So long as she was at liberty, she refused neither Husband nor Children; but now standing here as I do (said she) in the Cause of Christ and his Truth, where I must forsake Christ or my Husband, I am contented to stick only to Christ my heavenly Spouse, and renounce the other. Here she making mention of the words of Christ, He that leaveth not Father or Mother, Sister or Brother, or Husband, etc. The Bishop told her, That Christ spoke that of the holy Martyrs, which died because they would not sacrifice to the false gods: so (said she) I will rather die than I will do any worship to that foul Idol, which with your Mass you make a god. The Bishop telling her, That if she had been an honest woman, she would not have left her Husband and Children, and run about the Country like a Fugitive: She told him, Sir, I laboured for my living, and as my Master Christ counselleth me, When I was persecuted in one City, I fled into another. When I would have my Husband and Children to leave Idolatry, and to worship God in Heaven, he with his Children rebuked men, and troubled me. I fled not for whoredom nor for theft, but because I would not be partaker with him and his of that foul Idol the Mass. Pag. 890. During a Month's liberty which was granted her by the Bishop, she went into the Cathedral at Exeter, and seeing a Dutchman making new Noses to certain fine Images which were disfigured in King Edward's time; What a mad man art thou (said she) to make them new Noses, which within a few days shall all lose their heads? The Dutchman accused her, and laid it hard to her charge; and she said unto him, Thou art accursed, and so are thy Images. He called her Whore. Nay (said she) thy Images are Whores, and thou art a Whore-hunter; for doth not God say, You go a whoring after strange gods, figures of your own making. Pag. 891. When judgement was given against her, she lifted up her voice, and said, I thank thee, my Lord, my God, this day have I found that I long sought. This favour they pretended after her Judgement, That her life should be spared, if she would recant: Nay that will I not (said she) God forbid, that I should lose the life eternal for this carnal and short life. I will never turn from my heavenly Husband to my earthly Husband; from the fellowship of Angels to mortal Children: and if my Husband and Children be faithful, then am I theirs. God is my Father, God is my Mother, God is my Sister, my Brother, my Kinsman, God is my friend most faithful. After her Condemnation she refused to receive my money from well affected people, saying, I am going to a City, where money beareth no mastery. Whilst I am here, God hath promised to feed me. When she was brought to the Stake, without the ●alls of Exeter, in a place called So then hay, in the groaneth of November 1558. the Priests again assaulted her; but she prayed them to have no more ●alk with her, and cried still, God be merciful to 〈◊〉 a sinner, God be merciful to me a sinner. This Agnes Priest, The History of the Worthies of England, p. 249, 250. or Pressed, was the sole Devonshire Martyr (saith Dr. Fuller) under the reign of Queen Mary: Wherefore as those Parents, which have but one Child, may afford it the better attendance, as more at leisure: So seeing by God's goodness we have but this single Native of this Country, yea of this Diocese, we will enlarge, etc. (1) Her Christian Name, which Mr. Fox could not learn, ●e have recovered from another excellent Author, Mr. Vowel in Holinshed, pag. 1309. (2) I am informed by the Inhabitants thereabout, that she lived at Northcot in the Parish of Boynton, in the County of Cornwall, etc. (3) She was a simple woman to behold, thick, but liltle and short in sta●●re, about Four and fifty years of age. (4) She was indicted on Monday the fourth week in Lent, An. Phil. & Mar. 2. and 3. before W. Stanford, justice of the Assize: So that we may observe more legal formality was used about the condemnation of this poor woman, than any Martyr of far greater degree. (5) Her own Husband and Children were her greatest Persecutors, from whom she fled; because they would force her to be present at Mass. (6) She was condemned by Bishop Troublefield Bishop of Exeter, etc. yea she was the only person in whose persecution Bishop Troublefield did appear; and it is justly conceived, that Blackstone his Chancellor was more active than the Bishop in procuring her death. Potten. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 678. Agnes Potten of Ipswich, in a night a little before her death, being asleep in her bed, saw a bright burning fire, right up as a Pole, and on the side thereof she thought there stood a number of Queen Mary's Friends looking on, then (being asleep) she seemed to muse with herself, whether her fire should burn so bright or no. And indeed her suffering was not far unlike her dream. At the Stake she and joan Trunchfield, who suffered with her, required the people to credit, and to lay hold on the Word of God, and not upon man's devices and inventions; and to despise the Ordinances and Institutions of the Romish Antichrist, with all his superstitious and rotten Religion. Pusices. Ward, pag. 142. Shut thine eyes but a while (said Pusices to an old man trembling at Martyrdom) and thou shalt see Gods Light. R. Rabeck. Fox. Vol. 3. cont. pag. 5. I●hn Rabeck, a French Martyr, being urged to pronounce jesus Maria, conjoined in one Prayer, boldly answered, That if his Tongue should but offer to utter those words at their bidding, he himself would bite it asunder with his Teeth. Vide vitam ejus a Theophilo B●●●sio descriptam in P. R Comment. de Relig. Christ. Ramus. The great crime that the Sorbonists objected against Peter Ramus, and for which he suffered much, was, That by opposing Aristotle he enervated Divinity. Whence we may see what a Divinity they were for, who made Aristotle the great Master thereof, who laughs at the Creation of the World, Divine Providence, and the Immortality of the Soul: and slighting Life eternal, placed the happiness of man in this mortal Life only, and left nothing for man after death, then to have it said, He was happy: in a word, who defined humane felicity from man's ability, and not from divine grace. In his adverse condition he would comfort himself with the following Verses: 1. Commit vitam, rem, decus, Dei unius arbitrio, Animi tibi ex sententia Confecta reddet omnia. Illustris aurorae ut jubar, Tua faciet ul sit aquitas, Ut luce virtus sit tua● Meridiana clarior. In English thus; Commit to God, life, wealth, and name, And what thou wilt shalt have the same. Thy righteousness shall shine more clear, Then the light of the morning 〈◊〉 2.— Deus ●abit his quoque finem● Durate, ut vos●●t rebus servate secundis. — These shall not want an end. Bear up, and wait till G●d doth better send. That which he first disliked in Popery, was their execrable idolatry in corrupting the second Commandment, and the Sacrament of the Lords Supper. When in the Possiac Synod he heard the Cardina● of Lorain acknowledge, That the first of the fifteet● Centuries since Christ was a truly golden Age but the rest were so much the worse, by how much they farther departed from the first, Peter Ramus concluded, That the Age of Christ and his Apostles was to be restored, and chosen. When the Civil Wars broke forth in France for Religion, he went into Germany, and at Heidelberg, having made to Tremellius and the Church a Confession of his Faith, he received the Sacrament of the Lords Supper in that Church. After his conversion he daily did read the Old and New Testament, and out of each Chapter collected an Index, containing Rules and Examples relating to both the parts of Christian Doctrine, viz. Faith, and the Actions of Faith, and so made his Commentaries; and certainly he had made much greater progress in Divinity, had he not been so soon (not much above two years) after his conversion taken away by a violent death. When in that horrid Massacre at Paris, begun Aug. 24. 1572. he was mortally wounded, Aug. 26. in the seven and fiftieth year of his age, he was heard to commend his soul to God in these words: O jehovah, against thee only have I sinned, and done evil before thee. Thy judgements are truth and righteousness. Have mercy upon, and pardon my Murderers; for they know not what they do. Read. See the Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 2. Some of the Articles that were exhibited against Adam Read, and other Scotch Confessors, were these following: (1) That Images are not to be had in the Kirk, nor to be worshipped. (4) That it is not lawful to fight for the Faith, nor to defend the Faith by the Sword, if we be not driven to it by necessity, which is above all Law. (12) That the Pope is not the Successor of Peter, but where he said, Go behind me Satan. (17) That the Pope exalts himself against God, and above God. (19) That the blessings of the Bishops (of dumb Dogs they should have been styled) are of no value. (20) That the excommunication of the Kirk is not to be feared, Pag. 3. if there be no true cause for it. (29) That we are no more bound to pray in the Kirk, then in other places. (32) That the Pope is the head of the Kirk of Antichrist. (34) That they which are called Princes and Prelates in the Church, are Thiefs and Robbers. By these Articles exhibited in the year 1494 (which God of his merfull providence caused the enemies of his Truth to keep in their Registers) may appear how God retained some spark of light in Scotland in the time of greatest darkness. When Arch Bishop Blacater asked Adam Read, Whether he believed that God was in Heaven, he answered, Not as I do the Sacraments seven. Whereupon Blacater insultingly said unto the King, Sir, Lo, he denies that God is in Heaven: Whereat the King wondering, said, Adam Read what say you? He answered, May it please your Majesty to hear the end between the Churl and me: and therewith turned to the Bishop, Pag. 4. and said, I neither think nor believe, as thou thinkest, that God is in Heaven, though I am most assured, that he is not only in Heaven, but also in the Earth; but thou and thy Faction declare by your works, that either you think there is no God at all, or else that he is so set up in Heaven, that he regards not what is done on Earth; for if thou firmly believedst that God were in Heaven, thou shouldst not make thyself Checkmate to the King, and altogether forget that charge that jesus Christ the Son of God gave to his Apostles, to preach the Gospel, and not to play the proud Prelates, as all the rabble of you do this day. And now Sir (said he to the King) judge you whether the Bishop or I believe best, that God is in Heaven. Then the King said to him, Adam Read, Wilt thou burn thy Bill? He answered, Sir, the Bishop and you will. Ridley. Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 788. Dr. Nicholas Ridley, than Bishop of London, went about Septemb. 8. ● 1552. to see the Lady Mary, and offered to preach before her: but she told him, The door of the Parish Church adjoining shall be open to you, if you come, and you may preach if you list; but neither I, nor any of mine shall hear you. Madam (said he) I trust you will not refuse God's Word. I cannot tell (said she) what you call God's Word, that is not God's Word now, that was God's Word in my Father's days. God's Word (said he) is all one in all times, but hath been better understood, and practised in some Ages, then in other.— After this Conference, Sir Thomas Wharton, one of the Lady Mary's Officers, brought the Bishop to the place where they dined: but the Bishop after he had drunk, pausing a little while, and looking very sadly, broke out into these words, Surely I have done amiss. Why so, said the Knight? For I have drunk (said he) in that place, where God's Word offered, hath been refused: whereas if I had remembered my duty, I ought to have departed immediately, and to have shaken off the dust of my feet for a testimony against this House. These words were spoken by the Bishop with such vehemency, that some of the Hearers afterwards confessed, That their hairstood upright upon their heads. This done the Bishop departed. In the time of Queen jane, Fox, Vol. 3 pag. 16 in his Sermon at Paul's Cross, he prophesied at it were, That if ever the Lady Mary were Queen, she would bring in Foreign Power to reign over them, besides the subverting the Christian Religion then established. Shortly after this Sermon Queen Mary was proclaimed, and Dr. Ridley speedily repaired to Framingham in Suffolk, to Queen Marry, but had but cold welcome there: he was spoiled of his Dignity, and sent back upon a lame halting Horse to the Tower. In the Tower he was sometimes invited to the Lieutenant's Table, Pag. 42. where he had conference with Secretary Brown, etc. In that Conference.— It is not in Scripture (said Dr. Ridley) as in the witness of men, where a ●umber is credited more than one. A multitude of affirmations in Scripture, and one affirmation is all one as to the truth if the matter. That which any one of the Evangelists sp●ke, inspired by the Holy Ghost, is as true ●s that which is spoken by them all. What John saith of Christ, I am the door of the She●p, is as true as what Matthew, Mark, Luke, etc. say, This is my body; ●●t the Scripture words are only true in the sense in which they were spoken.— As for Unity, I embrace it, ●it be with Verity, and joined to our Head Christ— ●●r Antiquity, I am persuaded that to be true which ●reneus saith, That which is first, is true. Our Religion was first truly taught by Christ himself and his Apostles, Pag. 43. etc.— You know I were a very fool, if I ●iu'd in this matter descent from you, if that in my conscience the Truth did not enforce me s● to do. Ye percive I trow, it is out of my way, if I esteemed worldly ●●in. Afterwards he was sent out of the Tower with Cranmer and Latimer to dispute at Oxford. Pag. 49. When he was the first time brought before the Commissioners, they asked him, Whether he would dispute or no? He answered, That as long as God gave him life, he should not only have his heart, but also his mouth and Pen to defend his Truth. Pag. 82. In his Protestation before his Disputation.— Whilst I weighed with myself how great a charge of the Lords Flock was of late committed to me, for which I am certain I must render an account to my Lord God, etc. and that moreover by the command of the Apostle Peter, I ought to be ready always to give a reason of the hope that is in me with meekness and reverence unto every one, that shall demand the same. Besides this considering my duty to the Church of Christ, and to your Worships, being Commissioners by public Authority, I determined to obey your command in openly declaring to you my mind touching the Propositions which you gave me. And albeit (plainly to confess unto you the truth in these things, which ye now demand of me) I have thought otherwise in times past, then now I do; yet (God I call to record unto my soul, I lie not) I have not altered my judgement, as now it is, either by constraint of any man, or Laws, or for the dread of any dangers of this world, or for any hope of commodity, but only for love of the Truth revealed to me by the grace of God (as I am undoubtedly persuaded) in his holy Word, and in the reading of the Ancient Fathers. Pag. 83. Dr. Weston telling him, What he said contained only evasions and starting holes. I cannot (said Dr. Ridley) start far from you, I am captive and bound. Bertram (said he) was the first that pulled me ●y th● ear, and that first ●rought me from the common error of the Popish Church, and caused me to search more diligently and exactly both the Scriptures and the Writings of the old Ecclesiastical Fathers in this matter. When he was condemned by them for an Heretic, Pag. 91. he said, Although I be not of your Company, yet doubt I not ●ut my Name is writ in another place, whether this sentence will send us sooner, than we should come by the course of Nature. In his Letter to Dr. Crannier. Pag. 93. — I wish you might have seen these mine Answers before I had delivered them, that you might have corrected them: but I trust in the substance of the matter, we do agree fully, both led by one Spirit of Truth, and both walking after one Rule of God's Word.— I trust the day of our delivery out of all miseries, and of our entrance into perpetual rest, and unto perpetual joy and felicity draweth nigh. The Lord strengthen us with his mighty Spirit of Grace.— Pray for me I pray you, and so shall I for you. The Lord have mercy of his Church, and lighten the eyes of the Magistrates, that God's extreme plagues light not on this Realm of England. Turn or burn. In his Letter to Mr. Latimer in Prison. Pag. 433. — I pray you good Father, let me have one draught more of your Cup, wherein you mingle to me profitable with pleasant to comfort my stomach; for surely except the Lord assist me with his gracious aid in the time of his Service, I know I shall but play the part of a white-livered Knight. But truly my trust is in him, that in mine infirmity he should try himself strong, and that he can make the Coward in his Cause to fight like a man. Sir, Now I daily look when Diotrephes with his Warriors shall assault me: wherefore I pray you good Father, for that you are an old Soldier, and an expert Warrior, and (God knoweth) I am but a young Soldier, and as yet of small experience in these fights, help me I pray you to buckle mine harness. And now I would have you to think, that those darts are cast at my head, by some one of Diotrephes, or Antonius his Soldiers, (By Antonius he meant some Popish Persecutor, as Winchester, alluding thereby to the Story of Victor l. 3. De Persecu●. Aphri.) Object. 1. All men marvel greatly why you do not go to Mass, which is a thing (as you know) now much esteemed of all men, yea, of the Queen herself. Answ. Because no man that layeth hand on the plough, and looketh back, is fit for the Kingdom of God; Luke 9 and also for the same cause why St. Paul wou●d not suffer Timothy to be circumcised, which is, that the Truth of the Gospel might remain with us uncorrupt, Gal. 2. Gal. 2. And again, If I build again the things which I destroyed, I m●ke myself a Trespasser. This is also another cause, lest I should seem by outward fact to allow the thing, which I am persuaded is contrary to sound Doctrine, and so should be a stumbling block to the weak. But woe be to him by whom offence cometh, Mat. 18. It were better for him that a Millstone were hanged about his neck, and he cast into the midst of the sea. Pag. 434. Object. 2. Have not you used in times past to say Mass yourself, and therefore why will you not now vouchsafe once either to hear it, or see it. Answ. I confess unto you my fault and ignorance; but know you, that for these matters I have done penance long ago, both at Paul 's Cross, and at Cambridge, and I trust God hath forgiven me mine offence, for I did it ignorantly. Object. 3. But you know how great a crime it is to separate yourself from the Communion or Fellowship of the Church, and to make a schism or division. Answ. I know that the Unity of the Church is to be ●●tained by all means, and the same to be necessary to salvation; but I do not take the Mass, as it is at this lay, for the Communion of the Church, but a Popish de●ice, etc. Object. 4. Admit there be a fault in the Mass, do not you know both by Cyprian and Augustine that Communion of Sacraments doth not defile a man, but consent of deeds; if you do not consent to the ●●ult in the Mass, why do you trouble yourself in ●ain? Answ. Forasmuch as things done in the Mass tend ●●enly to the overthrow of Christ's Institution, I judge ●hat by no means, either in word or deed, I ought to con●ent unto it. What is objected out of the Fathers is meant ●f them who suppose they are defiled, if any secret vice be ●●ther in the Ministers, or in them that communicate with them, and not of them which do abhor superstition, ●●d wicked traditions of men, and will not suffer the same 〈◊〉 be thrust upon themselves, or upon the Church in stead ●f God's Word, and the truth of the Gospel. Object. 5. The Mass is the Sacrament of Uni●●, etc. Answ. Pag. 435. It's true, the Bread which we break accord●●● to the Institution of the Lord, is the Sacrament of 〈◊〉 Unity of Christ's mystical Body; for we being many 〈◊〉 one Bread, and one Body, forasmuch as we are partakers all of one Bread. But in the Mass the Lord's Institution is not observed, for we are not all partakers of one ●●ead, but one devoureth all, etc. So that as it is used it may seem a Sacrament of singularity, etc.— Pag. 438, 439. Object. 12. Is not abstaining from the Church by reason of the Mass contrary to the examples of the Prophets and Apostles of Christ?— Answ. It can no where be showed, that the Prophets, or Christ, or his Apostles did in the Temple communicate with the people in any kind of worshipping forbidden by the Law of God.— How else I pray you can you understand that St. Paul allegeth, when he saith, 2 Cor. 6. What concord hath Christ with Belial? or what part hath the Believer with the Infidel? or how agreeth the Temple of God with Images? For ye are the Temple of the Living God, as God himself hath said, I will dwell among them, and will be their God, and they shall be my people; wherefore come out from among them, and separate yourselves from them (saith the Lord) and touch no unclean thing, so will I receive you, and will be a Father unto you, and you shall be my sons and daughters, saith the Lord God Almighty. Object. 14. For so much as you are so stiffly, I will not say obstinately, bend, and so wedded to your Opinion, that no gentle exhortations and wholesome counsels, no other kind of means can call you home to a better mind; there remaineth that which in like cases was wont to be the only remedy against stiffnecked and stubborn persons, that is, you must be hampered by the Laws, and compelled either to obey, whether you will or no, or else suffer that which a Rebel to the Laws ought to suffer?— Do you not know, that refusing to obey the Laws of the Realm, is the readiest way to stir up Sedition and Civil War? It is better that you should bear your own sin, then that through the example of your breach of the common Laws, the common quie● should be disturbed. How can you say you will be the Queen's true Subject, whenas you do openly profess you will not keep her Laws. Answ.— I grant it to be reasonable, that he that ●y words and gentleness cannot be made to yield to that which is right and good, he that will not be subject to God's Word, should be punished by the Laws. — These things ought to take place against him who refuseth to do that is right and just, according to true godliness, not against him which cannot bear superstitions quietly, but doth hate and detost from his heart such kind of proceedings, and that for the glory of the Name of God.— Whosoever love their Country in Truth, i. e. in God, they will always judge (if at any time the Laws of God and man are contrary) that a man ought rather to obey God then man; Pag. 440. and they that think otherwise, and pretend a love to their Country, forasmuch as they make their Country to fight as it were against God, in whom consisteth the only stay of that Country, such are to be judged most deadly enemies and Traitors to their Country.— Satan indeed hath ever this dart in readiness to hurl against his Adversaries, to accuse them of sedition, that he may bring them if he can in danger of the higher Powers. Thus Ahab said unto Elias, Art thou he that troubleth Israel? The false prophets complained of Jeremy to their Princes, that his words were seditious, and not to be suffered. The Scribes and pharisees accused Christ as a seditious person, and one that spoke against Caesar. Did not they at the last cry, If you let this man go, you are not Caesar's friend? Thus the Orator Tertullus accused Paul before Felix the Deputy, We have found this man (saith he) a pestilent fellow, and a stirrer up of sedition unto all the jews in the whole world. But were these indeed seditious persons? God forbid; but they were of men falsely accused, and wherefore I pray you? but because the reproved before the people their guiles, superstitions and deceits.— A man indeed aught to obey his Prince, but in the Lord, and never against the Lord; for he that knowingly obeyeth his Prince against God, doth not a duty to the Prince, but is a deceiver of the Prince, and a helper to him to work his own destruction. He is also unjust which giveth not to the Prince that is the Princes, and to God that is Gods.— Hitherto you see (good Father) how I have in words only made a flourish before the fight which I shortly look for, and how I have begun to prepare certain kind of weapons to fight against the adversary of Christ— And here methinks I see you suddenly lifting up your head to Heaven after your manner, and then looking upon me with your Prophetical Countenance, and speaking thus unto me, Trust not my Son (I beseech you vouchsafe me the honour of this Name, for in so doing I shall think myself both honoured and loved of you) Trust not to these word-weapons; for the Kingdom of God is not in words but in power. Remember always the words of the Lord, Do not imagine aforehand what and how you will speak; for it shall be given you even in that same hour what ye shall speak, Mat. 10. For it is not ye that speak, but the Spirit of your Father that speaketh in you, Mar. 11. I pray you therefore (Father) pray for me, that I may cast my whole care on him, and trust on him in all perils; for I know and am surely persuaded, that whatsoever I can think aforehand is nothing, except he assist me with his Spirit when the time is. Pag. 441. — Pray that I may out of a true Faith say with David, I will not trust in my bow, and it is not my sword that shall save me, Psal. 44. For he hath no pleasure in the strength of an horse, etc. But the Lord delights in them that fear him, and put their trust in his mercy. I beseech you Pray, pray, pray, that I may enter this fight only in the Name of God.— In his Letter to Mr. Bradford and his Fellow-Prisoners.— How joyful it was to us to hear the report of Dr. Tailor, and of his godly Confession, etc. I assure you it is hard for me to express. Blessed be God which was and is the Giver of that and of all godly strength and stomach in the time of adversity. Pag. 442. — It is not the slanderers evil tongue but a man's evil deed that can with God defile a man; and therefore with God's grace ye shall never have cause to doubt but that we will continue, etc. Sir, Blessed be God, with all our evil reports, grudges and restraints we are merry in God, and all our cure and care is and shall be (by God's grace) to please and serve him of whom we look and hope after these temporal and momentary miseries to have eternal joy and perpetual felicity with Abraham, etc. through Jesus Christ our Lord. In his Letter to his Cousin.— I can do no less then lament their case, who for fear of trouble or loss of goods will do in the sight of the world those things they know and are assured are contrary to the Will of God, being assdred their end will be so pitiful (without speedy repentance) that I tremble to think of it.— Alas! such as should in this dangerous time have given you and me comfortable instructions have persuaded us to follow (I lament to rehearse it) superstitious Idolatry: yea, and the worst of all is, they seek to prove it by Scriptures. The Lord for his mercy turn their hearts. Amen. In another Letter to Mr. Bradford. Pag. 444. — Oh dear Brother, seeing the time is now come, wherein it pleaseth the Heavenly Father for Christ our Saviour his sake to call upon you, and to bid you come, happy are you that ever you were born thus to be found awake at the Lords Calling.— If it be not the place that sanctisieth the man, but the holy man doth by Christ sanctify the place, then happy and holy shall be that place where in thou shalt suffer, and which shall be sprinkled over with thy ashes in Christ's Cause. All thy Country may rejoice of thee, that it ever brought forth such an one which would render his life again in his Cause of whom he had received it.— We do look now every day when we shall be called on, blessed be God. I ween I am the weakest many ways of our company, and yet I thank our Lord God and Heavenly Father by Christ, that since I heard of our dear. Brother Rogers his departing, and stout confession of Christ and his Truth even unto death, my heart (blessed be God) rejoiced of it, that since that time I never felt any lumpish heaviness in my heart, as I grant I have felt sometimes before. Oh good Brother, blessed be God in thee, and blessed be the time that ever I knew thee. In his Letter to the Brethren imprisoned.— What worthy thanks can we render unto the Lord for you my Brethren, namely, for the great consolation which through you we have received in the Lord, who notwithstanding the rage of Satan, that goeth about by all manner of subtle means to beguile the world, and also busily laboureth to restore and set up his Kingdom again that of late began to decay and to fall to ruin, ye remain still unmoveable as men grounded upon a strong rock. And now albeit that Satan by his Soldiers and wicked Ministers daily (as we hear) draweth numbers unto him; so that it is said of him, That he plucketh even the Stars out of Heaven whiles he driveth into some men the fear of death, and loss of all their Goods, and offereth unto others the pleasant baits of the world, etc. to the intent they should fall down and worship not the Lord but the Dragon, the old Serpent, which is the Devil, that great beast and his image, and should be enticed to commit fornication with the Strumpet of Babylon, etc. Yet blessed be God the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which hath given unto you a manly courage, and hath so strengthened you in the inward man by the Power of his Spirit, that you can contemn as well all the terrors as also the vain allurements of the world, esteeming them as mere trifles and things of nought.— In the Faith of Christ stand ye fast my Brethren, and suffer not yourselves to be brought under the yoke of bondage and superstition any more, and be of good comfort, and remember that our grand Captain hath overcome the world. Pag. 445. — We never had a better or more just cause either to contemn our life or shed our blood, we cannot take in hand the defence of a more certain, clear and manifest Truth.— Shall we or can we receive and acknowledge any other Christ instead of him, who is alone the everlasting Son of the everlasting Father, etc. Let such wickedness my Brethren, let such horrible wickedness be far from us.— What can your Adversaries else do unto you by persecuting you, and working all cruelty and villainy against you, but make your Crowns more glorious, yea beautify and multiply the same, etc. In another Letter to the Brethren.— Now even now (out of doubt Brethren) the pit is opened against us, and the locusts begin to swarm, and Abaddon now reigneth; ye therefore (my Brethren) which pertain unto Christ, and have the Seal of God marked in your foreheads, i. e. are sealed with the Earnest of the Spirit to be a peculiar people of God, quit yourselves like men, and be strong; for he that is in us is stronger than he which is in the world, and ye know all that is born of God overcometh the world, and this is our victory that overcometh the world, even our Faith. Let the world fret, let it rage never so much, be it never so cruel and bloody, yet be sure that no man can take us out of the Father's hands; for he is greater than all, etc. Who shall lay any thing to the charge of God's Elect? etc. Who shall separate us from the love of Christ? Shall tribulation? etc. In his Letter to Mr. West his quondam Chaplain. — I wish you grace in God, and love of the Truth, without which truly established in men's hearts by the mighty hand of the Almighty God▪ it is no more possible to stand by the Truth in Christ in time of trouble, than it is for the wax to abide the heat of the fire.— I am persuaded Christ's words to be true, Whosoever shall confess me before men, him will I confess also before my Father which is in Heaven; and I believe that no earthly Creature shall be saved, whom the Redeemer and Saviour of the world shall before his Father deny.— If you had wished that neither fear of death, nor hope of worldly prosperity should let me to maintain God's Word and his Truth, which is his glory and true honour, it would have like me well. You desire me for God's sake to remember myself: Indeed it is now time so to do, for so far as I can perceive, it standeth me upon no less danger then of the loss both of body and soul, and I trow then it is time for a man to awake, if any thing will awake him. He that will not fear him that threateneth to cast both body and soul into everlasting fire, whom will he fear? With this fear O Lord fasten thou together our frail flesh that we never swerve from thy laws. You say you have made much suit for me; God grant that you have not in suing for my worldly deliverance impaired and hindered the furtherance of God's Word and his Truth. Pag. 447. — To write unto these whom you name, I cannot see what it will avail me; but this I would have you know, That I esteem nothing available for me, which also will not further the glory of God. — Sir, How nigh the day of my dissolution and departure out of this world is at hand I cannot tell, the Lords Will be fulfilled how soon soever it shall come.— My conscience moves me to require both you and my Friend Dr. Harvey to remember your promises made to me in times passed of the pure setting forth and preaching of God's Word and his Truth. These promises although you shall not need to fear to be charged with them of me hereafter before the world, yet look for none other but to be charged with them at God's hand. My conscience and the love I bear you biddeth me now say unto you both in God's Name, fear God and love not the world; for God is able to cast both soul and body into hell fire.— — What is it else to confess or deny Christ in this world, but to maintain the Truth taught in God's Word, or for any worldly respect to shrink from the same. He that will wittingly forsake either for fear or gain of the world any one open Truth of God's Word, if he be constrained he will assuredly forsake God and all his Truth, rather than he will endanger himself to lose, or to leave that he loveth indeed, better than he doth God and the Truth of his Word. I like very well your plain speaking, telling me I must either agree or die. Sir, I know I must die, whether I agree or no. But what folly were it then to make such an agreement by the which I could never escape the death which is common to all, and also incur the guilt of death and eternal damnation? Lord grant that I may utterly abhor and detest this damnable agreement so long as I live.— If you do not confess and maintain to your power and knowledge that which is grounded upon God's Word, but will either for fear or gain of the world shrink and play the Apostate, indeed you shall die the death. Pag. 448. In his Letter to Mr. Grindall, then in Exile at Frankford, afterward Arch Bishop of Canterbury.— Rejoice in the Lord, and as you love me and the other my Reverend Fathers and Concaptives (which undoubtedly are gloria Christi) lament not our state, but I beseech you to give to our Heavenly Father for his endless mercies and unspeakable benefits even in the midst of all our troubles given to us, most hearty thanks: for know ye, that as the weight of his Cross hath increased upon us, so he hath not, nor doth he cease to multiply his mercies to strengthen us, and I trust, yea by his grace I doubt nothing, but he will so do for Christ our Master's sake even to the end.— West your old Companion, and sometime my Chaplain alas hath relented, but the Lord hath shortened his days; soon after he had said Mass against his conscience, he pined away, and died for sorrow. Pag. 449. — My daily Prayer is (as God doth know) and by God's grace shall be so long as I live in this world for you my Dear Brethren that are fled out of your own Country, because you will rather forsake all worldly things than the Truth of God's Word, that God our eternal Father, for our Saviour Christ's sake will daily increase in you the gracious gift of his Heavenly Spirit to the true setting forth of his Glory and Gospel, and make you to agree brotherly in the Truth of the same, that there arise no root of bitterness among you that may infect that good seed which God hath sown in your hearts already, and that your life may be pure and honest, according to the Rule of God's Word, that others may be in love with your Doctrine and with you, and glorify our Father which is in Heaven.— Now we expect nothing but the triumphant Crowns in the Lord of our Confession from our old enemy. I commend myself humbly and heartily to your Prayers, Dr. Grindal, and to the rest of the Brethren with you, dearly beloved by me in the Lord, viz. Cheek, Cox, Turner, Lever, Samson, Chambers, etc. and others who love the Lord in Truth. I commend also to you my Reverend Fathers and Fellow-prisoners in the Lord, Thomas Cranmer, now most worthy the Name of a true and great Shepherd, yea Arch Bishop, and Hugh Latimer, that old Soldier of Christ's, and the true Apostle of our English Nation.— In his Letter to Augustine Bornher.— Brother Augustine, I bless God with all my heart in his manifold merciful gifts, given unto our dear Brethren in Christ, specially to our Brother Rogers, etc. and also to Hooper, Saunders, and Tailor, whom it hath pleased the Lord to set in the forefront of the Battle against his Adversaries, and hath endued them all (so far as I can hear) to stand in the Confession of his Truth, and to be content in his Cause, and for his Gospel's sake to lose their lives. And evermore and without end blessed be our Heavenly Father, for our dear and entirely beloved Brother Bradford, whom now I perceive the Lord calleth for; for I ween he will no longer suffer him to abide among the adulterous and wicked generation of this world. I doubt not but he hath holpen those which are gone before in their journey, that is, hath animated and encouraged them to keep the high way, and so to run, that at length they might obtain the Prize. The Lord be his comfort, whereof I do not doubt; I thank God heartily that ever I was acquainted with him, and that ever I had such an one in my house. The other two he means are the Protamartyr Rogers, and the Exile Grindal. Pag. 487. I trust to God it shall please him of his goodness to strengthen me to make up the Trinity out of Paul's Church to suffer for Christ, etc. Upon the thirtieth of September, 1555. Dr. Ridley (with Father Latimer) was brought before the Queen's Commissioners to undergo his last Examination. Whilst the Commission was reading he stood bare, till he heard the Cardinal named and the Pope's Holiness, than he put on his Cap; and being admonished by the Bishoy of Lincoln, the Pope's Delegate to pull it off, he answered, I do not put it on in contempt of your Lordship, nor of the Cardinal, in that he came of Royal Blood, etc. but that by this my behaviour I may make it appear, that I acknowledge in no point the usurped Supremacy of Rome; and therefore I contemn and despite all Authority coming from the Pope.— As for taking off my Cap, do as it shall please your Lordships, and I shall be content. Pag. 488. When Lincoln in a long Rhetorical Speech persuaded him to recant, etc. he said; My Lord, in your Exhortation I have marked especially three points, which you used to persuade me to leave my Doctrine and Religion, which I perfectly know and am throughly persuaded to be grounded not upon man's imaginations and decrees, but upon the infallible Truth of Christ's Gospel, and to look back and return to the Romish See contrary to my Oath, contrary to the Prerogative and Crown of this Realm, and especially (which moveth me most) contrary to the expressed Word of God. (1) That the See of Rome taking his beginning from Peter, upon whom (you say) Christ hath builded his Church, hath in all ages lineally from Bishop to Bishop been brought to this time. (2) That the holy Fathers in their Writings from time to time have confessed the same. (3) That I was once of the same Opinion. For the first.— Christ in saying, Upon this stone, doth not mean Peter himself, etc. but his Confession, that he was the Son of God, upon this Rock-stone I will build my Church; for this is the foundation and beginning of all Christianity, with word, heart and mind to confess that Christ is the Son of God.— Christ's Church is built not on the frailty of man, but upon the stable and infallible Word of God, Pag. 489. that Christ is the Son of God.— Whilst the See of Rome continued in the Promotion and setting forth of God's glory, and due preaching of the Gospel, the Fathers commended and honoured Rome, and so do I; but after the Bishops of that See, seeking their own pride and not God's honour, set themselves above Kings, challenging to them the Title of God's Vicars, etc. I cannot but with S. Gregory a Bishop of Rome confess, that the Bishop of that place is the very true Antichrist, whereof St. john speaketh by the name of the Whore of Babylon.— For the third, I cannot but confess I was once of the same Religion you are of, yet so was St. Paul a Persecutor of Christ. Lincoln farther urging him to recant, Pag. 490. etc. he said, am fully persuaded that Christ's Church is founded in every place where his Gospel is truly received and effectually followed. Pag. 491. — Your gentleness is the same that Christ had of the High Priests. Your Lordship saith, You have no power to condemn me, neither at any time to put a man to death: so the High Priests said, That it was not lawful for them to put any man to death, but committed Christ to Pilate; neither would suffer him to absolve Christ, although he sought to do it. What? (said Dr. Weston) do you make the King Pilate? No Dr. (said Ridley) I do but compare your deeds with Caiaphas his deeds and the High Priests, who would condemn no man to death, as you will not, and yet would not suffer Pilate to deliver Christ. Pag. 492. Being required to answer to his Articles presently, though he had time given him till the morrow; First (said he) I require the Notaries to take and write my Protestation, that in no point I acknowledge your Authority, or admit you to be my Judges, as you are authorized from the Pope, etc. Pag. 498. At last the Bishop of Lincoln with his Cap in his hand desired him to turn. But Dr. Ridley made an absolute Answer, That he was fully persuaded the Religion he defended to be grounded on God's Word, and therefore without great offence towards God, great peril and damage of his soul, he could not forsake his Master and Lord God. For my part (said Weston) I take God to witness I am sorry for you. I believe it well my Lord (said Ridley) forasmuch as one day it will be burdenous to your soul. Pag. 500 After Sentence was read against him, the Bishop of Gloucester came to his Prison, and would have persuaded him yet to recant, upon promise of the Queen's mercy; but he answered him, My Lord, you know my mind fully herein, and for the Doctrine which I have taught, my conscience assures me it was sound, and according to God's Word (to his glory be it spoken) the which Doctrine the Lord God being my helper, I will maintain so long as my tongue shall wag, and breath is within my body, and in confirmation thereof seal the same with my blood.— Do with me as it shall please God to suffer you, I am well content to abide the same with all my heart.— The Servant is not above his Master; if they dealt so cruelly with our Saviour Christ, as the Scripture maketh mention, and he suffered the same patiently, how much more doth it become us his Servants.— The Bishop bidding him to hold his peace, he answered, That so long as his tongue and breath would suffer him, he would speak against their abominable doings whatsoever happened unto him for so doing. When in the degrading of him they read, We do take from you the Office of preaching the Gospel, etc. Dr. Ridley gave a great sigh, and looking up towards Heaven, said, O Lord God, forgive them this their wickedness. After his Degradation Brooks the Bishop of Gloucester refusing to talk with him, Pag. 501. he said, Seeing that you will not suffer me to talk, neither will vouchsafe to hear me, what remedy but patience? I refer my cause to my heavenly Father, who will reform things that be amiss, when it shall please him. In his Supplication to the Queen.— It may please your Majesty, for Christ our Saviour's sake, in a matter of Conscience (and now not for myself but for other poor men) to vouchsafe to hear and understand this humble Supplication. It is so (Honourable Princess) that whilst I was Bishop of London, divers Tenants took Leases of me and the Cha●ter for valuable considerations, but now Bishop Bonner will not allow those Leases, which must redound to many poor men's utter ruin. Wherefore this is mine humble Supplication, That either their Leases may stand, or their moneys be restored to them, and their former Leases; now the Fines paid to me may easily be repaid, if you will be pleased to command some portion of those Goods I left in my house to be sold for that end. I suppose half of the value of my Plate will go nigh to restore all such Fines received. Pag. 502. When Bishop Brooks delivered Dr. Ridley to the Bailiffs, charging them not to suffer any to speak with him, and to bring him to the place of Execution when they were commanded, he said, God I thank thee, and to thy praise be it spoken, there is none of you all able to lay to my charge any open or notorious crime; for if you could it should surely be laid in my lap. I see very well you play the part of a proud Pharisee (said Brooks) exalting and praising yourself. No, no, no (said Ridley) to God's glory only is it spoken. I confess myself to be a miserable wretched sinner, and have great need of God's help and mercy, and do daily call and cry for the same. The night before he suffered his Beard was washed and his legs, and as he sat at Supper with Mr. Mr. Irish and Mrs. Irish, he invited them to his Marriage; To morrow (said he) I must be married, and was as merry as ever in all his life. Wishing his Sister, he asked his Brother sitting at the Table, Whether she could find in her heart to be there o● no; yea I dare say (said his Brother) with all her heart. I am glad to hear so much of her (said Dr. Ridley) At this talk Mrs. Irish wept; whereupon Dr. Ridley said, O Mrs. Irish, you love me not now I see-well enough, for in that you weep it doth appear you will not be at my Marriage, neither are content therewith: indeed you be not so much my friend as I thought you had been; but quiet yourself, though my Breakfast shall be somewhat sharp and painful, yet I am sure my Supper shall be more pleasant and sweet. When he arose from the Table, his Brother offered him to watch all night with him; but he said, No, no, no, that you shall not, for I mind (God willing) to go to Bed, and sleep as quietly to night ●s ever I did in my life. When he espied Mr. Latimer at the Stake, he ran to him, embraced and kissed him, and said, Be of good heart Brother, for God will either assuage the fury of the flame, or else strengthen us to abide it. After Dr. Smith had preached on 1 Cor. 13. Pag. 503. If I give my Body to be burned, etc. Dr. Ridley kneeled down on his Knees towards the Lord Williams, etc. ●nd said, I beseech you my Lord, even for Christ's like, that I may speak but two or three words. Whereupon the Bailiffs, and Dr. Marshal Vicechancellor of Oxford ran hastily to him, and with their hands stopped his mouth, and said, Mr. Ridley, if you will recant, you shall not only have liberty to speak, but your life. Not otherwise (said Ridley) No (said Marshal) Well (said Dr. Ridley) so long is the breath is in my Body I will never deny my Lord Christ and his known Truth. God's Will be done in me.— I commit our Cause to Almighty God, who shall indifferently judge all. Being in his shirt, he said, O heavenly Father, I give unto thee most hearty thanks, for that thou ●ast called me to be a Professor of thee even unto death. I beseech thee, Lord God, take mercy upon this Realm of England, and deliver the same from all her enemies. To the Smith he said, Good Fellow knock in the Chain hard; for the flesh will have his course. When his Brother brought him Gunpowder, he said, I will take it to be sent of God; therefore I will receive it as sent of him. To my Lord Williams he said, My Lord, I must be a Suitor to you for divers poor men, and my Sister, etc. There is nothing in all this world troubleth my conscience (I praise God) this only excepted. When he saw the fire flaming towards him, he said, Into thy hands O Lord I commend my Spirit. Lord receive my soul, Lord have mercy upon me. Pag. 505. In his Letter to all his true Friends.— I warn you all that ye be not amazed or astonished at the kind of my departure and dissolution; for I assure you, I think it the most honour that ever I was called to in all my life, and therefore I thank my Lord God heartily for it, etc. For know ye, that I doubt no more, but that the causes wherefore I am put to death, are God's causes, and the causes of the Truth, than I doubt that the Gospel which john wrote is the Gospel of Christ, or that Paul's Epistles are the very Word of God. And to have an heart willing to abide and stand in God's Cause, and in Christ's Quarrel even unto death. I assure thee (O man) it is an inestimable gift of God, given only to the true Elect, and dearly beloved Children of God, and Inheritors of the Kingdom of Heaven: for the holy Apostle, and also Martyr in Christ's Cause St. Peter, 1 Pet. 4. saith, If ye suffer rebuke in the Name of Christ, i. e. in Christ's Cause, and for his Truth's sake, then are ye happy and blessed, for the glory of the Spirit of God resteth upon you; and if for rebukes suffered in the Name of Christ, a man is pronounced blessed and happy, how much more blessed and happy is he that hath the grace to suffer death also? Wherefore all ye that be my true Lovers and Friends rejoice and rejoice with me again, and render with me hearty thanks to God our heavenly Father, that for his Son's sake my Saviour and Redeemer Christ, he hath vouchsafed to call me, being so vile and sinful a wretch in myself, unto the high dignity of his true Prophets, of his faithful Apostles, and of his holy Elect and chosen Martyrs to die in defence and maintenance of his eternal and everlasting Truth. Pag. 507. — If ye love me indeed, you have cause to rejoice, for that it hath pleased God to call me to a greater honour and dignity then ever I did enjoy before, either in Rochester or London, or should have had in Durham, whereunto I was last of all elected; yea I count it greater honour before God indeed to die in his Cause, then is any earthly or temporal promotion or honour that can be given to a man in this world. And who is he that knoweth the Cause to be Gods, to be Christ's Quarrel, and of his Gospel, to be the Commonweal of all the Elect and chosen Children of God, of all the Inheritors of the Kingdom of Heaven? Who is he (I say) that knoweth this assuredly by Gods own Word, and the Testimony of his Conscience (as I through the infinite goodness of God, not of myself, but by his grace acknowledge myself to do) and doth in deed and in truth love and fear God, love and believe his Master Christ, and his blessed Gospel, and the Brotherhood, the chosen Children of God, and also lusteth and longeth for eternal life? who is he (I say again) that would not, that cannot find in his heart in this Cause to be content to die? Pag. 508. — Farewell Pembrohe Hall in C. of late mine own College, my Cure and my Charge what case thou art in now God knoweth, I know not well.— Woe is me for thee mine own dear College, if ever thou suffer thyself by any means to be brought from setting forth God's true Word. In thy Orchard I learned without Book all Paul's Epistles, yea and I ween all the Canonical Epistles, save only the Apocalypse. Of which study, although in time a great part did depart from me, yet the sweet smell thereof I trust I shall carry with me into Heaven. The Lord grant that this zeal and love to that part of God's Word, which is a Key to all the Scripture, may ever abide in that College so long as the world shall endure.— O thou now wicked and bloody See of London, etc. harken thou whorish Bawd of Babylon, thou wicked limb of Antichrist, thou bloody Wolf, why slayest thou and makest havoc of the Prophets of God? why murthereft thou so cruelly Christ's poor silly Sheep, which will not hear thy voice, because thou art a stranger, and will follow none other but their own Pastor Christ his voice? Thinkest thou to escape, or that the Lord will not require the blood of his Saints at thy hands? Pag. 509. — Instead of my farewell to thee now, I say fie upon thee, fie upon thee, silthy Drab, and all thy false Prophets.— To you my Lords of the Temporality will I speak, etc. Know ye that I had before mine eyes only the fear of God and Christian charity toward you that moved me to write, for of you hereafter I look not in this world either for pleasure or displeasure; if my talk shall do you never so much pleasure or profit, you cannot promote me, nor if I displease you can you harm me, for I shall be out of your reach. Pag. 510. — I say unto you as St. Paul saith unto the Galatians, I wonder my Lords what hath bewitched you, that ye so suddenly are fallen from Christ unto Antichrist, from Christ's Gospel unto man's Traditions, from the Lord that bought you unto the Bishop of Rome. I warn you of your peril; be not deceived, except you will be found willingly consenters to your own death.— Understand my Lords, it was neither for the privilege of the Place or Person thereof, that the See and Bishop of Rome were called Apostolic, but for the true trade of Christ's Religion which was taught and maintained in that See at the first of those godly men; and therefore as truly and justly as that See then for that true trade of Religion and consanguinity of Doctrine with the Religion and Doctrine of Christ's Apostle was called Apostolic, so as truly and as justly for the contrariety of Religion, and diversity of Doctrine from Christ and his Apostles that See and the Bishop thereof at this day both aught to be called and are indeed Antichristian. The See is the Seat of Satan, and the Bishop of the same that maintaineth the Abominations thereof is Antichrist himself indeed. Pag. 511. — As for your displeasure by that time this shall come to your knowledge, I trust by God's grace to be in the hands and protection of the Almighty, my heavenly Father, the living Lord, the greatest of all, and then I shall not need (I trow) to fear what any Lord, no nor what King or Prince can do unto me.— Much cause have you to hear me patiently, seeing I am appointed to die, and look daily when I shall be called to come before the eternal Judge, and therefore you cannot think, but that I only study to serve my Lord God, and to say that thing which I am persuaded assuredly by God's Word shall and doth please him, and profit all to whom God shall give grace to hear and believe what I do say.— If the Pope's supremacy be necessary to salvation to be owned, How chanced it that ye were all (my Lords) so light as for your Prince's pleasures, H. 8. and E. 6. which were but mortal men, to forsake the Unity of your Catholic Faith, i. e. to forsake Christ and his Gospel? How chanced it also that ye and the whole Parliament did not only abolish and expel the Bishop of Rome, but also did abjure him in your own persons, and did decree in your Acts great Oaths to be taken for that purpose? On the other side, if the Law and Decree which maketh the supremacy of the See and Bishop of Rome over the universal Church of Christ be a thing of necessity required unto salvation by an Antichristian Law (as it is indeed) then (my Lords) never think other, but the day shall come when ye shall be charged with this your undoing that which once ye had well done, and with this your perjury and breach of your Oath, which Oath was done in judgement, justice, and truth, agreeable to Gods Law. The Whore of Babylon may for a time dally with you, and make you so drunken with the wine of her filthy stews and whoredoms (as with her dispensations and promises of pardon a poena & culpa) that you may think yourselves safe; but be ye assured, when the Living Lord shall try the matter by fire, and judge it according to his Word, unless ye repent, without all doubt ye shall never escape the hands of the Living God for the guilt of your perjury and breach of your Oath; then shall ye drink of the Cup of the Lords indignation and everlasting wrath, which is prepared for the Beast, his false Prophets, and all their partakers. For he that is partner with them in their whoredoms and abominations, must also be partner with them in their plagues, and be thrown with them into the Lake burning with brimstone and unquenchable fire.— In his Letter to the Prisoners, etc. and Exiles.— For the fervent love that the Apostles had unto their Master Christ, Pag. 512. and for the great commodities and increase of all godliness, which they felt by their faith to ensue of afflictions in Christ's Cause. And thirdly, For the heaps of heavenly joys which the same do get unto the godly, which shall endure in Heaven for evermore, for these causes they rejoiced that they were accounted worthy to suffer contumelies and rebukes for Christ's Name. And Paul was so much in love in that which the carnal man loatheth so much, i. e. with Christ's Cross, that he judged himself to know nothing else but Christ crucified, he gloried in nothing else but Christ's Cross. Pag. 513. — Why should we Christians fear death? Can death deprive us of Christ, who is all our comfort, our joy, and our life? Nay forsooth; But on the contrary Death shall deliver us from this mortal body, which loadeth and beareth down the Spirit, that it cannot so well perceive heavenly things, in the which so long as we dwell, we are absent from the lord— And who that hath a right knowledge of Christ our Saviour, that he is the eternal Son of God, life, light, the wisdom of the Father, all goodness, all righteousness, and whatsoever heart can desire, yea infinite plenty of all these, above that that man's heart can conceive or imagine (for in him dwelleth the fullness of the Godhead bodily) and also that he is given us of the Father, and made of God to be our wisdom, our righteousness, our holiness, and our redemption; who (I say) is that believeth this indeed that would not gladly be with his Master Christ?— To die in the defence of Christ's Gospel is our bounden duty to Christ, and also to our neighbour; to Christ, for he died for us, and rose that he might be Lord of all; and seeing he died for us, we also saith St. john, 1 joh. 3. should jeopard, yea give our life for the Brethren.— Farewell (dear Brethren) farewell, Pag. 514. and let us comfort our hearts in all troubles and in death with the Word of God, for Heaven and Earth shall perish, but the Word of the Lord endureth for ever. In his Lamentation for the change of Religion in England.— Of late in every Congregation throughout all England was made Prayer and Petition unto God to be delivered from the Tyranny of the Bishop of Rome, and all his detestable enormities, from all false doctrine and heresy, and now alas! Satan hath persuaded England by his falsehood and craft to revoke her old godly prayer, etc.— This is one maxim and principle in Christ's Law, Pag. 518. He that denieth Christ before men, him shall Christ deny before his Father and all his holy Angels in Heaven.— Now then seeing the doctrine of Antichrist is returned again into this Realm, and the higher Powers alas! are so deceived and bewitched, that they are persuaded it to be Truth, and Christ's true Doctrine to be error and heresy, and the old Laws of Anticrist are allowed to return with the power of their Father again. What can be hereafter looked for of Christians abiding in this Realm, but extreme violence of death, or else to deny their Master?— Therefore prepare and arm thyself to die, for both by Antichrists accustomable Laws, and Scripture Prophecies, there is no likelihood of any other thing, except thou wilt deny thy Master Christ, which is the loss at the last of body and soul unto everlasting death.— My counsel to such as are yet at liberty, is to fly from the plague and get them hence. I consider not only the subtleties of Satan, and how he is like to deceive (it it were possible) even the chosen of God, and also the great frailty, which is oftentimes more in a man, than he doth know in himself, and which in the time of temptation will utter itself; but also the examples of Christ, Paul, Elias, etc. and Christ saith, When they persecute you in one City fly unto another.— Truly before God I think that the abomination that Daniel prophesied of so long before, is now set up in the holy Place; the Doctrine of Antichrist, his Laws, Rites, and Religion contrary to Christ, and to the true serving and worshipping of God I understand to be that abominition; therefore now is the time in England for those words of Christ, Then (saith Christ) they that be in Jewry let them fly into the Mountains, than (saith he) mark this then; for truly I am persuaded, and I trust by the Spirit of God that this then is commanded. By those in jewry I understand such who truly confess one Living God, and the whole truth of his Word after the Doctrine of Christ's Gospel; these are bid in the time of Antichrists reign to fly into the Mountains, i. e. places of safeguard. The woe that followeth signifieth, Pag. 519. that such are then in extreme danger who are letted by any means whatsoever, so that they be no ways able to fly from the plague; and Christ's bidding to pray that our flight be not in Winter, nor on the Sabbath day, bids us to pray that we may fly in time, and far enough from the danger of the plague.— Rev. 18. The Angel cries mightily with a loud voice, Fli● my people out of Babylon, lest you be infected with her faults, and so be made partakers of her plagues; for her offences and sins are grown so great, that they come to Heaven: Certainly the time doth approach, and the Lords day is at hand. Paul also that blessed Apostle forbids us, 2 Cor. 6. to join ourselves with the unfaithful, etc. This counsel to depart the Realm some good persons may think good; others may think it may indeed by God's Word be lawfully done, but not to be counselled to be done; for they will peradventure say, We should counsel a man always to do that which is best of all, and of most perfection; but boldly in Christ's Cause to spend a man's life is best of all, and of most perfection, and to flee may smell of cowardliness: whereas in many things that which is best for one, at sometimes is not best for all at all times; and it is not meet for a child to covet to run before he can go.— But every true Christian, either Brother or Sister, after they be be called and brought into the wrestling-place to strive in Christ's Cause for the best game, i. e. to confess the Truth of the Gospel in hope of everlasting life, should not shrink, nor relent one inch, nor give back, whatsoever shall befall, but to stand to their tackle, and stick by it even unto death, as they will Christ shall stick by them at the later day.— Some may think they may stay and escape the danger notwithstanding, by keeping their Faith and Religion close to themselves, inwardly worshipping God in spirit and truth, Pag. 520. and outwardly not transgressing common order. Whereas God's Word requireth not only the belief of the heart, but the confession of the mouth, forbids not only the thing that is evil, but to abstain from all appearance of evil, and both consenters and doers are accounted guilty by God's Word, and we may not do evil that good may come thereof. Thy heart thou sayest God shall have, and yet will suffer thy body to do the thing that God abhors: Take heed, O man, what thou sayest, thou canst not deceive the heart-searcher. To give God thy heart is to give him thy whole heart, to love him, to dread him, and to trust in him above all other things, and he loveth God that keeps his commands; and to dread God above all other is rather willingly to incur the danger and peril of all fearful things, then wittingly to do what God forbids, and to trust in him above all things is assuredly to trust to his promise of his reward and of his tuition, and of his goodness and mercy, and to prefer that above all things in the world, seem they never so strong, so wise, or so good. Now how canst thou say truly, that God hath thus thy heart, when thy deeds do declare far another thing? Thy body, O man, is Gods, and all the parts thereof, even as thy soul is; he made them both, and Christ with his blood redeemed them both, and is Lord of both; for he hath bought them both dearly, and darest thou suffer any part of either of them to do service to Satan? Surely in so doing thou committest sacrilege, and dost rob God.— What is it to bear the mark of the Beast in the forehead, and in the hand, that St. john speaketh of? I suppose he bears the mark of the Beast in his forehead, which is not ashamed of the Beasts ways, but will profess them openly; and he beareth his mark in the hand that doth the works, though he may be ashamed to own them. Pag. 521. — It may be objected, O Sir it is no small matter you speak of, to depart from a man's own Native Country into a strange Realm. Some have Lands and Possessions, which they cannot carry with them: Some have Father, Mother, Wife, Children, and Kinsfolk, from whom to depart is as hard a thing, and almost all one as to suffer death, etc. I grant here thou mayest heap a number of worldly in commodities, which are very like to ensue the departure out of a man's own Country: but what of all these and a thousand more of the like sort? I will set against them all one saying of Christ, which to the true Christian is able to countervail all these, yea to weigh them down, viz. If any man do come to me, and do not hate Father and Mother (he means, and will not in his Cause forsake his Father and Mother) etc. he cannot be my Disciple.— It may further be objected; Alas! Sir, I am an impotent man, an aged man, a sick man, a lame man, or I have so many small Infants & a Wife which live by my labour, if I leave them they will starve, and I am not able to carry them with me, such is my state, what shall I do? O lamentable state! O sorrowful heart that can neither depart, nor without extreme peril is able to tarry still! Of the state of such as are not able to fly the infection of the pestiferous plague of Antichrists abominations Christ lamenting, not cursing, saith, Woe be to the great bellied and travelling women, etc. For these my heart mourneth the more, the less I am able to give any comfortable counsel, but this, That always as they look for everlasting life, they abide still in the confession of his Truth, whatsoever shall befall, and for the rest to put their trust wholly in God, who is able to save them against all appearance. And commonly in extremities, when all worldly comfort faileth, and the danger is at highest, then unto his he is wont after his accustomed mercy, to be most ready to put his helping hand; instance in Daniel, the three Children, Paul plucked out of the mouth of the Lion, in the Mount God raised up most of the Judges for the delivering of his people. Pag. 522. — As to such instances it may be objected these were special miracles of God which now are ceased; and to require them at God's hands were it not to tempt God? I grant such were great wonderful works of God, etc. but God's hand is as strong as ever it was, and he is as good and as gracious as ever he was, but in such as are put to death for his sake he doth more, when in anguish of the torments he standeth by them, and strengtheneth them in their saith to suffer in confession of the Truth the bitter pangs of death, etc.— To die in Christ's Cause is an high honour, Pag. 523. to the which no man should aspire, but to whom God vouchsafeth that privilege; for no man is allowed to presume to take to himself any office of honour, but he which is thereunto called of God. Rev. 12. john saith well, speaking of them which have obtained the Victory by the blood of the Lamb, and by the Word of his Testimony, that they loved not their lives even unto death. And our Saviour Christ saith, Mat. 16. He that shall lose his life for my Cause shall find it. This manner of speech pertaineth not to one kind of Christians (as the worldly do wickedly dream) but to all, that truly pertain to Christ; for when Christ had called unto him the multitude together with his Disciples, he said unto them (Mark, he said not this unto his Disciples or Apostles only, but unto all) Whosoever will follow me, let him forsake or deny himself, etc. for whosoever will to save his life, forsake me and my Truth, shall lose it, and whosoever shall lose, Mark S. etc. Whosoever shall ●e ashamed of me and my words, i. e. to confess me and my Gospel before this adulterous generation, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed, etc. Know thou, O man of God, that all things are ordained for the furtherance of thee towards thy salvation. All things (saith Paul) work with the good to goodness, etc. It is not as the wicked think, That poverty, adversity, sickness, tribulation, yea painful death of the godly be tokens that God doth not love them, but even the clean contrary.— Now (thou, O man of God) for the Lord's sake, let us not for the love of this life, tarry here too long, and be occasion of delay of that glorious consummation of all Christ's Sufferers, in hope and expectation whereof the former Martyrs have departed in the Lord, and the which also the living endued with God's Spirit, ought so earnestly to desire, Rev. 22. etc. crying out, Come Lord jesus, come. Then shall our weak body be transfigured and made like to Christ's glorious body, and then shall we see, and have the unspeakable joy and fruition of the glorious Majesty of our Lord, even as he is. Who, or what then shall let us to jeopard? yea to spend this life, which we have here, in Christ's Cause? in our Lord God his Cause? O therefore thou man of God, that art loaden, and so letted, like unto a great bellied woman, that thou canst not fly the plague, yet if thou lust after such things, as I have spoken of, stand fast whatsoever shall befall thee in thy Master's Cause, and take this thy letting to fly for a call from God to fight in thy Master Christ's Cause. Of this be thou certain, they can do nothing unto thee, which thy Father is not aware of, or hath not foreseen before: they can do no more than it shall please him to suffer them to do for the furtherance of his glory, edifying of his Church, and thine own salvation.— O be not afraid, and remember the end. What I have spoken for the comfort of the bigbellied woman, I mean to be spoken likewise to the Captive and Prisoner in God's Cause; for such I count to be as it were already summoned and pressed to fight under the Banner of the Cross of Christ, and as it were Soldiers allowed and taken up for the Lords Wars, to do their Lord and Master good and honourable service, and to stick to him even unto death, etc. To conclude, I say unto all that love Christ Jesus our Redeemer and Saviour, that love to follow the ways of the holy Ghost, who is our Comforter and Sanctifier, that love Christ's Spouse and Body, etc. yea, that love life and their souls health. Harken my dear Brethren and Sisters, Pag. 524. etc. to the Word of our Saviour Jesus Christ, Mat. 10. spoken to his Apostles, and meant to all his in St. Matthew's Gospel, Fear not them which kill the body, for they cannot kill the soul; but fear him, etc.— The Lord grant us of his heavenly grace and strength, that here we may so confess him in this world amongst this adulterous generation, that he may confess us again at the last day before his Father, etc.— In his Reasons why Images should not be placed and erected in Churches. Pag. 992. — First the words of the Command, Exod. 20. repeated more plainly, Deut. 27. where observe those words, Thou shalt not make to thyself, mean, to any use of Religion: and those, And setteth it in a secret place, imply, that no man durst then commit Idolatry openly.— The reason why God gave this general Prohibition is, Pag. 993. lest thou being deceived, shouldst bow down to them, and worship them. This general Law is generally to be observed, though some be not hurt by them. Moses was not deceived or seduced by Iethroes Daughter, nor Boaz by Ruth, a woman of Moab; yet the general Law was to be observed, Thou shalt not join thy children in marriage with strangers, Deut. 7. lest she seduce thy Son, etc.— If by virtue of the second Commandment Images were not lawful in the Temple of the Jews, then by the second Command they are unlawful in the Churches of Christians; but, etc. in the Tabernacle and Temple of God no Images were appointed openly to beset, nor by practice afterwards used or permitted, so long as Religion was purely observed; therefore, etc. For the second Command is moral and not ceremonial, etc. The Jews by no means would consent to Herod, Pilate, or Pe●ronius, that Images should be placed in the Temple at Jerusalem, but rather offered themselves unto death, then to consent unto it. Besides that josephus commends them for observing the meaning of the Law: sure they would not have endangered themselves so far, if they had thought Images had been indifferent in the Temple of God.— Ath●nasius tells us, The invention of Images came of no good, but of evil, and whatsoever hath an evil beginning, can never in any thing be judged good, seeing it is wholly naught.— T●rtullian expounding those words, Little Children, beware of Images, saith, That the meaning is, as if he had said, Little Children, keep yourselves from the shape itself or form of them. Images in the Church either serve to edify, or to destroy. If they edify, than there is one kind of edification, which the Scriptures neither teach nor command, 1 Cor. 14. but always disallow: if they destroy, they are not to be in the Church. The Command of God is, Thou shalt not lay a stumbling-block before the blind, and cursed is he that maketh the blind wander in his way. Images are snares and traps for the feet of the ignorant. Pag. 994. — Images do not stir up the mind to Devotion, but distract the mind from Prayer, hearing of God's Word, etc. Hence in the Council-chamber of the Lacedæmonians no picture was suffered, least in Consultation of the weighty matters of the Commonwealth, their minds by the sight of the outward Image might be withdrawn or wander from the matter.— To allow a most certain peril for an uncertain profit, and the greatest danger for the smallest benefit, in matters of Faith and Religion, is a tempting of God, and a grievous offence.— In the Primitive Church there were no Images in places of Assembly for Religion; this the Heathens objected to the Christians for a crime, as Origen and Arnobius testify, etc.— Lactantius saith, It is not to be doubted that there is no Religion, wheresoever is any Image.— Not only by Varro's judgement, but also by St. Augustine's approbation of Varro, the most pure and chaste observation of Religion, and nearest the Truth, Pag. 995. is to be without Images.— By the judgement of this ancient Father (Epiphanius) to permit Images in Churches is against the Authority of Scripture, meaning, against the second Commandment, etc. Besides Epiphanius doth reject not only graven and molten, but painted Images. Again, he spared not the Image of Christ: yea, he did not only remove it, but with a vehemency of zeal cut in pieces: and he is careful that no such kind of painted Images be permitted in the Church.— It is manifest to them that read Histories, that not only Emperors, but also divers and sundry Councils in the East Church have condemned and abolished Images both by Decrees and Examples.— But this notwithstanding experience hath declared, Pag. 996. That neither Councils, nor Writings, Preachings, Decrees, making of Laws, prescribing of Punishments, have holpen against Images, to which Idolatry hath been committed, nor against Idolatry, whilst Images stood.— In his Letter to his Dear Brother, and Reverend Fellow-Elder in Christ john Hooper. Pag. 147. — My dearly beloved Brother, etc. whom I reverence in the Lord, etc. Forasmuch as I understand by your works, that we throughly agree and wholly consent together in those things which are the grounds and substantial points of our Religion, against which the world so furiously rageth in our days, howsoever in time passed by certain by-matters and circumstances of Religion, your wisdom and my simplicity (I grant) hath a little jarred, each of us following the abundance of his own sense and judgement. Now (I say) be you assured, that even with my whole heart, God is my witness, in the bowels of Christ, I love you in the Truth, and for the Truth's sake, which abideth in us; and, as I am persuaded, shall by the grace of God abide in us for evermore. Because the world, as I perceive, Brother, busily conspireth against Christ our Saviour, with all possible force and power, let us join hands together in Christ; Pag. 148. and if we cannot overthrow, yet to our power, and as much as in us lies, let us shake those high Altitudes, not with carnal but with spiritual weapons. Let us also prepare ourselves for death, by which after our short afflictions here, by the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, we shall triumph together with him in eternal glory. I pray you Brother salute in my Name your Reverend Fellow-Prisoner and Venerable Father Dr. Cranmer, by whom, since the first day that I heard of his most godly and fatherly constancy, in confessing the Truth of the Gospel, I have conceived great consolation and joy in the lord— It will also be to me great joy to hear of your constancy and fortitude in the Lords Quarrel. I am earnestly moved to counsel you, not to hasten the publishing of your Works, especially under your own Name, lest your mouth should be stopped hereafter, and all things taken away from the rest of the Prisoners, whereby otherwise if it so please God, may be able to do good to many. Farewell in the Lord, my most Dear Brother.— Once again and for ever in Christ, my most Dear Brother farewell. Rieux. Dionysius de Rieux was one of them who was first burned at Melda, Fox, Vol. 2. pag. 128. or Meaux in France, An. 1528. for saying, That the Mass is a plain denial of the Death and Passion of Christ. He was always wont to have in his mouth the Words of Christ, He that denieth me before men, him also will I deny before my Father. Rogers. Mr. john Rogers preaching at Paul's Cross even after Queen Mary was come to the Tower of London, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 119. confirmed the Truth of that Doctrine which he and others had there taught in King Edward's days, exhorting the people constantly to remain in the same, and to beware of all pestilent Popery, Idolatry and Superstition. For that Sermon he was called in Question. In his Examination and Answer jan. 22. 1555.— I never granted King Henry the Eighth to have any Supremacy in spiritual things, Pag. 120. as are the forgiveness of sins, giving of the holy Ghost, authority to be a Judge above the Word of God. — The Chancellor asserting, That the Parliament that abolished the Pope's Supremacy was with most great cruelty constrained thereunto. He answered, With cruelty? Why then I perceive that you take a wrong way with cruelty to persuade men's consciences; for it should appear by your doings now, that the cruelty then used hath not persuaded your consciences. How would you then have your consciences persuaded with cruelty?— Sir Richard Southwell telling him, Pag. 122. That he would not burn in this year, when it cometh to the Purpose: he answered, Sir, I cannot tell, but I trust to my Lord God, yes; lifting up his eyes to Heaven.— I desire the hearty and unfeigned help of the Prayers of all Christ's true Members, the true Imps of the true unfeigned Catholic Church, that the Lord God of all consolation will now be my comfort, aid, strength, buckler and shield, as also of all my Brethren that are in the same case and distress, that I and they all may despise all manner of threats and cruelty, and even the bitter burning fire, and the dreadful dart of death, and stick like true Soldiers to our dear and loving Captain Christ, our only Saviour and Redeemer, and the only true Head of the Church, that doth all in us all, which is the property of an Head, and that we do not traitorously run out of his Tents, or rather out of the plain field from him, in the greatest jeopardy of the battle, but that we may persevere in the fight (if he will not otherwise deliver us) till we be most cruelly slain of his enemies: For this I most heartily, and at this present with tears most instantly and earnestly desire and beseech you all to pray. In his second Examination and Answer jan. 28, 29. 1555.— Should (said the Chancellor) when the Parliament hath concluded a thing, any private person have authority to discuss, whether they had done right or wrong? No, that may not be. I answered shortly, That all the Laws of men might not, neither could rule the Word of God, but that they all must be discussed and judged thereby, and obey thereto: and neither my conscience, nor any Christians could be satisfied with such Laws, as disagreed from that Word. — Mr. Hooper and Mr. Card-maker were examined before me. Pag. 123. The Lord grant us grace to stand together, fight lawfully in his Cause, till we be smitten down together, if the Lords Will be so to permit it; for there shall not an hair of our heads perish against his Will, but with his Will; whereunto the same Lord grant us to be obedient unto the end and in the end. Amen. Sweet, mighty and merciful Lord Jesus, the Son of David, and of God. Amen, Amen, let every true Christian say and pray. — I told the Chancellor, That I would not be out of the Catholic Church, but into his Church by God's grace, Pag. 124. I would never come. Well (said he) then is our Church false and Antichristian? Yes said I.— When I desired leave to confirm my Doctrine by writing, you would not grant it, because I was a private person, and the Parliament was above the Authority of all private Persons; and therefore the sentence thereof might not be found fault with, etc. And yet my Lord (said I) I can show that one man hath come into a general Council, and after the whole had agreed upon an Article, hath by the Word of God declared so pithily that the Council had erred in declaring the said Article, that he caused the whole Council to alter their Act.— Panormitanus also (said I) saith, That unto a simple Layman that bringeth the Word of God with him, there ought to be given more credit, then to a whole Council assembled together. — The Chancellor facing me, and hoping to dash me out of Cowtenance, I told him, in that Cause, being God's Cause, he should not make me afraid to speak.— I was never the worse but the better to be earnest in a just and true cause, and in my Master Christ's matters. Pag. 125. — When Winchester had read the Condemnation, he declared that I was in the great curse, etc. Well my Lord (said I) here I stand before God and you, and all this honourable Audience, and take him to witness, that I never wittingly nor willingly taught any false Doctrine; and therefore have I a good conscience before God and all good men. Pag. 126. I am sure you and I shall come before a God that is righteous, before whom I shall be as good a man as you: and I nothing doubt but that I shall be found there a true Member of the true Catholic Church of Christ, and everlastingly saved: and as for your false Church, ye need not to excommunicate me forth of it, I have not been in it these twenty years, the Lord be thanked therefore. But now ye have done what ye can, my Lord, I pray you yet grant me one thing, that my poor wife being a stranger, and having ten children by me, may come and speak with me as long as I live. She shall not come at thee said he. Then I have tried out all your charity said I.— Two things more I purposed to have touched, if I could have been permitted: The one, how it was lawful for a private man to reason and write against a wicked Act of Parliament, or ungodly Council, etc. The other was to prove, that Prosperity was not always a token of God's love. Pag. 127. Acts 5. For the first— I shall add one example more. The high Priests, the Elders, Scribes and Pharisees decreed in their Council, and gave ●he same command to the Apostles, that they should ●ot preach in the Name of Christ, as ye have also forbidden us. Notwithstanding when they were charged therewithal, they answered, We ought more to obey God then man. Even so we may answer you, God is more to be obeyed then man; and your wicked Laws cannot so tongue-tie us, but we will speak the Truth. The Apostles were beaten for their boldness, and they rejoiced that they suffered for Christ's Cause. Ye have also provided rods for ●s, and bloody whips; yet when ye have done that which Gods Hand and Counsel hath determined, that ye shall do, be it life or death, I trust that ●od will so assist us by his holy Spirit and Grace, that we shall patiently suffer it, and praise God for it. And whatsoever become of me and others, which now suffer for speaking and professing the Truth, yet be ye sure that God's Word will prevail and have the upper hand, when your bloody Laws and wicked Decrees, for want of sure foundation, shall fall in the dust.— For the second point.— It may please your Lordship to understand, That we poor Preachers whom you so evil entreat, did most boldly and plainly rebuke the evil government of those under King Edward in many things, especially their covetousness, and neglect and small regard to live after the Gospel, as also their negligence to occasion others to live thereafter. I might instance in what I once did at Paul's Cross, for which I was fain to answer before all the Council, and many of my Brethren did the like; so that we for the not rebuking of their faults, shall not answer before God, nor be blame-worthy before men.— I am an English man born, and God knoweth do naturally wish well to my Country. Pag. 128. I have often proved that the things which I have much feared should come to pass, have indeed followed. I fear you have and will with your Governing bring England out of God's Blessing into a warm Sun. I pray God I may fail of my guessing in this behalf: but truly that (England's welfare) will not be with expelling the true Word of God out of the Realm, and the shedding innocent blood.— Gods works are wonderful and incomprehensible by man's Wisdom, etc. He hath put his Beloved and Dear Heart into his enemy's hands. jer. 12. — This to worldly wise men is a madness above all madness, and yet God doth this,— Can the world show the cause?— This I am right sure of, that it was not because they were in Heresies, and subject to false gods services, and idolatry, and their enemy's men of God, and beloved of God.— The Herod's and Pharaohs plainly determined, that if the men which they killed and handled evil had been God's people, God would never have suffered them to come into their hands, but rather have done the contrary, and have let john Baptist kill Herod, and the Israelites Pharaoh and Nabuchadnezzar. Even the like is now to be seen in us, and in our most cruel adversaries. They are not therefore the Catholic Church, because our merciful God hath at this present given our lives into their hands: neither are we therefore Heretics, because we suffer punishment at their hands. john 1. Acts 16. Acts 17. Acts 21. Acts 22. Pag. 129. — The holy men of God recorded in Scripture, were in their days accounted to be Heretics, Seditious, and Disturbers of the whole world.— But here they will cry out, Lo these men will be still like ●●hn Baptists, the Apostles and Prophets, etc. I an●●er, We make not ourselves like to them in doing miracles, etc. but only in this, in Doctrine, and in offering persecution and infamy for the same. We ●●ve preached their very Doctrine, and none other ●●ing, and for this Cause we suffer the like reproach, ●ame, and rebuke of the world, and the like persecution, losing of our goods and lives, forsaking (as ●●r Master Christ commandeth) Father, Mother, ●●ster, Brethren, Wives, Children, and all ●●at there is, being assured of a joyful Resurrection, and to be crowned in glory with them, according to the infallible Promises made unto us in Christ, our only and sufficient Mediator, etc.— But let us consider, that if it be Gods good will and pleasure to give his own beloved heart, i. e. his beloved Church and the Members thereof, into the hands of their Enemies, ●o chasten, try, and prove them, and to bring them ●o the true unfeigned acknowledging of their own natural stubbornness, disobedience towards God ●nd his Commands, as touching the love of God ●nd their Brethren, and their natural inclination ●and readiness to love Creatures, to seek their own ●usts, and pleasures, etc. to promote repentance in ●hem, and crying to God for forgiveness, and for he said of the Spirit daily to mortify those evil desire's and lusts, etc. with many other causes. What doth he hereafter with those Enemies, into whose ●ands he hath given his tenderly beloved Darlings? He destroyeth and damneth the impenitent Enemies, as is evident in Herod, Pharaoh, etc.— And think ye that bloody butcherly Bishop of W. and his most bloody Brethren shall escape? or that England shall not for their offences, and especially for the maintenance of their Idolatry, and wilful following of them, not abide a great brunt? Ye undoubtedly. If God look not mercifully on England, the seeds of utter destruction are sown in i● already, Pag. 130. etc.— Spite of Nebuchadnezzar's beard and maugre his heart, the captive, enthralled, and miserable Jews must come home again, and have their City and Temple builded up again by Zerubbabel, etc. and Babylon's Kingdom must go to ruin, and be taken of Strangers, the Persians and Medes. So shall the dispersed English Flock be brought again into their former estate, or to a better, etc. and our bloody Babylonical Bishops, etc. brought to utter shame and ruin; for God cannot, and undoubtedly will not for ever suffer their abominable lying false doctrine, their hypocrisy, blood-thirst, whoredom, idleness, their pestilent life, pampered in all kind of pleasure, their Thrasonical boasting pride, their malicious, envious, and poisoned stomaches, which they bear towards his poor and miserable Christians. If judgement begin at the House of God, etc. The morning that he should be burnt, he was found fast asleep, so that he could scarce with much jogging be awakened. At last being raised and waked and bid to make haste; Then (said he) if it be so, I need not to tie my Points. So little daunted was this Proto Martyr, of all the blessed Company that suffered in Queen Mary's days, at the tidings of death and of such a death. After he was degraded by Bonner but one Petition, viz. That he might talk a few words with his Wife before his burning, but that would not be granted. Probably he desired to speak to her, that he might reveal where he had hid the Book he had writ of his Examinations and Answers: But man's malice could not hinder God's Providence from bringing that Book to his Wife's hands after his death out of the blind corner in the Prison, where he had hid, and where it could not be found by his enemies, though they made diligent search for his Papers. When he was in Prison he told the Printer of Mr. Fox's Acts and Mon. who was then a Prisoner also for Religion, Pag. 131. thus, Thou shalt live to see the alteration if this Religion, and the Gospel to be freely preached again, and therefore have me commended to my Brethren, as well in Exile, as others, and bid them be circumspect in displacing the Papists, and putting good Ministers into Churches, or else their end will be worse than ours. Whilst he was a Prisoner in Newgate he had devised, that he with his Fellows should have but one meal a day, they paying for two, the other meal should be given to those that lacked on the other side of the Prison: but their Keeper would not suffer it. The Lord's Day before he suffered he drank to Mr. Hooper, being then underneath him, and said, That there never was a little Fellow, that would better stick to a man, than he would stick to him: Supposing they should both be burnt together. But it happened otherwise. As he was to be brought out of Newgate to Smithfield, Mr. Woodro●fe, one of the Sheriffs, came to him, and asked him if he would recant? That which I have preached (said Mr. Rogers) I will seal with my blood. Then (said the Sheriff) thou art an Heretic. That shall be known (said he) at the day of Judgement. Well (said W.) I will never pray for thee. But (said he) I will pray for you. A little before his burning at the Stake, his Pardon was brought to him, if he would recant: but he utterly refused it. His Wife and Children being eleven in number, ten that could go, and one sucking on the Breast, met him by the way as he was going towards Smithfield: but this sight, grievous indeed to flesh and blood, could nothing move him. As he was burning, he washed his hands (as it were) in the flame. Romanus. Fox, Vol. 1. pag. 115. When Galerius with Asclepiades invaded the City of Antioch, by force of Arms to drive the Christians to renounce their pure Religion, Romanus ran to the Christians, at that time congregated together, and declared that the Wolves were at hand, that would devour the Christian Flock; but fear not (said he) neither let this imminent peril disturb you my Brethren. Hereupon old Men and Matrons, Fathers and Mothers, young Men and Maidens were most ready to shed their blood in the defence of their Christian Profession. Pag. 116. — Romanus so encouraged them, that they did not stick to offer their naked throats, wishing gloriously to die for the Name of their Christ. Whereupon Romanus was brought before the Emperor, who said, What? art thou the Author of this sedition? art thou the cause why so many shall lose their lives? By the gods I swear thou shalt smart for it; and first in thy flesh shalt thou suffer the pains, whereunto thou hast encouraged the hearts of thy fellows. Romanus answered, Thy sentence, O Emperor, I joyfully embrace. I refuse not to be sacrificed for my Brethren, and that by as cruel means, as thou canst invent: And whereas thy Soldiers were repelled from the Christian Congregation, that so happened, because it lay not in Idolaters and worshippers of Devils to enter into the holy House of God, and to pollute the Place of true Prayer. When the Torments would not truss him up and draw out his Bowels, because he was of noble Parentage; the Captain commanded him to be scourged with Whips with knaps of Lead at the ends. Instead of tears, sighs, and groans, Romanus sung Psalms all the time of his whipping, requiring them not to favour him for his noble Birth. Not the blood of my Progenitors (said he) but Christian Profession maketh me Noble. When the Captain commanded his Sides to be lanced with Knives, until the Bones appeared white again: Sorry am I, O Captain (said he) not that my flesh shall be thus cut and mangled; but for thy cause am I sorrowful, who, being corrupted with damnable errors, seducest others. He preached the second time the living God, and the Lord Jesus Christ, his well-beloved Son, and eternal life through faith in his blood; together with the abomination of idolatry, etc. Whereupon his face was buffeted, his eyelids torn with their nails, his cheeks scotched with knives, the skin of his beard was plucked by little and little from the flesh, etc. Thereupon the meek Martyr said, I thank thee, O Captain, that thou hast opened unto me many mouths, whereby I may preach my Lord and Saviour Christ: Look how many wounds I have, so many mouths I have lauding and praising God. When the Captain blasphemingly said, Thy crucified Christ is but a yesterdays God; the gods of the Gentiles are of most Antiquity. Romanus desired the Captain to hear what a Child of seven years of age would say. His request being granted, Tell me my Babe (said Romanus) whether thou think it reason that we worship one Christ, and in Christ one Father, or else that we worship infinite gods? To whom the Babe answered, That certainly whatsoever it be that men affirm to be God must needs be One; which with One is one and the same: and in as much as this One is Christ, of necessity Christ must be the true God; for that there be many gods we Children cannot believe. The Captain hereat amazed, said, Thou young Villain and Traitor, where and of whom learnedest thou this Lesson? Of my Mother (said the Child) with whose milk I sucked in this Lesson, that I must believe in Christ. The Captain thereupon commanded the Child to be hoist up and scourged. The joyful Mother only saw that sight with dry eyes: yea, the rebuked her sweet Babe for craving a draught of cold water. She charged him to thirst after the Cup, that the Infants of Bethlem once drank of, forgetting their Mother's Milk and Paps. She willed him to remember little Isaac, who beholding the Sword wherewith, and the Altar whereon he should be sacrificed, willingly proffered his tender neck to the dint of his Fathers Sword. Then the butcherly Tormentor plucked the skin from the Crown of his head, hair and all. The Mother cried, Suffer my Child, anon thou shalt pass to him, that will adorn thy naked head with a Crown of eternal Glory. The Child received the stripes with a smiling countenance. As they laid hands on Romanus, to carry him to the place of Execution, he looked back, and said, I appeal from this thy tyranny, O Judge unjust, unto the righteous Throne of Christ, that upright Judge; not because I fear thy cruel torments and merciless handle, but that thy judgements may be known to be cruel and bloody. When the Tormentor required the Child of the Mother, Pag. 117. who had taken it up in her arms, she kissing it, delivered the Babe, and said, Farewell my sweet Child; and as the Hangman was cutting off its head, she sang, All laud and praise, with heart and voice, O Lord, we yield to thee: To whom the death of all thy Saints We know most dear to be. When Romanus was cast into the fire, he said he should not burn. Accordingly a great storm arose (as it is reported) and quenched the fire. Then his Tongue was cut out. Nevertheless he spoke, saying, He that speaketh Christ, shall never want a Tongue. Think not that the Voice, that uttereth Christ, hath need of the Tongue to be the Minister. Eusebius saith, Euseb. E●c●. H●st. G●. & Lat. pag. 320. That by his constancy in enduring his Tongue to be pulled out of his Mouth, he really declared to all, that a divine Virtue is never wanting to any, who suffer for godliness sake, which doth both mitigate their griefs, and corroborateth their hearts. This valiant Soldier of Christ was not at all, terrified thereat, but of his own accord put out his Tongue, and willingly yielded the same to the Tormentors hands. Then he was clapped in Prison again, and there a long while cruelly tormented, and at last in the year 306. strangled, and thereby according to his own desire was crowned with Martyrdom. Roper. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 537. George Roper, a young man, at his coming to the Stake, putting off his Gown, fetched a great leap. So soon as the flame was about him, he put out both his arms from his body like a rood, and so stood steadfast, not plucking his arms in at all, till the fire had consumed them, and burned them off. Rough. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 860. Mr. john Rough, a famous Scotch Minister in England in King Edward's days, at the beginning of Queen Mary's reign fled into Frizeland with his Wife, where he laboured for his living in knitting of Caps, Hose, etc. till lacking of Yarn, etc. he came over into England to provide for the maintenance of his Occupation; and at London hearing of the secret Society and holy Congregation of God's Children there assembled, he joined himself unto them; and afterwards being elected their Minister, continued for some time in fellowship with them, teaching and confirming them in the Truth and Gospel of Christ. But not long after he was by a false Brother's treachery taken, and clapped in Newgate. Pag. 862. When he was before Bonner, he told him, That he utterly detested the Service then used, and that if he should live as long as did Me huselah, yet he would never come to hear the abominable Mass, and other Service, being as it was then.— Dr. Watson then Bishop of Lincoln, being at his Examination, urged that he had done more hurt in the North Parts in King Edward's days, than an hundred besides, etc. Why Sir (said Mr. Rough) Is this the reward I have for saving your life in those days? He said, he had lived thirty years, and yet had never bowed his knee to Ball. Before Bonner he affirmed, That he had been twice at Rome, and there had seen plainly with his eyes, that the Pope was the very Antichrist; for he saw more reverence given to him, then to that which they accounted their God. Mr. Rough having been at the burning of Austoo in Smithfield, and returning homeward again, met with one that ased him, where he had been? I have been (said he) where I would not for one of mine eyes but I had been. Where have you been? replied his Friend. Forsooth (said he) to learn the way. And so he told him, he had been at the burning of Austoo, where shortly after he was burned himself. In his Letter to some Friends.— The comfort of the Holy Ghost make you able to give consolation to others, in these dangerous days, when Satan is let loose, but to the trial only of the chosen, when it pleaseth our God to sift his Wheat from the Chaff.— I speak to God's glory; my care in my great temptations was to have the senses of my soul open, to perceive the Voice of God, saying, Whosoever denieth me before men, him will I deny before my Father and his Angels: And to save the life corporal, is to lose the life eternal: and he that will not suffer with Christ, shall not reign with him. Therefore, most tender Ones, I have by God's Spirit given over the flesh, with the fight of my soul, and the Spirit hath the victory. The flesh shall now ere it be long, leave off to sin: the Spirit shall reign eternally. I have chosen Death to confirm the Truth by me taught. What can I do more? Pag. 863. Consider with yourselves, that I have done it for the confirmation of God's Truth. Pray that I may continue to the end. The greatest part of the assault is past, I praise my God. I have in all my assaults felt the present aid of my God, I give him most hearty thanks therefore. Look not back, nor be ye ashamed of Christ's Gospel, nor of the bonds I have suffered for the same.— It is no time for the loss of one man in the Battle for the Camp to turn Back. Up with men's hearts; blow down the daubed Walls of Heresy. Let one take the Banner, and the other the Trumdet; I mean, not to make corporal resistance, but pray, and ye shall have Elias defence, and Elizeus company to fight for you. The Cause is the Lords.— My heart with pangs of death is assaulted: but I am at home yet with my God alive. Pray for me, etc.— From Newgate Prison in haste, the day of my Condemnation. I. R. In his Letter to the Congregation two days before he suffered.— Whosoever will live godly in Christ Jesus, must suffer persecution; for it is given unto them not only to believe, but to suffer: and the Servant or Scholar cannot be greater than his Lord or Master; but by the same way the Head is entered, the Members must follow.— My dear soul is departing this Life to my great advantage; I make change of morality for immortality, of corruption to put on incorruption, to make my body like to the Corn cast into the ground, which except it die first it can bring forth no good fruit.— Happy are they that die in the Lord, which is to die in the Faith of Christ, professing and confessing the same before many Witnesses.— What a Journey (by God's power) I have made these eight days, is above flesh and blood to bear: but (as Paul saith) I may do all things through him, who worketh in me, jesus Christ My course (Brethren) I have run, I have fought a good fight, the Crown of Righteousness is laid up for me, my day to receive it is not long to. Pray (Brethren) for the enemy doth yet assault.— Be not ashamed of the Gospel of the Cross, by me preached, nor of my suffering; for with my blood I affirm the same. I go before. I suffer first the baiting of the Butcher's Dogs; yet I have not done what I should have done.— What was undone, impute that to frailty and ignorance, and with your love cover that which was and is naked in me. God knoweth ye are all tender to me. My heart bursteth for the love of you. Ye are not without the great Pastor of your souls, who so loveth you, that if men were not to be found (as God be praised there is no want of them) he would cause stones to minister unto you. Cast your care on that Rock, the wind of temptation shall not prevail. Past and pray; for the days are evil. Look up with your eyes of hope; for your redemption is not far off, (but my wickedness hath deserved that I shall not see it) and also that which is behind of the blood of our Brethren, which shall also be laid under the Altar, Pag. 864. shall cry for your relief.— The Friday at night before Mr. Rough was taken, being in his Bed he dreamt, That he saw two of the Guard leading Cuthbert Sympson (Deacon of the said Congregation) and that he had the Book about him, wherein were written the Names of all them, that were of the Congregation. Afterwards he awaked, and having told the dream unto his Wife, after some time spent in reading, he fell asleep again, and dreamt the same dream again: and awaking, told his Wife his dream, and said, O Brother Cuthbert is gone. And whilst he was making ready for to go and see how it was with him, Mr. Sympson came into Mr. Rough's House, and brought the Book with him. Mr. Rough having told him his dream, persuaded him to carry the Book no more about with him: which he was loath to promise; because (said he) dreams are but fancies, and not to be credited. Then Mr. Rough straight charged him in the Name of the Lord to do it. Whereupon Mr. Sympson left the Book with Mrs. Rough. And so the Congregation was preserved. Pag. 865. The next night Mr. Rough dreamt, That he himself was forcibly carried to the Bishop, and that the Bishop plucked off his beard, and cast it into the fire, saying these words, Now I may say, I have had a piece of an Heretic burned in my House. And so accordingly it came to pass. Rose. Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 933. Mr. Thomas Rose born at Exmouth in Devon, when he was first taken, was sorely stocked in Prison. The Stocks were very high and great; so that day and night he did lie with his back on the ground, upon a little straw, with his heels so high, that by means the blood was fallen from his feet, his feet were without sense for a long time.— His Mother might not be suffered to see him.— Afterwards Cranmer set him at liberty.— When he was brought before Gardiner, Pag. 934. being taken at Bow in London with five and thirty more, Winchester told him, That he would know who were his Maintainers, or else he would make him a foot longer. My Lord (said he) you shall do as much as pleaseth God, and no more, yet the Law is in your hand; but I have God for my Maintainer, and none other. At his second Examination the Chancellor asked him, Pag. 935. What he said to the real presence in the Sacrament? I wist right well (said he) you are made an instrument to seek innocent blood: Well, you may have it, if God permit, it is present, and at hand; for I came not hither to lie, but to die (if God see it good) in defence of that which I have said: Wherefore you may begin when you think good, etc.— At his third Examination the Bishop saying, Ah Sirrah, you will admit nothing but Scripture, I see well: No truly my Lord (said he) I admit nothing but Scripture for the Regiment of the Soul; for Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the Word of God; and where the Word of God is not, there ought no belief to be given; for whatsoever is not of Faith is sin.— Roth. Richard Roth in his Letter to certain Brethren and Sisters condemned at Colchester, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 848. and ready to be burned for the testimony of the Truth.— O dear Brethren and Sisters, how much have you to rejoice in God, that he hath given you such faith to overcome this bloodthirsty Tyrant thus far? And no doubt but he that hath begun that good work in you, will fulfil it to the end. O dear Hearts in Christ, what a Crown of Glory shall ye receive with Christ in the Kingdom of God? Oh that it had been the good will of God, that I had been ready to have gone with you. I lie in my Lord's Little-ease in the day, and in the night in the Coal-house alone, and we look every day when we shall be condemned; but I lie still at the Pools brink, and every man goeth in before me; but we abide patiently the Lords leisure, with many Bands, in Fetters and Stocks, by the which we have received great joy in the Lord. And now fare you well dear Brethren and Sisters in this World, but I trust to see you in the Heaven's face to face.— How blessed are you in the Lord, that God hath found you worthy to suffer for his sake.— O be joyful even unto death. Fear it not, saith Christ, for I have overcome death.— Be strong, let your hearts be of good comfort, and wait you still for the Lord. He is at hand. The Angel of the Lord pitcheth his Tent round about them that fear him, and delivereth them which way he seeth best; for our lives are in the Lords hands, and they can do nothing unto us, before God suffer them: Therefore give all thanks to God. O dear Hearts, you shall be clothed with long white Garments upon the Mount Zion, with the multitude of Saints, and with Jesus Christ our Saviour, who will never forsake us. O blessed Virgins, you have played the wise Virgin's part, in that you have taken Oil in your Vessels, that ye may go in with the Bridegroom, when he cometh, etc. but as for the foolish, they shall be shut out; because they made not themselves ready to suffer with Christ, neither go out to take up his Cross. O dear Hearts, How precious shall your death be in the sight of the Lord? for dear is the death of his Saints. O fare you well, and pray. The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with you all. Amen, Amen. Pray, pray, pray. By me R. R. written with mine own blood. The Bishop ask him what he thought of his Fellow-Prisoner Ralf Allerton; He answered, That he thought him to be one of the elect Children of God; and if he were put to death for his Faith and Religion, he thought he should die a true Martyr. The Bishop ask him how he did like the Order and Rites of the Church, than used here in England; He said, That he ever had, and then did abhor the same with all his heart. Being persuaded to recant, and ask mercy of the Bishop: No (said he) I will not ask mercy of him, that cannot give it. Wrought. A Suffolk man (so called) and his Wife and several others, Fox, Vol. 3. pag. 704. being rebuked for going so openly, and talking so freely: Their answer was, They acknowledged and believed, and therefore they must speak: and that the tribulation was by God's good will and providence, and that his Judgements were right to pur●●● them with others for their sins: and that of very faithfulness and mercy God had caused them to be troubled bled: and that one hair of their heads should not perish before the time; but all things should work unto the best to them that love God: and that Christ Jesus was their life and only righteousness: and that only by faith in him, and for his seek all good things were freely given them, also forgiveness of sins, and life everlasting. Rupea. The Mirror of Martyrs, pag. 310. You may (said Castalia Rupea) throw my body from this steep Hill, yet will my soul mount upward again. Your blasphemies more offend my soul, than your torments do my body. Russel. The Ecclesiastical History of Scotland, pag. 24. jeremy Russel being apprehended in the Diocese of Glasgow in Scotland, A. 1539. and railed upon, answered, This is your hour and power of darkness. Now sit ye as Judges, and we stand wrongfully accused, and more wrongfully to be condemned; but the day shall come, when our innocence shall appear, and that ye shall see your own blindness, to your everlasting confusion. Go forward, and fulfil the measure of your iniquity. He comforted his Fellow-Prisoner Alexander Kennedy (of whom see the second Part under K.) saying, Brother fear not, more mighty is he that is in us, than he that is in the world: the pain that we shall suffer is short, and shall be light; but our joy and consolation shall never have end: and therefore let us contend to enter in unto our Master and Saviour by the same straight way, which he hath taken before us: Death cannot destroy us; for it is destroyed already by him, for whose sake we suffer. Rycetto. Mr. Anthony Rycetto of Vincence being condemned to be drowned, Foo, Vol. 3. cont. pag. 44. his Son, about twelve years of age, comieg to visit him, besought him with tears to yield, and to save his life, that he might not be left fatherless. A true Christian (said his Father) is bound to forego Goods, Children, yea, and life itself, for the maintenance of God's honour and glory. A Captain telling him, That Francis Sega was resolved to recant: What tell you me (said he) of Sega? I will perform my vows unto the Lord my God. A Priest presenting him with a wooden Crucifix, exhorting him to return, and to die in the favour of God, reconciling himself to the Church of Rome, the holy Spouse of Christ: But he rejected the Crucifix, and besought the Priest to come out of the snare of the Devil, to cleave to Jesus Christ, and to live, not according to the flesh, but after the Spirit. If you do otherwise (said he) assure yourselves your unbelief will bring y●u into that Lake of fire, that shall never be quenched; for though y●u confess with your mouth that you know jesus Christ, yet you not only deny him by your works, but you persecute him in his Members, being bewitched by the Pope, the open enemy of the Son of God. As he was carrying to be drowned, because it was very cold, he called for his Cloak, which they had taken from him. Whereupon the Wherry-man said unto him, Fearest thou a little cold? What wilt thou do, when thou art cast into the Sea? Why art not thou careful to save thyself from drowing? Dost not thou see that the poor Flea skips hither and thither, to save her life? His answer was, And I am now flying to escape eternal death. Being arrived at the place where he was to suffer, the Captain put a Chain of Iron about his middle, with a very heavy Stone fastened thereto: Then Rycetto lifting his eyes to Heaven, said, Father forgive them; for they know not what they do. And being laid on the Planck, he said, Lord jesus, into thy hands I commend my spirit. FINIS.